"Maria Snyder - Study 03 - Fire Study" - читать интересную книгу автора (Snyder Maria V) FIRE STUDYByMaria V. Snyder To my parents, James and
Vincenza, for your constant support ACKNOWLEDGMENTSBy this time you all
should know how wonderful my husband, Rodney, can be. After all, I have thanked
him and listed the many ways he supports me in the acknowledgments of my first
two books. However, the writing wouldn’t get done and the holes in plot logic
wouldn’t get filled without him. So once again, thanks go to him, because I don’t
ever want to take him for granted. And thanks also go to my two little sparks
who fire my imagination—my children, Luke and Jenna. One of the best
decisions I’ve made is to attend Seton Hill University’s graduate writing
program. Through this program I’ve learned so much and met a talented group of
writers. Thanks to them all, and special thanks go to my critique partners,
Diana Botsford, Kimberley Howe and Jason Jack Miller, who helped me with this
book. Kim, I hope this reads better than the ingredients on a frozen dinner! I
would also like to thank my Seton Hill mentor, David Bischoff. First drafts of novels
can be pretty rough, but my editor, Mary-Theresa Hussey, has the knowledge and
experience to wade in and guide me to calmer waters. Thanks, Matrice, for all
your hard work and the smiley faces on my manuscript. They keep me going! Thanks go to my
excellent agent, Robert Mecoy, who has taught me so much about the publishing
business and about how important it is to have a knowledgeable agent on your
side. Many thanks to Erin Craig, who turned up the heat for this beautiful
cover. Researching for a book
is always fun, and this time I enrolled in a glassblowing class. My
appreciation for glass art rose considerably as I struggled to craft simple
items from molten glass. Thanks go to my teacher and glass artist Helen
Tegeler, whose patient instruction not only added to my knowledge of glass for
this book, but made the experience a blast. 1“THAT’S PATHETIC,
YELENA,” Dax complained. “An all-powerful Soulfinder who isn’t all-powerful.
Where’s the fun in that?” He threw up his long thin arms in mock frustration. “Sorry to disappoint
you, but I’m not the one who attached the ‘all-powerful’ to the title.” I
pulled a black strand of hair from my eyes. Dax and I had been working on
expanding my magical abilities without success. As we practiced on the ground
floor of Irys’s Keep tower—well, mine too, since she has given me three floors
to use—I tried not to let my own aggravation interfere with the lessons. Dax was attempting to
teach me how to move objects with magic. He had rearranged the furniture, lined
up the plush armchairs in neat rows and turned the couch over on its side with
his power. My efforts to restore Irys’s cozy layout and to stop an end table
from chasing me failed. Though not from lack of trying—my shirt clung to my
sweaty skin. A sudden chill shook me.
Despite a small fire in the hearth, the rugs and the closed shutters, the
living room was icy. The white marble walls, while wonderful during the hot
season, sucked all the heat from the air throughout the cold season. I imagined
the room’s warmth following the stone’s green veins and escaping outside. Dax Greenblade, my
friend, tugged his tunic down. Tall and lean, his physique matched a typical
Greenblade Clan member. He reminded me of a blade of grass, including a sharp
edge—his tongue. “Obviously you have no
ability to move objects, so let’s try fire. Even a baby can light a fire!” Dax
placed a candle on the table. “A baby? Now you’re
really exaggerating. Again.” A person’s ability to access the power source and
perform magic manifested at puberty. “Details. Details.” Dax
waved a hand as if shooing a fly. “Now concentrate on lighting this candle.” I cocked an eyebrow at
him. So far, all my efforts on inanimate items were for naught. I could heal my
friend’s body, hear his thoughts and even see his soul, but when I reached for
a thread of magic and tried to use it to move a chair, nothing happened. Dax held up three tan
fingers. “Three reasons why you should be able to do this. One, you’re
powerful. Two, you’re tenacious. And three, you’ve beat Ferde, the
Soulstealer.” Who had escaped, and was
free to start another soul-stealing spree. “Reminding me of Ferde is helping me
how…?” “It’s supposed to be a
pep talk. Do you want me to list all the heroic deeds you’ve—” “No. Let’s get on with
the lesson.” The last thing I wanted was to hear Dax recite the latest gossip.
The news about my being a Soulfinder had spread through the Magician’s Keep
like dandelion seeds carried by a strong wind. And I still couldn’t think about
the title without a cringe of doubt, worry and fear touching my heart. I pushed all distracting
thoughts aside and connected to the power source. The power blanketed the
world, but only magicians could pull threads of magic from it to use. I
gathered a strand to me and directed it to the candle, willing a flame to form. Nothing. “Try harder,” Dax said. Increasing the power, I
aimed again. Behind the candle, Dax’s
face turned red and he sputtered as if suppressing a cough. A flash seared my
eyes as the wick ignited. “That’s rude.” His
outraged expression was comical. “You wanted it lit.” “Yeah, but I didn’t want
to do it for you!” He glanced around the room as if seeking the patience to deal
with an unruly child. “Zaltanas and their weird powers, forcing me to light the
candle. Pah! To think I wanted to live vicariously through your adventures.” “Watch what you say
about my clan. Or I’ll…” I cast about for a good threat. “You’ll what?” “I’ll tell Second
Magician where you disappear to every time he pulls one of those old books off
his shelf.” Bain was Dax’s mentor, and, while the Second Magician delighted in
ancient history, Dax would rather learn the newest dance steps. “Okay, okay. You win and
you’ve proved your point. No ability to light a fire. I’ll stick to translating
ancient languages.” Dax made a dour face. “And you stick to finding souls.” He
teased, but I sensed an undercurrent to his words. His uneasiness over my
abilities was for excellent reasons. The last Soulfinder was born in Sitia
about a hundred and fifty years ago. During his short life, he had turned his
enemies into mindless slaves and almost succeeded in his quest to rule the
country. Most Sitians didn’t react well to the news about another Soulfinder. The awkward moment
passed as a mischievous glint lit Dax’s bottle-green eyes. “I’d better go. I
have to study. We have a history test tomorrow. Remember?” I groaned, thinking of
the large tome waiting for me. “Your knowledge of
Sitian history is also pathetic.” “Two reasons.” I held up
my fingers. “One, Ferde Daviian. Two, the Sitian Council.” Dax gestured with his
hand. Before he could say
anything, I said, “I know. Details, details.” He smiled and wrapped
his cloak around him, letting in a gust of arctic wind as he left. The flames
in the hearth pulsed for a moment before settling. I drew closer, warming my
hands over the fire. My thoughts returned to those two reasons. Ferde was a member of
the unsanctioned Daviian Clan, who were a renegade group of the Sandseed Clan.
The Daviians wanted more from life than wandering the Avibian Plains and
telling stories. On a power quest, Ferde had kidnapped and tortured twelve
girls to steal their souls and increase his magical power. Valek and I had
stopped him before he could complete his quest. An ache for Valek pumped
in my heart. I touched his butterfly pendant hanging from my neck. He had
returned to Ixia a month ago, but I missed him more each day. Perhaps I should
get myself into a life-threatening situation. He had a knack for showing up
when I most needed him. Unfortunately, those
times were fraught with danger and there hadn’t been many chances to just be
with each other. I longed to be assigned a boring diplomatic mission to Ixia. The Sitian Council
wouldn’t approve the trip until they decided what to do with me. Eleven clan
leaders and four Master Magicians comprised the Council, and they had argued
about my new role of Soulfinder all this past month. Of the four Masters, Irys Jewelrose,
Fourth Magician, was my strongest supporter and Roze Featherstone, First
Magician, was my strongest detractor. I stared at the fire,
following the dance of flames along the logs. My thoughts lingered on Roze. The
randomness of the blaze stopped. The flames moved with a purpose, divided and
gestured as if on a stage. Odd. I blinked. Instead
of returning to normal, the blaze grew until it filled my vision and blocked
out the rest of the room. The bright patterns of color stabbed my eyes. I
closed them, but the image remained. Apprehension rolled along my skin. Despite
my strong mental barrier, a magician wove magic around me. Caught, I watched as the
fire scene transformed into a lifelike picture of me. Flame Me bent over a
prone body. A soul rose from the body, which I then inhaled. The soulless body
stood and Flame Me pointed to another figure. Turning, the body stalked the new
person and then strangled him. Alarmed, I tried to stop
the fire vision to no avail. I was forced to observe myself make more soulless
people, who all went on a massive killing spree. An opposing army attacked.
Fire swords flashed. Flames of blood splattered. I would have been impressed
with the magician’s level of artistic detail if I hadn’t been horrified by the
blazing carnage. In time, my army was
extinguished and I was caught in a net of fire. Flame Me was dragged, chained
to a post and doused with oil. I snapped back to my
body. Standing next to the hearth, I still felt the web of magic around me. It
contracted and tiny flames erupted on my clothes. And spread. I couldn’t stop the
advance with my power. Cursing my lack of fire skill, I wondered why I didn’t
possess this magical talent. An answer echoed in my
mind. Because we need a way to kill you. I stumbled away from the
blaze. Sweat poured down my back as the sound of sizzling blood vibrated in my
ears. All moisture fled my mouth and my heart cooked in my chest. The hot air
seared my throat. The smell of charred flesh filled my nose and my stomach
heaved. Pain assaulted every inch of my skin. No air to scream. I rolled around the
floor, trying to smother the fire. I burned. The magical attack
stopped, releasing me from the torment. I dropped to the floor and breathed in
the cool air. “Yelena, what happened?”
Irys touched an icy hand to my forehead. “Are you all right?” My mentor and friend
peered down at me. Concern lined her face and filled her emerald eyes. “I’m fine.” My voice
croaked, setting off a coughing fit. Irys helped me sit up. “Look at your clothes.
Did you set yourself on fire?” Black soot streaked the
fabric and burn holes peppered my sleeves and skirt/pants. Beyond repair, I
would have to ask my cousin, Nutty, to sew me another set. I sighed. I should
just order a hundred of the cotton tunics and skirt/pants from her to save
time. Events, including magical attacks, conspired to keep my life interesting. “A magician sent me a
message through the fire,” I explained. Even though I knew Roze possessed the
strongest magic in Sitia, and could bypass my mental defenses, I didn’t want to
accuse her without proof. Before Irys could
question me further, I asked, “How did the Council session go?” I hadn’t been
allowed to attend. Although the rainy weather wasn’t conducive for walking to
the Council Hall, it still rankled. The Council wanted me
well-versed in all the issues they dealt with on a daily basis as part of my
training to be a Liaison between them and the Territory of Ixia. My training as a Soulfinder, though, remained a subject the Council hadn’t agreed on. According
to Irys’s theory, my reluctance to begin learning could be the cause of the
Council’s indecision. I thought they worried I would follow the same path as
the Soulfinder from long ago once I discovered the extent of my powers. “The session…” Her lips
twisted in a wry smile. “Good and bad. The Council has agreed to support your
training.” She paused. I steeled myself for the
next bit of news. “Roze was…upset about
the decision.” “Upset?” “Fiercely opposed.” At least now I knew the
motive behind my fire message. “She still thinks you’re
a threat. So the Council has agreed to let Roze train you.” I scrambled to my feet.
“No.” “It’s the only way.” I bit back a reply.
There were other options. There had to be. I was in the Magician’s Keep,
surrounded by magicians of various skill levels. There had to be another who
could work with me. “What about you or Bain?” “They wanted a mentor
who was impartial. Out of the four Masters, that left Roze.” “But she’s not—” “I know. This could be
beneficial. Working with Roze, you’ll be able to convince her you’re not out to
rule the country. She’ll understand your desire to help both Sitia and Ixia.” My doubtful expression
remained. “She doesn’t like you,
but her passion for keeping Sitia a safe and free place to live will override
any personal feelings.” Irys handed me a scroll,
stopping my sarcastic comment on Roze’s personal feelings. “This arrived during
the Council session.” I opened the message. In
tight-printed letters was an order from Moon Man. It read, Yelena, I have found
what you seek. Come. 2THE MESSAGE I HELD WAS
typical for Moon Man, my Sandseed Story Weaver and friend. Cryptic and vague. I
imagined he had written the note with a devilish grin on his face. As my Story
Weaver, he knew I sought many things. Knowledge about Soulfinders and finding a
balance between Sitia and Ixia resided at the top of my list. A quiet vacation
would be nice, too, but I felt certain he referred to Ferde. Ferde Daviian, the
Soulstealer, and killer of eleven girls had escaped from the Magician’s Keep
cells with Cahil Ixia’s help. After the Council failed to recapture him, they
debated for an entire month about how to find them both. My frustration mounted
with every delay. Ferde was weak from when I had pulled the souls—his source of
magical power—from him during our fight. But all it would take was another
girl’s murder for him to regain some of his strength. So far, no one had been
reported missing, but the knowledge that he remained free clawed at my heart. To avoid imagining the horror
Ferde might cause, I focused on the message in my hand. Moon Man hadn’t
specified to come alone, but I dismissed the notion to tell the Council as soon
as the thought formed in my mind. By the time they decided what to do, Ferde
would be long gone. I would go without informing them. Irys would call it my
rush-into-a-situation-and-hope-for-the-best method. With only a few minor
mishaps, it had worked in the past. And at this point, rushing off held more
appeal. Irys had moved away when
I unrolled the message, but, by the way she held herself so still, I knew she
was curious. I told her about the note. “We should inform the
Council,” she said. “So they could do what?
Debate every possible issue for another month? The message invited me. If I
need your help, I’ll send for you.” I sensed her resolve softening. “You should not go
alone.” “Fine. I’ll take Leif
with me.” After a moment’s
hesitation, Irys agreed. As a Council member, she wasn’t happy about it, but
she had learned to trust my judgment. My brother, Leif, would
probably be as glad as I was to get away from both the Keep and the Citadel.
Roze Featherstone’s growing animosity toward me put Leif in a difficult
situation. Apprenticed to Roze while training at the Magician’s Keep, he had
become one of her aides upon graduation. His magical skill of sensing someone’s
emotions helped Roze determine a person’s guilt in a crime, and his magic also
aided victims in remembering details about what had happened to them. Leif’s first reaction to
my reappearance in Sitia after a fourteen-year absence had been immediate
hatred. He had convinced himself that my kidnapping to the Territory of Ixia had been done to spite him and my return from the north had been an Ixian
plot to spy on Sitia. “At least we should tell
the Master Magicians about Moon Man’s message,” Irys said. “I’m sure Roze would
like to know when she can begin your training.” I frowned at her, and
considered telling her about Roze’s petty fire attack. No. I would deal with
Roze on my own. Unfortunately, I would have plenty of time with her. “We’re having a Masters
meeting at the administration building this afternoon. It will be the perfect
time to inform them about your plans.” I scowled, but she
remained steadfast. “Good. I’ll see you
later,” she said. Irys sailed out of the
tower before I could voice my protest. I could still reach her with my mind,
though. Our minds always remained linked. The connection was as if we both
stood in the same room. We each had our own private thoughts, but if I “spoke” to
Irys, she would hear me. If she did probe into my deeper thoughts and memories,
it would be considered a breach in the magician’s Ethical Code. My horse, Kiki, and I
shared the same connection. A mental call to Kiki was all that was needed for
her to “hear” me. Communicating with Leif or my friend Dax proved more
difficult; I had to consciously pull power and seek them. And, once found, they
had to allow me access through their mental defenses and into their thoughts. Although I possessed the
ability to take a shortcut to their thoughts and emotions through their souls,
the Sitians considered the skill a breach of the Ethical Code. I had scared
Roze by using it to protect myself against her. Even with all her power, she
couldn’t stop me from touching her essence. Anxiety rolled in my
stomach. My new title of Soulfinder didn’t sit well with me, either. I shied
away from that line of speculation as I wrapped my cloak around me before
leaving the tower. On my way across the
Keep’s campus, my attention returned to my musings about mental communication.
My link with Valek couldn’t be considered a magical connection. To me, Valek’s
mind was unreachable, but he had the uncanny ability to know when I needed him
and he would connect with me. He had saved my life many times through that
bond. Turning Valek’s snake
bracelet around my wrist, I pondered our relationship until a biting wind laced
with icy needles drove away all warm thoughts about him. The cold season had
descended on northern Sitia with a vengeance. I shuffled through slushy puddles
and shielded my face from the sleet. The Keep’s white marble buildings were
splattered with mud and looked gray in the weak light, reflecting the miserable
day with perfection. Spending most of my
twenty-one years in northern Ixia, I had endured this type of weather for only
a few days during the cooling season. Then the cold air would drive the
dampness away. But, according to Irys, this horrid mess was a typical Sitian
day during the cold season, and snow was a rare event that seldom lasted more
than a night. I trudged toward the
Keep’s administration building, ignoring the hostile stares from the students
who hurried between classes. One of the results of capturing Ferde had been the
immediate change in my status from an apprentice of the Keep to a Magician’s
Aide. Since Irys and I had agreed to a partnership, she offered to share her
tower. I had accepted with relief, glad to be away from the cold censure of my
fellow students. Their scorn was nothing
in comparison to Roze’s fury when I entered the Masters’ meeting room. I braced
myself for her outburst, but Irys jumped from her seat at the long table and
explained why I had come. “…note from a Sandseed
Story Weaver,” Irys said. “He may have located Ferde and Cahil.” The corners of Roze’s
mouth pulled down with disdain. “Impossible. Crossing the Avibian Plains to
return to his clan in the Daviian Plateau would be suicide. And it’s too
obvious. Cahil is probably taking Ferde to either the Stormdance or the
Bloodgood lands. Cahil has many supporters there.” Roze had been Cahil’s
champion in the Council. Cahil had been raised by soldiers who had fled the
takeover in Ixia. They convinced Cahil that he was the nephew of the dead King
of Ixia and should inherit the throne. He had worked hard to gain supporters
and attempted to build an army to defeat the Commander of Ixia. However, once
he discovered he was really born to a common soldier, he rescued Ferde and
disappeared. Roze had encouraged
Cahil. They held the same belief that it was just a matter of time before
Commander Ambrose set his sights on conquering Sitia. “Cahil could bypass the
plains to get to the plateau,” Zitora Cowan, Third Magician, offered. Her
honey-brown eyes held concern, but as the youngest of the four Master Magicians
her suggestions tended to be ignored by the others. “Then how would this
Moon Man know? The Sandseeds don’t venture out of the plains unless it’s
absolutely necessary,” Roze said. “That’s what they want
us to believe,” Irys said. “I wouldn’t put it past them to have a few scouts
around.” “Either way,” Bain
Bloodgood, Second Magician, said, “we must consider all options. Obvious or
not, someone needs to confirm that Cahil and Ferde are not in the plateau.”
With his white hair and flowing robes, Bain’s appearance matched what I had
assumed to be a traditional magician’s uniform. Wisdom radiated from his
wrinkled face. “I’m going,” I declared. “We should send soldiers
with her,” Zitora said. “Leif should go,” Bain
added. “As cousins of the Sandseed, Yelena and Leif will be welcomed in the
plains.” Roze ran her slender
fingers along the short white strands of her hair and frowned, appearing to be
deep in thought. With the colder temperatures, Roze had stopped wearing the
sleeveless dresses she preferred and exchanged them for long-sleeved gowns. The
deep navy hue of the garment absorbed the light and almost matched her dark
skin. Moon Man had the same skin tone, and I wondered what color his hair would
be if he hadn’t shaved it off. “I’m not sending anyone,”
Roze finally said. “It’s a waste of time and resources.” “I’m going. I don’t need
your permission.” I stood, preparing to leave. “You need my permission
to exit the Keep,” Roze said. “This is my domain. I’m in charge of all
magicians, including you, Soulfinder.” Her hands smacked her chair’s arms. “If
I had control of the Council, you would be taken to the Keep’s cells to await
execution. No good has ever come from a Soulfinder.” The other Masters gaped
at Roze in shock. She remained incensed. “Just look at our history. Every
Soulfinder has craved power. Magical power. Political power. Power over
people’s souls. Yelena will be no different. Sure now she plays at being a
Liaison and has agreed to my training. It’s only a matter of time. Already…”
Roze gestured to the doorway. “Already she wants to run off before I can begin
lesson one.” Her words echoed through
the stunned silence. Roze glanced around at their horrified expressions and
smoothed the wrinkles from her gown. Her dislike of me was well-known, but this
time she had gone too far. “Roze, that was quite—” She raised her hand,
stopping Bain from the rest of his lecture. “You know the history. You have
been warned many, many times, so I will say no more about it.” She rose from
her seat. Towering a good seven inches above me, she peered down. “Go, then.
Take Leif with you. Consider it your first lesson. A lesson in futility. When
you return, you’ll be mine.” Roze made to leave, but
I caught a thread of her thoughts in my mind. …should keep her
occupied and out of my way. Roze paused before she
exited. Looking over her shoulder, she gave me a pointed stare. Keep out of
Sitia’s affairs. And you might be the only Soulfinder in history to live past
the age of twenty-five. Go take another look at
your history books, Roze, I said. The demise of a Soulfinder is always reported
along with the death of a Master Magician. Roze ignored me as she
left the meeting room, ending the session. I went to find Leif. His
quarters were near the apprentice’s wing on the east side of the Keep’s campus.
He lived in the Magician’s building, which housed those who had graduated from
the Keep and were now either teaching new students or working as aides to the
Master Magicians. The rest of the
magicians who had also completed the curriculum were assigned to different
towns to serve the citizens of Sitia. The Council tried to have a healer in
every town, but the magicians with rare powers—like the ability to read ancient
languages or find lost items—moved from place to place as needed. Magicians with strong
powers took the Master-level test before leaving the Keep. In the past twenty
years, only Zitora had passed, bringing the number of Masters to four. In
Sitia’s history, there never had been more than four Masters at one time. Irys thought a
Soulfinder could be strong enough to take the Master’s test. I disagreed. They
already had the maximum, and I lacked the basic magical skills of lighting
fires and moving objects—skills all the Masters possessed. Besides, being a
Soulfinder was bad enough, having to endure and fail the Master test would be
too much to bear. Or so I guessed. The rumors about the test sounded horrific. Before I even reached
Leif’s door, it swung open and my brother stuck his head out. The rain soaked
his short black hair in an instant. I shooed him back as I hurried into his
living room, dripping muddy slush onto his clean floor. His apartment was tidy
and sparsely furnished. The only hint of his personality could be gleaned from
the few paintings that decorated the room. A detailed rendering of a rare
Ylang-Ylang flower indigenous to the Illiais Jungle, a painting of a strangler
fig suffocating a dying mahogany tree and a picture of a tree leopard crouched
on a branch hung on his walls. Leif scanned my
bedraggled appearance with resignation. His jade-colored eyes were the only
feature that matched my own. His stocky body and square jaw were the complete
opposite of my oval face and thin build. “It can’t be good news,”
Leif said. “I’d doubt you would brave the weather just to say hello.” “You opened the door
before I could knock,” I said. “You must know something’s up.” Leif wiped the rain from
his face. “I smelled you coming.” “Smelled?” “You reek of Lavender.
Do you bathe in Mother’s perfume or just wash your cloak with it?” he teased. “How mundane. I was
thinking of something a little more magical.” “Why waste the energy on
using magic when you don’t have to? Although…” Leif’s eyes grew distant
and I felt the slight tingle of power being pulled. “Apprehension. Excitement.
Annoyance. Anger,” Leif said. “I take it the Council hasn’t voted to make you
Queen of Sitia yet?” When I didn’t answer, he
said, “Don’t worry, little sister, you’re still the princess of our family. We
both know Mother and Father love you best.” His words held an edge,
and I remembered it hadn’t been long since he had wanted to see me dead. “Esau and Perl love us
equally. You really do need me around to correct your misconceptions. I’ve
proved you wrong before. I can do it again.” Leif put his hands on
his hips and raised one dubious eyebrow. “You said I was afraid
to come back to the Keep. Well—” I spread my arms wide, flinging drops of water
onto Leif’s green tunic “—here I am.” “You are here. I’ll
grant you that. But are you unafraid?” “I already have a mother
and a Story Weaver. Your job is to be the annoying older brother. Stick to what
you know.” “Ohhh. I’ve hit a
nerve.” “I don’t want to argue
with you. Here.” I pulled Moon Man’s note from my cloak’s pocket and handed it
to him. He unfolded the damp
paper, scanning the message. “Ferde,” he said, coming to the same conclusion.
“Have you told the Council?” “No. The Masters know.”
I filled Leif in on what had happened in the meeting room, omitting my
“exchange” with Roze Featherstone. Leif’s wide shoulders
drooped. After a long moment, he said, “Master Featherstone doesn’t believe
Ferde and Cahil are going to the Daviian Plateau. She doesn’t trust me
anymore.” “You don’t know that
for—” “She thinks Cahil is
headed in another direction. Normally she would send me to determine his
location and send for her. Together, we would confront him. Now I get assigned
the wild-valmur chase.” “Valmur?” It took me a
moment to connect the name with the small, long-tailed creature that lived in
the jungle. “Remember? We used to
chase them through the trees. They were so fast and quick, we never caught one.
But sit down and hold a piece of sap candy and they’ll jump right into your lap
and follow you around all day.” When I failed to
respond, Leif cringed with guilt. “That must have been after…” After I had been
kidnapped and taken to Ixia. Although I could imagine a young Leif scampering
through the jungle’s canopy after a fleet-footed valmur. The Zaltana Clan’s
homestead had been built high in the tree branches, and my father had joked
that the children learned to climb before they could walk. “Roze could be wrong
about Cahil’s intentions. So pack some of that sap candy. We might need it,” I
said. Leif shivered. “At least
it will be warmer in the plains, and the plateau is farther south.” I left Leif’s quarters,
heading to my tower to pack some supplies. The sleet blew sideways and tiny
daggers of ice stung my face as I hurried through the storm. Irys was waiting
for me in the receiving room just past the oversize tower entrance. The flames
in the hearth pulsed with the rush of cold air slipping around the doors as I
fought to close them against the wind. I hustled to the fire
and held my hands out. The prospect of traveling in such weather was
unappealing. “Does Leif know how to
light fires?” I asked Irys. “I think so. But no
matter how skilled he is, wet wood won’t ignite.” “Great,” I muttered.
Steam floated from my soaked cloak. I draped the soggy garment around a chair
then dragged it closer to the fire. “When are you leaving?”
Irys asked. “Right away.” My stomach
grumbled and I realized I had missed lunch. I sighed, knowing dinner would
probably be a cold slice of cheese and mushy bread. “I’m meeting Leif in the
barn. Oh snake spit!” I remembered a couple of commitments. “Irys, can you tell
Gelsi and Dax I’ll start their training when I get back?” “What training? Not
magic—” “No, no. Self-defense
training.” I pointed to my bow. The five-foot-long staff of ebony wood was
still threaded through its holder on my backpack. Drops of water beaded and
gleamed on the weapon. I pulled it free,
feeling the solid weight of the staff in my hands. Underneath the ebony surface
of the bow was a gold-colored wood. Pictures of me as a child, of the jungle,
my family, and so on had been etched into the wood. Even Kiki’s loving eyes had
been included in the story of my life. The bow moved smoothly in my hands. A
gift from a master crafts-woman of the Sandseed Clan who had also raised Kiki. “And Bain knows that you
won’t be at his morning lesson,” Irys said. “But he said—” “Don’t tell me he
assigned homework,” I pleaded. Just thinking about lugging the heavy history
tome made my back hurt. Irys smiled. “He said
that he would help you catch up on your studies when you return.” Relieved, I picked up my
pack, sorting the contents to see what other supplies we would need. “Anything else?” Irys
asked. “No. What are you going
to tell the Council?” I asked. “That Roze has assigned
you to learn about your magic from the Story Weavers. The first documented
Soulfinder in Sitia was a Sandseed. Did you know that?” “No.” I was surprised
but shouldn’t have been. After all, what I knew about Soulfinders wouldn’t fill
a page in one of Master Bain’s history books. When I finished packing,
I said goodbye to Irys and muscled my way through the wind to the dining hall.
The kitchen staff always had a supply of travel rations on hand for the
magicians. I grabbed enough food to last us a week. As I drew closer to the
stables, I could see a few brave horse heads poking out of their stalls. Kiki’s
copper-and-white face was unmistakable even in the murky half-light. She nickered in greeting
and I opened my mind to her. We go? she asked. Yes. I’m sorry to take
you out on such a horrible day, I said. Not bad with Lavender
Lady. Lavender Lady was the
name the horses had given me. They named the people around them just like we
would name a pet. I had to smile, though, remembering Leif’s comment about my
bathing in the pungent herb. Lavender smell like…
Kiki didn’t have the words to describe her emotions. A mental image of a bushy
blue-gray lavender plant with its long purple cluster of flowers formed in
Kiki’s mind. Feelings of contentment and security accompanied the image. The main corridor of the
stable echoed as if empty despite the pile of feed bags nearby. The thick
supporting beams of the building stood like soldiers between the stalls and the
end of the row disappeared into the gloom. Leif? I asked Kiki. Sad Man in tack room,
Kiki said. Thanks. I ambled toward
the back of the barn, inhaling the familiar aroma of leather and saddle soap.
The dry smell of straw scratched my throat and clung to the earthy scent of
manure. Tracker, too. Who? But before Kiki could
answer I spotted Captain Marrok in the tack room with Leif. The sharp tip of
Marrok’s sword was aimed at Leif’s chest. 3“STAY BACK, YELENA,”
Marrok ordered. “Answer me, Leif.” Leif’s face had paled,
but his jaw was set in a stubborn line. His gaze met mine, questioning. “What do you want,
Marrok?” I asked. The bruises on Marrok’s
face had faded, but his right eye was still puffy and raw despite Healer
Hayes’s efforts to repair his broken cheekbone. “I want to find Cahil,”
Marrok said. “We all want to find
him. Why are you threatening my brother?” I used a stern tone to remind Marrok
that he now dealt with me. Having an infamous reputation had a few advantages. Marrok looked at me. “He
works with First Magician. She’s in charge of the search. If she has any clue
as to where to find Cahil, she’ll send Leif.” He gestured to the bridles in
Leif’s hands. “On a day like today, he’s not going to the market or out for a
pleasure ride. But he won’t tell me where he’s going.” It continued to amaze me
just how fast news and gossip traveled through the Keep’s guards. “Did you ask him before
or after you pulled your sword?” The tip of Marrok’s
blade wavered. “Why does it matter?” he asked. “Because most people are
more willing to cooperate if they don’t have a weapon pointed at their chest.”
Realizing that Marrok was a career soldier who did most of his talking with his
sword, I switched tactics. “Why didn’t you plan to
follow Leif?” Marrok’s tracking abilities had impressed the horses so much that
they had given him the name Tracker. Marrok touched his cheek
and winced. I could guess his thoughts. Marrok had followed Cahil with the
utmost loyalty, but Cahil had beaten and tortured him to find out the truth
about his common heritage, leaving Marrok for dead. The soldier sheathed his
sword in one quick motion as if he had made a decision. “I can’t follow Leif.
He would sense me with his magic and confuse my mind.” “I can’t do that,” Leif
said. “Truly?” Marrok rested
his hand near his sword, considering. “But I can,” I said. Marrok’s attention
snapped back to me. “Marrok, you’re hardly
fit for travel. And I can’t let you kill Cahil. The Sitian Council wants to
talk to him first.” I wanted to talk to him. “I don’t seek revenge,”
Marrok said. “Then what do you want?” “To help.” Marrok
gripped the hilt of his weapon. “What?” Leif and I said
at the same time. “Sitia needs Cahil. Only
the Council and the Masters know he doesn’t have royal blood. Ixia is a real
threat to Sitia’s way of life. Sitia needs a figurehead to rally behind.
Someone to lead them into battle.” “But he aided in Ferde’s
escape,” I said. “And Ferde could be torturing and raping another girl as we
speak!” “Cahil was just confused
and overwhelmed by learning the truth of his birth. I raised him. I know him
better than anyone. He probably already regrets his rashness. Ferde is most
likely dead. If I get a chance to talk to Cahil, I’m positive he would come
back without a fight, and we can work this out with the Council.” Power brushed me. “He’s sincere about his
intentions,” Leif said. But what about Cahil’s
intentions? I had seen him be ruthless and opportunistic in his quest to build
an army, but never rash. However, I had only known him for two seasons. I
considered using magic to see Marrok’s memories of Cahil, but that would be a
breach in the magician’s Ethical Code unless he gave me his consent. So I asked
for it. “Go ahead,” Marrok said,
meeting my gaze. Pain lingered in his
blue-gray eyes. His short gray hair had turned completely white since Cahil’s
attack. Granting me permission
was enough to convince me of his sincerity, but despite his good intentions he
still wanted to build an army and attack Ixia. And that ran counter to what I
believed. Ixia and Sitia just needed to understand each other and work
together. A war would help no one. Do I leave Marrok here
to influence the Council toward an attack, or take him with me? His skills as a
tracker would be an added benefit. “If I allow you to come
with us, you must obey all my orders. Agreed?” I asked. Marrok straightened as
if he stood in a military formation. “Yes, sir.” “Are you strong enough
to ride?” “Yes, but I don’t have a
horse.” “That’s all right. I’ll
find you a Sandseed horse. All you’ll need to do is hold on.” I grinned,
thinking of Kiki’s special gust-of-wind gait. Leif laughed and his
body relaxed with the release of the tension. “Good luck convincing the Stable
Master to loan you his horse.” “What do you mean?” I
asked. “Garnet is the only
other horse in the Keep’s stables bred by the Sandseeds.” I wilted in defeat just
thinking about the stubborn, cranky Stable Master. Now what? No other horse
breed would be able to keep up with us. Honey, Kiki said in my
mind. Honey? Avibian honey. Chief Man
love honey. Which meant, if I
offered to bring some Avibian honey back for the Stable Master, he might lend
me his horse. We left the Citadel
through the south gate and headed down the valley road. Farm fields peppered
with corn stubble and wagon ruts swept out from the right side of the road. The
Avibian Plains dominated the left side. The long grasses of the
plains had turned from yellow and red to brown in the cold weather. The rains
created extensive puddles, transforming the rolling landscape into a marshland
and scenting the air with a damp smell of earthy decay. Leif rode Rusalka, and
Marrok had a death grip on Garnet’s reins. His nervousness affected the tall
horse, who jittered to the side at every noise. Kiki slowed so I could
talk to him. “Marrok, relax. I’m the one who promised to bring back a case of
Avibian honey plus clean the Stable Master’s tack for three weeks.” He barked out a laugh
but kept his tight grip. Time to switch tactics.
I reached for the blanket of power hovering over the world and pulled a thread
of magic, linking my mind with Garnet’s. The horse missed Chief Man and didn’t
like this stranger on his back, but he settled when I showed him our
destination. Home, Garnet agreed. He
wanted to go. Pain. Marrok’s rigid hold hurt
Garnet’s mouth, and I knew Marrok wouldn’t relax even if I threatened to leave
him behind. Sighing, I made light contact with Marrok’s mind. His worry and
fear focused more on Cahil than on himself. His apprehension came from not
feeling in control of the powerful horse underneath him despite the fact that
he held Garnet’s reins. And also from not being in charge of the situation,
having to take orders from her. A dark undercurrent to
his thoughts about me pulled a warning bell in my mind, and I would have liked
to explore deeper. He had given me permission to see his memories of Cahil, but
he hadn’t given me carte blanche to probe. Instead, I sent him some calming
thoughts. Even though he couldn’t hear my words he should be able to react to
the soothing tone. After a while, Marrok no
longer held himself so rigid, and his body moved with Garnet’s motion. When
Garnet felt comfortable, Kiki turned east into the plains. Mud splashed from
her hooves as she increased her pace. I gave Leif and Marrok the signal to let
the horses have control. Please find Moon Man.
Fast, I said to Kiki. With a slight hop, she
broke into her gust-of-wind gait. Rusalka and Garnet followed. I felt carried
by a river of air. The plains blurred under Kiki’s hooves at a rate about twice
a full-speed gallop. Only Sandseed horses
could achieve this gait, and only when they rode in the Avibian Plains. It had
to be a magical skill, but I couldn’t tell if Kiki pulled power. I would have
to ask Moon Man about it when we found him. The plains encompassed a
massive section of eastern Sitia. Located to the southeast of the Citadel, it
stretched all the way to the base of the Emerald Mountains in the east, and
down to the Daviian Plateau to the south. On a normal horse, it
took about five to seven days to cross the plains. The Sandseeds were the only
clan to live within the borders, and their Story Weavers had shielded their
lands with a powerful protective magic. Any stranger who ventured into the
plains without Sandseed permission became lost. The magic would confuse the
stranger’s mind and he would travel in circles until he either stumbled out of
the plains or ran out of water and died. Magicians with strong
powers could travel without being affected by the magic, but the Story Weavers
always knew when someone crossed into their land. As distant cousins of the
Sandseeds, the Zaltana Clan members could also travel the plains unharmed. The
other clans avoided the area altogether. Since Marrok rode on a
Sandseed horse the protection didn’t attack him and we were able to ride all
night. Kiki finally stopped for a rest at sunrise. While Leif collected
firewood, I rubbed the horses down and fed them. Marrok helped Leif, but I
could see exhaustion etched in his pale face. The rain and sleet had
slowed during the night, but gray clouds sealed the sky. Our campsite had
plenty of grass for the horses. It was on a high spot in the plains next to a
rocky out-cropping with a few scrub trees growing nearby, and was a solid place
for us to stand without sinking ankle-deep into the mud. Our cloaks were soaked,
so I tied my rope between two trees to hang the wet garments. Leif and Marrok
found a few dry branches. Making a tent of the twigs, Leif stared at the wood
and small flames sprang to life. “Show-off,” I said. He smiled as he filled a
pot with water for tea. “You’re jealous.” “You’re right. I am.” I
growled in frustration. Leif and I were both born to the same parents, yet we
had different magical powers. Our father, Esau, had no overt magic, just a
flair for finding and using the plants and trees of the jungle for food,
medicines and his inventions. Perl, our mother, could only sense if a person
had magical abilities. So how did Leif get the
magical abilities to light fires and sense a person’s life force while I could
affect their souls? With my magic, I could force Leif to light a fire, but
couldn’t do it on my own. I wondered if anyone in Sitian history had studied
the relationship between magic and birth parents. Bain Bloodgood, Second
Magician, would probably know. He owned a copy of almost every book in Sitia. Marrok fell asleep as
soon as we finished eating our breakfast of bread and cheese. Leif and I
remained by the fire. “Did you put something
in his tea?” I asked. “Some fiddlewood bark to
help him heal.” Wrinkles and scars lined
Marrok’s face. Through the yellowed bruises along his jaw, I spotted some white
stubble. His swollen eye oozed blood and tears. Red streaks painted his right
cheek. Healer Hayes hadn’t allowed me to help with Marrok’s recovery. He had
only let me assist with minor injuries. Another who feared my powers. I touched Marrok’s
forehead. His skin felt hot and dry. The fetid smell of rotten flesh emanated
from him. I reached for the power source and felt the Sandseeds’ protective
magic watching me for signs of threat. Gathering magic, I projected a thread to
him, revealing the muscles and bone underneath Marrok’s skin. His injuries
pulsed with a red light. His cheekbone had been shattered and some bone
fragments had gotten into his eye, affecting his vision. Small dark growths of
an infection dotted the ruined area. I concentrated on the
injury until his pain transferred to my own face. A sharp needle of pain
stabbed my right eye as my vision dulled and tears welled. Curling into a ball,
I pushed against the onslaught, channeling the magic from the power source
through my body. The flow chugged, and I strained. All of a sudden the current
of magic moved with ease as if someone had removed a beaver’s dam, washing away
the pain. Relief swept through me. I relaxed. “Do you think that was a
good idea?” Leif asked when I opened my eyes. “The wound was
infected.” “But you used all your
energy.” “I…” I sat up, feeling
tired but not exhausted. “I—” “Had help,” a voice
snapped out of nowhere. Leif jerked upright in
surprise, but I recognized the deep masculine tone. Moon Man appeared next to
the fire as if he had formed from the rising heat and ashes. His bald head
gleamed in the sunlight. In deference to the
chill, Moon Man wore a long-sleeved tan tunic and dark brown pants that matched
the color of his skin, but no shoes. “No paint?” I asked Moon Man. The first time I had met him he had coalesced out of a beam of moonlight covered
only with indigo dye. He had claimed to be my Story Weaver and proceeded to
show me my life’s story and unlocked my childhood memories. Six years of living
with my mother, father and brother had been suppressed by a magician named
Mogkan so I wouldn’t long for my family after Mogkan had kidnapped me. Moon Man smiled. “I did
not have time to cover my skin. And it is a good thing I came when I did.” His
tone conveyed his displeasure. “Or you would have spent all your strength.” “Not all,” I countered,
sounding like a belligerent child. “Have you become an
all-powerful Soulfinder already?” He widened his eyes in mock amazement. “I
will bow down before you, Oh Great One.” He bent at the waist. “All right, enough,” I
said, laughing. “I should have thought it through before healing Marrok. Happy
now?” He sighed dramatically.
“I would be content if I thought you learned a lesson and would not do it
again. However, I am well aware that you will continue to rush right into
situations. It is weaved into your life’s pattern. There is no hope for you.” “Is that why you sent
for me? To tell me I’m hopeless?” Moon Man sobered. “I
wish. We had heard that the Soulstealer had escaped from the Magician’s Keep
with Cahil’s help. One of our Story Weavers scouting in the Daviian Plateau
sensed a stranger traveling with one of the Vermin.” “Are Cahil and Ferde in
the plateau?” Leif asked. “We think so, but we
want Yelena to identify the Soulstealer.” “Why?” I asked. The
Sandseeds didn’t waste time on trials and incarceration. They executed
criminals on capture. However, the Daviian
Vermin had been very hard to find, and they had powerful magicians. The Vermin
were a group of Sandseed youths who had become discontented with the Sandseed
lifestyle of keeping to themselves and limiting contact with the other clans.
The Vermin wanted the Sandseed Story Weavers to use their great powers to guide
all of Sitia and not just the inhabitants of the plains. They had broken from the
Sandseed Clan and settled in the Daviian Plateau, becoming the Daviian Clan.
The plateau’s dry and inhospitable soil made farming a nightmare, so the
Daviians stole from the Sandseeds, and earned the nickname of Vermin. The
Sandseeds also referred to the Vermin’s magicians as Warpers, since they used
their magic for selfish reasons. “You need to identify
the Soulstealer because he may have harvested more souls, and only you can
release those souls before we kill him,” Moon Man said with a flat and emotionless
voice. I grabbed his arm. “Have
you found any bodies?” “No. But I am concerned
about what we will discover when we raid their camp.” The horror of the last
two seasons threatened to overwhelm me. Eleven girls mutilated and raped by
Ferde so he could steal their souls and gain more magical power. Valek and I
had stopped him before he could collect the final soul. If he had succeeded,
Sitia and Ixia would now be his to rule. Instead, I had released all those
souls to the sky. To think that he might have started again was unbearable. “You’ve found their
camp?” Leif asked. “Yes. We put our lives
on hold,” Moon Man said. “The warriors of the clan have done a complete sweep
of the plateau. We found a large encampment on the southern edge near the
border of the Illiais Jungle.” And close to my family.
I must have gasped because Moon Man touched my shoulder and squeezed. “Do not worry about your
clan. Every Sandseed warrior is ready to attack if the Vermin show any signs of
departing their camp. We will leave when the horses are rested.” I paced around the
campfire, knowing I should get some sleep but unable to still my racing
thoughts. Leif groomed the horses and Marrok slept. Moon Man reclined next to
the fire, staring at the sky. Marrok woke as the sky
darkened. His eye had stopped weeping blood, and the swelling was gone. He
probed his cheek with a finger. Amazement lit his face until he spotted Moon
Man standing next to him. He jumped to his feet and pulled his sword,
brandishing the weapon at the Story Weaver. Even armed, Marrok looked slight
next to the muscular Sandseed, who towered six inches over him. Moon Man laughed. “I see
you are feeling better. Come. We have plans to make.” The four of us sat
around the fire while Leif made dinner. Marrok settled next to me, and from the
corner of my eye I could see that whenever Marrok touch his cheek, he stared at
Moon Man with a fearful fascination. And his right hand never strayed far from
the hilt of his sword. “We will leave at dawn,”
Moon Man said. “Why does everything
have to start at dawn?” I asked. “The horses have good night vision.” “That will give the
horses a full day to recover. I will be riding with you on Kiki. She is the
strongest. And once we reach the plateau, there will be no rest stops until we
join the others.” “And then what?” I
asked. “Then we will attack.
You are to stay close to me and the other Story Weavers. The Soulstealer will
be protected along with the Warpers. Once we break through the outer guards,
then the hard part begins.” “Dealing with the
Warpers,” I said. He nodded. “Can’t you move the Void
again?” Leif asked. The Void was a hole in
the power blanket where no magic existed. The last time the Sandseeds had
uncovered a Vermin hideout, it had been protected by a shield of magic that created
an illusion. The camp appeared to be occupied by only a few warriors. When the
Sandseeds had moved the Void over the Vermin, the illusion was broken.
Unfortunately, the encampment held four times the number of soldiers, and we
had been vastly outnumbered. “They are aware of that
trick and will be alerted to our presence if we try to move the power blanket,”
Moon Man said. “Then how are you going
to beat the Warpers?” I asked, worried. If the Vermin had access to magic it
would be a difficult battle. “All the Sandseed Story
Weavers will link together and form a strong magical net that will seize them
and prevent them from using their magic. We will hold them long enough for you
to find the Soulstealer.” Breaking his silence,
Marrok asked, “What about Cahil?” “He helped the
Soulstealer escape. He should be punished,” Moon Man said. “The Council wants to
talk to him,” I said. “And then they will
decide what to do with him,” Leif added. Moon Man shrugged. “He
is not a Vermin. I will tell the others not to kill him, but in a large battle
it might be hard.” “He’s probably with the
Daviian leaders,” Marrok said. “Marrok—you and Leif
find Cahil and take him north of the fighting and I’ll rendezvous with you
after the battle.” “Yes, sir,” Marrok said. Leif nodded, but I could
see a question in his eyes. Problem? I asked in his
mind. What if Cahil convinces
Marrok not to take him back to the Council? What if they join together and I’m
outnumbered? Good point. I’ll ask
Moon Man to— Assign one of my
warriors to stay with Leif, Moon Man said. I jerked in surprise. I
hadn’t felt Moon Man draw power to link with us. What else can you do? I
asked. I am not telling you. It
would destroy my mysterious Story Weaver persona. The next morning we
saddled the horses and made our way south toward the plateau. Even with the
weight of two riders, Kiki easily carried us. Stopping only once for a warm
dinner and sleep, we reached the border in two days. At sunset on the second
day, we stopped to rest the horses at the edge of the plains. The flat expanse of the
plateau stretched to the horizon. A few brown clumps of grass clung to the
sunbaked surface. While the plains had a few trees, rolling hills, rocks and
sandstone protrusions, the plateau had bristle bushes, coarse sand and a few
stunted spine trees. We had left the cold,
cloudy weather behind. The afternoon sun had warmed the land enough for me to
take off my cloak, but as the light slipped into the darkness, a cool breeze
stirred to life. Moon Man left to find
his scout. Even at this distance from the Vermin camp, it was too risky to make
a fire. I shivered as I ate my dinner of hard cheese and stale bread. Moon Man returned with
another Sandseed. “This is Tauno,” Moon
Man said. “He will show us the way through the plateau.” I peered at the small
man armed with a bow and arrows. Only an inch taller than me, he wore short
pants despite the chilly air. His skin had been painted, but in the dim light I
couldn’t discern the colors. “We will leave when the
moon is a quarter up,” Tauno said. Traveling at night was a
good idea, but I wondered what the warriors did during the day. “How do the
Sandseeds stay hidden in the plateau?” I asked. Tauno gestured to his
skin. “We blend in. And hide our thoughts behind the Story Weavers’ null shield.” I looked at Moon Man. “A null shield blocks
magic,” Moon Man explained. “If you were to scan the plateau with your magic,
you would not sense any living creature behind the null shield.” “Doesn’t using magic to
create the shield alert the Vermin?” I asked. “Not when it is done
properly. It was completed before the Story Weavers left the plains.” “What about the Story
Weavers behind the shield? Can they use magic?” Leif asked. “Magic can not penetrate
the shield. It does not block our vision or hearing, just protects us from
being discovered by magical means.” As we prepared to
travel, I thought about what Moon Man had said, and realized that there were
many things I still didn’t know about magic. Too many. And the thought of
learning more with Roze quelled my curiosity. When the moon had
traveled through a quarter of the black sky, Tauno said, “It is time to go.” The muscles along my
spine tightened in apprehension as Moon Man settled behind me on Kiki’s saddle.
What if my lack of magical knowledge caused me to endanger our mission? No sense worrying about
it now. I pulled in a deep breath, steadied my nerves and glanced at my
companions. Tauno sat with Marrok on Garnet’s back. From the pained expression
on Marrok’s face, I knew he wasn’t happy about sharing his mount with a
Sandseed warrior. And to make it worse, Tauno insisted on being in front and
holding Garnet’s reins. To stay behind the null
shield, our path through the plateau had to be precise. Tauno led us. The soft
crunch of the horses’ hooves on hard sand was the only sound. The moon crawled along
the sky. At one point I wanted to yell out and urge Kiki into a gallop just to
break the tension that pressed around us. When the blackness in
the sky eased in the east, Tauno stopped and dismounted. We ate a quick
breakfast and fed the horses. As the day brightened, I saw how well Tauno
blended in with the plateau. He had camouflaged himself with the plateau’s
colors of gray and tan. “We walk from here,”
Tauno said. “We will leave the horses. Take only what you need.” The clear sky promised a
warm day so I removed my cloak and stowed it in my backpack. Dry air laced with
a fine grit blew, scratching at the back of my throat. I decided I needed my
switchblade. Strapping the sheath around my right thigh, I removed the weapon
and triggered the blade. I treated the tip of the blade with some Curare. The
muscle-paralyzing drug would come in handy if Cahil wouldn’t cooperate. After I
retracted the blade, I positioned the weapon in its holder through a hole in my
skirt/pants pocket. I wrapped my long black hair into a bun and used my lock
picks to keep the hair in place. Finally, I grabbed my bow. Dressed for battle,
though, didn’t mean I was prepared for battle. I hoped I would be able to find
Cahil and Ferde and take them without killing anyone. But the grim knowledge
that I would kill to save myself formed a knot in my throat. Tauno scanned our
clothes and weapons. Leif’s machete hung from his waist. He wore a green tunic
and pants. Marrok had strapped his sword onto his belt. The dark brown scabbard
matched his pants. I realized that we had all dressed in the colors of the
earth, and, while we didn’t blend in as well as Tauno, we wouldn’t stand out
either. We tied our packs and
supplies onto the horses’ saddles, then left the horses to graze on what little
grass they could find, and walked south. The plateau appeared deserted. The
need to search the area with magic crept along my skin, and I tried to ignore
the desire. Connecting with the life around me had become almost instinctive
and I felt exposed and out of sorts by not knowing what breathed nearby. Taking a circuitous
path, Tauno eventually stopped. He pointed to a cluster of spine trees. “Just
beyond that copse is the camp,” he whispered. I searched the plateau.
Where was the Sandseed army? The earth undulated as if the sand had liquefied.
The waves on the ground grew. I clamped a hand over my mouth to stifle a cry of
surprise. Row upon row of Sandseed warriors stood. Camouflaged to match the
sand, they had been lying on the ground in front of us and I hadn’t noticed
them. Moon Man smiled his
amusement at my dismay. “You have been relying on your magical senses and have
forgotten about your physical senses.” Before I could respond,
we were joined by four Sandseeds. Though they dressed the same as the warriors,
these Sandseeds held themselves with authority. They issued orders and power
radiated from them. Story Weavers. A male Story Weaver
handed Moon Man a scimitar. His sharp gaze pierced me as he studied my
features. “This is the Soulfinder?” Doubt laced his words, but he spoke softly.
“She is not what I expected.” “What did you expect?” I
asked. “A large dark-skinned
woman. You look like you could not survive a sandstorm let alone find and
release a soul.” “It’s a good thing
you’re not my Story Weaver. You’re easily distracted by the pattern of the
cloth and can’t see the quality of the threads.” “Well done,” Moon Man
said to me. “Reed, show us the camp.” The Story Weaver led us
to the trees. Through the spiky needles on the branches, I saw the Daviian
camp. The air shimmered around
the camp as if a bubble of heat had gotten trapped near the ground. A large
cook fire burned in the central area. Many people scurried about either helping
with breakfast or eating it. Tents fanned from the area, extending out until
they reached the edge of the plateau. Squinting in the
sunlight, I looked beyond the encampment’s border. Just the tops of the trees
in the Illiais Jungle were visible. They reminded me of a time when I had stood
on a platform built near the peak of the tallest tree in the jungle and had
seen the flat expanse of the plateau for the first time. The sheer rock
drop-off into the jungle had appeared to be an impossible climb. So why set up
camp there? I wondered. Moon Man leaned next to
me. “The camp is an illusion.” “Do you have enough
warriors to attack?” I asked, thinking the illusion hid many more Vermin. “Every one.” “All—” The Sandseeds
yelled a battle cry and dashed toward the camp. Moon Man grabbed my arm,
pulling me with him. “Stay with me.” With Leif and Marrok
right behind us, we followed the Sandseeds. When the first warriors crossed
into the illusion, they disappeared from sight for a moment. The sound of
rushing water reached my ears as the chimera dissipated. I blinked a few times to
adjust my vision to what the Daviians had concealed. The central fire remained
the same. But instead of many Vermin around the flames, there stood only one
man. The rest of the camp was empty. 4WHEN THE ILLUSION
disappeared, so did the expanse of tents and all the Daviians. The lone man
standing by the fire collapsed before the Sandseed warriors could reach him. Evidence that a large
army had camped here was imprinted on the ground. Although, by the time the Sandseed
leaders restored order to the milling warriors, many of the Daviian tracks had
been ruined. And the only witness had
taken poison. “One of their Warpers,”
Moon Man said, nudging the corpse with his bare foot. “He held the illusion and
killed himself once it broke.” “If you can clear the
area, I might be able to tell you where they’ve gone,” Marrok said. The Sandseed warriors
returned to the copse of spine trees. Moon Man and I stayed by the fire as
Marrok and Leif circled the camp. Marrok looked for physical evidence while
Leif used his magic to smell the intentions of the Daviians. I projected my mental
awareness as far as I could. If I sought a specific person, then I could reach
them from far away, but with a general search my magic could only extend about
ten miles. I reached no one in the plateau, and the bounty of life in the
jungle was too overwhelming to sort out. When they had finished
their circuit, Marrok and Leif returned. Their glum expressions reflected bad
news. “They’ve been gone for
days. The majority of the tracks head east and west,” Marrok reported. “But I
found some metal spikes with rope fibers in the ground near the edge of the
plateau. A few Vermin could have climbed down into the jungle.” I touched Leif’s arm.
“The Zaltanas?” “If the Vermin can even
find our homestead among the trees, they’re still well protected,” he said. “Even from one of the
Warpers?” I asked. Leif blanched. “Are the ropes still
there?” I asked Marrok. “No. The others must
have waited and either cut the rope or taken it along with them,” Marrok said. “Do you know how many
went down?” Moon Man asked. “No.” Leif said, “There were
so many scents and emotions mixed together. The need for stealth and urgency
predominated. They moved with a purpose and felt confident. The eastern group,
though, had the most men and they…” Leif closed his eyes and sniffed the
breeze. “I don’t know. I need to follow their trail for a while.” Marrok led Leif to the
eastern tracks. I asked Kiki and the other horses to come to us. While waiting
for them, Moon Man and the other Story Weavers split the warriors into two
groups, and sent two scouts, one to the west and the other to the east. But what about those
that went down the rope to the jungle? What about Cahil and Ferde? Were they
even with the Daviians? And, if so, which way had they gone? When the horses arrived,
I grabbed my pack off Kiki’s saddle. Opening it, I pulled my rope out and
headed for the rim of the plateau. I found one of the metal spikes Marrok had
mentioned and tied the end of the rope to it. On my belly, I inched closer to
the edge until I could see down into the jungle. The sides of the cliff
appeared to be smooth, with no hand-holds in sight. I tossed the rope over, but
knew it wouldn’t reach the bottom far below. The end stopped a quarter of the
way down. Even with a longer rope, the climb looked dangerous. Water sprayed
out of fissures in the rock face about halfway down. The stones below
glistened. I considered the
descent. A desperate person might attempt it, but Leif’s assessment of the
Vermin hadn’t included desperation. Moon Man waited for me
by the horses. “When the scouts return,
we will set out,” he said. A notion that had been
bothering me finally clicked. “Your people have swept the plateau and have been
watching the camp. How could the Vermin slip away without you knowing?” “A few of their Warpers
had been Story Weavers. They must have learned to make a null shield.” “That would only hide
their presence from a magical search. What about seeing them?” Before Moon Man could
answer, a shout rang out. Leif, Marrok and the scout ran toward us. “Found a trench,” Marrok
panted. “Heading east then
north.” The scout gestured. “Ill intent,” Leif said. North toward the Avibian
Plains. Toward the Sandseeds’ unprotected lands because their warriors were
here in the plateau. Every one. Moon Man covered his
face with his hands as if he needed to block out the distractions and think. The second scout arrived
from the west. Puffs of sand from his passage reached us before he did. “Another trench?” Marrok
asked. “The trail ends. They
doubled back.” The scout reported. Moon Man dropped his
hands and began shouting orders, sending the warriors northeast at a run,
ordering the Story Weavers to make contact with the people who stayed behind on
the plains. “Come on,” he said,
turning to join the others. “No,” I said. He stopped and looked
back. “What?” “Too obvious. I don’t
think Cahil would go along with that.” “Then where did he go?”
Moon Man demanded. “The bulk of the
Daviians went east, but I think a smaller group either went west or south.” “My people are in
trouble,” Moon Man said. “And so are mine,” I
replied. “You go with your warriors. If I’m wrong, we’ll catch up with you.” “And if you are right,
then what?” Then what, indeed. There
were only three of us. “I will go with you,”
Moon Man said. He called one of the Story Weavers and a touch of magic pricked
my skin as they linked their minds. Not wanting to intrude
on their mental conversation, I focused on finding Cahil. I examined the edge
of the plateau. A branch from one of the tall jungle trees reached toward the
cliff. I could use my grapple and rope and hook it— No, Leif said in my
mind. Suicide. I frowned at him. But I
could swing— No. Nutty could do it. Our
cousin climbed trees as if valmur blood coursed through her veins. You’re not Nutty. I reluctantly abandoned
that course of action. Even if I could swing to the tree, I doubted anyone else
would follow me. Then I would be alone. I berated myself for being worried about
being on my own: living in Sitia had made me soft. It has made you smarter,
Leif said. Then he added, not much smarter, but we can still hope for
improvement. “Where to?” Tauno asked
as he joined our group. I looked at Moon Man. He shrugged. “He is
better at scouting than fighting. We will need him,” he said with certainty. I sighed at the
implication. “West.” Perhaps we would find a
better way down into the jungle or, failing that, we would follow the plateau’s
edge west toward the Cowan Clan’s lands. Once in Cowan land, we would turn
south into the forest then loop east into the Illiais Jungle. And hope we
weren’t too late. We mounted the horses.
Tauno and Marrok once again led us. The point where the Daviians had turned
around was obvious even to me. The hard-packed sand had been scuffed where they
stopped, and only flat unblemished sand continued westward. Tauno halted the horses
and waited for more instructions. “A ruse. I can smell
deceit and smugness,” Leif said. “Why so smug?” I asked.
“Laying a false trail is a basic strategy.” “It could be Cahil,”
Marrok said. “He tends to think he is smarter than everyone. Perhaps he thought
this would fool the Sandseeds into sending half their warriors in the wrong
direction.” I projected my magical
awareness over the smooth sand. A few mice skittered into the open, searching
for food. A snake curled on a warm rock, basking in the afternoon sun. I
encountered a strange dark mind. I withdrew my awareness
and scanned the plateau. Sure enough there was a small area a few feet away
where the sand looked pliant, as if it had been dug up and packed back down. I
slid off Kiki and walked over to the patch. The sand felt spongy beneath my
boots. “A Vermin must have
buried something there,” Marrok said. Tauno snorted with disgust.
“You have probably found one of their waste pits.” With Moon Man still on
her back, Kiki came closer. Smell damp, she said. Bad damp or good damp? I
asked. Just damp. Taking my grapple out of
my pack, I started to dig. The others watched me with various expressions of
amusement, distaste and curiosity. When I had dug down
about a foot, my grapple struck something hard. “Help me clear the sand.” My reluctant audience
joined me. But eventually we uncovered a flat piece of wood. Marrok rapped his knuckles
on it and proclaimed it the top of a box. Working faster to remove the sand, we
sought the edges. The round lid was about two feet in diameter. While Tauno and Moon Man
discussed why the Vermin would bury a circle box, I found the lip and pried the
top up. A gulp of air almost sucked the lid back down. Everyone was stunned
into silence. The lid covered a hole in the ground. And, judging by the pull of
air into its depths, a very deep hole. 5THE SUNLIGHT ILLUMINATED
a few feet of the hole. Below the lip a couple rough steps had been cut into
the sandstone. “Can you sense anyone in
there?” Leif asked. Pulling a thread of
power, I projected into the darkness. My awareness touched many of those dark
minds, but no people. “Bats,” I said. “Lots of
bats. You?” “Just smug
satisfaction.” “Could this be another
false trail?” Marrok asked. “Or a trap?” Tauno
asked. He glanced around with quick furtive movements as if worried the sand
would erupt with Vermin. “One of us needs to go
inside and report back,” Moon Man said, looking at Tauno. “I knew we would need
a scout.” Tauno jerked as if he
had stepped on a hot coal. Sweat ran down his face. He swallowed. “I will need
a light.” Leif retrieved his
saddlebags and removed one of his cooking sticks. “This won’t burn long,” he
said. He set the end on fire and handed the stick to Tauno. With the flaming stick
to lead the way, the Sandseed scout crawled into the opening headfirst. Tempted
to link my mind with his to see what he found, I forced myself to focus instead
on the ground beneath my feet, trying to discover a sign of life that would
indicate the end of the cave. The jungle’s pulse
throbbed in my soul, but I couldn’t tell if it came from an opening below the
ground or just from being so close to it on the plateau. Waiting proved
difficult. I imagined all types of hazards in Tauno’s way and was convinced he
had fallen and broken a leg or worse when he appeared at the hole’s opening. “The steps lead to a big
cavern with many tunnels and ledges. I spotted a few footprints in the dirt,
but had to come back before my light died,” Tauno said. “I also heard water
gurgling nearby.” Now we knew. Vermin had
gone through the cave. “Leif, what do you need
to make a light last longer?” I asked him. “You’re not thinking
about going in there, are you?” Marrok asked, sounding horrified. “Of course. You want to
find Cahil, don’t you?” “What makes you so
certain he went that way?” I looked at Leif.
Together we said, “Smug satisfaction.” While Leif and Tauno
returned to the Daviian camp for firewood, Moon Man and I discussed what to do
with the horses. We would need Marrok’s tracking skills and Tauno’s keen sense
of direction to find our way through the cavern. Leif and I needed to take
Cahil back to the Council, so that left Moon Man. “I am not staying
behind,” Moon Man said. “Someone needs to feed
and water the horses,” I said. Kiki snorted at me. I
opened my mind to her. Don’t need, she said. We
wait then go. Go where? Market. An image of the
Illiais Market formed in my mind. As the main southern trading post for Sitia,
the market was tucked between the western edge of the Illiais Jungle and Cowan
Clan lands. How do you know about
the market? I asked. Know land like know
grass. I smiled. Kiki’s concise
view of life kept surprising me with its many layers of emotion. If I could
view the world the same way, I knew it would make my life easier. Moon Man had been
watching me. “Perhaps Kiki should mentor you.” “On what? How to become
a Soulfinder?” “No. You are a
Soulfinder. She can help you be a Soulfinder.” “More cryptic Story
Weaver advice?” “No. Clear as air.” Moon
Man drew a deep breath and grinned at me. “Let us get the horses ready.” We removed their bridles
and reins and packed the tack into their saddlebags. When Leif and Tauno returned,
we sorted our supplies, distributing them among our packs and repacking the
rest into the saddlebags. The horses would keep their saddles on, but we made
sure nothing would hang down or impede their motion. My pack weighed heavier
than usual, but I had an uneasy intuition we might need a few of the items
inside. When we were ready, Leif
lit the firewood torches dipped in the plant oil he had stored in Rusalka’s
saddlebags. He left most of his odd concoctions and medicines behind, boasting
he could find anything we needed in the jungle. “If we find a way out,”
Marrok muttered. “What will we do if we become lost in the caves?” “That will not happen,”
Moon Man said. “I will mark our way with paint. If we can not find our way
through, we will return to the plateau. The horses will wait until Yelena tells
them to go.” Moon Man wrapped his
muscular arm around Marrok’s shoulders. Marrok tensed as if he expected a blow. “Trust yourself,
Tracker. You have never been lost,” Moon Man said. “I have never been
inside a cave.” “Then it will be a new
experience for both of us.” Moon Man’s eyes glinted with anticipation, but
Marrok hunched his back. I wasn’t a stranger to
small dark places. Before becoming the Commander’s food taster, I had spent a
year in the Commander’s dungeon awaiting execution. While I wasn’t anxious to
return to a confined space, I would push past my nerves to recapture Ferde. “There are a few caves
in the jungle,” Leif said. “Most of them are used as dens by the tree leopards
and are avoided, but I’ve explored some.” His gaze met mine and, by the sad
smile, I knew he had searched those caves looking for me. Tauno and Marrok each
held a torch. With Tauno leading the way, I followed, crawling headfirst
through the small opening. Leif was close behind, then Marrok and finally Moon Man. The torchlight
illuminated the three-foot-wide tunnel. Shovel marks scraped the rough walls,
indicating the space had been dug. The steps turned into bumps that helped slow
our progress as we slid down the sloped passageway. I coughed as the dust of
our passing mixed with the steady flow of cool damp air. When we reached the
cavern, the tightness around my ribs eased. Tauno’s light reflected off stones
resembling teeth. A few of these hung from the ceiling and others rose from the
ground as if we stood inside the mouth of a giant beast. “Don’t move,” Marrok
ordered as he examined the floor. Shadows danced on the
pockmarked walls as Marrok searched for signs. Deep wells of blackness
indicated other tunnels, and small puddles of water peppered the floor.
Dripping and running water filled the air with a pleasant hum that countered
the unpleasant wet mineral smell mixed with a sharp animal musk. Moon Man hunched his
shoulders and short breaths punctuated his breathing. “Is something wrong?” I
asked him. “The walls press on me.
I feel squeezed. No doubt my imagination.” He went to mark the tunnel to the
surface with red paint. “This way,” Marrok said.
Amplified by either the stone walls or by fear, his voice sounded louder than
usual. He showed us a series of ledges descending down a chute. The smell rising from
the chute turned sharp and rank. I gagged. Tauno climbed down. The ledges
turned out to be large chucks of rocks stacked crookedly on top of one another.
In certain places he hung over the side and dropped down. We followed and with
some mumbling and cursing we caught up to Tauno. He waited on the last
visible ledge. Beyond him, the chute ended in a pit of blackness. Tauno dropped
his torch. It landed on a rock floor far below. “Too far to jump,” Tauno
said. I pulled the grapple
from my pack and wedged the metal hooks into a crack, glad I had decided to
bring it along. Tying the rope onto the hook, I tested the grapple’s grip.
Secure for now, but Moon Man braced himself and gripped the rope when Tauno
swung over the edge and descended. Moon Man’s forehead
dripped with sweat despite the cool air. His uneven breathing echoed off the
walls. When Tauno reached near the bottom, Moon Man released the rope. The
grapple held Tauno’s weight. He jumped the last bit and picked up the torch,
exploring the area before giving us the all-clear signal. One by one we joined
him at the bottom of the chute. We left the grapple in place in case we needed
to return. “I have some good news
and some bad,” Tauno said. “Just tell us,” Marrok
barked. “There is a way out of
this chamber, but I doubt Moon Man or Leif will fit.” Tauno showed us a small
opening. The torch’s flame flickered in the breeze coming from the channel. I looked at Leif. Even
though Marrok was taller than him, Leif had wide shoulders. How had Cahil and
Ferde fit through? Or had they traveled a different way? It was hard to judge
size based on a memory. Perhaps they hadn’t encountered any trouble. “First explore the
tunnel. See what’s on the other side,” I instructed. Tauno disappeared into
the hole with a quick grace. Leif crouched next to the opening, examining it. “I have more plant oil,”
Leif said. “Perhaps we can grease our skin and slide through?” He stepped back
when Tauno’s light brightened the passageway. “It gets wider about ten
feet down and ends in another cavern,” Tauno said. Black foul-smelling muck
covered his feet. When questioned about the mud, he wiggled his toes. “The
source of the stench. Bat guano. Lots of it.” Those ten feet took us
the longest to traverse. And I despaired at the amount of time we used to
squeeze two grown men through a narrow space. It might be impossible to catch
up with Cahil and the others. And Moon Man’s panic attack when he had become
wedged for a moment had set everyone’s mood on edge. Standing ankle deep in
bat droppings, we made for a miserable group. My dismay reflected in everyone’s
face. And it wasn’t due to the putrid and acidic smell. Leif’s shoulders were
scratched raw and bloody, and the skin on Moon Man’s arms looked shredded.
Blood dripped from his hands. Moon Man’s breathing
rasped. “Go back. We should…go back.” He panted. “Bad idea. Bad idea. Bad
idea.” I suppressed my worries
about Cahil. Connecting with the power source, I gathered a fiber of magic and
sought Moon Man’s mind. A claustrophobic fear had pushed logic and reason
aside. I probed deeper into his thoughts to find the strong unflappable Story
Weaver, reminding him of the importance of our journey. A Sandseed Story Weaver
would not let himself panic. Moon Man’s breathing settled as calm reclaimed his
emotions. I withdrew from his mind. “I am sorry. I do not
like this cave,” Moon Man said. “No one does,” Leif
muttered. Keeping my thread of
magic, I focused on Moon Man’s arms. Large chunks of his skin had been gouged
out. My upper limbs burned with pain as I concentrated on his injuries. When I
could no longer endure the stinging fire, I used magic to push it away from me.
I swayed with relief and would have fallen to the floor if Leif hadn’t grabbed
me. Moon Man examined his
arms. “I could not lend you my strength this time,” he said. “Your magic held
me immobile.” “What’s this?” Leif
asked. He raised my hand into
the light. Blood streaked my skin, but I couldn’t find any damage. When I had
helped Tula, one of Ferde’s victims and Opal’s sister, Irys had speculated that
I had assumed her injuries then healed myself. I guessed it had been the same
with Marrok’s crushed cheek. But seeing the physical evidence turned Irys’s
theory into reality. I stared at the blood and felt light-headed. “That’s interesting,”
Leif said. “Interesting in a good
way or bad?” I asked. “I don’t know. No one
has done that before.” I appealed to Moon Man. “A couple Story Weavers
have the power to heal, but not like that,” he said. “Perhaps it is something
only a Soulfinder can do.” “Perhaps? You don’t
know? Then why have you led me to believe you know everything about me?” I
demanded. He rubbed his newly
healed arm. “I am your Story Weaver. I do know everything about you. However, I
do not know everything about Soulfinders. Do you define yourself strictly by
that title?” “No.” I avoided the
title. “Well then,” he said, as
if that settled the matter. “Let’s go,” Marrok said
through his shirt. He had covered his nose and mouth to block the smell. “The
Daviians’ trail through this muck is easy to follow.” With Marrok in the lead,
we stepped with care. About halfway through the bats’ cavern, I sensed an
awakening. Sending a thin tendril of power, I linked with the dark minds above
me as they floated toward a collective consciousness. Their need for food
pushed at me, and, through them, I felt the exact location of each bat, of each
wall, of each exit, of each rock, and each figure below. They launched. “Duck!” I yelled as the
cloud of flying creatures descended. The drone of beating
wings reached a crescendo as black bodies flew around us. The air swirled and
filled with bats. They deftly avoided knocking into us or each other as they
headed toward the exit, seeking the insects and berries of the jungle. My mind traveled with
them. The instinctual exodus of thousands of bats flying through the tight
tunnels of the cave was as organized as a military attack. And like any
well-planned event, it took time for all the bats to leave. The muscles in my legs
burned when I finally straightened. The flapping and fluttering sounds echoed
from the tunnels then faded. I looked at my companions. No one appeared to be
hurt, although a few of us were splattered with dung. Marrok had dropped his
torch, and his arms covered his head. He puffed with alarm. “Captain Marrok,” I
said, hoping to calm him. “Give me your torch.” My order pierced his
panic. He picked up the unlit stick. “Why?” “Because the bats have
shown me the way out.” I cringed as my hand closed on the muck-covered handle.
“Leif, can you relight this?” Leif nodded. Flames
grew. When the torch burned on its own, he asked, “How far to the jungle?” “Not far.” I led the
group, setting a quick pace. No one complained. All were as eager as I to exit
the cave. The sound of rushing
water and a glorious freshness to the air were the only signs we had reached
our destination. The day had turned into night while we had traveled through
the cave. From the bats, I knew
water flowed along the floor of the exit and dropped down about twenty feet to
the jungle. The waterfall splashed onto a tumble of rocks. The others followed me
to the edge of the stream. We doused the torches and waited for our eyes to
adjust to the weak moonlight. I scanned the jungle below with my magic,
searching for signs of an ambush and for tree leopards. Necklace snakes were
also a danger to us, but the only life I touched were small creatures scurrying
through the underbrush. “Prepare to get wet,” I
said before wading into the cold knee-deep water. My boots filled
immediately as I sloshed to the edge. There were plenty of rocks below to climb
on, but they were either under the water or wet. I eased off my backpack and
threw it down, aiming for a dry spot on the rocky bank. “Be careful,” I
instructed. I turned around and
crouched, leaning into the force of the water. Keeping my face above the
stream, I stuck my feet over the edge and felt for a foothold. By the time I
reached the bottom, my clothes were soaked. At least the water had washed away
the foul-smelling dung. Once everyone climbed
down, we stood dripping and shivering on the bank. “Now what?” Leif asked. “It’s too dark to see
trail signs,” Marrok said. “Unless we make more torches.” I looked at our ragtag
group. I had a dry change of clothes in my backpack, but Tauno and Moon Man had
nothing with them. The bank was big enough for a fire. “We need to dry off and
get some rest.” “You need to die,” a
loud voice said from the jungle. 6ARROWS RAINED DOWN.
Tauno cried out as one pierced his shoulder. “Find cover,” Marrok
ordered. An arrow jutted from his thigh. We scrambled for the
underbrush. Moon Man dragged Tauno with him. Marrok fell. An arrow whizzed by
my ear and thudded into a tree trunk. Another slammed into my backpack before I
dived under a bush. I scanned the treetops
with my magic, but couldn’t sense anyone. “Null shield,” Moon Man
shouted. “No magic.” Marrok lay in the open,
unmoving. Arrows continued to fly, but they missed him. He stared at the sky. “Curare!” I yelled. “The
arrows are laced with Curare.” The ambushers wanted to
paralyze us, not kill us. At least not yet. The memory of being completely
helpless from the drug washed over me. Alea Daviian had wanted revenge for her
brother’s death, so she had pricked me with Curare and carted me to the plateau
to torture and kill me. Leif yelped nearby. An
arrow had nicked his cheek. “Theobroma?” he asked before his face froze. Of course! My father’s
Theobroma, which had saved me from Alea. I ripped open my pack, searching for
the antidote to Curare. The rain of arrows slowed, and a rustling noise from
above meant our attackers were climbing down. Probably to take better aim. I
found the brown lumps of Theobroma and put one into my mouth, immediately chewing
and swallowing it. Moon Man cursed and I
broke cover to run to him. An arrow hit my back. The force slammed me to the
ground. Pain rippled through my body. “Yelena!” Moon Man
grabbed my outstretched arm and pulled me to him. “Here.” I panted as the
Curare numbed the throb in my lower back. “Eat this.” He ate the Theobroma
lump without a moment’s hesitation. An arrow’s shaft had pinned his tunic to a
tree. I lost feeling in my
legs. “Are you hit?” He ripped his shirt free
and examined the skin along his right side. “No.” “Pretend to be,” I
whispered. “Wait for my signal.” Sudden understanding
flashed in his deep brown eyes. He broke the shaft off the arrow that had
missed him, and swiped blood from my back. Lying down, he held the shaft
between two bloody fingers of his left hand which he placed on his stomach,
making it look like the arrow had pierced his gut. His right hand gripped his
scimitar. Men called as they
reached the jungle floor. Before they could discover me, I put my right hand
into my pant’s pocket, palming the handle of my switchblade. Numbness spread
throughout my torso, but the Theobroma countered the Curare’s effects to a
point where limited movement remained. Even so, I lay still, pretending to be
paralyzed. “I found one,” a man
said. “Over here’s another.” “I found two,” a rough
voice right above me said. “That’s the rest of
them. Make sure they’re incapacitated before you drag them out. Dump them
beside their companion in the clearing,” said a fourth voice. The rough-voiced man
kicked me in the ribs. Pain ringed my chest and stomach. I clamped my teeth
together to suppress a grunt. When he grabbed my ankles and hauled me through
the bushes and over the uneven stones of the bank, I was a bit glad for the
Curare in my body. It dulled the burning sting as the left side of my face and
ear were rubbed raw by the ground. The Curare also dulled
my emotions. I knew I should be terrified, yet felt only mild concern. Curare’s
ability to paralyze my magic remained the most frightening aspect of the drug.
Even though the Theobroma counteracted it, Theobroma had its own side effect.
The antidote opened a person’s mind to magical influence. While I could use
magic, now I had no defense against another’s magic. Marrok still lay where
he had fallen. The loud scrape of Moon Man’s weapon on the ground reached me
before he was dropped beside me. “His fingers are frozen
around the handle,” one of the men said. “A lot of good it will
do him,” another joked. Listening to their
voices, I counted five men. Two against five. Not bad odds unless my legs
remained numb. Then Moon Man would be on his own. Once the men brought
Leif and Tauno to the bank, the leader of the attackers dropped the null
shield. It felt as if a curtain had been yanked back, revealing what lurked
behind. All five men’s thoughts were open to me now. Their leader shouted
orders. “Prepare the prisoners for the Kirakawa ritual,” he said. “We should not feed
these men to it,” Rough Voice said. “We should use their blood for ourselves.
You should stay.” My gaze met Moon Man’s.
We needed to act soon. I suppressed the desire to make mental contact with the
Story Weaver. Their leader had to be a strong Warper to have created such a
subtle null shield. There was a chance he would “hear” us. The crunch of gravel
under boots neared. My stomach tightened. “I have orders to bring
the woman to Jal,” the leader said from above me. “Jal has special plans for
her.” Without warning, the
arrow in my back was yanked out. I bit my tongue to keep from yelling. The
leader knelt next to me. He held the arrow, examining the weapon. My blood
stained the smooth metal tip. At least the tip wasn’t barbed. Strange I should
worry about that. “Too bad,” Rough Voice
said. “Think of the power you could have if you performed Kirakawa on her. You
might become stronger than Jal. You could lead our clan.” My lower back pulsed
with pain. The Theobroma was working. Another minute and I should regain the
use of my legs. “She is powerful,” the
leader agreed. “But I do not know the binding rite yet. Once I bring her to
Jal, I hope to be rewarded and allowed to ascend to the next level.” He smoothed tendrils of
hair from my face. I made a conscious effort not to flinch as his fingers
caressed my cheek. “Are the rumors true?
Are you really a Soulfinder?” he whispered to me. He stroked my arm in a
possessive way. “Perhaps I can siphon a cup of your blood before I deliver you
to Jal.” He reached for the knife hanging from his belt. I moved. Pulling my
switchblade from my pocket, I triggered the blade and rolled over, slicing his
stomach open. But instead of falling back in surprise, he leaned forward and
wrapped his hands around my neck. A blur of motion beside
me, and Moon Man leaped to his feet, swinging his scimitar in a deadly arc
through Rough Voice. I struggled with the
leader. His weight trapped my arms. The pressure from his thumbs closed my
windpipe. He attempted to connect with my mind, and would have succeeded with
his magical attack if the Curare on my switchblade hadn’t worked so fast to paralyze
his power. One problem remained.
Trapped under the frozen Vermin, I couldn’t breathe. Moon Man, I called.
Help! One minute. The clang of
weapons split the air. I’ll be dead in a
minute. Just push him off. A brief flurry of steel hitting steel was followed
by silence. The man on me fell to the side. I freed my arms and pried his hands
from my neck. Moon Man reengaged in
the battle. He fought three men. One man’s decapitated head rested next to me.
Lovely. My short blade wouldn’t
last against their long scimitars and my bow was in the jungle with my pack.
Gathering power, I sent a light touch to one man’s mind. Relieved he wasn’t a
Warper, I sent him puzzling images to distract him. He dropped out of the
fight with Moon Man and stared at my approach with a baffled expression. The
man raised his sword a second too late. I stepped close to him and nicked his
arm with my switchblade, hoping Curare still clung to my blade. Unable to use
his sword, the man dropped his weapon and lunged. His intent to subdue me rang
clear in his mind, but I deepened my mental connection and forced him to sleep. With only two attackers
left, Moon Man had both their heads off in short order. He strode over to the
man sleeping at my feet and raised his scimitar. “Stop,” I said. “When he
wakes, we can question him about Cahil’s plans.” “The other?” “Paralyzed.” Moon Man rolled the
leader over. The blood from his stomach wound had pooled on the rocks. After
touching the man’s neck and face, Moon Man said, “He is gone.” The cut was deeper than
I thought. A felt a tinge of guilt as I scowled at the body. The leader
probably had more information than the other man. “It is a good thing. He
was a Warper. We would not have gotten anything from him except trouble.” I looked at the scattered
carnage. The headless bodies cast macabre shadows in the pale moonlight. The
side of my face and the wound in my back throbbed. The cool night air felt icy
on my wet clothes. Tauno and Marrok both needed medical attention, and we
couldn’t go anywhere until the Curare wore off. And the thought of spending the
night surrounded by corpses… “I will take care of
them,” Moon Man said, reading my thoughts. “And I will build a fire. You take
care of the wounded. Including you.” Pulling the arrows from
Marrok’s thigh and Tauno’s shoulder, I gathered power but couldn’t assume their
injuries. The Curare in their bodies blocked my magic. An interesting
discovery. It seemed when under the influence of the drug, a person couldn’t do
magic or be affected by it. I mulled over the
implications as I searched in my pack. Finding a few lumps of Theobroma, I gave
it to Moon Man to melt over the fire and feed to our paralyzed companions. From
my own experience with Curare, I knew the drug didn’t affect the body’s ability
to swallow, breathe and hear. So I told them what I planned to do. The last of my energy
faded after healing my own wound. I curled into a ball on the ground and fell
asleep. When I woke, watery
streaks of color painted the sky. Moon Man sat cross-legged next to a fire,
cooking a divine-smelling hunk of meat. My stomach grumbled in anticipation. I checked on the others.
Marrok, Leif and Tauno still slept. Leif’s cut had scabbed over, but I would
need to heal Marrok’s and Tauno’s wounds. Moon Man had tied the Daviian
prisoner’s arms and legs with some jungle vines even though the Vermin remained
unconscious. Moon Man gestured for me
to join him. “Eat first before you heal them.” He handed me a sliver of meat
speared on a stick. When I sniffed at the offering, he said, “Do not analyze
it. It is hot and nourishing. That is all you need to know.” “Why do you get to
decide what I need to know? Why can’t you just give me the information I ask
for?” My frustration extended beyond the mystery meat. “That would be too easy.” “What’s wrong with easy?
I can understand if the most stressful aspect of my life was worrying about
Bain’s next history test, but lives are at stake. Ferde could be stealing
another’s soul and I might have the power to stop him.” “What do you want? For
me to tell you to do this or do that and wa-lah!” Moon Man flourished his hand
in the air. “Instant success!” “Yes. That is exactly
what I want. Please, tell me.” A thoughtful expression
settled on his face. “When you were training to be the Commander’s food taster,
would you know what the poison My Love tasted like if Valek had just described
it to you?” “Yes.” There was no
mistaking the sour-apple taste. “Would you trust your
life on that knowledge? Or others?” I opened my mouth to
reply but paused. Now I couldn’t remember the poisons I hadn’t tasted or
smelled. But I’ll never forget the tartness of My Love, the rancid orange
flavor of Butterfly’s Dust, and the bitter thickness of White Fright. “I’m talking about
magic. Testing food for poisons is different.” “Is it?” I pounded my fist on the
ground. “Do Story Weavers sign a contract or make a blood oath to be difficult
and stubborn and a pain in the ass?” A serene smile spread on
his face. “No. Each Story Weaver chooses how he will guide his charges. Think
about it, Yelena. You do not respond well to orders. Now eat your meat before
it gets cold.” Stifling my desire to
fling the food into the fire and prove the insufferably smug Story Weaver right
about my inability to take orders, I bit off a large chunk. Spiced with pepper, the
oily meat tasted like duck. Moon Man fed me two more pieces before he would let
me return to the sleeping men and heal them. Tired, I snoozed by the fire. When everyone had roused
and gathered around the campfire to eat, we discussed our next move. “Do you think they would
set more ambushes in the jungle? Leave more Warpers in our path?” I asked Moon Man. He considered my
question. “It is possible. They left one at the camp who sacrificed himself.
This one was supposed to come back. Our spies have determined the Daviian
Vermin have about ten Warpers—eight now. Two are very powerful, and the rest
have various lesser talents.” “The ambush leader had
enough magic to create and hold a null shield.” Moon Man turned the meat
roasting over the fire. “A valid and alarming point. Which means they might
have been performing Kirakawa for some time.” “What’s Kirakawa?” Leif
asked. “It is an ancient
ritual. It has many steps and rites. When done correctly, it transfers the life
energy of one person to another. All living beings have the ability to use
magic, but most cannot connect to the power source. A person performing
Kirakawa will either increase their magical power or gain the ability to
connect with the power source, and therefore become a Warper. “Their leader mentioned
levels and a binding rite. They are probably using the Kirakawa to grant
certain members magical abilities and increase certain Warpers’ powers. Their
leader would not want all the clan members to be equally powerful.” “How is the Kirakawa
different than the Efe ritual Ferde used?” Leif rubbed the cut on his cheek. “The Efe ritual binds a
person’s soul to the practitioner, increasing their power. While blood is
needed, it isn’t the medium holding the power in Efe. The soul carries the
power. And the person performing the ritual must be a magician.” “It sounds like anyone
can use this Kirakawa to gain power,” Leif said. “If they knew the proper
steps. With the Kirakawa, the victim’s soul is trapped in blood. It is
gruesome, too. The victim’s stomach is cut open and the heart is removed while
the victim is still living. The Kirakawa is also more complex than the Efe
ritual.” “Could any magician use
Efe? Or just the Soulstealer?” I asked. “A Soulfinder could, but
no one else. Is that a straight enough answer for you, Yelena?” I didn’t dignify his
comment with a reply. Instead, I asked about Mogkan, Alea’s brother. In Ixia,
he had captured over thirty people, turning them into mindless slaves so he
could siphon their power and augment his own. Valek and I had eventually
stopped him from gaining control of Ixia, which explained Alea’s desire for
revenge. “Mogkan tortured them
both physically and mentally until they could no longer bear to be aware of
their surroundings. They retreated within themselves and just became a conduit
for him to exploit. Their magic remained in their bodies.” The implications over
the different ways for people to abuse power raced through my mind. “Going back
to the Kirakawa. If the Daviian Vermin have been performing it for a while,
then they could have more than eight Warpers.” Moon Man nodded. “Many
more.” Paranoia sizzled up my
spine. Convinced Warpers surrounded us, my desire to return my friends to the
safety of the plateau pressed between my shoulder blades. However, if the Daviians
wanted to find more victims for their ritual, the Zaltana Clan teemed with
people and magicians. With the Warpers using a null shield, the clan would have
no warning. Fingers of desperate fear squeezed my stomach as the images of my
mother and father being mutilated filled my mind. 7“HOW DO YOU COUNTER the
null shield?” I asked Moon Man, failing to keep the panic out of my voice. The
jungle around us darkened and I imagined predators lurking behind every tree
and bush. Only the small fire we huddled around gave off any light. “Magic cannot pierce the
shield, but find a way around the shield’s edges and you can use your magic.” “What are the shield’s
dimensions?” “Depends on the strength
of the builder. The one we used in the plateau was as tall as a man astride a
horse, and as wide as thirty men. But we had four Story Weavers combine their
powers to build it. For one Warper, the shield would have to be smaller.” I looked up at the
trees. The ambush had come from above. Would they use the same tactic for
another ambush? No. If the first attempt hadn’t worked, then a different
strategy would be used. Being higher than your target had many advantages, and
if I climbed into the tree canopy, I might be able to get past the edges of another
null shield and discover where another ambush lurked. Knowing my next move
helped to dampen my terror for my family. I made contact with Kiki, projecting
my awareness up toward the plateau. Any trouble? I asked. No. Bored, she replied.
Go? Yes. I’ll meet you at
the Illiais Market rendezvous location. I then told my plan to
the others. “Not without me,” Leif
said. “I grew up in the jungle. I know every leaf and tree.” His body stiffened
with determination. “That is why you need to
stay with them. To show them the way to the homestead. To help them avoid
predators.” Leif crossed his arms
over his broad chest. But he knew I made sense, so he couldn’t argue. “I need to question our
prisoner before I go. There could be a chance the other Vermin might not be
targeting my family.” The man groaned and
blinked at me when I woke him from his deep sleep. Moon Man had been right to
tie his arms. There hadn’t been enough Curare left on my blade to paralyze him. The Vermin’s tunic and
pants had been ripped, and I glimpsed portions of blackish-red tattoos on his
brown skin. Moon Man reached over and ripped the man’s right sleeve off. The Story Weaver pointed
to the symbols on the man’s arm. “He has made the proper blood sacrifice to
prepare for the Kirakawa ritual. That ink in his skin has been mixed with
blood.” Moon Man’s shoulders dropped as if he grieved. “The Sandseeds were wise
to banish the old rituals.” “You were misguided and
fooled into following the teachings of Guyan,” the prisoner said. “Not wise but
weak and pitiful, giving up your power to become docile pathetic Story Weavers
instead of—” Moon Man grabbed the man
by the throat and lifted him off the ground. Docile and weak were not words I
would have used to describe the Story Weaver. “Where did you get the
instructions?” Moon Man asked, shaking him. The man smiled. “I am
not telling you.” “Instructions?” I asked. “The details for the old
rituals had been lost to time. At one point in history, we knew how to perform
many different rituals to increase our power. Our clan passes information down
to our children through teaching stories. Once Guyan became our leader, the
evil ones who knew the required steps were killed. The information should have
died with them.” He dropped the Daviian to the ground. I remembered Dax reading
a bunch of ancient tomes when we had tried to interpret Ferde’s tattoos to
discover why Ferde had been raping and killing those girls. “There were a few books
in the Magician’s Keep. A Sandseed might have written the instructions and symbols
down before they died. Perhaps there is another copy that the Vermin are
using.” I turned to the man. “I guess you’re not going to tell us what the
Vermin’s plans are either?” He met my gaze and
sneered. It was all I needed. My family could be in danger. I sent a rope of
power toward his mind and rifled through his thoughts and memories, extracting
the information I needed. I suppressed the pang of guilt and my recollections
of when Roze Featherstone had tried to examine my mind in a similar fashion. She
had thought I was a spy from Ixia, and the Ethical Code didn’t apply to spies
or criminals. I could argue the same in my defense. Did that make me the same
as Roze? Perhaps. The thought made me uncomfortable. Besides a few horrid
memories of watching an initial level of the Kirakawa ritual, the man knew
almost nothing. Ordered to stay behind and ambush anyone who came out of the
caves, his small unit had scheduled a rendezvous with the larger jungle group
at a later time. Where and when the meeting would be, he had no idea. And, more
important, he didn’t know what the others planned to do. He had a few tidbits of
information. I confirmed that both Cahil and Ferde had come this way and they
traveled with a group of twelve Vermin. “Fourteen is not enough
to win in an attack on the Zaltanas,” Leif said, pride in his voice. I agreed. “But winning
isn’t everything.” My anxiety to leave
increased a hundredfold. A group of Vermin had entered the jungle and my clan
could be in trouble. Images of my father and mother being captured and staked
to the ground replayed in my mind. The thought of my cousin Nutty climbing
without care through the trees and falling into a trap, hurried my
preparations. I shouldered my pack,
threading my bow through its holder. “What about our prisoner?” I asked Moon Man. “I will take care of
him.” “How?” “You do not want to
know.” “Yes, I do. I want you
to tell me everything!” Moon Man sighed. “The
Vermin were once a part of the Sandseed clan. They are our wayward kin, and
they are infesting the rest of Sitia. How we deal with them is in accordance to
our laws, and it is the proper way to take care of Vermin.” “And that would be?” “You exterminate them.” A protest perched on my
lips. What about those members who might have been misguided? But my question
remained unvoiced. Now wasn’t the best time to argue crime and punishment. Instead, I gazed at the
tall trees, looking for a way up into the canopy, wishing I hadn’t left my
grapple and rope in the cave. I found a long vine and used it to climb into the
higher branches. After a moment to reorient myself—the Zaltana homestead was to
the west—I swung over to the next tree. I kept my magical senses
tuned to the life around me, seeking the Daviians and other predators as I
traveled toward home. The web of branches and crowded trees slowed my progress.
After a few hours, my sweat-soaked clothes were ripped, and my skin burned and
itched from innumerable cuts and insect bites. Resting on the branch of
a hawthorn tree, I scanned the area between me and Moon Man. There was no sign
of any intelligent life so I linked my mind with Moon Man’s and Leif’s. You will be safe to
travel to this area, I said, picturing the small clearing below. Stay there
until I contact you again. They agreed. After I rested, I pushed
my way through the jungle’s canopy, staying alert to any sign of the Daviians.
The rhythm of climbing from tree to tree combined with the steady pulse of the
jungle’s undisturbed life force. When an out-of-tune presence plucked at my
senses, my energies focused on the distant ripple. Engrossed, I concentrated on
discovering the source. A man in the tree canopy. Before I could determine if
he was friend or foe, my left hand grasped a smooth and pliant branch.
Surprised, I jerked my awareness back and my mind connected with a hunter
lurking in the trees. The leaves rustled with
movement. The terrifying rasp of a stirring snake surrounded me. The limb under
my feet softened. I scrambled for a solid branch, and touched nothing but the
snake’s dry coils. The necklace snake’s coloring blended with the jungle’s
greenery so well that I couldn’t determine where the rest of it lay. I closed my eyes and
projected into the snake’s mind. It had looped part of its body between two
branches, creating a flat net now closing around me. Pulling my switchblade
from my pocket, I triggered the blade. When the heavy coils of
the snake dropped onto my shoulders, I knew I had mere seconds before the
predator would wrap around my throat like a necklace and choke me to death. I
sensed satisfaction from the snake as it moved to tighten its hold. I stabbed my knife into
the snake’s thick body. Would the Curare on the blade affect the creature? Mild
pain from the thrust registered in the snake’s mind, but it considered the
wound minor. The snake contracted
around me, trapping my legs and left arm. I realized the necklace snake held me
aloft. If I cut through its coils, I would plummet to the ground. Another loop brushed my
face as the snake tried to encircle my neck. I pushed it away with my free arm.
A coil slid up my back. Deciding the odds of
surviving a fall were better than dying by strangulation, I stabbed my blade in
the nearest coil with the intention of sawing through it. Before I applied more
pressure, the creature stopped. Perhaps Curare had
paralyzed the snake. I pulled the blade out and the snake resumed its
tightening. The Curare hadn’t worked. But when I reinserted the knife, the
creature paused. Odd. I must have found a vulnerable area. We were at an
impasse. Through my link with its
mind, I sensed the snake’s hunger warring with its desire to live. I tried to
control the predator’s will, but our minds were too incompatible. Even though I
could feel its intentions, I couldn’t direct its movements. I wanted to avoid killing
the snake, but I could see no other way. Once dead, I should be able to cut my
way back into the trees. “Hello. Is someone in
there?” a man’s voice asked. My struggle with the
snake had seized all my attention. Cursing myself for forgetting the man, I
directed my mind into the tree canopy and encountered the well-protected
thoughts of another magician. But Warper or Story Weaver, I couldn’t tell. “Has the snake got your
tongue?” He laughed at his own joke. “I know you’re there. I felt your power.
If you don’t belong in the jungle, I’ll gladly let the snakes have you for
dinner.” “Snakes?” I asked. His
speech patterns sounded familiar. Not Daviian. Not Sandseed. I hoped Zaltana. “Your necklace snake has
sent a call for help. You might kill this one and untangle yourself, but by
then its kin will be here to finish the job.” I scanned the jungle
canopy and, sure enough, I felt five other snakes moving toward me. “What if I do belong in
the jungle?” I asked. “Then I’ll help you. But
you’d better make a strong case. Strange things have been happening lately.” I thought fast. “I’m
Yelena Liana Zaltana. Daughter of Esau and Perl and sister to Leif.” “Common knowledge. You
have to do better.” Soul mate to Valek, the
scourge of Sitia, I thought, but knew that wouldn’t help my case. I searched my
mind for a bit of information only the Zaltanas knew. The problem was, since I
had been raised in Ixia, I knew only a few things about my lost clan. “I could send you on a
wild-valmur chase, but wouldn’t it be easier if I gave you a piece of sap
candy?” I held my breath, waiting. Just when I was
convinced I would have to cut my way out of the snake before its brothers
arrived, a low drumbeat throbbed. More beats followed. The vibrations pulsed
through the snake. The snake relaxed. A gap
appeared above my head and a green painted face smiled down at me. He extended his hand,
which was also camouflaged. “Grab on.” I clasped his wrist. He
pulled me from the snake’s net and onto a solid branch. Relief puddled in my
knees and I had to sit down. The man’s clothes
matched the jungle’s colors and patterns. He placed a leather drum on the
branch and played another song. The snake unraveled and disappeared into the
jungle. “That should hold them
off for a while,” he said. From his clothes and
dyed-olive hair color, I knew the man had to be a Zaltana. I thanked him for
helping me. His answering nod
reminded me of someone. “Who are you?” I asked. “Your cousin, Chestnut.
I was out on patrol when you were here the last time so I didn’t get a chance
to meet you.” After living in Ixia for
fourteen years, I had finally returned to a home I hadn’t known existed. It had
been such an emotional whirlwind, and I had met so many cousins, aunts and
uncles it was unlikely I would have remembered him even if I had been
introduced to him. Seeing no sign of
recognition on my face, he added, “I’m one of Nutty’s brothers.” Nutty’s stories about
her siblings had been humorous and I remembered a game I used to play with her
against her brothers before my kidnapping. “How did you control the
snake?” I asked. “I’m a snake charmer,”
he said as if the title explained everything. But when I failed to respond, he
said, “It’s part of my magic. The necklace snakes are very hard to spot. Not
only do they blend in so well, but also they mask their life energy. Even if
you’re able to sense the other jungle animals you probably wouldn’t feel the
snakes. Not until it was too late.” He rubbed his hands together in
appreciation. “They usually hunt alone, but if one gets into trouble it can
call to the others with a low sound we can’t hear. My magic allows me to locate
the snakes and hear their calls. And my drum is my way to talk to them. It
doesn’t work on the other animals.” He shrugged. “But I keep the snakes away
from our homestead.” “You were out on patrol
when you heard my snake?” Funny how I had become possessive of the creature
that had tried to squash and eat me. “Yes. Although, when I
left this morning, I had hoped to find more than snakes.” He gave me an odd
look. “I guess I just did. Why are you here, Yelena?” “I’m following a group
of people who had been living in the plateau,” I said. “They came through here.
Has anyone seen them?” But what I really wanted to ask was had they attacked
the clan? Were my mother and father okay? “Seen? No. Strangers are
in the jungle, but we can’t find them and…” He paused, probably considering
what information he should divulge. “Perhaps it would be best for you to talk
to our clan elders. Are you alone?” “No. My brother and some
Sandseeds are traveling with me.” “In the trees?” “On the ground.” I told
Chestnut about the attack and how I had been acting as a scout for our group. Chestnut accompanied me
to the Zaltana homestead. It contained a vast network of living, sleeping and
cooking areas connected by bridges and suspended above the ground. Hidden by
the thick jungle vegetation, the homestead was hard to find, but once inside
the complex, I continued to be amazed the tree canopy could camouflage such a
collection of rooms. Built of wood, the
floors of the buildings were anchored to wide branches. Ivy grew on the outside
of all the walls to hide their shape. Almost all of the furniture was
constructed of wood, and rope hammocks provided comfortable places to sleep.
Handcrafts made of jungle items like seeds and sticks decorated the various
rooms, including animal sculptures created by colored pebbles glued together. The main throughway of
the homestead tended to be common areas of each of the families within the
clan. The living and sleeping quarters branched off from the public rooms. Besides being extensive,
the homestead was also well defended. The Zaltana magicians kept a vigilant
watch for any strangers. After our arrival,
Chestnut hurried to find the clan elders and I scanned the path back to Moon Man. Once I was certain that the way was clear, I made contact with the Story Weaver’s
mind. Come, I told him. Come
quickly. We are on the way, he
replied. I raced to my parents’
suite. A few surprised glances and quizzical calls followed me as I dashed
toward the Liana quarters, but I ignored them. My mother, Perl, paced
the living room. The air smelled like ginger and cinnamon, but her perfume
distillery set up on the long table against the back wall appeared to be empty. “Yelena!” She flew into my arms. A
few inches shorter than me, the slender woman clutched me as if to keep from
falling. “Mother. What’s the
matter?” I asked. “Esau,” she said, and
cried. I suppressed the urge to
shake her as she sobbed in my arms. Instead, I waited for the flow of tears to
subside before I pulled her away and looked into her light green eyes. “What
about Father?” “He’s missing.” 8I RESISTED THE URGE to
use magic to calm my mother. Many horrible scenarios played in my mind before
she settled enough to tell me the details. My father had been expected back
from an expedition yesterday and had failed to return. “There was a clan
meeting,” Perl said between sobs. “A couple of scouts had gotten lost, and he
went to find them.” “Lost scouts?” She gave me a watery
smile. “Some of the newer ones will lose their way. Esau always finds them. No
one knows the jungle as well as he does.” “Maybe one of the scouts
was hurt,” I said, hoping to calm her and to stop myself from imagining Esau
being a victim of the Kirakawa ritual. “Why was he expected yesterday?” “Another clan meeting.
The jungle creatures have been restless and disturbed and we can’t pinpoint
why. When the two scouts failed to return, the clan decided everyone should
stay close to our homestead. Each night we gather in the common room to make
sure everyone is safe. Esau was only supposed to be gone a few hours.” Tears
tracked down her cheeks. Her face reflected the
hours of worry and fear. Her long hair had more gray than black. I couldn’t
leave her alone, yet I needed more information. “I have to talk with the
clan elders,” I said. “You can come along only if you promise not to get too
upset.” She agreed, but
uncertainty filled her eyes. Her hand went to her throat. Maybe taking her with
me was a bad idea. Perhaps Nutty could stay with her? Perl stiffened as if
with a sudden realization. “Wait,” she said before bolting toward the lift. As I watched her pull
the ropes and ascend to the second floor of the apartment, my heart filled with
dread. Esau had invented that lift, using vines from the jungle and a pulley
system. I wouldn’t be able to forgive myself if anything happened to him. Panic made me fidget,
and just as I was about to call out to Perl to hurry, the lift moved. My mother
had splashed water on her face and had tied her hair back. She also wore my
fire amulet around her neck. I smiled. “For strength,” she
said, and she met my gaze. This time only stubborn resolve radiated from her.
“Let’s go.” I thought about the fire
amulet as we made our way to the homestead’s meeting room. Winning an acrobatic
contest during an Ixian fire festival, I had achieved a moment of pure joy in
the midst of hell. Reyad—one of my captors, the first man I’d killed—had tried
to keep me from participating, and I was severely punished for my disobedience,
but I knew I would do it again. I now realized the stubborn streak from both my
parents had kept me fighting despite Mogkan and Reyad’s efforts to control me. Our clan name might be
Zaltana, but our family name was Liana, which meant vine in the old Illiais
language. Those vines grew everywhere in the jungle, pulling down trees in
their search for the sun. When cut and dried, the vines turned rock hard. Looking at the firm set
of my mother’s shoulders, I knew she had reached the point where she would no
longer bend to her emotions, but do what was needed to help find her husband. The common room was the
largest area of the homestead. Big enough to hold the entire clan, the round
area had a stone fire pit at its center. The black ashy remains of the fire
drifted in the sunlight, streaming from the smoke hole in the room’s wooden
ceiling. Benches made of branches and hardened vines ringed the pit. The scent
of many perfumes lingered in the air and I remembered the first time I stood
here. The entire clan had
filled the room then. Curious to see the lost child returned from—according to
their viewpoint—the dead, they peered at me with a mixture of hope, joy and
suspicion. My hopes for an uneventful reunion dissolved when my brother
declared to all that I reeked of blood. Chestnut interrupted my
reminiscence by introducing me to the clan elders. “Oran Cinchona Zaltana and
Violet Rambutan Zaltana.” They bowed in the formal
Sitian greeting. Their dark faces creased with worry. These two dealt with the
day-to-day problems of the clan when our clan leader, Bavol, was at the
Citadel. Missing scouts plus unexpected guests equaled big problems. “Your friends have
reached the palm ladder,” Violet said. “When they climb up, they will be escorted
here.” A slight smile flickered across her face. Relieved they had
arrived safely, I projected my awareness to encourage Leif to hurry. When Leif
opened his mind to me, his annoyance was clear. You should have taken me
with you to search for the Vermin, he said. Leif’s muscles ached from the
day-long march through the jungle. The trails tended to get overgrown quite
fast in the steamy warmth, and Leif had had to cut a path for the others with
his machete. We can fight about it
later, I said. Right now I need you here. I can’t leave Tauno. Leif and Marrok had
reached the tree canopy, but through Leif’s eyes I saw Tauno frozen about
halfway up the rope ladder, clutching the rungs with a death grip. I moved my awareness to
Tauno. Although he couldn’t hear my words in his mind, I sent him calming
emotions, reminding him how he had climbed down from rocks in the blackness of
the cave. I chased his memory of that descent and realized why he hadn’t been
frightened then. Close your eyes, I
instructed. He did. Tauno relaxed
his hold and climbed the ladder. I pulled away and
reconnected to Leif. Hurry. By the time Leif and the
others joined us, I felt my desire for action pushing out, threatening to
explode. I updated the clan elders on what I knew, but the only information
that Oran and Violet added was the direction that the lost scouts had been
assigned. South and east, and Esau had gone east first to find them. “It has to be the
Daviians,” I said. “We have to rescue them before they can do any part of the
Kirakawa ritual.” “Let’s go.” Leif held
his machete tightly, a fierce countenance on his square face. “You do not know for
sure if the Vermin have your father,” Moon Man said. “Or where they are. Or how
many Warpers there are. Or how well defended they may be.” The words tumbled
out in a rush. Moon Man’s eyebrows pinched together, reflecting his obvious
discomfort with being surrounded by walls. “All right, Mr. Logic.
How do you propose we get this information?” I asked. “Marrok and Tauno will
search for trail signs and report back.” “Where?” I asked. “To the east.” “And stumble into the
same ambush as my father? They’ll be caught and killed,” I countered. “It’s too
risky to send people out there. The jungle is the perfect setting for ambushes.
Unless—” A sudden idea circled in my mind. I thought it over, looking for any
holes. If the Daviians hid behind a null shield, no magic could pierce it, but
mundane physical things like sound and light would. “Unless,” Leif prompted. “Unless we could get a
bird’s-eye view,” I said. “They probably have men
stationed in the trees,” Marrok said. “Isn’t that how the scouts would have
been captured?” “Actually I was being
literal. I could link with one of the birds in the jungle and see out through
its eyes.” “You will not see much
during the daytime,” Moon Man said. “The Vermin will be well camouflaged. In
the night, they will need a small fire and the moon to perform even the first
level of the Kirakawa ritual.” A cold wave of dread
washed over me. “The moon rose last night.” “Too soon. They need
time to properly prepare themselves.” “For someone who claims
the old rituals have been lost, you certainly know a lot about them,” Marrok
said. Accusation laced his voice. “The specifics of the
ritual have been forgotten, but some knowledge about them has been included in
our teaching stories,” Moon Man replied, meeting Marrok’s stare. “It keeps us
from making the same mistakes over and over and over again.” A warning to Marrok or
just cryptic Story Weaver advice, I couldn’t tell. Marrok rubbed his healed
cheek. He tended to stroke the spot whenever he was upset or frightened. The
wounds from Cahil’s beating went deeper than shattered bone fragments. Broken
trust was harder to fix than bones. I wondered if Marrok would change his
opinion about Moon Man if he knew the Sandseed had helped repair his injuries. “Can a bird see at
night?” Leif asked, bringing our attention back to the problem at hand. “There’ll be light from
the fire,” Marrok said. “But what about guards
in the trees or outside the firelight?” Tauno asked. “We need to know how many
Vermin are there.” I considered the
difficulties and a solution flew into my mind. “Bats.” Tauno hunched over.
“Where?” “I’ll link with the bats
to find the Vermin. Their fire should attract insects the bats like to eat,” I
said. “Can we afford to wait
until dark?” Leif asked. “What if Yelena can’t locate them with the bats? Then
we will have wasted time that could have been spent searching for Father.” “Yelena will find them,”
my mother said. She had kept her promise and controlled her emotions during our
discussion. Her confidence in me was heart-warming, but I still worried. Three
lives were at stake. “What happens when we
find the Vermin?” Marrok asked. “An army of Zaltanas
could capture them,” Leif said. “That might or might not
work,” Moon Man said. “It will depend on how many Warpers they have with them.” “No. It’s too risky.”
Oran Zaltana broke the silence he had held during our discussion. “I won’t send
clan members until we know what and who we’re dealing with.” I glanced at the floor
beneath the ceiling’s smoke hole. The patch of sunlight had shifted. It would
be dusk in a couple hours. “Let’s find the Vermin first and determine their
strength. Everyone else should eat and rest. It might be a long night.” When we filed out of the
common room, Chestnut touched my arm. He had stood apart from our group as we
talked. His dark brown eyes showed concern. “Esau is my favorite uncle. Let me
know if I can help.” “I will.” I followed
Leif and Perl back to her apartment. She made us sit down on the couch Esau had
built from vines. The leaves in the cushions crackled under my weight. Perl
went into the kitchen and fetched a tray of food and tea. Our mother hovered
over us until we ate. I pushed the fruit and cold meat past my numb lips and
chewed without tasting. Eventually fatigue from
climbing through the jungle caught up to me and I dozed on the couch.
Nightmares about serpents coiling around my body plagued my sleep as they
hissed in my ear. “—wake up. It’s getting
dark,” Leif whispered. I blinked in the gray
light. Perl, curled in a ball, dozed on one of the armchairs. Moon Man stood
near the door to the apartment. I woke my mother. “Can
you fetch the clan elders? We’ll need to make plans once I’ve found Esau.” She hurried out the
door. “Where do you want to
go?” Leif asked. “Upstairs, to my old
room,” I said and headed for the lift. Leif and Moon Man joined
me in the closet-size lift. Two thick ropes went through holes in the ceiling
and floor. Moon man bent over to fit. His breath came in uneven huffs and he
muttered about Sandseeds, the plains and suffocating. Leif and I pulled on the
ropes and the lift began to move. We ascended to the upper level and walked
down the hallway. My room was on the right. Pulling back the cotton curtain, I
let Leif and Moon Man precede me into the small clutter-filled space. A few years after my
kidnapping, Esau had started using the area for storage. Fourteen years of
collecting jungle samples had resulted in rows and rows of shelves filled with
glass containers of every size and shape. The only places free of the
assortment were a small bed and a wooden bureau. Wanting to focus all my
energy on linking with the bats, I stretched across the bed. “Try to keep all
distractions away from me and be ready to help.” Leif and Moon Man
signaled their understanding. Both had enough magical energy I could draw from
if needed. I tried to keep the horrible thoughts about Esau’s plight in the
back of my mind as I projected my awareness toward the mouth of the cave. The
bats would soon be leaving their roost in search for food. My mind met the dark
consciousness of the bats. They didn’t perceive the world by sight, but by
sensing objects and movement around them. Unable to direct them to where I
wanted to go, I flew with them, my mental perception floating from one bat to
another, trying to make sense of my location in the jungle. The flutter of
wings and hum of insects cut through the silent night air. Even though the bats had
spread over many miles, they remained connected to each other, and I soon had a
detailed mental image of the jungle. It was a bird’s-eye view without
colors—just shapes, sizes and movement. In my bat mind, the trees and rocks
were not visual, but in scapes of sound. The straight walls of
the Zaltana homestead felt odd to the bats. They avoided the clan’s dwellings,
but I jumped over to the minds flying east of the homestead. Frustrated because I
couldn’t affect their movements, I had to wait and watch until one bat found a
small campfire. I channeled my awareness on the bat as it dived and flew
through the hot rising air, snatching the insects that danced above the light. Instinctively avoiding
the creatures below, the bat stayed high in the air. I used the bat’s senses to
determine the number of Vermin. Three around the fire, two crouched in the
trees and four stood guard outside the camp. A pair of tents were close to the
fire. Three unmoving forms lay flat on the ground next to them. Alarmed, I
focused my attention on them until I felt their chests rise and fall. When I had the exact
location of the Vermin’s camp in my mind, I withdrew from the bat’s
consciousness. “There are nine of
them,” I said to Leif and Moon Man. “I don’t know how many are Warpers.” “We should have enough
Zaltana magicians to overpower them,” Leif said. “If we could surprise them, it
would give us the advantage. Can you form a null shield?” Leif asked Moon Man. “No. That is not one of
my skills.” I sat up. A wave of
dizziness crashed into me and I hunched over until the feeling passed. Linking
with the bats had used my energy. Moon Man put a steadying hand on my elbow and
his strength coursed through me. I thought about what
Leif said. If we attacked with a large group, the Vermin would know we were
coming, and they would either flee and hide again, or fight back. Either way
they would have time to kill their prisoners. The element of surprise was key,
but how to achieve that? “Could Tauno shoot the
guards with Curare-laced arrows and immobilize them?” Leif asked. “Or could we
blow treated darts through reed pipes?” “Too many trees,” Moon
Man said. “It would be hard in the
dark,” I agreed. “We could get close and jab them.” “But what about the
guards in the trees? Getting close without alerting them is a difficult if not
impossible maneuver,” Leif said. If I’d had the ability
to control the bats, I could use them as a distraction. We needed something
else to cause a commotion. I followed the logic and found an answer. Leif, sensing my mood,
smiled. “What are you scheming, little sister?” 9WE DIDN’T HAVE MUCH TIME
to waste. Leif, Moon Man and I rushed down to my parents’ living area. Perl had
returned with Oran and Violet. “Did you find them?”
Perl asked. “They’re about three
miles southeast of us.” “We’ll need some
magicians and soldiers,” Leif told Oran. “How many are there, and
what do the Vermin plan to do?” Oran asked me. “Nine. And it doesn’t
matter what they plan. The Vermin have Esau and your scouts. We need to rescue
them!” Oran hemmed and hawed. “We
should consult Councilman Bavol—” “Bavol’s at the Citadel.
It will take weeks to get a reply.” I suppressed the desire to wrap my hands
around Oran’s thin neck. “We can’t leave our
homestead unprotected,” Violet said. “We’ll call a meeting and request a few
volunteers.” Sitians! I thought in
exasperation, couldn’t do anything without consulting a committee. “Fine. Call
your meeting. Do whatever.” I shooed Oran and Violet out the door. “Yelena—” my mother
began. “You can scold me later.
We’re leaving now.” Leif and Moon Man looked
at me as if waiting for orders. “Get Tauno and Marrok. I’ll catch up to you at
the base of the ladder.” “Where are you going?”
Leif asked. “To get our
distraction.” They hurried from the
room and I was about to follow when my mother grabbed my arm. “Just a minute,” she
said. “There are only five of you. What are you planning? Tell me now or I’m
coming along.” That Liana stubbornness
radiated from her and I knew her threats weren’t idle. I sketched a brief
outline of my plan. “That won’t work without
some help,” she said. “But I’m going to—” “Need more incentive. I
have just the thing. Go. I’ll meet you at the base of the ladder.” Perl rushed
off. After a few minutes of
frantic searching, I found what I needed. By the time I slid down the ladder,
the others were ready. Shafts of bright moonlight pierced the darkness of the
jungle floor, giving just enough light to make out the shadowy shapes of the
tree trunks. I told Tauno and Marrok
how to approach the Vermin camp and guards and instructed them on where to
position themselves nearby. “No noise. Keep your distance. Wait for my signal
before attacking.” “Signal?” Marrok asked.
His face hardened into grim determination, but uncertainty lurked behind his
eyes. Even though Cahil had issued orders to his men, Marrok had really been
the one in charge. “Something loud and
obnoxious,” I said. Marrok frowned. “This
isn’t the time to joke.” “I wasn’t joking.” After a mere moment’s
hesitation, Marrok and Tauno set off. Moon Man stared after
them. “What about us?” There was a faint
rustling from above as someone took hold of the rope ladder. A few heartbeats
later, Chestnut joined us on the jungle floor. He wore a dark-colored tunic and
pants, and his drum was tied to his belt. The green paint and dye had been
washed from his hair. “I’m glad I could help,”
Chestnut said. “But you need to know I’ve never done this before.” “Done what?” Leif asked.
“Yelena, what’s going on?” “I’m hoping Chestnut
will be able to call a few necklace snakes to join the Vermin’s party.” “Ah. Your distraction,”
Moon Man said. “How close do you need
to be?” I asked Chestnut. “Probably within a mile,
but it’ll all depend on how many snakes are around.” He hesitated. “I’m used to
chasing them away, not calling them. What if it doesn’t work?” As if on cue, the rope
ladder swung with the weight of another person. Perl descended. She moved as
graceful as liquid, and I would have bet Nutty hadn’t been the only Zaltana
child to drive her parents crazy by learning to climb before she could walk. “Here.” My mother handed
me ten grape-size capsules and several straight pins. “Just in case your first
plan fails.” “What if the second plan
fails?” Leif asked. “Then we’ll storm the
camp and hope for the best. Come on.” I put the capsules in my pocket, put the
pins through my shirt so they didn’t stick me, adjusted my pack so its weight
rested between my shoulder blades, and pulled my bow. “Be careful,” Perl said. I hugged her before
setting off. While I had told Marrok and Tauno to take a wider more circuitous
path to the Vermin, I wanted to lead the three men straight toward them. Once
again I made a light mental connection to the bats flying above us. Guided by
the bats’ shape map of the jungle, I moved with ease through the tight trail
even though the tree canopy blocked the dim moonlight in places. The jungle’s night
sounds echoed in the damp air. A howler bat cried in a loud staccato. Valmurs
climbed and swung through the trees. The rustle and shake of branches and
bushes hinted at the unseen activity of other night creatures. About a mile from the
Vermin camp, I halted. Chestnut leaned his forehead on a nearby tree and power
brushed my skin. “There is only one snake
nearby,” he said. “He is waiting for the men in the trees to stumble into his
trap. Necklace snakes are not active hunters. They prefer to lie in wait, using
the element of surprise.” Chestnut looked at me. “And I don’t want to teach
them how to hunt.” “That is a good point,”
Moon Man said. “Now what?” Leif asked. “I’m thinking,” I said. “Think faster,” Leif
urged. One snake wasn’t enough.
Time for Perl’s suggestion. I handed everyone two capsules and a pin. “Get as
close to the guards as you can. Poke a small hole in the capsule and squirt the
liquid near them. Don’t get it on you,” I instructed. “Why not?” Leif asked. “You’ll have a necklace
snake trying to mate with you.” “Gee, Yelena. I’m so
glad you’re home,” Leif grumbled. “It’s good to know Mother is doing something
useful with her time.” “I thought your mother
made perfumes,” Moon Man said. “It all depends on how
you look at it,” Chestnut said. “To a male necklace snake, that stuff is a
perfume.” “There are six guards.
Moon Man, Leif and I will each spray two,” I said. Taking off my pack, I
stashed it behind a tree. “Chestnut, you stay back here. Can you keep the
snakes from grabbing us when they come?” “I’ll try. They have an
excellent sense of smell so get clear once you spray that stuff.” “What about the guards
in the trees?” Leif asked. “Aim high and be quiet
about it.” Leif muttered to himself
as the three of us fanned out to approach the Vermin guards. Chestnut stayed
behind to communicate with the predators while we moved into position. Once our
distraction arrived and the guards became busy dodging amorous snakes, Leif and
Moon Man would find Marrok and Tauno and await my signal. I would spy on the
Vermin in the camp. I crept through the
trees, seeking a sign of the guards. I disconnected with the bats and reached
out with my mental awareness, searching for the Vermin. Beyond the outer guards,
I knew the camp held six people, three Daviians and three Zaltanas, yet I
couldn’t detect them, which meant someone had erected a null shield. At least
one of the Vermin was a Warper and he could be performing one of the Kirakawa
rites while we snuck around in the dark. It was then I realized the sounds from
the jungle had ceased. My heart drummed a
faster beat as my stomach cramped with fear. A presence hovered above me and I
connected with a man crouched in the lower branches of a tree. His mind was
alert for signs of intruders, but he hadn’t detected me. Poking a hole in one
capsule, I sprayed the liquid along the tree’s trunk, and then slipped away. Five minutes later, I
found my second guard. She failed to notice my approach and I squirted some of
Perl’s snake perfume on the bushes near her. I hoped she would rub against them
at some point. As I retreated, I
tripped over a buttress root and fell. I turned over on my back in time to see
her aim an arrow at me. “Freeze,” she shouted.
“Hands up.” So much for being quiet.
I raised my hands and cursed myself for not reestablishing my link with the
bats. Through their eyes, I never would have tripped. She called to another
guard. “Stand up slowly,” she
ordered. “Leave your weapon.” My bow rested on the
ground within reach. She stepped closer and
peered at me in the semidarkness. The guard gasped and said, “Soulfinder.” I rolled as her weapon
twanged and snatched my bow. The arrow stuck the dirt. I jumped to my feet,
swinging my staff in a wide arc. The end of my weapon caught her behind her
ankles. I yanked her feet out from under her. She went down with a loud oath.
The black shape of her partner grew bigger as he ran toward us. Great. The air filled with a
strange rasp as if a person had pulled a rope from a wooden holder very fast.
The noise grew louder and came from all directions. The three of us stopped.
All thoughts of fighting banished as we searched for the source of the sound. A necklace snake
slithered past my legs. It aimed for the female guard and wrapped around her
with amazing speed. All my preconceptions about a slow-moving creature
dissipated. The other guard looked
at his partner and bolted. Another snake slid after him. The vibrations of the
necklace snakes and Chestnut’s drum thrummed in my chest. I projected into
Chestnut’s mind for an update. He kept the creatures from going after us, but
he didn’t know how long he could maintain control. Faster is better, he
said. Right. I switched my
awareness to Moon Man. He and Leif had marked the other four guards. They
waited with Marrok and Tauno for my signal. Running toward the
campfire, I avoided snakes, terrified guards and broke through the null shield.
I stumbled for a moment as an array of thoughts and emotions washed over me.
The air was charged with magic and fear. My panic pressed on my back, but I
forced myself to slow down. When I reached the edge
of the Vermin camp, my blood turned to ice. Three men pulled out the stomach of
one of the prone forms on the ground. The Vermin turned their attention to me,
their surprise evident in their openmouthed gapes. I had moved without
realizing it and stood in the middle of their camp, screaming at them to stop. 10WE BLINKED AT EACH OTHER
for a stunned moment. Blood and gore dripped from the Vermin’s hands. The three
men then returned to their macabre task, ignoring me. Astonished, I moved
toward them, raising my bow to strike when a blistering force slammed into me
from behind as if I’d been struck with a red-hot iron pan. I hit the ground hard.
My bow flew from my grasp. My breath whooshed out. Searing pain clung to my
back; I rolled over, convinced my clothes were on fire. Gasping for air, I
thrashed on the ground until I spotted what had attacked me. I froze in horror.
The Vermin’s campfire had grown to three times its previous size. A man stood
in the midst of the roaring bonfire. The man stepped from the
burning wood. Scorched black from head to toe, small flames clung to him like
feathers. He advanced toward me. I broke my paralysis and scrambled away from
him. He stopped. A trail of fire linked him with the campfire. “Did I surprise you, my
little bat?” the man asked. “Counted nine when there really were ten. Hot
little trick.” He knew my consciousness
had flown with the bats. But who was he? I scanned the
surrounding jungle, looking for my backup. Leif and my friends were at the edge
of the clearing. Their arms and hands were raised as if they protected their
faces from a searing wind. Sweat and soot stained their clothes and they
averted their gazes from the man. “No help from them, my
little bat. They will burn if they come any closer.” I tried to project into
the flaming man’s mind, but his mental defenses proved impenetrable, a Warper
of incredible strength. Running out of options, I glanced behind me and caught
sight of my bow. The blazing Warper
pointed and a line of fire appeared between me and my weapon. I jumped to my
feet. The heat singed the hair in my nose. The moisture evaporated from my
mouth. I tasted ashes. A wall of hot air pushed against me and the Warper was
before me. Yet his connection with the burning wood remained. “Fire is your downfall,
little bat. Can not call it. Can not control it.” My body roasted as if I
had been staked to a spit over a giant campfire. I cast my awareness into the
jungle, hoping to find help. Nothing but the panicked thoughts of my friends
and one curious necklace snake nearby. Just when I thought I
would faint, he extended his hands and a bubble of cool air caressed my skin.
The break from the heat was an intoxicating relief. I swayed. “Take my hands. I will
not burn you. Travel with me through the fire.” “Why?” “Because you belong to
me.” “Not good enough. Many
others have made that claim.” “I need you to complete
my mission.” “Which is…?” The flames on his
shoulders pulsed in amusement. He laughed. “Nice try. Take my offer or I will
burn you and your friends into a pile of ash.” “No.” Flaring brightly, the
flames jumped in size before he shrugged. “No matter.” The cold air disappeared
and I gasped. The heat’s intensity robbed my lungs of air. “I need only wait until
you go to sleep, little bat. Then I will take you.” My throat strained as my
vision scrambled. Sleep was a nice way of describing the process of
suffocation. It was a strange notion, but it gave me an idea. With my last bit of
energy, I grabbed a capsule from my pocket and crushed it in my hand. The
sticky liquid coated my palm, dripping down my arm. My legs buckled as I
collapsed to my knees. The last thing I remembered before the world melted was
a brown and green coil reaching for me. I woke, shivering.
Chestnut’s concerned face peered at me. He waved a large leaf, fanning me with
cool clean air. Exhaustion lined his brown eyes. “I guess that’s one
necklace snake who’ll go away hungry,” Chestnut said. “What do you mean?” I
asked, wincing at the sharp pain in my throat. When I tried to sit, I realized
we were on a tree branch. Chestnut helped me. “If
you died, I told the snake he could eat you.” He smiled. “I’m sorry to disappoint
him.” “No matter. Perhaps
we’ll have some extra Vermin to feed him.” His grin faded. I jerked as my memory
returned. “The Fire Warper! My father! The others! What—” Chestnut raised his
hand. “When the snake grabbed you and pulled you into the trees, he distracted
the Warper long enough for Leif to break through the wall of heat. With Moon
Man’s help, Leif was able to quench the link between the main fire and the
Warper.” Chestnut glanced away. “The Warper disappeared.” He shuddered. “The remaining
Vermin ran off, with Moon Man, Tauno and Marrok chasing after them.” “And Leif?” “Below with your
father.” Before I could ask,
Chestnut said, “He’s fine. Although I fear Stono will not live to see the
dawn.” Sudden purpose energized
me. “Help me get down.” My limbs trembled as I
slid and crashed through the lower branches. I hit the ground hard, but didn’t
stop until I stood next to Leif. He had Stono’s head in his lap. My gaze shied
away from the gruesome mess that used to be Stono’s stomach. My father and the
other scout lay on the ground next to them, unmoving—still paralyzed by the
Curare. I couldn’t see my friends. “Where are the others?”
I asked. “They haven’t returned,”
Chestnut said. He sank to the ground next to Leif and took Stono’s left hand in
his own. “At least he isn’t
feeling any pain,” Leif whispered. Streaks of soot and sweat lined Leif’s face.
Burn holes peppered his clothes. He reeked of smoke and body odor. I knelt beside Leif. I
put two fingers on Stono’s neck and felt a tentative heartbeat. Stono groaned
and his eyelids fluttered. “He’s not paralyzed like
the others so the Kirakawa ritual could work,” I said. “Can you save him?” Leif
asked. Stono’s wounds were
fatal. I hadn’t healed anyone with such extensive damage before. Tula’s windpipe had been crushed when she was killed. I was able to repair the damage, but
couldn’t “wake” her without her soul. Why not? According to Roze’s fire
scenario, I had the power to create a soulless army. “Yelena.” Leif’s
impatience cut through my musings. “Can you save him?” Would I be able to save
myself once I assumed his injuries? I drew in a shaky breath. Only one way to
find out. Closing my eyes, I
pulled power and wrapped thick strands of magic around my stomach. I reached
for Stono and forced myself to examine the bloody distended mass, seeing his
wounds through my magic. His wounds pulsed with an urgent red glow as I focused
on them. Without warning, Stono’s
heart stopped its labor and his soul rose from his body. Instinct drove my
actions as I breathed in his soul from the air and tucked it into a safe corner
of my mind. I ignored his confused thoughts, concentrating on his injuries. My
stomach exploded with the pain of a million sharp knives digging deep into my
guts. Clutching my abdomen, I curled into a ball. Blood coated my hands, arms,
and pooled on the ground. The air filled with the hot stench of body fluids. I struggled to push the
pain away, but it clung to me, eating its way through my spine and toward my
heart. Leif’s voice battered at my ears. He wanted something. Annoyed by his
persistence, I transferred my attention to him for a moment. His energy flooded
my body. We stopped the advance of pain, but we couldn’t conquer it. It was
only a matter of time before our strength failed and we would lose the battle. Moon Man’s resigned
voice sounded in my mind. I can not leave you alone. What made you believe you
could counter the power of the Kirakawa ritual on your own? I didn’t— Know? Think? Does it
matter now? Moon Man’s blue energy added
to Leif’s and together the three of us banished the pain. I reached for Stono and
laid my hand on his smooth stomach. Go back, I instructed his soul. A tingling
sting pulsed down my arm. When I felt his gasp for breath, I pulled my hand
back. Too exhausted to move, I
fell asleep where I lay. At one point a hand
shook me into semiconsciousness. “Theobroma?” Leif asked,
his voice a distant call. My tired thoughts
slogged through a fog. “Pack,” I muttered. “Where?” Leif shook me again. I
batted at his arms, but he wouldn’t stop. “Where?” “Backpack. In jungle.
Snake.” “I’ll go,” Chestnut
said. His retreating footsteps
lulled me back to sleep. I woke choking on a
foul-tasting liquid. Coughing, I sat up and spit. “You still need to drink
the rest,” my father said. He offered me a cup. “What is it?” I clasped
the mug. The green-colored contents smelled like swamp water. “Soursop tea. Restores
the body’s strength. Now drink.” I grimaced and put the
cup to my lips, but couldn’t produce the nerve to consume it. Esau sighed. Blood and
dirt matted his shoulder-length gray hair. He looked older than his fifty
years. Weariness pulled at his broad shoulders. “Yelena, I would like to get
home. And your mother must be having fits by now.” Good point. Cringing at
the rancid flavor, I gulped the tea. My raw throat burned as I swallowed the
liquid, but, after a few moments, I felt more awake and energetic. The sun loomed high in
the sky and the clearing was empty. “Where is everyone?” I asked. Esau grunted. “I’ll tell
you on the way home.” He stood. Spotting my backpack
nearby, I checked through the contents before shouldering the pack. My bow
rested on the ground next to a wide scorch mark. I hefted the weapon, running
my hands along the ebony wood. It appeared to be unharmed. A nice surprise
since, during the skirmish, I had thought the Fire Warper had reduced my bow to
a pile of ash. A hot flush of fear
raced over my skin when I thought of the Fire Warper. I had never encountered
magic like his. I had been completely unprepared to fight him, and I couldn’t
think of anyone in Sitia who could match his power. But what about in Ixia? My
thoughts turned to Valek. Would his immunity to magic save him from the Fire
Warper’s flames? Or would he be consumed? “Come on, Yelena,” Esau
said. I shook off my morbid
thoughts and followed my father from the clearing. He set a quick pace, and,
once I caught up to him, I asked him what had happened after I had fallen
asleep. He huffed in amusement.
“Passed out, you mean?” “I had just saved Stono’s
life. And yours, too.” Stopping, Esau grabbed
me in a tight hug. “I know. You did good.” He released me just as
fast as he had seized me and continued through the jungle. I hurried after. “The others?” I asked. “You were asleep for a
full day. We thought it best for Leif and Chestnut to take Stono and Barken
back to the homestead. The Sandseeds and the other Ixian fellow never came
back.” I stopped. “They could
be in trouble.” “Two Sandseed warriors
and a swordsman against three Daviians? I doubt it.” “How about against three
Vermin with Curare?” “Ah, hell!” Esau spit.
“I wish I had never discovered that foul substance!” He pounded his fists on
his thighs. “I had hoped the supply they stole from the Sandseeds would be
almost gone by now.” “You extracted the drug
from a vine in the jungle?” “Yes.” “So how do they know how
to make more?” I wondered out loud. “And where are they
making it?” Esau glanced around. “Maybe in the jungle. I’m going to cut down
every single Curare vine and burn it,” Esau vowed. I put a hand on my
father’s arm. “Remember why you searched for it. There’re plenty of good uses.
Our immediate concern should be for Moon Man and the others. I’m going to try
to contact him.” Gathering power, I
projected my mind into the surrounding jungle. My awareness touched a variety
of life. Valmurs swung through the tree canopy, birds perched on branches, and
other small creatures scurried through the underbrush. But I couldn’t locate
Moon Man’s cool thoughts. Did the Vermin have him
hidden behind a null shield? Was he dead? I searched for Tauno and Marrok, also
to no avail. My father said, “Let’s
go home and figure out a way to find them. All of them, including the
Curare-making Vermin.” He reminded me of the
other Vermin guards we had sprayed with the snake perfume. “We can question the
Daviian guards. Are they at our homestead?” Esau tugged on his
stained tunic as if deciding how to tell me something unpleasant. “When you
were picked up by that snake, the creature wasn’t happy to discover you weren’t
a female snake. So in order for Chestnut to keep you from being devoured, he
had to concentrate all his efforts on saving you.” He paused. “And that means…?” “He lost control of the
other snakes.” “The guards are dead?” “An unfortunate
development, but there is an upside,” Esau said. “Which is?” “Now there are four very
full necklace snakes who won’t be bothering the Zaltanas for a long while.” I washed as much dried
blood and sticky gore from my body as I could in the small stream flowing
underneath my clan’s homestead. My mother would worry and fuss over my
disheveled appearance despite the fact I would be standing before her safe and
sound. Climbing the ladder into
the tree canopy, I mulled over recent events. There might be a group of Daviian
Vermin working in the jungle, gathering vines and distilling Curare. I had no
idea where Ferde and Cahil had gone or where my friends had disappeared to. And
there was a Fire Warper on the loose who could possibly jump out of any
campfire in Sitia. My life in Ixia as the Commander’s food taster sounded like
a vacation in comparison. Why had I wanted to
leave Ixia? An order for my execution for being a magician had been one
compelling reason to escape to Sitia. That and wanting to meet my family, whom
I had no memories of until Moon Man unlocked them. Well, I’d met my parents and
the execution order had been revoked. The thought of returning to Valek and
Ixia tempted me. I reached the top of the
ladder and arrived into a small receiving room made of branches tied together.
Esau hadn’t waited. The Zaltana guard stationed there informed me my father
would meet me in my parents’ living quarters. Walking toward their
apartment, I marveled at the ingenuity and craftsmanship of the vast complex of
living areas built above the jungle floor. The Zaltanas were resourceful and
determined and stubborn. All traits I had been accused of possessing. I wondered if those
qualities would be enough to counter the Fire Warper. Did I have the experience
or magical knowledge to find Moon Man, recapture Ferde and stop the Vermin from
killing more people? The daunting and
overwhelming to-do list would not deter me from making the attempt or die
trying. But how many would be hurt or killed in the process because of me? 11I NEVER REACHED my
parents’ suite. My cousin Nutty intercepted me en route, relaying a message to
go to the common room. She scrunched up her face and tsked over my ripped and
stained clothes. “I have a change in my
pack,” I told her. “Let’s see then.” She
held out her long thin arms, waiting. Knowing it was useless
to argue with her, I opened my bag and showed her the other set of skirt/pants
and cotton top she had sewn for me. I thought a lifetime’s worth of events had
happened since then, but in reality it had only been two seasons. Nutty examined the
clothes with a dismayed purse to her full lips. “You’ll need some new ones.
I’ll make them for you.” With a slight nod of farewell, she hopped up into the
tree branches with the grace and speed of a valmur, disdaining the practical
rope bridge. “Oh, snake spit,” she
called from above. “I’m supposed to fetch Uncle Esau and Aunt Perl.” She
changed directions and disappeared through the trees. I reached the common
room. Oran, Violet, Chestnut and the two scouts stood together. My strong
relief over the absence of a fire in the central pit alarmed me. If I was
afraid of a simple hearth fire, what would I do when faced with the Fire Warper
again? I avoided thinking about that scenario and focused my attention on the
matter at hand. When he saw me, Stono
sat down. His face drained of color, and I worried he would faint. He muttered
a thank-you to the floor, evading my gaze. Oran and Violet continued to
question Chestnut on the necklace snakes. Chestnut stammered and
fidgeted. “I wanted to help.” “You didn’t have our
permission,” Oran said. “And now how many are dead?” “Six,” Chestnut said in
a quiet voice. “Good for you, Chessie,”
Stono said. “I wish you had killed them all. Pulled out their guts and
strangled them with it!” Stono’s eyes lit with murderous intensity. The elders rounded on
Stono. Shock mirrored on their faces. Violet recovered first.
“Stono, you’ve had a difficult time. Why don’t you go and get some rest,” she
ordered. He stood on trembling
legs and shuffled a few steps, but paused next to me. “I’ll kill the snake
that tried to eat you if you want,” he whispered in my ear. “Let me know what I
can kill for you.” I turned to protest, but
he moved away. “What did he say?” Oran asked. What, indeed? An offer
of revenge on a snake or something more disturbing. “He said he would like to
help me.” “Not without our
permission.” Oran puffed up his chest with importance. “You can’t just use our
clan members as your personal army. Taking Chestnut into an unknown, dangerous
situation that could have killed him was wrong.” I had had enough of Oran
Cinchona Zaltana. Stepping close to him, I said, “Could have, but didn’t. If we
had waited for your permission, you would have lost three clan members. And I
wouldn’t debate too long on how you’re going to search for a possible nest of
Vermin living in your jungle. If you wait too long, they’re liable to
multiply.” “What are you talking
about?” Violet asked. It was then that Esau
and Perl joined us. Having heard my warning, Mother touched her throat, and my
father’s grim expression deepened. “Father, could you
inform the elders about the potential threat? I have other business to attend
to,” I said. “Where are you going?”
Perl asked. “To find my friends.” I found Leif in our
parents’ quarters. He was sound asleep on the couch and it occurred to me that
I didn’t know if he had his own rooms within the Zaltana homestead. Esau had
knocked down the wall to Leif’s room to expand his work area. Unwilling to
bother my brother, I tiptoed past him and went up to my room. Soon the sun
would set and I wanted to fly with the bats. Lying down on my narrow
bed, I felt sleep pull at me. I resisted, thinking of Moon Man. He had helped
me and Leif in healing Stono. Perhaps the effort had exhausted him and rendered
him unable to respond to my search. As the light dimmed, I
drew magic from the power source and projected my mind into the jungle. Finding
the collective consciousness of the bats, I joined in their nightly hunt for
food. I floated from one bat
to another, sensing the space below and around. On the lookout for any fires or
signs of people, I coasted through the air, feeling the sun leave the sky. I
wondered how the bats could know the size and shapes of their surroundings
without seeing them. Was it a skill I could learn? My magic let me feel living
beings, but I couldn’t sense anything from the lifeless objects in my path. The bats invaded every
section of the Illiais Jungle. Nestled below the Daviian Plateau, the jungle
wasn’t large. Two days of hard walking would see a person from one end to the
other. The Illiais Market marked the western border of the jungle. A few bats
swooped close to the market campfires, but they avoided the gritty air and
noisy crowds of people. I pulled my awareness
back. Having found no physical signs of Moon Man or the others in the jungle, I
decided Leif and I would travel to the market tomorrow. The market was the
rendezvous location we had set back on the plateau. If Moon Man followed the
Vermin from the jungle, he would eventually look for us there. I hoped. When I awoke the next
morning, a group of people were in my parents’ living area, all engaged in
animated conversation. “It’s your turn. I
delivered a wagonload of pummelo fruit last time,” Nutty said to Chestnut. “See?”
She held up her right hand. “I still have the blisters.” “I’m not stupid. They’re
from staying up all night finishing the clothes you owe Fern,” Chestnut
retorted. “It’s your turn to go to the market.” “You can’t go collecting
every single Curare vine, Esau. It will take you seasons,” Perl said. “And what
about the Vermin? If they caught you again—” Perl’s hand flew to her throat as
if she tried to block the emotion welling from her heart. “I’m not worried about
that,” Esau said. “I’m worried about what they can do with the Curare!” “Curare can be countered
with Theobroma,” Leif said to Esau. “We just need to make sure everyone has
enough with them.” “Is not my turn,” Nutty
said. “Is too,” Chestnut
countered. “Yelena!” Nutty cried,
spotting me. “I’ve made another pair of skirt/pants for you.” She held a light
blue-and-yellow print. “Thanks,” I said. “You
don’t have to go to the market, Nutty. I’ll deliver the clothes for you. And
Leif, Theobroma is good at regaining movement, but it leaves you helpless against
a magical attack. Father, can you find a way to get the Theobroma to work
against Curare without the side effects? That would be more helpful than
tearing down every vine. Besides, I couldn’t find any signs the Vermin are
collecting vines right now, but I think sending out well-armed scouts to search
the jungle from time to time would be a good idea.” “Yelena’s here,” Leif
said. “Problems solved,” he teased. “I’ll have an easier
time with the Theobroma than convincing Oran and Violet to send out reconnaissance
teams,” Esau said. “They want to huddle in our homestead and hide!” “I’ll handle Oran and Violet,” Perl said. Her face had set in a
determined frown, which she then turned on me. “You’re leaving us already?” “We need to rendezvous
with our horses and our other team members,” I said. “Are they at the
market?” Leif asked with a hopeful note in his voice. “Too many people for me
to determine. In any case we need to look for signs of Ferde and Cahil.” They
could be anywhere by now and doing unspeakable things. I shuddered as the image
of Stono’s ruined stomach rose in my mind. “Not without breakfast.”
Perl hurried toward the kitchen. “I’ll go get the
dresses.” Nutty bounded away. “I’d better get my pack
ready.” Leif smiled. “Never a dull day with you, little sister.” “What do you need?” Esau
asked me. “I’m running out of
Theobroma and Curare.” He went into the lift to
ascend to the second floor. Chestnut looked around at the suddenly quiet room.
He fidgeted, avoiding my gaze and I realized he wanted to talk about something
other than whose turn it was to go to the market. “Now’s the time,” I
said. “Once everyone comes back…” “I can’t…” He moved his
hands as if he wanted to pull his thoughts from the air. “I’m having trouble
getting past…” Wrapping his arms around his body, Chestnut rocked with
frustration. “How can you be so calm? Standing there, making plans, barking out
orders. Six people have died. Stono came back from the dead and now he’s
different—” “Different? How?” “It’s probably nothing.
He’s had a shock, but he’s harsher somehow.” Chestnut shook his head. “That’s
not the point. Six people killed by necklace snakes. That’s the point.” I understood his
problem. “You’ve never lost anyone to a snake before?” “No one. I know it’s not
a terrible death. At least they’re dead before they get swallowed. I’ve always
been kind of curious…” He cringed with guilt. “Curious to see a snake
devour its prey and you feel responsible for not stopping the snakes?” “Yes.” The word hissed
out. “Think of what would
have happened if the snakes had released the Vermin.” “You and Stono would
have died.” “I’m not happy about the
death of six people either, but, considering the alternative, I can rationalize
it in my mind.” A shiver raced over my skin. As long as I didn’t think about it
too much. “You asked how I can be so calm. I don’t have time not to be. I would
like to grieve and worry and carry on, but that doesn’t get results.” “And results are
important. Right, Yelena?” Leif asked as he entered the room. “One of the foremost
things the First Magician taught me when I arrived at the Keep was to leave all
sentimentality behind. Roze believes she was given the gift of magic to use for
a purpose and she can’t let guilt and remorse keep her from achieving that
purpose.” Leif rubbed his chin as his face settled into a thoughtful
expression. “You’re a lot like her.” “I am not,” I said. “It was a compliment.
You’re both intelligent. You’re doers. Natural leaders.” I disagreed. I didn’t
conduct myself like Roze. She was a tyrant who thought she knew everything and
didn’t stop to consider other options or other people’s views. I wasn’t like
that. Was I? “Although she has a bad
temper,” Leif said. “She was wrong about Ferde and Cahil’s direction. She’s not
going to be happy about it.” “That I would agree
with,” I said. “Agree with what?” Esau
asked. His arms brimmed with containers. Nutty arrived with her
stack of clothes, then Perl returned with a tray full of fruit and tea. By the
time we ate, the morning hours were gone. “We better go. It’ll be
a hard push to get to the market before dark,” Leif said. “Yelena, you have to
come back and have a proper visit,” my mother instructed. “Perhaps when your
life settles down.” She thought for a moment, and added, “Perhaps you can make
some time to visit. I don’t see things settling down for you for a long while.” “Do you know this from
your magic?” I asked. “No, dear. From your
history.” A smile quirked her lips before Perl’s stern mother expression
returned long enough for her to lecture me on being careful. With our backpacks
loaded, Leif and I climbed down the ladder to the jungle floor. He set a quick
pace and I hurried after him. When we stopped for a short rest, I tossed my
heavy pack down and rubbed my sore back. Now I could sympathize with a pack
horse…. Kiki! “Leif, does this trail
stay wide until the market?” “As long as no trees
have fallen over recently. The Zaltanas keep this pretty clear. Why?” “The horses.” He smacked his forehead
with a hand. I reached out with my
mind and searched for Kiki’s thoughts. She hid with Garnet and
Rusalka in the forest west of the market. Late, she said in my
mind. Dirty. Hungry. Come meet us on the
jungle trail? We’ll get to the market faster. Groomed faster. She agreed. Leif and I
continued to hike for a while in silence. The insects’ droning grew louder as
the sunlight began to wane. “I keep forgetting you
can communicate with horses,” Leif said. “I think you might be the first one in
Sitian history.” “Are you sure?” “All the Keep’s students
had to learn about past magicians and their powers, but Master Bloodgood would
know for sure.” Bain Bloodgood, Second
Magician, was a walking, talking history book. My list of questions grew longer
each day. I had so much to learn about magic and history. The sheer amount
overwhelmed me at times, and reminded me how unprepared I was. And how did I end up
with these Soulfinder powers? Both my parents hadn’t enough power to be invited
to the Keep so I hadn’t inherited them. Sheer dumb luck? Leif interrupted my
thoughts. “Do you know anyone else who can talk to horses?” “The Stable Master has
said he knows the horses’ moods and intentions, but he doesn’t hear their words
in his mind per se.” And he had looked at me as if I had grown wings when I
mentioned it to him. “How about in Ixia?” I considered. When the
Commander had taken control of Ixia over sixteen years ago, he had ordered
Valek, his chief of security, to assassinate all the magicians. Then, whenever
an Ixian developed the ability to use magic—usually after puberty—Valek would
assassinate the person if they hadn’t already escaped to Sitia. No magicians in
Ixia, but my thoughts did linger on Porter, the Commander’s kennel master. He
had an uncanny knack with the dogs, and he hadn’t needed leashes or a whistle to
get them to obey him. “Perhaps one other,” I
said. “Though he would never admit to it—that would be a death sentence.” “Maybe we could help
smuggle him to Sitia.” “I don’t think he would
want to come.” “Why not?” The idea
shocked Leif. “I’ll explain later.” I
didn’t have the energy to educate Leif about the Commander’s politics. Raised
in Sitia, Leif believed Ixia equaled a horrible place to live. That with Ixia’s
strict Code of Behavior, uniform requirement and having to obtain permits to
marry or move to another house, the citizens had to be extremely unhappy. Ixia
wasn’t perfect, but there were benefits to living there. For me, Valek was one. I missed seeing him
every day, missed discussing poisons and fighting tactics and missed having a
soul mate who knew what I needed before I did. I sighed. Better to have an
immunity to magic like Valek than to be this feared Soulfinder. A Soulfinder,
and completely useless against a Fire Warper. The Commander’s views on
magic didn’t seem so extreme now. Magic was messy. And what the Vermin had done
to increase their powers remained more horrible than anything I had witnessed
in Ixia. “Leif, what about that
Fire Warper?” I asked. Since the incident in the jungle, I hadn’t had time to
discuss it with him. “Have you seen a magician step from a fire before?” “No. Roze Featherstone
can make huge fires that’ll consume whole buildings, but she’ll burn if she
gets too close to one. Since you’ve come home, I’ve been seeing all types of
strange magic. You bring out the best and the worst in people,” Leif tried to
joke. I failed to be amused.
“The Vermin are using old magical rituals. Do you know anything about them?” “The Sandseed Story
Weavers’ powers are legendary. They used to be called Efe Warriors. I had
thought the stories of these Warriors were exaggerated.” Leif paused for a
moment. “Until now. Two thousand years ago, well before the Sitian clans
united, the Efe Tribe dominated the others. Using blood magic, the Efes had no
rivals. The other clans would give them whatever they wanted. Food, gold or
sacrifices, hoping to placate them. A disagreement erupted between the Efe
rulers and a civil war started. The ensuing battle flattened the Daviian Mountains.” “Mountains?” “Now a plateau.” “Oh my.” “Right. After that a new
leader named Guyan took control of the tribe’s survivors. He declared he would
plant the seeds for a new tribe in the sands that fell when the mountains were
destroyed. That’s how they got the name Sandseed and their magicians were then
called Story Weavers.” The rumble of hooves
interrupted Leif’s tale. Kiki’s face was a welcome sight, although her blue
eyes looked tired and mud covered her copper-colored coat. Garnet and Rusalka
hadn’t fared any better. Leif and I fed and
watered the horses. I wanted to groom them and let them rest, but Leif insisted
we get to the market first. “Too many predators at
night,” Leif said. “The horses will attract every tree leopard in the jungle.” Market not far, Kiki
said. Jungle smells…odd. We mounted and galloped
toward the market. Being with us, the horses didn’t have to hide and we groomed
them near the Zaltana campfire behind the market buildings as the sun began to
set. Many clans had built permanent sites for their members to stay while
trading or purchasing goods. The Illiais Market did
not close until late into the evening hours. An array of torches was lit to
allow business to continue, although the commotion of customers bidding,
arguing and shopping quieted in the evenings. After the horses were
settled, I strolled quickly through the collection of bamboo buildings topped
with thatched roofs. Most of the owners had the bamboo shade walls down to
block the cold night breeze. When I had been here before, it had been the
beginning of the hot season, and the shades had been rolled up to help cool the
workers. Scanning the people at
the market, I searched for Moon Man. I stopped a few customers and asked if
anyone had seen my friends. One stand owner recalled spotting some men running
through the market a few days ago, but he couldn’t describe them. My imagination kicked in
and visions of Moon Man, Tauno and Marrok staked to the ground for the Kirakawa
ritual filled my mind. Hidden behind a null shield, I wouldn’t be able to find
them, and every minute we delayed was another minute for Cahil and Ferde. Focusing on the task at
hand, I breathed in the market’s smells to ease the tightness in my chest. The
exotic spices offered by the Greenblade Clan mixed with the smell of roasting
meat. My stomach growled with hunger. Before I could stop to eat, I delivered
the package of clothes to Fern. The small woman huffed with relief. “I thought Nutty
wouldn’t have them done in time,” she exclaimed from behind a table piled with
bolts of cloth. “I thought you sold
fabric,” I said. “I’m expanding my
business. Nutty’s getting quite the reputation.” “Is that good or bad?” I
asked. “Both. A few of the
Greenblade women have gotten tired of their plain green tunics and leggings and
wanted a more colorful wardrobe. They’ve been buying every single one of
Nutty’s shirts, dresses and skirt/pants. I supply the cloth and we split the
profits. However, the clan elders are not too happy about the break with
tradition.” As a forest-dwelling
clan, the Greenblades usually wore the colors of the forest. I glanced around
and, sure enough, spotted a few women wearing Nutty’s bright cotton creations.
I had assumed they were Zaltanas, but upon closer examination, I could see the
lighter maple coloring of the Greenblade’s skin. In Ixia, I knew which
Military District someone lived in by the color of their uniform. Here, it was
all a matter of knowing how each clan preferred to dress. Interesting. “Yelena, do you need
some new material?” Fern asked. She pulled out a bolt of fabric from under her
table. “I just finished this beautiful green pattern. See?” She held it up to
the torchlight. “Just a hint of gold woven through the fabric. Matches your
eyes perfectly.” I laughed. “You’re quite
the saleswoman. But Nutty just made me another outfit.” Undaunted, Fern found
another bolt. The rich gold color caught my attention as soon as she spread it
out. “This would be for the shirt.” She watched me for a moment. “Should I send
this to Nutty for you?” “You’re evil,” I said. She grinned. “I’m only
thinking about what’s best for my customers.” “And your cash box.” A predatory smile
flashed on her face. I paid her for the material and left before she could
convince me I needed another set. I bought some Avibian honey for the Stable
Master before buying some grilled beef to eat as I searched through the other
market stands. Items displayed for sale or trade included handcrafts, clothing,
fruit and baked goods. I stopped for a minute
to examine an intricate silver ring that held a black moonstone. Putting it
down, I dismissed the thought of purchasing the ring. Only a few coins remained
of the money I had earned as a Magician’s Aide. Besides, I already wore
a butterfly pendant and snake bracelet. Both had been carved and gifted to me
by Valek. I fingered the pendant on my chest, wondering about Valek. Was he in his carving
room, creating another animal statue? Perhaps he was discussing military
tactics with Ari and Janco or dueling with Maren. She had taught me how to
fight with a bow, and Maren’s own skills had improved. Perhaps she was with
Valek right now, working on some complicated project that required them to be
together every day. Maybe Valek would forget about me. Be content to have Maren
by his side. No. I forced myself to
ignore those thoughts. I had plenty to worry about without creating phantom
worries. Determined, I headed back to our campsite. Perhaps another magical
sweep of the area would reveal Moon Man and the others to me. Leif and I waited
another day for some sign of Moon Man. I prowled around the market, cursing under
my breath. Each minute we delayed reduced the possibility of recapturing Cahil
and Ferde. I scanned the forest with my magic, connecting with the woodland
creatures. The area remained serene. Undisturbed. That night we discussed
our next move. Sitting by the fire, I stared at the flames. My bow was within
reach, but I didn’t believe the weapon would do much damage against the Fire
Warper. “We should go back to
the Citadel,” Leif said. “That makes the most sense.” “What about the
Sandseeds? They left their clan unprotected in the plains. They might need
help, and we should tell them about Moon Man and Tauno.” “Tell them what? That we
lost them? I’d rather tell them Tauno is afraid of heights and Moon Man is
claustrophobic.” And I would rather have
them with us. Delaying the decision, I said, “Our direction of travel is the
same for either the Citadel or the plains. Tomorrow we’ll go north.” Leif agreed. He spread
his bedroll by the fire and lay down. Using Kiki’s saddle as a pillow, I put my
cloak on and tried to get comfortable on the cold ground next to Leif. “You should move closer
to the fire. You’ll freeze,” Leif said. “I’m fine.” He was quiet for a
while. “Perhaps Moon Man and the others are lost.” “Doubtful. If they were
lost in the jungle, I would have found them.” “Marrok’s afraid of
getting lost,” Leif said in a soft voice. “And you’re afraid of—” “Leif, go to sleep. We
have a long day tomorrow.” I rolled over, turning my back to him. I didn’t want
him to put a name to my fear. Naming it made it true. Cold and uncomfortable,
I tossed and turned, trying to sleep. Disturbing dreams of fire and death
invaded my mind. Flames would spark in a benevolent dream, here and there until
they multiplied and consumed the picturesque scene, burning the images into a
storm of black ash. I woke coughing on imaginary smoke, my body coated with
sweat. To avoid the nightmares,
I watched the moon rise above the forest’s trees. When Ferde had been on his
soul-stealing rampage, the Master Magicians and I theorized the timing of his
ritual murders were linked to the phases of the moon. We were wrong. He just
needed enough time to torture his victims into submitting their wills to him so
he could steal their souls when they died. The old Efe symbols and ritual he
used to collect their souls would have made him the most powerful magician in
Sitia if he been able to gather all twelve of them. Valek and I had stopped
him from absorbing Gelsi’s soul and completing the ritual, but now he was free
to try again. And Cahil helped him. How could he? I couldn’t really believe
Cahil would get involved after witnessing what Ferde did to those girls. But he
had assisted with Ferde’s escape from the Keep’s protective cells, and now
traveled with him. Was he that greedy for power? He could no longer claim the
Ixian throne. Did he want to rule Sitia instead? I studied the moon.
Waxing toward full, the bright disk lit the landscape. I wondered about the
moon’s power and why certain things like the Kirakawa ritual needed the moon’s
presence to work. I could feel the invisible layer of power blanketing the sky,
but I felt nothing from the moon. In a subtle flicker of
the light, Moon Man coalesced out of a blue shaft of moonlight as if he had
been summoned by my thoughts. He stood next to our fire without clothes or his
weapon. Are you a dream? I asked
him. Deep lines of exhaustion
etched his face, but he managed a weary smile and said, Perhaps I have always
been a dream. What do you think? I think I’m too tired to
discuss Story Weaver philosophy with you right now. And if you’re not real,
then, at least, make yourself useful and tell me where you really are! I am here. Moon Man
slumped to his knees. 12I JUMPED TO MY FEET and
ran to Moon Man’s prone form by the campfire. Wrapping my cloak around Moon
Man’s muscular shoulders, I shared energy with him. “Are you all right? What
happened? Where are the others?” I asked. “Everyone is fine. I
will explain later.” He pulled the edge of my cloak closer to his face. “Will you? Or will you
just spout some vague details in typical Story Weaver style?” He answered with a soft
snore. I suppressed the desire
to share more power with him and wake him. Sleep was the best way for Moon Man
to recover his strength after using magic. Unfortunately, I couldn’t sleep. I
grabbed an extra blanket from Leif’s saddlebags and spread it over Moon Man. My cloak didn’t seem adequate protection for him against the chilly night air.
Despite my reluctance, I added some logs and coaxed the fire into a warm blaze. As I stared at the dancing
flames, I wondered what other surprises waited for me. The answers would be
revealed in time, but my ability to deal with them remained uncertain. Even with the loud calls
of shoppers and stand owners from the bustling market, Moon Man didn’t wake
until the sun reached its apex. By the time the Story Weaver finished eating
the meal Leif had thoughtfully prepared for him, my impatience had built up
enough energy that I could probably scale a smooth tree without the aid of a
rope. “Tell us everything,” I
demanded before he could swallow his final bite. He smiled at my
agitation. Weariness still pulled at his features, but his eyes sparked with an
amused glint. “And don’t try any of
that cryptic Story Weaver mumbo jumbo or I’ll…” “What?” Moon Man asked. “I’ll hurt you. Bad. So
talk.” Moon Man glanced at
Leif. My brother shrugged.
“I’ve seen her swinging that stick around. Now, if you had your scimitar…” “Too risky,” Moon Man
said. He saw the rising fury in my eyes and wisely began telling us what had happened. “After you and Leif
distracted the Fire Warper, we chased the Vermin through the jungle. And would
have caught them if you had not needed my help.” Moon Man aimed a pointed stare
at me. “How is the scout?” “Alive and well,” I
said. “Back to his old self?” I hesitated, but I
wouldn’t let Moon Man change the subject. “He’s fine. Continue your story.” “Helping you drained all
my energy and I needed to rest for a while,” Moon Man said. “Marrok tracked the
Vermin to the Illiais Market and then north to the city of Booruby. It is a
thriving place and we lost the Vermin’s trail. Too many people.” He shuddered. The motion
reminded me of Leif’s claim that Moon Man was claustrophobic. The city was the
complete opposite of the wide open space of his home in the Avibian Plains.
Located at the northern tip of the Cowan Clan’s lands, Booruby’s eastern side
bordered the plains, and was too far for my magic to reach. “Where are the others?”
Leif asked. “We rented a room at one
of the inns. I left Tauno and Marrok there to hunt down any information about
the Daviians while I rejoined you.” Leif looked around the
campsite. “How, exactly, did you get here?” Moon Man grinned. “A
secret Story Weaver power.” “You used the
moonlight,” I said. He beamed his approval.
“I came through the shadow world. Moonlight reveals the world of shadows,
allowing access.” “Is that where you
showed me the story of my life?” I asked, remembering the dark plain that had
transformed into visions of my childhood. “Yes. It is a place
where I unravel story threads to help others learn from their past as they
weave their future.” “Is it a physical
place?” I had been there twice. The second time Moon Man had brought Leif and
me to untangle our knots of hostility and anger toward each other. Each time,
though, I had felt intangible, as if my body had turned into smoke. “It exists in the
shadows of our world.” “Can anyone with magical
powers get into the shadow world?” “So far, only Story
Weavers have the ability. But I am waiting to see if there is another who is
brave enough to claim that gift.” His eyes met mine, and I caught a glimpse of
shadows. I looked away. Breaking the silence,
Leif said, “However you arrived, you still need to work on your transportation
skills. Maybe next time you can bring some clothes along with you.” Leif and I bought Moon
Man a tan-colored tunic and pants, and we purchased supplies for the trip.
Packing the saddlebags, I readied the horses. Moon Man would ride Garnet until
we reached Booruby. We went north, taking a
well-used path through the forest. I scanned our surroundings with my magic,
but thought the odds of being ambushed remained low because of all the other
caravans and travelers crowding the trail. Leif also used his magic to smell
the intentions of the Vermin, but he couldn’t discern anything. Once we reached Booruby,
we would find the others and decide our next move. I brooded over the fact we
had lost the Vermin and worried about which direction Cahil and Ferde had gone.
Back to the plains or plateau? Or engaging in another scheme to gain power? Ferde had kidnapped Tula from her home in Booruby. His only victim found alive, Tula had been sent to the
Magician’s Keep. I healed her body and found her soul only to lose both to
Ferde. Guilt welled in my throat. His freedom ate at my heart. I tightened my grip on
the reins, causing Kiki to snort in agitation. Sorry. I relaxed. I was
thinking about Ferde and Cahil. Peppermint Man like
apple, Kiki said, referring to Cahil. Why do you say that? I
knew Kiki loved apples. He black apple. No one
wants. I saw an image of
rotting apples on the ground. Bad. But good come. Kiki showed how the
seeds inside grew roots and became a tree after the apple decayed. Are you
saying a good thing might come from Peppermint Man? Or if he dies, it would be
beneficial? Yes. Cryptic horse advice?
Well now I could die happy—I’d heard it all. Two days later, we
reached Booruby. Clusters of wooden and stone houses marked the outskirts of
the city. The forest thinned. And the clear air fogged to a haze of smoke, coal
dust and sawdust that hovered over the main street’s buildings. The thick air
assaulted us with the smells of garbage mixed with human waste. People bustled
along the walkways and wagons full of goods choked the roads. Stores and stands
had been wedged between factories and business offices. Moon Man’s alarmed face
showed his discomfort as we maneuvered our horses through the crowded streets.
He led us to the Three Ghosts Inn. The stone-faced building leaned its narrow
four-story height against its neighbor. Through a tight alley, we led the
horses to an empty stable just big enough to hold six horses. The stalls were clean
and had fresh straw and water. A stable boy soon joined us as we took off the
horses’ saddles. The quiet boy helped us groom and feed them. He shot me a shy
smile when I tipped him. We had passed a number
of inns on our way into the city. “Why this inn?” I asked Moon Man as we
carried our bags through the alley. “I liked the name.
Although…” He paused as if deep in thought. “Although?” I prompted. “I have not encountered
the three ghosts. Perhaps you will have better luck.” I laughed. “You don’t
really believe in ghosts?” Moon Man stopped and I
bumped into him. He turned around, revealing his shocked expression. “How can
you not? They are lost souls. You can help them find their way. Like you did
for Reyad.” I put a hand out to
steady myself. “Reyad was…” The man I had killed in Ixia. The reason I had been
awaiting execution before Valek offered me the food taster’s job. “How did
you—” “Story Weaver, remember?
I know all the threads that are woven into your life.” “But I thought his ghost
had been my imagination. A manifestation of my fears. Why haven’t I seen any
others? If I can help them, why aren’t they all around me?” “Perhaps they are and
you do not wish to see them.” “This is weird,” Leif
said. I agreed with him. My
skin crawled with goose bumps, imagining being surrounded by invisible ghosts. “I could teach—” “Let’s get inside.” I
cut off Moon Man’s offer. Of all the things I wished he would teach me, seeing
ghosts wasn’t high on my list. “Yes, let’s. I’m
hungry.” Leif patted his stomach. We entered into a common
area. Wooden tables and long benches scarred with hard use lined the slender
room. A fire crackled in the stone hearth, but the area was empty. “Dinner’s a few hours
off,” a woman said. She leaned from a doorway near the back wall. Spotting Moon
Man, she smiled and walked toward us. “Mr. Moon! I’m so glad you’re back. Your
friends left this morning, but I suspect they’ll be coming back for dinner. Mr.
Tauno loves my vegetable stew.” The woman’s steel-gray
hair was pulled back into a bun. Small wisps of hair framed her oval face. Her
fair skin caused me to wonder if she was a refugee from Ixia. When the Commander
had launched his campaign to take over Ixia, many Ixians fled to Sitia before
the Commander closed the border. The innkeeper scanned
Leif and me with bright intelligence in her sky-blue eyes. Her gaze lingered on
my hands before returning to Moon Man. “Will you be needing
another room?” she asked. “Yes. Mrs. Floranne,
this is Yelena and Leif.” She wiped her hands on
her apron before shaking our hands. “I’ll be showing you to your rooms, then.” We followed her up the
stairs. Stopping on the third floor, she led us down the slim hallway. She
opened the second door on the left. “This’ll be Miss
Yelena’s room. Will Mr. Leif be staying with you, Mr. Moon, or do you need
another room?” Sweat beaded Moon Man’s
face and he glanced around the tight hallway as if seeking a way out. “Leif can stay with me,”
I said, spotting two beds inside the tiny room. Disapproval radiated
from Mrs. Floranne’s stiff demeanor, but before she could comment I added,
“He’s my brother.” Her face softened and
she relaxed. “I’ll be ringing the bell when dinner’s ready. Don’t be late.” She
left us alone. Leif stifled a giggle.
“Interesting place you found here, Mr. Moon.” “If Leif had been my
lover instead of my brother, would she have let us stay together?” “I do not know,” Moon
Man said. “Perhaps the ghosts
dislike improper behavior,” Leif said, laughing. Moon Man went to his
room down the hall to check if Tauno or Marrok had left us a message. I mulled
over Leif’s comment as we put our few belongings on the beds. “Is it considered improper
if Valek and I…? You know.” “Yelena,” Leif said with
mock indignation. “Don’t tell me you and Valek—” “Just answer the
question.” “Some clans like the
Bloodgood Clan are very strict and require a couple to be married before living
together. Others, like the Zaltanas, prefer a couple to marry, but don’t get
upset if they’re not. Then there are the Sandseeds who don’t even believe in
marriage. They just do what they want.” He spread his arms wide. “With their
aversion to wearing clothes, I don’t understand why the Sandseed Clan isn’t
overrun with children.” “We are careful with our
seeds of life,” Moon Man said from the doorway. “I did not find a note. Do you
want to take a walk through the city? I need…” His gaze traveled around the
room. “It is better for me outside.” Leif licked his lips. “I
don’t know. I don’t want to miss dinner. That vegetable stew’ll be smelling
good.” “Do not worry. We will
hear the bell. The entire city knows when the Three Ghosts Inn is having
dinner.” We left the inn and
wandered through the streets. I used my magic at different locations to find a
sign of the Vermin, but there were just too many people around. Their thoughts
and emotions crashed against me, and I blocked them out to avoid being
overwhelmed. Leif, too, was inundated with smells. We searched the city and
listened for any snippets of information. A sparkle drew my gaze.
Rows and rows of glass animals were displayed inside a store window. The
beautiful jewel colors of the statues radiated as if a fire had been captured
within their cores. They reminded me of Tula. She had sculpted animals with
glass from her family’s factory. Had she created these animals? Was this her
family’s store? I peered through the
window but couldn’t see past the display. Should I go in and ask? Perhaps her
family wouldn’t want to see me again. Considering what had happened to Tula and her sister, Opal, I wouldn’t blame them for hating me. After all, the only reason
Opal had been kidnapped after Tula had died had been to exchange her life for mine.
At the time, I had thought Ferde held Opal, but it had been Alea Daviian,
seeking revenge for the death of her brother, Mogkan. Another man whose death I
had been part of. In Ixia, Mogkan had been
power-hungry. He had taken control of not only Commander Ambrose’s mind, but
the minds of thirty innocent people. He deserved to die, but Alea had failed to
see it my way, and now she was also dead. I sighed. I should stay far away from
Opal and her family. Death followed me. And
perhaps ghosts as well? Was Alea or Mogkan’s ghost haunting me? I held my hands
out and turned in a circle, spinning my arms. Nothing. Leif and Moon Man were
engaged in a debate half a block away. I stepped toward them. “Yelena!” a voice called
from behind. A woman carrying a small
crate hustled along the sidewalk. A white kerchief covered her hair, and, even
though soot smudged her face and hands, I recognized Opal’s bright smile and I
couldn’t resist giving her a quick hug. “What are you doing
here?” she asked. “I have some business.”
Before she could ask what kind, I hurried on. “Is this your family’s store?” I
pointed to the glass shop. “Oh no. Our factory is
on the east side of town, practically in the plains. We sell our glassware
through a bunch of stores in Booruby. You have to come visit us!” She twisted
her hands together. “That is, if you want to.” She averted her face. “I mean
after what I did…” Opal yanked her focus
from the ground and met mine with a sudden intensity. The shy, uncertain girl
who had come to the Keep transformed in front of my eyes. “Let me make it up to
you. You will come visit.” “You did nothing wrong,”
I said with conviction. “You have nothing to make up for.” “But I pricked you with
Curare!” “Alea forced you. And I
must admit, that was a pretty good trick.” I had thought once Opal was freed,
the danger was gone. A near fatal mistake. “But—” “You can’t let the past
ruin your future. Let’s call it even and start anew.” “Agreed. Can you come to
dinner this evening?” she asked. Then her mouth dropped in shock and she
stepped back. Moon Man loomed behind
me, blocking the sunlight. “You’ll not be missing
dinner,” Leif said, copying Mrs. Floranne’s lilt. Opal relaxed a bit when
she saw Leif. “You can come too. And…your friend?” I understood Opal’s
fear. At first glance, Moon Man resembled Ferde. But Opal had only gotten a
brief glimpse of Ferde through her sister’s memories so she could not really
compare the two. I introduced her to the Story Weaver. “I think I should wait
for Tauno and Marrok to return,” Moon Man said. “You and Leif go. I will see
you later tonight.” Moon Man raised his
eyebrows, giving me a signal. I opened my mind to him. Perhaps her family will
have some information about the Vermin. Ask them. Yes, sir, I replied. He flashed me a smile
before he left. Opal hurried into the store to finish her deliveries. While
Leif and I waited for her, I returned to examining the glass animal statues in
the window. Leif joined me. “Look at how they glow!”
he said. “Which one would you pick? The snake?” “No. I’ve had my fill of
snakes. I like the horse, but the eyes are the wrong color. They should be
blue.” Leif laughed. “You’re
biased. I’d buy the tree leopard. The detail is amazing. I wonder how the
artist is able to get the leopard’s green and yellow pattern just right.” “The pattern is inside.”
Opal exited the store. “There’s a thin layer of clear glass on the outside.” “Did Tula make these?” I
asked. Sadness welled in her
eyes. She blinked back tears. “No. Tula’s are too precious to sell.” “Opal, I’m—” “Don’t say it,” she
said. “Starting anew, remember?” “Yes.” “Good. Let’s go.” Opal
led the way. I worried the girl’s
parents wouldn’t be so forgiving, but they greeted us warmly. Their house and
glass factory had been built on the edge of the city, surrounded on three sides
by the Avibian Plains. The location explained why Ferde had chosen Tula. Keeping the kilns hot, Tula had been in the factory all night alone where no one
could witness her abduction. Opal guided us on a tour
of her family’s business and we met her remaining sister, Mara, and her younger
brother, Ahir. The promised meal consisted of beef stew served in a bowl made
of bread. “Less to wash,” Opal’s
mother, Vyncenza, said with a grin. Leif sat next to Mara
and flirted with her. He even joined her in the kitchen to help clean up. I
couldn’t blame him, the beautiful loose curls of her golden-brown hair hung
past her shoulders. Kindness radiated from big tawny eyes, and she listened to
Leif’s tales with rapt attention. While the others cleared
the table, Opal’s father, Jaymes, regaled me with stories about his business
and his family. “…she wasn’t paying
attention and set fire to her mother’s apron! It was another four seasons
before we would let Tula handle a punty iron again.” He laughed and launched
into another one. When he had run out of
anecdotes, I asked him about news from Booruby. “The Cowan elders are
always arguing about how many trees to cut down, and now they want to start
taxing the sand I import for my glassware.” He tsked over the prospect. “Rumors
about the other clans have always been good fodder for the gossips. This year’s
is about those Daviians. Everyone’s worried about them, but the magicians have Tula’s killer in jail and I’m sure the Sandseeds will take care of the rest. They always
do.” I agreed, but my mind
snagged on the fact that he still believed that Ferde was locked away. Not
good. Why hadn’t the Council informed the populace? Probably to avoid
frightening them. Ferde was still weak, and they had hoped to recapture him by
now. Should I tell Jaymes? He had two other daughters. The people should also
be told about the Vermin’s Kirakawa ritual. They could help find the Vermin and
keep their families protected. But would they panic and hinder our efforts
instead? It was a difficult
choice to make on my own and the benefits of having a Council to vote on
important issues became clearer to me. No one member could be held responsible
for a bad judgment. Delaying a decision, I
asked him if his children still worked alone at night. “No. No. I work the
entire night shift. We’ve learned our lesson and won’t be caught unaware
again.” “Good. Keep vigilant.
The Cowan Clan leaders are right to be worried about the Daviians.” Opal returned, giggling.
Water splotched her long skirt and she tucked a few stray strands of damp hair
back under her kerchief. “Water fight,” she said.
And before her father could scold, she added, “Mama started it!” He sighed but didn’t
appear to be too upset. Opal grabbed my hand, wanting to give me a tour of the
house. The room she shared with her sister resided on the second floor of the
stone house. The air smelled of honeysuckles. Hanging over the one empty bed
was Tula’s grief flag. The white silk banner had been part of her funeral
ceremony. The Sitians believed that once raised, the flag released Tula’s soul into the sky. Having freed Tula’s soul from Ferde, I knew the Sitian custom
just helped comfort the families. “Why is the flag hung
over her bed?” I asked. “It’s to keep her spirit
from returning to earth,” Opal answered. “All the things that she might want to
come back for are under the flag. She can’t see them there.” I looked under the
banner and spotted a small shelf filled with glass animals. The figurines were
lifelike and well-made but had not captured the inner fire like the ones I had
seen earlier. “Tula gifted a couple
statues and sold many others, but those she kept for herself. I tried to copy
her, but mine come out differently. I have only sold a few.” She shrugged. “You made the ones in
the store window. Didn’t you?” “Yes.” Again she made a
dismissive shrug. “The store owner is a kind woman. She knew I was coming today
and put them in the window. My animals are dull in comparison to Tula’s.” “Opal, they’re stunning.
How did you get them to glow?” She pressed her hands
over her heart as if she couldn’t believe what she heard. “You see the light?” “Of course. Doesn’t
everyone?” “No!” she cried. “Only I
see it—and now you!” She twirled with delight. “And Leif. He saw it
also.” “Really? How odd. No one
else in my family or my friends can see the inner light. They all think I’m
daft, but they humor me anyway.” “How do you make them?” She explained the
process of glassblowing to me. More detail than I needed, but I understood the
basics. “Usually you shape
animals from solid glass, but, when I try it, the animals resemble blobs. To
make a tumbler or vase, you have to blow an air bubble into the glass. I can’t
do that either. I turn purple trying to get a starter bubble but have never
accomplished it. However once I fail to make the bubble, I shape the piece so I
don’t waste the glass. That’s when I get results. Not only does my animal look
real, but a spark remains inside even when the piece has cooled.” I thought for a moment.
“But eventually the middle would cool. What keeps it glowing?” She threw her arms out
in a frustrated gesture. “I don’t know. I put my heart into these.” The answer popped into
my mind. “Magic.” “No. Master Jewelrose
has tested me. I didn’t have enough power to stay at the Keep.” I smiled. “She should
test you again.” Dax’s taunt about weird powers replayed in my mind. If Opal
had been born a Zaltana, the test would have been different. “You have enough
power to capture fire inside your statues.” “Why can’t anyone else
see it?” “Perhaps a person has to
have some magical ability to see the fire,” I theorized. “If that’s the case,
you need to sell these at the Citadel’s market where there are many magicians.” She pursed her lips in
thought. “I obviously don’t meet a lot of magicians. Can you take one of my
statues along and test your theory?” “On one condition.” “Anything!” “That you let me pay for
it so I can keep it.” “You don’t have—” I put my hand up,
stopping her. “You said anything.” She laughed. “Okay, but
I’ll charge you the wholesale price. I know just the piece to give you, too.
It’s in the factory.” Opal dashed down the
steps and flew out the door. The cold rush of night air reminded me that we
needed to get back to the inn. I thanked Opal’s parents for the meal. They told
me Leif had gone with Mara to the factory. I found Opal there. She
handed me a package. Wrapped with layers of cloth to protect the glass, the
fist-size parcel fit neatly in my hand. “Open it later,” she
said. “I had another one in mind for you, but this one…called. Crazy. I know.” “I’ve heard stranger
things. I’ll write you a letter when I get back to the Keep and let you know
how the experiment went.” I gently placed Opal’s package in my backpack, slung
the straps back over my shoulders then paid her for the statue. “Do you know
where Leif is?” I asked. She blushed. “I think
he’s sweet on Mara. They’re in the back in the mixing room. She’s supposed to
be measuring sand.” I wove my way through
the kilns, workbenches and barrels of supplies. The hot air baked into my skin.
Light gray smoke rose from the burning coals and flowed through the chimneys to
vent outside. Opal’s family used a special white coal mined from the Emerald Mountains to heat their kilns. Cleaner than the black variety, the white coals
burned hot enough to reach the two thousand degrees needed to melt the sand
ingredients. In the back room, a
table filled with mixing bowls lined the far wall. Leif and Mara leaned over a
deep bowl, but they were looking at each other instead of the concoction. The
cloth masks used to prevent them from breathing in the fine particles hung
around their necks. I paused before
interrupting them. Mara’s hands were coated with sand, and granules peppered
Leif’s hair. He looked younger and his face shone with delight. It was a side
of Leif I hadn’t seen before, and I wondered if he had someone he cared about
back at the Keep. I realized I knew nothing about certain parts of Leif’s life. Taking a few steps
backward, I moved from their sight. I called Leif’s name loud enough for them
to hear me over the noise of the kilns. He now stood away from Mara when I came
into view, the sand gone from his hair. “It’s getting late. We
need to get back.” Leif nodded but didn’t
move. I understood the hint and left. Outside the factory, a strong
breeze hustled the clouds overhead. Shafts of moonlight poured from the sky
between the breaks. When Leif joined me, we headed back to the inn. He was
quiet. “Do you want to talk
about it?” I asked. “No.” After several steps, he
asked, “Did you learn anything about the Vermin from Jaymes?” “The city is worried
about them, but there is no information on where they might be if they’re even
here at all.” I told him about Opal’s glass animals, and he seemed intrigued by
the magical element. “Did you tell Mara about
Ferde’s escape?” I asked. “No. I just told her to
be extremely careful.” We walked for a while in
silence. The air bit through my shirt and I wished I had my cloak. Booruby
resided on the edge of the temperate zone with warm afternoons followed by cold
nights. “I like her,” Leif said,
breaking the quiet. “I haven’t liked anyone before. Too busy and too worried
about you to care for another. I couldn’t keep you safe. I didn’t lift a finger
to help you. Finding you became more important than living my own life.” “Leif, you were eight
years old and would have been killed if you had tried to stop Mogkan from
kidnapping me. You did the right thing.” “Getting killed would
have been easier. No guilt. No worries. No fear. Caring for someone is terrible
and wonderful. I don’t know if I have the strength to do it for another. How do
you deal with it?” “I focus on the
wonderful parts and suffer through the terrible parts, knowing it will end
eventually.” “Did you like Valek as
soon as you saw him?” “No. In the beginning
our relationship was purely business.” The first time I had met Valek he had
offered me the choice of going to the noose or becoming the next food taster.
My family knew I had been the Commander’s food taster, but not why. Someday I
would tell them about Reyad’s torture. “When did your feelings
change?” That was a harder
question. “I guess the first time he saved my life.” I told Leif about the
Ixian fire festival and how Irys had hired four goons to kill me because my
uncontrolled magic could flame out and ruin the power source. “So the first time you
met Master Jewelrose, she tried to kill you? And you told me before Valek had
wanted to kill you twice. Gee, Yelena, you’re not a people person, are you?” “There were other
circumstances,” I said in my defense. “It all sounds too
complicated. I shouldn’t get involved with Mara.” “That would be taking
the easy road. Safe yet dull. Why do you like her?” “She smells like the
jungle on a perfect day. It’s a light whiff of the Ylang-Ylang flower combined
with the sweet aroma of living green and a touch of the nutty earthy essence.
It’s a scent you can wrap around yourself and feel at peace. Only those dry and
sunny days will produce that smell, and they are as rare as a solid-white
valmur.” Leif took a deep breath. “She has a soothing, contented soul.” “Sounds like she might
be worth the effort. There might be plenty of rainy days, but those perfect
ones will make all the memories of rain disappear.” “Is this from
experience?” “Yes.” We reached the Three Ghosts
Inn and entered the building. Moon Man and Tauno sat at one of the tables in
the common area. Customers filled the room. Tauno held a bloody
cloth to his temple and his split lower lip bled. “What happened?” I asked
when we joined our friends. “Where’s Marrok?” Tauno’s face was glum.
He glanced at Moon Man as if seeking the Story Weaver’s permission. “We found the Vermin,”
Tauno said. He winced. “Or I should say they found us. A group of five soldiers
with the Soulstealer and Cahil. They surrounded us, dragged us into a building
and threatened to kill us. Cahil drew Marrok away and they had a private
discussion. They laughed and left together, seeming the best of friends.” Tauno
put a hand to his ribs and cringed with pain. “The others descended on me and I
have no memory except waking in the empty building.” “When did this happen?”
I asked. “This morning.” “I am glad he is alive,
but I wonder why they did not kill him,” Moon Man said. Contemplating the
situation, I said, “Taking a captive through crowded streets would be
difficult. If they wait until nightfall to perform Kirakawa on him they risk
being discovered.” “So why not just kill
him?” Moon Man asked. “Because they want us to
know they have Marrok,” Leif said. “As a hostage?” Moon Man
asked. “No. Marrok left with
Cahil. They’re flaunting the fact that Marrok is now with them,” I said. “And
they know everything he knows. Including our present location.” 13“DO YOU THINK THEY WILL
attack us here?” Leif asked. I glanced at the fire
warming the inn’s common room. Would the Fire Warper risk being seen by the
other guests? “They could watch the
building and follow us, waiting until we get to a secluded spot to attack,”
Moon Man said. “That’s a happy
thought,” Leif muttered. I reached out to Kiki.
She dozed in the stable but roused at my light mental contact. If Vermin
skulked around the inn, she and the other horses would be upset. Smell? I asked. Night. Straw. Sweet hay,
she said. All good for now. Kiki help? Watch.
Listen. Smell for you. What if you get tired? Rusalka. Garnet. Take
turns. Good idea. I’ll come and
open the doors. Lavender Lady stay. Kiki
do. I smiled, remembering
how she had unlatched her stall door in the Keep’s stable when Goel had
attacked me. One of Cahil’s men who held a grudge, Goel hadn’t seen her.
Probably hadn’t known what hit him until he regained consciousness among the
broken boards of the pasture’s fence. “…Yelena? Hello?” Leif
poked my arm. “I’m here.” “What are we going to
do?” Leif asked me. “It’s too late to go anywhere
else. Kiki and the horses will watch the outside of the building and alert me
if anyone approaches.” “Ooh, guard horses. How
quaint.” Leif pointed to the hearth. “What if Mr. Fire Warper decides to jump
out of the fire? I don’t think Mrs. Floranne will be serving him a bowl of her
stew.” “Can we douse the fire?”
I asked. “No,” Leif said. “The
inn will get too cold and Mrs. Floranne won’t have hot coals for breakfast.” “Leif, do you always
think with your stomach?” I asked. “Is there any other
way?” I sighed. “We’ll post a
watch inside. Moon Man, how many entrances to this building?” “Two. The main one
leading to the street, and one in the back through the kitchen.” “How about upstairs? Is
there another staircase in the kitchen?” “Yes, but we can secure
the door into our hallway.” “Good. We’ll each take a
two-hour watch. I need to rest after I heal Tauno’s injuries so I won’t take
the first shift. Moon Man can start, followed by Leif, me and Tauno.” We left Moon Man in the
common room. I helped Tauno to his room. Stiff and sore, he moved with care.
When he was comfortable on the bed, I pulled a string of power and examined the
damage. Aside from two broken ribs, his other wounds were minor. Staring at his
injuries until they transferred to me, I hunched over with the pain and then
pushed it away. Tauno squeezed my hand
in thanks before falling asleep. I trudged to my bed, not as exhausted as I had
been in the past. Perhaps my healing skills improved with practice. Or had I
grown used to relying on my magic? “Yelena, wake up.” Leif
shook my shoulder. I peered at him through
heavy eyes. He placed the lantern on the table. “You’re the one who set
the schedule. Come on.” He pulled the blanket off me. “Most commanders don’t
take a turn guarding the troops. They get a good night’s sleep so they can make
the right decisions in the morning.” I sat on the edge of the
bed, rubbing my eyes. “I’m not a commander and we’re not a troop.” “I disagree. You’ve been
leading the way. You’re the one who knows what you’re doing.” “I—” Leif put his fingers on
my lips. “Don’t say it. I like—no—need to believe that you know what you’re
doing. Makes it so much easier to follow your instructions, especially when I’m
acting as bait for a fifty-foot-long snake.” “Fine. I have things well
in hand. I don’t need much sleep because I have all the steps we need to take
already planned out. Happy now?” “Yes.” Leif stretched
out on his bed. I picked up the lantern.
“Sweet dreams.” “They will be now.” The hallway of the inn
was dark and quiet. I checked the door leading to the kitchen stairs. It
remained locked tight. Good. Descending into the common area, I thought about
Leif’s comments. I might be the one making the decisions, but I didn’t believe
I had enough knowledge to be a commander. Gut instinct still propelled my
actions. Valek had taught me
about strategy and clandestine operations, and my Ixian friends, Ari and Janco,
had taught me to fight. Late-night sessions with Janco were the reason I could
pick locks. However, my magical training with Irys had been interrupted by
Ferde’s quest for power. There could be a magical
way to find Ferde and counter a Fire Warper, but since I hadn’t read all those
books about magic and history, and I hadn’t explored my powers to find their
limits, he was the test I hadn’t studied for, the quiz I was bound to fail. Out
of my depth. The empty common room
echoed with my footsteps. I made a circuit of the area to check for intruders
before I set the lantern down and went outside to visit the horses. The cold air
stabbed through my cloak. Kiki stood in the alley
next to the inn. Her dark coat blended with the shadows, but the white blaze
down her face reflected the moonlight. Smells? I asked,
reaching up to scratch behind her ears. Fresh. No bad. Any trouble? She snorted with
amusement. Two men. Woman. She replayed the memory
of two men robbing a woman. They had been so preoccupied with searching her
packages they failed to notice Kiki’s quiet approach. Quiet, because Kiki, like
all the Sanseed horses, refused to wear metal horseshoes. Kiki had spun and used
her back legs with expert precision. The men landed half a block away, and the
woman, after staring wide-eyed at Kiki, took off in the opposite direction. I
wondered why the lady had been out so late. She’ll probably spread
rumors about being rescued by a ghost horse, I said to Kiki. Maybe they’ll
change the inn’s name to Four Ghosts. I like ghosts. Quiet. You see ghosts? Yes. Where? Here. There. Places. Here? I looked around.
The empty street seemed deserted. I don’t see any. You will. She nuzzled my
cloak, sniffing the pockets. I like peppermints, too. I gave her the mints.
Care to elaborate on the ghost issue? No. She retreated down the
alley and I returned to the inn. The lantern’s flame flickered as I made
another sweep of the kitchen and rooms upstairs before settling down near the
hearth. Embers glowed within the remains of the fire. Suppressing my
apprehension, I added a few logs to coax the coals into a small fire to heat
water for tea. Such a diminutive blaze shouldn’t be big enough for the Fire
Warper. Perhaps the size of the
fire equaled the size of the Fire Warper. The image of a foot-tall Fire Warper
leaping from the hearth caused me to laugh, but knowing he needed only one
flame to start a fire ruined my good humor. Searching my pack for
tea leaves, I found Opal’s package. Curious to see which glass animal had
called to her, I unwrapped the thick cloth. A charcoal-gray bat with green eyes
came to life in my hands. I almost dropped the piece in surprise, but even with
its wings outstretched the palm-size creature didn’t take flight. Opal’s
magic—not life—glowed from the core of the bat. Closer examination revealed
flecks of silver along the bat’s body and wings. An invigorating tingle
swept up my arm. I mulled over the benefits of being a creature of the night.
Could I locate Marrok or Cahil now while the city slept? Drawing power, I
projected my mind and encountered a confusing array of dream images. Once again
too many people for me to sort through. I pulled back. The water bubbled. With
reluctance, I returned the statue to my pack and found the tea. Over my
steaming cup, I watched the miniature fire. I considered making an attempt to
contact Bain Bloodgood. The Second Magician might have some advice on how I
could find one soul among so many. The Citadel was three
days away by horseback. Too far for me to project in normal circumstances.
Desperation increased my distance, but then I had no control of direction.
Also, Bain would be asleep, his mental defenses impenetrable. I decided to wait
until the morning to try. The desire to sleep
dragged at my body. I made several rounds of the room just to stay awake. When
seated, my attention lingered on the fire’s dancing flames. They pulsed in a
rhythm that matched my heartbeat. The flames’ movements appeared choreographed,
as if they tried to communicate something to me. Something important. I knelt near the fire.
Fingers of orange and yellow beckoned. Come, they invited. Join with us.
Embrace the fire. I inched closer. Waves
of heat caressed my face. Come. We need to tell
you… What? I leaned in.
Flames crackled, sap hissed and boiled and the harsh scent of burning hair
billowed. “Yelena!” Moon Man’s voice
drenched me with cold reason. I scurried away from the hearth, stopping when I
reached the far side of the room. Chills raced over my skin and I shivered. “Thanks,” I said to him. “I thought something was
not right.” Moon Man descended the rest of the way down the stairs. “I woke
feeling as if the threads of my blanket had ignited.” “It’s a good thing you
did.” “What happened?” “I’m not sure.” I
wrapped my cloak tighter. “I thought I saw souls in the fire.” “Trapped?” I barked out a laugh. If
I had said that to anyone else, they would have believed I was a raving
lunatic. Moon Man wanted details. Details I couldn’t provide. “I think they wanted me
to join them.” He frowned and stared at
the hearth. “You should not be left alone with a fire. I will finish Tauno’s
shift.” “Finish?” I glanced out
the window. The curtain of darkness had thinned. I had lost track of the time,
and failed to wake Tauno for his turn. Not a good sign. “Go get some sleep. We
will need to make plans when you wake.” The deafening peal of
Mrs. Floranne’s bell jarred me from sleep. Leif sat on the edge of his bed with
his head between his hands, blocking out the noise. With silence came relief
and he dropped his arms. “She’ll be ringing that
again if we don’t get down to breakfast soon,” Leif said. All the motivation I
needed. I kicked off my blanket and followed Leif from the room. We joined Moon
Man and Tauno in the common area. The crowded inn buzzed with conversation.
Mrs. Floranne poured tea while her staff served breakfast. The smell of sweet
syrup wafted through the air. The good night’s sleep
reflected in Tauno’s face. The swelling was gone and the bruises faded from
bright red to a light purple smudge. He moved without wincing in pain. We ate our breakfast of
honey, eggs and bread and discussed our next move. “We should search the
city,” Leif said. “Quarter by quarter until we either find them or determine
they’re not here.” “It would take a long
time.” Moon Man spooned a glob of eggs onto a slice of bread. “They are gone,” Tauno
said. I stopped eating. “How
do you know?” “They mentioned leaving
Booruby.” “Why didn’t you tell us
last night?” I stabbed my eggs with my fork. “I was distracted by the
pain and did not remember the comment until now.” “Would it have made a
difference?” Leif asked. I thought it over. Tauno
had been in bad shape. But with no fatal injuries, I could have left him here
and…what? Scanned the surrounding forest with my magic? I didn’t know which
direction they had gone and they had almost a full day of travel. “Probably not,” I
sighed. “Tauno, do you remember anything else? Did they say where they were
going?” “The need to hurry was
all I sensed. Perhaps that is why I was not killed. They did not have enough
time.” “The best strategy would
have been to keep us in the dark about Marrok, wondering if he is dead or alive
and what he told them.” I sipped my tea. “However, Cahil likes to feel superior
and probably believes letting us know Marrok has betrayed us would make us
doubt our instincts and slow us down.” Cahil had tried that
tactic with me before. When he had thought I was a spy from Ixia, he had
ambushed me in the forest. Then, he wanted me to believe Leif set me up to
demoralize me. It hadn’t worked. And it wouldn’t work now. If anything, I was more
determined to find them. Even though we had lost their trail. My appetite gone,
I pushed my plate away. “What’s next?” Leif
asked. The door to the common
room banged open. Marrok stood in the threshold with a bloody sword in his
hand. The four of us jumped to
our feet. Breakfast forgotten, we pulled our weapons as the conversation in the
inn’s common room dwindled into a deadly silence. “Come on.” Marrok
gestured from the doorway with his sword. “Let’s go before they catch up.” “Who?” I asked. “Cahil and
his…his…friends.” Marrok spit the words out. “I escaped.” Horror bleached his
face, and blood dripped from a cut on his throat. “I’ve lost them, but they
know we’re here.” “How many?” I demanded. Marrok straightened.
“Seven.” “Armed?” “Swords, scimitars and
Curare.” “How soon?” Marrok glanced over his
shoulder and froze. He dropped his sword. It clattered on the stone floor. A
big hand shoved him, pushing him to the ground. Behind Marrok, Cahil,
Ferde and five Vermin streamed into the common room. 14WITH THEIR WEAPONS
pointed toward us the Vermin and Cahil fanned out in front of the door. Two
Vermin had scimitars, two had swords and one held a blowpipe to his lips. “Everyone just stay
calm,” Cahil ordered. His long broadsword made an impressive threat. The people
in the common room stayed in their seats. Mostly merchants and salesmen, there
wasn’t a soldier among them. Marrok remained on the
floor. A Vermin stood over him with the tip of his scimitar pointed at Marrok’s
throat. I glanced at Tauno. “You
said they were gone.” His face had paled and,
although he held his weapon, he hadn’t nocked an arrow. Moon Man eyed the
Vermin as if judging the distance between their necks and his scimitar. Leif’s
machete glinted in the sunlight from the open doorway. “Change of plans,” Cahil
said. Cahil had let his blond
hair grow past his shoulders and it was unbound. Besides that, he remained the
same. Same gray traveling clothes, same black riding boots, same washed-out
blue eyes and same hate-filled expression on his bearded face. “My friend wanted to
exchange Marrok for Yelena.” Cahil inclined his head to Ferde. I noted his use of the
word friend. How could he call that creature his friend? The Soulstealer’s plain
homespun tunic and pants hid most of the red tattoos covering his body. With a
scimitar in one hand and a blowpipe in another, he looked at me with cold
calculation. Despite his lean and powerful build, I sensed his magic remained
weak. Yet a bite of fear nipped my stomach. “I hope you have a few
more Warpers with you,” I said to Cahil. “The Soulstealer is no condition to
fight three magicians.” “I may have failed in my
power quest,” Ferde said. “However, I now serve another who has learned blood
magic.” The sound of roaring
flames reached me before the heat. A quick look over my shoulder confirmed the
blaze in the hearth had grown. Terror boiled in my throat, prompting me to act
before the Fire Warper appeared. Pulling power, I sent a
thread to Moon Man. Take out the man with the blowpipe. I’ll take Ferde. He
agreed. Leif, I said, attack the man over Marrok then keep Cahil busy. When? Leif asked. “Now.” I shouted and
projected my awareness into Ferde’s mind, bypassing his mental defenses and
seizing control of his body. It was a self-defense move I had learned when Goel
had captured me. Chained and left with no recourse except using my magic, I had
sent my soul into Goel’s body. Once Ferde realized I
had invaded, he concentrated all his energy on ejecting me. I ignored his
efforts. He threatened to kill me the same way he had murdered his other
victims. Memories stabbed; sounds
of their screams pounded; the smell of rancid blood pierced and visions of
mutilations assaulted. His black desires of power and dominance through torture
and rape revolted me. To stop him, I harvested
his soul and wrung it, exposing his deep fears and the events that had caused
his addiction to power. The favorite uncle who had tied him down and sodomized
him. The older sister who had tormented him. The father who had belittled him.
The mother he had trusted and confided in. The mother who had sent him back to
live with his uncle as punishment for lying. A Story Weaver may have
helped Ferde untie the knotted strands of his life, but I wrenched them apart,
broke the threads. He became the helpless victim again. I examined his memory
for every bit of detail, looking for information about the Daviian Vermin. When
I finished, I peered through his eyes. My body lay on the
ground, comatose. Moon Man fought a Vermin. They maneuvered around a headless
body. Cahil hacked at Leif, whose machete was no match against Cahil’s longer
sword. Leif would soon be forced to surrender. Tauno stood in the same spot as
if rooted to the floor. Marrok had regained his feet and sparred with one of
the Vermin near another body. The people in the inn had organized a bucket brigade
to dump water on the fire. Even though my time with
Ferde felt like a lifetime, only seconds had passed. I raised the blowpipe in
the Soulstealer’s hand and aimed. First Cahil. Reloading, I shot each Vermin
with a Curare-laced dart, ending the fight. Water wasn’t going to
stop the Fire Warper, but with his cohorts neutralized, he conceded the fight.
“Next time, my little bat.” The fire died with a hiss and puff of oily smoke. I returned to my body.
My limbs felt as if they weighed a thousand pounds each. Leif helped me to
stand on weak legs. Mrs. Floranne came over.
She clutched her apron between her hands and worried at the fabric. “What
should we be doing?” “Send someone to fetch
the city guards. We’ll need help transporting the prisoners to the Citadel,” I
said. She sent the stable lad. “Have they all been hit
with Curare?” Leif pointed to the prone figures. I looked at Ferde. He
had collapsed in a heap on the floor. “All but one. I’ve examined his soul, and
he won’t be giving us any more trouble.” “For how long?” “Forever.” “Do you think that was
wise?” Moon Man asked. His scimitar dripped with blood and gore, and
lacerations crisscrossed his chest. “You could have achieved the same result
without damaging his mind.” “I—” Leif jumped to my
defense. “Hold on, Mr. Let’s-exterminate-all-the-Vermin Man. Given the chance
you would have decapitated him. Besides, he deserved it. And it doesn’t matter
anyway; Roze would have done the same thing to him once he arrived at the
Citadel. Yelena just saved time.” Small darts of fear
pricked my heart. Leif’s words repeated in my mind. Roze would have done the
same. He was right. Numbness spread throughout my body. I hadn’t even stopped
to consider the implications before acting. Don’t get in my way; I’m
the all-powerful Soulfinder. Disgust coursed through me. History books hadn’t
been kind to Soulfinders. The vision of Flame Me being burned at the stake rose
in my mind. Perhaps the Councilors and Roze were right to fear me. After what I
had just done to Ferde, I feared I might turn into a power-hungry despot. “We need to leave as
soon as possible,” Moon Man said. We had assembled in the
inn’s common room again. The city guards had taken Cahil and the others into
custody yesterday. We had spent the day explaining to the city officials about
Cahil’s group; an afternoon’s worth of discussion to convince them to send the
prisoners to the Council. Leif and Marrok would accompany the city guards to
the Citadel this morning. I intended to go with Moon Man and Tauno to the Sandseed
homeland in the Avibian Plains. “You’re worried about
your clan,” I said. “Yes. Also I think we
need to learn more about the Kirakawa, the Fire Warper and your abilities
before we have another run-in with the Vermin.” “But your clan has
forgotten the details. How are you going to learn more?” Leif asked. “We can consult Gede. He
is another Story Weaver, but he is also a descendant of Guyan and may have more
information.” Moon Man stole my ginger muffin and ate it. Although I was curious
to know more about how Guyan had reunited the Sandseeds after their civil war
with the Efe Warriors, Moon Man’s comments reminded me I needed to try to
contact Irys and let her know what had happened. We finished breakfast
and made arrangements to leave. Moon Man and Tauno would get the horses ready
while Leif and I tried to communicate with Irys. We returned to our room.
I lay on my bed. “Do you think you can
reach her from this distance?” Leif asked. “I hope to, but I may
need a boost of energy.” Leif sat on the edge of
my bed. Closing my eyes, I drew power to me and projected my awareness toward
the Magician’s Keep in the Citadel. I bypassed the chaotic jumble of minds in
the city and reached for the wide-open fields marking the eastern border of the
Greenblade Clan’s lands. The few livestock I encountered hunched against the
damp wind. Pushing past the barren
farmland, I aimed for the white marble walls of the Citadel. But my mind
stretched thin as if it had turned to taffy. Leif’s warm hand encompassed mine
and a surge of strength pushed my awareness further, but I couldn’t reach those
walls. The effort left me drained. Leif gave my hand a
squeeze before he stood. He searched through his pack and before I could ask,
he handed me a yellow leaf rolled like a scroll. “Eat it,” he said.
“It’ll give you energy.” I sniffed. The leaf
smelled like spearmint and rosemary. An odd combination. As I crunched the
leaf, the bitter mint taste dominated and it shredded like paper in my mouth.
“Yuck. What is it?” “A baka leaf. One of Father’s
discoveries.” After a while, I felt
better. We packed our bags and joined Moon Man and Tauno in the stables. The
four of us mounted. Leif and Marrok rode together on Rusalka and headed toward
the city’s garrison. Marrok would borrow one of the guard’s horses for the trip
to the Citadel. The rest of us went east
through Booruby’s crowded streets. Tauno shared Kiki’s saddle with me, and Moon
Man rode Garnet. When we reached the
Avibian Plains, the horses broke into their gust-of-wind gait. We traveled until
the sun set then halted to rest. Our stopping point was a bleak section of the
plains. A few stalks of grass clung to the sand, and no trees or firewood were
in sight. Tauno reconnoitered the area as soon as he dismounted. Moon Man and I tended
the horses. Once they were fed, watered and rubbed down, Moon Man removed the
oil nuts Leif had given to him. One of my father’s finds, the oil nuts would
burn long enough to heat water for stew. The night air smelled damp, hinting at
rain. After arranging the fist-size
lumps into a circle, he lit the nuts on fire by striking two stones together to
make a spark. I guessed Story Weaver powers didn’t include lighting fires.
Interesting. Tauno returned with a
couple rabbits he had shot with his bow and arrow. He skinned the animals and
added the meat to the stew. After dinner I asked
Moon Man about Guyan. “What happened between the Efe rulers?” “Just over two thousand
years ago, the Efe Tribe was a peaceful nomadic people, following the cattle
and the weather.” Moon Man reclined against Garnet’s saddle, warming to his
tale. “Before becoming an official member of the tribe, the young people would
make a year-long pilgrimage and bring back a new tale for the tribe. It is said
that Hersh was gone many years, and, when he returned, he brought back
knowledge of blood magic. “At first he taught a
few Efe magicians, called Warriors, how to boost their powers. Little rites
requiring a drop of their own blood. The extra power would dissipate when the
task was completed. Then Hersh showed them how to mix their blood with ink and
inject it into their skin. Now the power did not dissipate and they became
stronger Warriors. Soon they discovered using another’s blood was even more
potent. And heart’s blood, taken from the chambers of the heart was incredibly
empowering.” Moon Man shifted his
weight and stared into the black sky. “The problem with using blood magic is it
becomes addictive. Even though the Efe Warriors were powerful, they wanted
still more. They did not kill their own clan members, but sought victims from
neighboring clans. No longer content to follow the cattle and forage for food,
they stole what they needed from others. “This abuse continued
for a long time. And would have continued if an Efe named Guyan had not stopped
the Warriors. He kept his magic pure. Sickened by the horrors he witnessed,
Guyan organized a resistance. The details of the battle are lost to time, but
the amount of magic pulled from the power blanket was enough to knock over the Daviian Mountains and shred the blanket of power. Guyan organized what was left of the
clan, and established the role of Story Weavers, who helped mend the people and
the power.” Moon Man yawned. I compared his story to
what I had learned about Sitian history. “Can you really mend the power source?
I read a history where a magician had bunched the power around himself, and it
took two hundred years for it to smooth out.” “Guyan was the first
Weaver,” Tauno said. He hadn’t moved a muscle during Moon Man’s story. “Guyan’s
incredible powers could mend the power source, a skill not seen in another
since.” Moon Man agreed. “The
blanket is not perfect. There are holes, tears and thin patches. There might
come a point in time where it will be worn away and magic will be a story of
the past.” A loud pop sounded from
the campfire. I jumped. The last of Leif’s oil nuts sputtered and died, leaving
the three of us in darkness. Tauno offered to take the first watch as Moon Man
and I readied for bed. I lay awake shivering in
my cloak, thinking about the power source. Finding out about those holes called
Voids had been a nasty surprise. Alea Daviian had dragged me into an area
without power to torture and kill me. Being unable to access my magic, I had
felt quite helpless. The fact I had been tied to a cart had reinforced my
complete lack of control. Alea erred by not searching me for weapons, and I had
used my switchblade to escape. Alea had also wanted to
collect my blood and I wondered if she’d planned to perform the Kirakawa ritual
on me. I supposed I wouldn’t ever know. I couldn’t ask a dead woman. Or could
I? An image of invisible spirits hovering over me filled my mind and I felt as
if a layer of ice coated my skin. The next morning we ate
a cold breakfast of jerked beef and cheese. Moon Man estimated we would reach
the Sandseeds’ main camp by late afternoon. “I tried to reach the
elders,” Moon Man said. “But there is a strong barrier of protective magic
tenting the encampment. Either my people managed to fight off the Vermin and
this new shield is a safeguard against another attack, or the Vermin have taken
control and are defending themselves.” “Let’s hope for the
first one,” I said. We mounted and rode for
most of the day, stopping only once to rest the horses. Before we reached the
point where we would be visible to the Sandseeds’ camp, we halted. Tauno would
scout the camp and report back. Taking off his bow and
arrows, Tauno doused himself and his clothes with water then rolled in the
sandy soil. Granules clung to his skin. He blended in so well with the
surroundings, he soon vanished from our sight. I paced and fretted
while Moon Man appeared serene. “Worrying can not change
anything,” he said to my unspoken question. “I would rather conserve energy for
when we can do something.” “You’re right, of
course, but on occasion logic does not win against emotions.” He shrugged. I resisted
thinking worrisome thoughts and focused instead on what I could do. Smells? I asked Kiki. Sweet. Home, she
replied. Itchy. Clumps of mud clung to
her copper coat. I rummaged in my pack until I found the currycomb. I was still
combing Kiki when Tauno returned. “The camp is secure. If
we leave now we can get there before dark,” Tauno reported. As we prepared to go, he
told us what he had seen. “Everything looked normal. Yanna washed clothes and
Jeyon skinned a hare. I crept closer and saw the elders arguing over the fire.
The children at their lessons. The youths practicing with their wooden swords.
Many heads drying in the sun.” “Heads?” I asked. “Our enemies,” Moon Man
replied in a matter-of-fact tone as if decorating with decapitated heads was a
normal occurrence. “It is a good sign,”
Tauno said. “It means we have won the battle.” Yet Tauno didn’t look
happy. “Did you talk to anyone?” I asked. “Yes. Jeyon signaled to
me everything was fine. I did not want to waste the daylight finding out the
details.” He peered at the sky. “A hot meal by a warm fire will be most
welcome.” I agreed. Tauno joined
me on Kiki’s back, and Moon Man mounted Garnet. In high spirits we joked and
raced to the Sandseeds’ camp. The gray twilight waned
as the white tents of the camp became visible. Many Sandseeds had gathered near
the fire. A few stirred the contents of large cooking pots, and, by the heady
aroma, I guessed venison stew bubbled inside. Yum. Others waved to us as we
approached. We slowed the horses. The air shimmered with
the rising heat. I scanned the area with my magic, but felt only the strong
protection Moon Man had mentioned. The magic didn’t feel like an illusion, but
my experience was limited. When we crossed the
magical barrier, I braced myself. Even Tauno gripped my waist tighter. But the
scene didn’t change. The Sandseeds stayed the same. Three men and two women
came over to us as we stopped the horses while the rest resumed their evening’s
work. The women’s faces
appeared to be strained with either worry or grief. There must have been
Sandseed casualties. The Sandseed men grabbed the horses’ bridles. An odd thing
to do, considering they had trained the horses to keep still. Kiki reared. I
held her mane as she jerked away from the Sandseeds’ grasp. Bad smell, she said. Firelight flashed on
steel. I turned in time to see a mass of well-armed Daviian Vermin erupting
from the tents. 15TAUNO’S BOWSTRING
TWANGED and I yelled, “Go! Go! Go!” Kiki was free, but two Sandseeds held tight
to Garnet’s bridle. A quick glance to the side revealed ten feet separated us
from the fastest Vermin. I pulled my staff from
my pack as Kiki turned. She used her rear legs to keep the Vermin occupied
while I brought my bow down on the temple of a Sandseed holding Garnet. A pang
of regret touched my heart as the man crumpled to the ground. He had probably
been forced to ambush us. But I didn’t let the feelings stop me from attacking
the second man clutching Garnet. “Go! Go! Go!” I yelled
again. Even with Moon Man’s
scimitar, Tauno’s arrows and my bow, the Vermin outnumbered us. It was only a
matter of time before they would overrun us. In a flurry of hooves and steel
and shouts, the horses headed away from the Sandseed camp, breaking into their
gust-of-wind gait. We had ridden through
most of the night to get as far away from the Vermin as possible. The horses
slowed. Heads down, they panted. Their coats gleamed with sweat. Only a couple
dark hours remained. Dismounting, we removed their saddles. While I walked the
horses to cool them down, Moon Man and Tauno searched for wood and game. No one said a word. The
shock of the attack had yet to wear off and the vivid memory of it played over
and over in my mind. The ramifications alone were too awful to consider right
now. We ate another rabbit
stew in silence. I thought about our next move. “The elders…” Moon Man’s
voice seemed loud in the thick night air. “Are still alive,” Tauno
said. “For now.” “Would they kill them?”
A shudder gripped my body at the thought of all those drying skulls. “The trap was sprung.
They have no need for them,” Moon Man replied then seemed to reconsider his
words. “They might keep them as slaves. The Vermin are lazy when it comes to
domestic tasks.” “And they’re just busy
beavers when it comes to ritual killings and gaining power,” I said. “Lucky
us.” The scene once again flashed in my mind. “Do you think some of your people
escaped?” “Perhaps. They would
have left the plains, though.” Moon Man considered. “The Sandseeds no longer
control the protective magic over the Avibian Plains. To stay within its
borders would be too dangerous for them. Right now, the Vermin are using the
protection to keep their presence a secret, but now that we have fled, I
believe they will use it to find us. Perhaps to attack us with magic.” “Then we shouldn’t
linger long. Is there any way to know if they find us?” “We can create a barrier
to alert us to an attack and maybe deflect an initial foray.” “We should saddle the
horses in case we need to make a quick exit.” I stood. “That would be prudent.”
Moon Man helped me with the horses. Kiki snorted in
annoyance when I tightened her straps. Tired, she said. Don’t
need. Smell good. For now. If the smells
turn bad, we can leave faster. I fed her some peppermints and scratched behind
her large ears. She sighed and her eyes drifted shut. After the horses were
ready, the three of us sat in a circle around the fire. “Maybe we should douse
the flames.” Worried that the Fire Warper would sense me through the blaze, I
hadn’t used my magic near a fire. Moon Man dumped water
onto it. Puffs of gray smoke rose into the air. “Yelena, I want you to
pull threads of magic and I will do the rest,” Moon Man instructed. Concentrating, I
gathered strands of power. Moon Man plucked the strands from me and weaved them
into a net around us. Tauno’s pinched and sullen expression reflected his
discomfort. As the only one without magic, he didn’t have the ability to see
the protection building around us. When Moon Man finished,
I disconnected from the power source, feeling drained of energy. The net pulsed
with magic even though we no longer fueled it. I wondered why it still worked.
In all my past efforts, the power dissipated as soon as I stopped using magic.
Except for my mental connections with Kiki and Irys, every time I wanted to
heal or project I had to consciously draw from the power source. Yet the
Sandseeds had their protection, and there were other lingering spells. An image of the knife in
Valek’s suite came to mind. When Valek had assassinated the King of Ixia, the
King cursed him, vowing his blood would stain Valek’s hands forever. Since
magic doesn’t work on Valek, the curse transferred to the knife instead. The
King’s blood still clung to the blade and remained as wet and bright as the day
the King had been killed. I asked Moon Man how the
protective net stayed active. “Mostly we channel the
magic through us. But there are times when you can loop the power back to the
source. It can be very difficult to do, and, by having you draw the power, I
could save my energy for knitting it together and redirecting it back to the
source. Large-scale protection like the one covering the Avibian Plains and the
Sandseeds…” A hitch of emotion
stopped his words. He closed his eyes and swallowed his grief before he
continued. “Huge magical loops require an immense effort by many magicians, but
can be effective for a long time. The protection we just created will last for
a few hours before dissipating. Enough time to give the horses a chance to
rest.” “And then what?” I
asked, but he looked at me. Leif’s comments about my role as commander
flittered through my mind. I answered my own question. “We leave the plains.
Head toward the Citadel and let the Council know what’s been going on with the
Vermin.” “Hopefully they will
already know. The Sandseed survivors would have gone to the Citadel.” Moon Man
scowled. “If there were any.” Waiting for the horses
to regain some of their strength proved to be difficult. Our protective net
flashed whenever the Vermin’s magic scanned the area. So far the net hid us
from the Vermin, but each encounter weakened the fibers. The desire to flee and
the need to sleep battled within me. I wanted to stay awake in case the Vermin
attacked, but I dozed off and on until the sky brightened with the rising sun. The few hours before
dawn had been enough time for the horses. We mounted and headed northwest,
riding hard. During our rest breaks, Moon Man searched for any sign the
Vermin’s magic had found us. I projected my awareness to learn if they
physically pursued us. In our haste, we left a physical trail even my untrained
eyes could follow. A couple hours short of
the Avibian border, we stopped for a longer rest. Moon Man proclaimed the
Vermin had lost us, and I couldn’t sense anyone nearby. Since we had been
traveling together for fifteen days, we automatically attended our chosen
tasks, even with the Daviian threat hanging over our heads. By the time I had
finished rubbing down the horses and seeing to their needs, I smelled rabbit
stew cooking on the fire. Tauno sat next to the
pot. His shoulders hunched as if a great weight pressed down on him, and his
attention remained fixed on the ground. He hadn’t uttered more than a few words
since yesterday. Perhaps he felt guilty and responsible for leading us into an
ambush. I debated discussing it with him, but considered he might be more
comfortable talking to Moon Man. I wondered if Moon Man was his Story Weaver.
Every Sandseed had a Story Weaver to guide and advise them throughout their
lives. I glanced around,
realizing Moon Man hadn’t returned from collecting firewood even though a pile
of branches rested near the cook fire. “Tauno, where’s Moon
Man?” I asked. Tauno didn’t even lift
his head when he said, “He was called to the shadow world.” “Called? Does that mean
another Story Weaver survived the Vermin attack?” “You will have to ask
him.” “When will he be back?” Tauno ignored the rest
of my questions. Frustrated, I circled the area, searching for Moon Man, and
found his clothes in a heap on the ground. I moved to return to the fire and
bumped into him. I jerked back in
surprise. Moon Man seized my upper arms to keep me from falling. “Where have you been?” I
asked. He peered at me with an
alarming intensity. Blue fire flecked his brown eyes. I tried to move, but he
wouldn’t let go. “They are dead,” he said
with a flat voice. “Story Weavers and Sandseeds gone. Their souls haunt the
shadow world.” His grip on my arms tightened.
“You’re hurt—” “You can help them.” “But I don’t—” “Selfish girl. You would
rather lose your abilities than use them. And that is what will happen. You
will become a slave to another.” His words slapped me in
the face. “But I’ve been using them all along.” “Anyone can heal. You,
though, hide from your real power and others suffer for it.” Stung and hurt, I tried
to break loose, but his hold wouldn’t release. In order not to injure him, I
projected into Moon Man’s mind. Thick ropes of gray power surrounded him. The
shadow world still held his mind. My efforts to cut the ties failed. “The shadow world
calls.” Moon Man began to fade.
My body became translucent. He planned to take me with him to a place where I
feared I couldn’t access my magic. Reaching into my pocket, I pulled my
switchblade and triggered the blade. I slashed him across his stomach. Moon Man
shuddered and let go. He collapsed to the ground, curling into a ball on his
side. I looked at Moon Man’s
still form. The gray power had vanished, but I wasn’t sure of his mental state.
Perhaps the shock and grief had been too much for him. Difficult to believe. He
had been a calm and steady presence all along. I knelt next to him. The
blood from his wound soaked his shirt. Drawing power, I focused on his stomach.
The cut pulsed with a red light and a line of pain formed on my own stomach. I
huddled on the ground, concentrating on the injury. My magic repaired the
damage. When I finished, Moon
Man grasped my hand. I tried to pull free, but he squeezed. My body jerked as
the image of headless bodies slammed into my mind. They crowded close,
enveloping me with the reek of dead flesh as they demanded revenge. Another
jerk and the scene of a massacre flooded my senses. The burning stench of body
fluids and death stung my nose as blood soaked into the sand. Mutilated bodies
were strewn in a haphazard, irreverent manner and left for the vultures to
find. Moon Man sat, and I
tried to break his hold. His gaze met mine. “Is that what you saw in
the shadow world?” I asked. “Yes.” Horror filled his
eyes as the gruesome images replayed in his mind. “Give the memories to
me.” I felt his reluctance. “I will not forget them.” “Will you help them?” “Can’t you?” “I can only help the
living.” “Are you going to tell
me how or spout some cryptic bullshit?” “You do not want to
learn. You have refused to see what is all around you.” “You didn’t answer my
question.” Pain creased his face
and the light in his eyes dulled. He would be unable to function with the
dreadful knowledge of how his people suffered. “Give them to me. I’ll
try to help them, but not right now.” I mentally added
soothing-the-dead-Sandseeds to the end of my long list of things to do. After I
dealt with the Fire Warper, which should be a breeze. While I was lying to
myself, I included flying and turning stones into gold to my list. Might as
well think big. Moon Man released the
emotional turmoil of his visions. He wouldn’t forget the images, but they would
no longer strangle him. I gathered his grief and guilt and anguish to my soul.
So much carnage and blood. All to boost the Vermin’s power. So many dead. Too
many. How to soothe those victims? Stopping the Vermin from increasing their
strength might work. What if they tried again? Perhaps destroying the power blanket
to keep everyone from using magic would work. A drastic and desperate measure
that might not even be possible. Letting go of my hand,
Moon Man stood. “What you said about my
future. Is it true?” I asked. “Yes. You will become a
slave to another.” The discussion over, Moon Man returned to the campfire. We ate the stew in
silence. Packing up, we mounted and spurred the horses toward the Avibian
border. When we reached the road located between the plains and the fields of
the Greenblade Clan’s lands, we turned north toward the Citadel and slowed the
horses to a walk. At this late hour, the road was empty. Being out of the plains
gave us at least an illusion of safety, but I wanted to ride a little farther
before we stopped for the night. The next three days
dragged. With hardly a word spoken between the three of us, an awkward hush
resulted as we traveled to the Citadel. Moon Man’s comment about my future
repeated in my mind, grating on my nerves like a high-pitched squeal. I wanted
to know who would force me to be a slave and when, but I knew Moon Man would
reply with a cryptic remark and I wouldn’t be smart enough to figure it out.
The air turned cold and damp as we went farther north, and one night sleet
pelted us, making our ride miserable. Seeing the welcome sight
of the white marble walls of the city on the third day, I spurred Kiki into a
gallop. Gone from the Keep for eighteen days, I missed Irys, my old mentor who
answered my questions with a refreshing directness, and my friends at the
Magician’s Keep. After crossing the south
entrance gate of the outer wall, we walked the horses through the streets of
the Citadel. Puddles of icy muck peppered the walkways. Citizens hurried
through the intermittent rain, and the grayness cast a mournful facade over the
expanse of marble buildings. The smell of wet wool clung to the air. We aimed
for the Council Hall, which was located with the other government buildings in
the southeast quadrant of the Citadel. Home? Kiki looked with
longing at the four towers of the Keep. Soon, I said. Rest here
for now. A stable for the Councilors had been erected behind the building. At
least you’ll be out of the rain. Once Kiki and Garnet were settled, we entered
the hall. A guard informed us a
Council meeting had just finished and we should go in before the Councilors
left for the day. Entering the Great Hall, I spotted Irys talking to Bain
Bloodgood, Second Magician. Groups of Councilors and aides formed small knots
and the noise of their discussions filled the room. By the harsh tones and
strident voices, I sensed the discussion hadn’t gone well and an undercurrent
of fear trembled against my skin. Moon Man and Tauno went
directly to their Councilman, Harun Sandseed. I hung back, not wanting to
interfere with the Sandseeds. Irys hurried toward me. She wore her stern Fourth
Magician expression. She was worried. I scanned the clumps of Councilors with
more care and I discovered the reason for her concern. Cahil stood with Roze
Featherstone and another Councilor. He laughed and talked as if he belonged
there. 16I MOVED TO CONFRONT
Cahil. He should be in the dungeon for aiding and abetting a murderer, not
standing in the middle of the Great Hall having a conversation with Roze. My
alarm increased when I saw a few Vermin inside the Hall. Irys had other plans.
She grabbed my arm and pulled me aside. “Now is not the time,”
she said, appealing to me. “What is going on?” I
demanded. Irys glanced around the
room. A few Councilors stood close enough to overhear us, so she switched to
our mental communication. Cahil claims he’s been
on an undercover mission this whole time, she said. He says that he didn’t free
Ferde. Why would anyone believe
that? I asked. Because Roze
corroborated his story. A lightning strike of
shock ripped through my body. I hoped I misunderstood her. But her grim
expression didn’t change. It gets worse, she said.
Cahil says he caught Marrok rescuing Ferde and, after interrogating him, Cahil
discovered Ferde was on his way to rendezvous with others. Cahil followed the
Soulstealer to discover what they plotted. That’s ridiculous. We
know Cahil beat Marrok to find out about his birth parents. It’s Cahil’s word
against Marrok’s at this point because there is no evidence to say who freed
Ferde. Especially since Ferde can’t be questioned. Irys frowned. We’ll talk
about your actions later, but whatever you learned from Ferde’s mind can’t be
used as evidence. Why not? Because you were
emotionally involved with the Soulstealer and your impartiality is suspect. I
know—she went on, sensing my protest—it isn’t right, but when the Council
discovered what you had done to Ferde, it confirmed their fears about you being
a Soulfinder and validated Roze’s warnings. I sighed. It had
confirmed my fears, too. Where’s Ferde now? In the Citadel’s jail,
waiting for the Council to decide what to do with him. Although I think
executing him would be a kindness. Her censure hurt and
guilt welled. I forced my thoughts away from Ferde and concentrated on Cahil.
There had to be a way to show the Council the truth about his involvement.
Where’s Marrok? What has he said? Marrok is being held for
questioning. He claims he didn’t free Ferde. He had no motive. But Cahil says
Marrok wanted to frame him for the escape so Marrok could lead Cahil’s men. And
also that Marrok lied to him, and Cahil really has royal blood. My mind spun. Cahil had
an answer for everything. So why was Cahil traveling with Ferde? He says it was part of
the undercover mission. Once he caught up with Ferde, he convinced Ferde he wanted
to be a part of their plans. While he traveled with the Daviians, Cahil says he
recruited them to switch sides. She gestured to the Vermin in the room. Did he mention the
Vermin using blood magic and the Fire Warper? No. He didn’t, but Leif
tried. Leif attempted to discredit Cahil and many of the Councilors thought he
exaggerated about the Daviians. Unfortunately, Leif’s reputation for seeing
doom and gloom in everything worked against him. Did Cahil say what the
Vermin plan to do? Half of me didn’t want to hear Irys’s response. I steeled
myself. According to Cahil, the
Daviians’ leaders are in league with the Commander of Ixia. Together they plan
to assassinate the Council and Master Magicians and, in the ensuing chaos, the
Daviians will offer to help Sitia battle the Ixians. But there won’t really be
a war and the Daviians will eventually turn Sitian’s government into a
dictatorship. Exactly what the Council
feared since the Commander took over Ixia, and, combined with the resultant bad
feelings from the Ixian Ambassador’s visit, the Councilors were primed for
Cahil’s lies. So now it seemed Roze was right to warn the Council about the
Commander. And I had no evidence to prove them wrong. What about my training?
I asked. I didn’t think Irys
could look any more upset, but she managed to deepen her scowl. The Council has
given Roze permission to “assess” your involvement in these events and to
determine what risk you pose to Sitia. I’m sure that would be
impartial. Do I have any say in this? No. But the other
Masters will be there as witnesses. All except me. My objectivity is considered
compromised by our friendship. Moon Man and Tauno
finished their conversation with Harun. They came toward us. Did you hear about the
Sandseed massacre? I asked Irys. Yes. Horrible news, and
it gave Cahil more proof of the Daviian threat. The Council is preparing the
Sitian army for war. I didn’t even have to
ask. Irys saw the question in my eyes. War against the Daviians
and against Ixia. So much for my job as
Liaison. War between Sitia and Ixia was the one thing I had hoped to avoid.
There had to be more going on with the Daviian Vermin, though. I knew the
Commander would never team up with them. They used blood magic, and he wouldn’t
condone the use of any magic. Besides, he could attack Sitia without the
Vermin’s help. Again, I had no proof. Moon Man and Tauno
joined us. “There are about a dozen
Sandseed survivors,” Moon Man said. “They came to the Citadel and are staying
here for now. Only one Story Weaver besides me survived. It is Gede, and he is
the one we need to talk to about the Fire Warper.” Irys said, “Who—” Moon Man kept talking.
“You said Master Bloodgood has a few books about the Efe, right?” “Yes,” I said. “We should examine them.
Gede and I will come to the Keep tomorrow morning.” Moon Man turned and walked
away. I watched his back,
feeling uneasy. His whole attitude toward me had changed since he had tried to
drag me into the shadow world. He acted as if he had given up on me. “That was rather
abrupt,” Irys said. “He’s been through a
lot.” “And so have you. Tell
me about this Fire Warper. Leif had only sketchy details.” I reported all our
adventures to her as we left the Council Hall and headed toward the Keep. The next morning we
assembled in Bain Bloodgood’s study. Occupying the entire second floor of his
tower, Bain’s office was ringed with bookcases. They had been built around the
long thin windows and every shelf overflowed with texts. A desk, a few wooden
chairs and a ratty armchair looking as old as Bain resided in the center of the
room. The sharp tang of ink permeated the air. Ink stained the desk’s top and
Bain’s fingers. And the only space on the floor without a pile of books was a
foot-wide path from the door to the desk. The tension in the room
pressed on my skin. Moon Man had folded his large frame into one of the chairs.
He appeared uncomfortable and he glanced with longing outside. I shared his
discomfort. The room felt crowded and tight even for me. Bain sat behind his
desk, with Dax Greenblade standing next to him. Dax was Bain’s apprentice and
he had the unique talent of being able to read ancient languages. His help in
finding Ferde and rescuing Gelsi had been vital. Irys stared at the other
Sandseed Story Weaver with ill-concealed dislike. Gede had arrived with Moon
Man and he had pushed his way into the room as if he belonged there. He carried
his bulk with authority and appeared to be taller than he was. It wasn’t until
he stood next to Irys that his true height was revealed. He matched Irys’s five
feet eight inches. “Those books belong to
me,” Gede said. Silence met his
statement. Dax glanced at me. Incredulity flashed in his bottle-green eyes. “My ancestor labored to
banish all the knowledge about the blood magic, yet there they sit—” he
gestured to the two open books on Bain’s desk “—for anyone to pick up and
read.” Irys said, “I doubt
anyone but Master Bloodgood and Dax can read or understand the language—” Gede cut her off. “It is
all you need. One person to read it, to get ideas and to experiment with the
knowledge. Blood magic is like no other—once you start you can not stop.” “It appears the Vermin
have discovered the information without these books,” I said. “How do you know?” Gede
asked. He peered at Dax with open suspicion. “Perhaps someone has been feeding
them information.” I stepped in front of
Gede before Dax could defend himself. “Not from here. Besides, having these
books might prove to be an advantage. Your ancestor Guyan defeated the Efe and
perhaps the books contain information about how to counter the Vermin’s blood
magic and to defeat the Fire Warper.” “All the more reason to
give them to me,” Gede said. “The Sandseeds will deduce a way to oppose the
Daviians. After all, they are our problem.” “Not anymore. They’ve
gone beyond your problem,” Bain said. “We will keep the texts here. You’re
welcome to study them with us.” But Gede wouldn’t back
down on his claim and Bain refused to give in. Eventually Gede rose to leave.
He paused before me and scanned me with cold calculation in his dark eyes. “Did you know Guyan was
a Soulfinder?” Gede asked me. Surprised, I said, “No.
I thought he was the first Story Weaver.” “He was both. You know
nothing about Soulfinders.” He glared at Moon Man. “Your education is pathetic.
I can teach you how to be a true Soulfinder.” My heart jumped in my
chest. The prospect of learning more about Soulfinders both thrilled and
terrified me. Gede must have seen the
indecision on my face. “You do not need these books to defeat the Fire Warper.” Too good to be true, I
knew there had to be a catch. “I suppose you’ll guide me with some cryptic
nonsense.” “Bah!” Again Gede shot
Moon Man an annoyed look. “There is no time for that. Interested?” Logic warred with
emotion. “Yes.” Emotion won. “Good. I am staying in
the Citadel’s guest quarters. Come at twilight. The moon should be up by then.”
Gede swept out of the room, with Moon Man trailing behind him. Irys raised one slender
eyebrow at me. “I don’t—” “Think it’s the best
decision.” I finished for her. “Think I should rush into the situation and hope
for the best.” She smoothed out the
sleeves of her tunic, giving me a wry look. “No. I don’t trust him.” I lingered outside
Roze’s tower, debating. This meeting with her, Bain and Zitora could be a trap.
She could either trick me into confessing to conspiring against Sitia, or it
could be my chance to redeem myself. Nice to have choices. Bain opened the door and
said, “Come in, child. It is cold outside.” Decision made, I
followed Bain into Roze’s home. A huge fire crackled and popped, spitting out
sparks, which would have burned the threadbare carpet if Roze hadn’t doused the
errant embers with her magic. With the memory of her fire attack seared in my
mind, I chose a hard wood chair as far from the hearth and from her as
possible. Spartan and bare, the
room lacked the cozy comfort of Irys’s living area and the scholarly smell of
Bain’s study. Zitora, Third Magician, perched on the edge of her seat, another
straight-backed chair without cushions. She kept her gaze on her hands. They
were laced together in her lap. Bain occupied the only comfortable seat.
Overstuffed and worn thin, the chair’s fabric was close to tearing, and by the
annoyed frown on Roze’s face whenever she glanced at Bain, I guessed he had
taken her favorite spot. “Let’s get this over
with,” I said into the awkward silence. “Nervous?” Roze asked. “No. I have a meeting in
an hour and I need to wash my hair.” Roze drew a breath. “Ladies, please. This is
difficult enough as it is,” Bain said. “Put your differences aside and let us
assess the situation.” Roze kept her comment to
herself. Impressive. She gave Bain a stiff nod. He smoothed the wrinkles in his
robe before continuing. “Yelena, you have shredded Ferde’s soul.” “I—” “No commenting until I
am finished.” The stern tone in Bain’s
voice raised the hair on my arms. He was the second most powerful magician in
the room. “Yes, sir.” Satisfied, Bain resumed
his lecture. “Your rash actions have set off a ripple of discontent within the
Council. First you acted without their permission. Second, your ability to
shred a soul alarmed the Councilors, including me. You have lost their trust,
and therefore the information you uncovered through Ferde is invalid.” I tried to meet Zitora’s
gaze, but she averted her face. “You are hereby ordered
to stay out of Sitian affairs while we deal with this new Daviian threat. Roze
has agreed to let you work with Gede to discover the extent of your powers and
we will reassess how you can aid our efforts in the future.” Bain gestured for
me to comment. Protests pushed in my
throat, but I swallowed them down as I wrestled my thoughts into a logical
response. This meeting was an ambush. They didn’t want to question me, just
dictate to me. “What about Cahil? You
can’t believe him?” I appealed to Bain. “There is no proof he
lied. First Magician supports him.” “He’s always been
selfish,” Roze said. “He wants only one thing. To aid the Daviians against
Sitia runs counter to his desire. He needs our help to launch his campaign to
claim Ixia. A country in the midst of a civil war wouldn’t be able to aid him
at all.” Roze’s reasonable logic
worried me more than her anger. “How about the Fire Warper?” A bright fireball
erupted from the fire, and hovered above us. I squinted into the harsh light.
The heat of the flames fanned my face. Roze curled her fingers into a fist and
the fire ball disappeared. Opening her hand, she gestured and snuffed out the
hearth fire, casting us into cold semi-darkness. “I’m First Magician for
a reason, Yelena. My command of fire is my best ability. You need not fear the
Fire Warper. I’ll deal with him.” Flames ignited. Once again heat and light
emanated from the hearth. I couldn’t suppress my
skepticism. “Do you really think I
would let the Daviians and this Fire Warper take control of Sitia? They
wouldn’t take proper care of my country. No. I will do all I can to keep them
from power, including protecting you from the Fire Warper.” Now she was outright
scaring me. “You want me dead.” “True. You’re a threat
to Sitia, but there is no proof. I can’t obtain the Council’s support to have
you executed. But once I have evidence, you’re mine.” This was more like the
Roze I knew and hated. We glared at each other. Bain cleared his throat.
“Child, by listening to the Council and working with Gede Sandseed you will
regain the Council’s trust.” Learning about my powers
was what I had desired all along. Ferde was no longer a threat and the Council
knew about the Daviians. If they wished to believe Cahil, why should I care?
The Commander’s army would prevail against Cahil. I had sought to avoid a war,
but I held no sway within the Council. Why couldn’t I be selfish for once and
stay out of politics while I explored my powers? I agreed. But the slight
rush of relief failed to ease the pang of doubt. Moon Man’s comment about
becoming a slave to another echoed in my mind. I returned to my rooms
in Irys’s Keep tower. She had given me three of the ten floors to use. I
trudged up the steps, anxious, worried and frustrated. Roze’s boast she could
handle the Fire Warper had better be true. Bain’s Efe books described power
symbols and blood rituals, but he had discovered nothing to counter them. And
there was no mention of a Fire Warper. Dax had translated the
bulk of the books, but a few chapters remained. He planned to spend the
afternoon working on them. My worry also stemmed from a comment Dax had made
about Gelsi. Bain’s other apprentice, Gelsi, had been Ferde’s last victim, but
I stopped him in time and revived her body and returned Gelsi’s soul. When I had inquired
about her, Dax’s vague response caused me to question him further. “To tell the truth,” Dax
had replied, “she’s different than before.” “Different how?” I had
asked. “She’s harsher.
Unhappy.” He moved his arms in a gesture of futility. “She no longer enjoys
life. She’s more preoccupied with death. It’s hard to explain. Master Bloodgood
is working with her. We hope it’s a condition she can work through and not—”
Dax shrugged “—permanent. Maybe you can talk to her?” I promised to visit her.
Thinking back, I had returned two people’s souls to bodies that had been dead.
Gelsi and Stono. And both came back changed. Were their altered personalities
due to something I did when I held their souls? My anxiety grew over what I
might discover about my Soulfinder abilities with Gede. Uneasiness soured my
stomach, and I remembered the attack Roze had sent me where Flame Me made a
soulless army. While it didn’t apply to Gelsi and Stono, I recalled Stono’s
offer to kill for me. With those morbid
thoughts, I reached my rooms. Even though I had three levels, I only possessed
enough furniture to occupy one. An armoire, a desk, a single bed and night
table looked lonely in the round room. I would need to do some shopping when I
had the time. Right now finding souls took priority over finding curtains. Then
I could be Yelena, the all-powerful Curtainfinder. Able to decorate a room in
one hour. I laughed out loud. “What’s so funny?” a
heart-melting voice asked from behind me. Valek leaned in the doorway,
his arms crossed over his chest as if he visited me every day. Dressed as one
of the Keep’s servants, he wore a gray tunic and pants. “I was thinking about
curtains.” I moved toward him. “Curtains are funny?” “In comparison to all my
other thoughts, yes, curtains can be amusing. But you, sir, are the best thing
that’s happened to me all day, all week and, now that I think about it, all
season.” Two steps and I was wrapped in his arms. “That’s the best welcome
I’ve had all day.” I could only imagine what
he had been up to. His ability to get into any building undetected made him the
most feared man in Sitia. And his immunity to magic terrified the Master
Magicians. He was Commander Ambrose’s best weapon against them. “Do I want to know why
you’re here?” I asked. “No.” I sighed. “Should I know
why you’re here?” “Yes. But not now.” He
leaned over and his lips met mine, and it no longer mattered why. The late-afternoon sun
woke me and reminded me about my meeting with Gede. I nudged Valek awake. We
huddled under the blankets against the icy air. Valek moved to get up.
“I’ll make a fire—” “No!” I grabbed his arm,
stopping him. He peered at me with
concern. I marveled at the rich sapphire color of his eyes and how they
contrasted with his pale skin. “You’ll need to reapply
your skin-darkening makeup,” I said, brushing a black strand of hair away from
his face. He held my hand. “Nice
try, but you are going to tell me why you don’t want a fire.” “Only if you tell me why
you’re here.” I countered. “Agreed.” I filled him in on the
series of events with Cahil, Ferde and the Fire Warper. “It’s ridiculous to
think the Commander is working with these Vermin.” Valek looked thoughtful. “So
the Wannabe King has chosen to ignore the truth about his birth. You got to
admit his ability to dupe the entire Council is impressive.” “Not the entire Council.
Irys doesn’t believe Cahil and I’m sure there are others.” I waved my hand in a
shooing motion. “Doesn’t matter. It’s not my concern. I’ve been told to be a
good little student and mind my own business.” Valek snorted. “Like you
would listen to them.” “I agreed.” He laughed long and
hard. “You. Not. Get involved.” Valek paused to catch his breath. “You’ve been
in the midst of trouble ever since you became the Commander’s food taster,
love. You would never walk away.” I waited until he wiped
the tears from his cheeks. “This is different. Then I didn’t have a choice.” “Oh? And you have a
choice now?” “Yes. I’ll let the
Council deal with these Vermin and I’ll stay out of trouble.” “But you know they can’t
counter them.” “They don’t want my
help.” Valek sobered and a hard
edge glinted in his gaze. “What happens when the Vermin win?” “I’ll stay with you in
Ixia.” “What about your
parents? Leif? Moon Man? Irys? Do they come with you? And what happens when
these Warpers with their incredible blood magic decide to follow you to Ixia?
What choice will you have then?” He studied my face. “You can’t let your fear
of the Fire Warper stop you from—” Annoyed, I snapped. “The
Council has stopped me. They’re the ones who are against me.” Besides, I didn’t
want to think about my family—they were all grown people able to look after
themselves. Then why did guilt tug at my heart and doubt squeeze my chest? “You just said there’re
a few Councilors on your side. Once the Council hears Marrok’s evidence
tonight, they’ll believe you about the Wannabe King.” “How did you know about
Marrok?” Irys had just told me this morning. I had insisted on attending
Marrok’s questioning, but she said the session was closed, for Councilors only. Amusement returned to
Valek’s face. “Servants. Their information network is far superior to a corps
of trained spies.” In an offhand way, he added, “I’ll tell you about the
session later tonight.” “You rat! It’s a closed
meeting. Only you would try to pull it off.” “You know me, love.” “I know. You crave a
challenge and you’re cocky.” He grinned. “I wouldn’t
call it cocky. A certain amount of self-confidence is needed, especially for my
line of work.” He turned serious. “And for yours.” I ignored the
implication. “Speaking of work, we made a deal. Why are you here?” He stretched his arms
over his head and yawned, pretending to consider my question. “Valek,” I warned,
poking him in the ribs. “Tell me.” “The Commander sent me.” “Why?” “To assassinate the
Sitian Council.” 17I GAPED AT VALEK.
Assassinating the Council would help the Vermin and support Cahil’s claims.
“You’re not—” “No. It’s the wrong
thing to do right now. The Commander based his decision on the state of Sitian
affairs before these Vermin showed up. He allowed me a degree of flexibility on
this mission. We need to find out what’s going on. The Council meeting tonight
might reveal crucial information.” “We?” “Yes. We.” I sighed. I was
disobeying direct orders from the Master Magicians and the Council again,
getting involved with Sitian affairs. Would I ever agree with their decisions
or was I deep down an Ixian just pretending to be impartial? Perhaps my session
with Gede would be useful. I needed guidance as well as information. Valek and I agreed to
meet back in my room later tonight. He left. Apprehension swirled
around me like a thick fog as I dressed and walked to the Citadel’s guest
quarters. The small clouds in the sky darkened as the light faded. The streets
hummed with people finishing up their tasks for the day. Lamplighters began
lighting the vast network of street lanterns. The main thoroughfares would be
lit, but the back alleys would remain dark. My concern grew as I
passed a number of Vermin sauntering along the streets as if they owned the
place. I avoided their gazes and wondered how the Council could be so swayed by
Cahil’s words. Perhaps a Warper had influenced them with magic, making them
more agreeable. The Citadel’s guest
quarters were located in a building behind the Council Hall and next to the
stables. The two-story structure housed many apartments and I peered through
the gloom, trying to determine which one Gede occupied. A shadow moved next to
an entrance. Moon Man stepped from a pool of darkness. “This way,” he said. No emotion showed on his
face. Gone was his sense of mischievousness and the spark of amusement in his
eyes. I missed them. “Moon Man, I—” “You must not keep Gede
waiting,” he said in a flat voice. “Your Story Weaver is ready for you.” He ushered me inside,
closing and locking the door behind us. Heat pressed against my skin as if I
stood in an oven. A roaring fire blazed in the hearth, illuminating the living
area. All the furniture had been pushed against the walls. Gede sat cross-legged
on a mat in front of the fire. A few Sandseeds sat in the cleared space in the
center of the room. “Come. Sit.” Gede
pointed to a mat in front of him. I hesitated. “You are the Soulfinder.
You should not be afraid of fire. Sit or learn nothing.” Removing my cloak and
pack, I placed them by the entrance. I longed to pull my bow from its holder
but ignored the desire. Instead, I joined Gede on the floor. Sweat ran down his
round face. His skin appeared black in the firelight. A trick of the light revealed
an intricate tattoo design connecting the scars on his bare arms. But when I
blinked, the design was gone. “As a Soulfinder you can
examine a soul, twist it, hold it and return it. You can send your soul to
others. And you can project your soul to the other worlds, and return without
any harm being done to your body,” Gede instructed. “The other worlds?” “The fire world, the sky
and the shadow world. You know about the shadow world from Moon Man. Moonlight
is the gateway to the shadow world. The sky is the final resting place of our
essence. The fire world is what some call the underworld. What it is supposed
to be under, I have no idea. But that is where the Fire Warper lives. And where
you must go.” “Why? Why must it be
me?” Gede’s disappointment
was evident by the sagging of his shoulders. “You are the Soulfinder. The Fire
Warper’s soul is there.” The heat from the room
baked into my body. My shirt clung to my back. “How do I get there?” “Through the fire.” When I didn’t say
anything, Gede continued. “Only you can go in and leave without being harmed.
The Warpers have been feeding this creature with souls from the Kirakawa
ritual. His strength grows.” The flames in the fire
pulsed with an urgency. They swelled to man-size. I looked at Gede in alarm,
but he appeared serene. “He waits for you. Go to
him,” Gede said. I stood. “No. I’m not
ready. I don’t even know how to fight him. With magic?” Gede sneered with
disdain. “You have no idea, do you? All the better.” Confused, I glanced
between Gede and the fire, expecting the Fire Warper to step from the
conflagration. “He comes for you. If
you will not go on your own, then I will provide an incentive.” He snapped his
fingers. “Moon Man, show your pupil what she needs to do.” Moon Man strode toward
the blaze. The flames reached out to him. He extended his hands and the fingers
of fire wrapped around his arms. “No,” I yelled. “Get
back.” I grabbed Moon Man’s shoulders and pulled to no avail. The tendrils of fire
advanced and crawled over my hands. A burning excitement tingled and souls
writhed in agony within the depths of the blaze. Caught between worlds.
Hundreds of them. They dragged us toward them. My first instinct had
been to resist, but their need for freedom, for relief clawed at my body. I
needed to help them. Leaning with Moon Man, I pushed forward. The fire burned
on my skin, but the pain stayed bearable and a cooling relief lurked on the
other side. If I could just get through. A hand tugged on my
shoulders. I tried to shake the person off. “It’s okay. They need me.” An arm from outside the
fire world circled my neck and squeezed. My hands still clutched Moon Man’s
shoulders, trapped in the fire world. “No. Stop. I must…” The souls ceased their
pleading and flinched. “Wait.” The word wheezed from my lips as I strained for
air. But they hid and cowered. “I’ve come to help—” “But who will help you,
my little bat?” the Fire Warper asked. I lost my grip on the
Story Weaver. Without the breath to speak, I projected, Do something! into Moon
Man’s mind. I can not. I have no
power here. The fire world blurred
into a blob of orange and yellow. I plucked at the arm around my neck, but my
hands weighed a hundred pounds. The blob transformed into black. I woke. Lying on my
back, I squinted and blinked until my eyes adjusted to the darkness. The cold
air moved like silk over my hot body. My head throbbed and the skin on my hands
and arms sizzled with pain. I drew a thread of magic and used it to soothe my
head and heal the blisters. “How about helping me,”
Leif said. He held out his arms. They had been scorched. Leif sat next to me. We
were in an alley in the Citadel. Concentrating, I pulled power and healed his
burns. My energy sapped, I leaned back against a wall as a wave of dizziness
made my head spin. “What happened?” My
voice croaked as pain ringed my neck. “I had business in the
Citadel tonight and thought I’d wait for you by the guest quarters. Out of
nowhere Valek appeared.” Leif paused, but when I failed to explain, he
continued. “He muttered a comment about a Council meeting and asked where you
were. By the firelight blazing through the windows, it wasn’t hard to figure
out. Valek picked the lock and we peeked in time to see you and Moon Man hug
the fire.” He wiped soot from his
face with a sleeve. “Valek attacked the Sandseeds inside and yelled for me to
get you. Gede screamed for me to leave you alone, that you need to learn.
Valek’s scarier than Gede, so I listened to him, but I couldn’t pull you away
from the fire. I choked off your air until you passed out. Carried you out
here.” I touched my neck. “Did
you do the same for Moon Man?” “He was too far in. I
couldn’t reach him.” Leif’s voice cracked with anguish. “Does the Fire Warper
have him?” “I don’t know. It was
strange. I’m not certain what just happened.” My brain felt overcooked and
logic stuck to the sides of my skull like a burnt crust. I needed another
opinion. “Where’s Valek?” “Disappeared. But he
left your cloak and pack. And orders.” Leif smiled ruefully. “We are to leave
the Citadel as soon as possible.” “Did he say why?” “No. Just to meet him
about two miles south of the Citadel.” I stood, wrapped my
cloak around me and shouldered my pack. My legs protested the weight. “Let’s
get our horses and supplies from the Keep.” Leif shook his head. “He
said not to return to the Keep for any reason.” I mulled over the
implications. Valek had been in the closed Council session where they
questioned Marrok. Evidence must have been gleaned, but obviously not in our
favor. So much for my promise to visit Gelsi. We fled the Citadel and
camped in a farm field west of the main road. With no supplies, and me refusing
to let Leif light a fire, a miserable night loomed. We huddled in the dark. Leif muttered over
Valek’s reason for sending us here. I cursed my own stupidity; I didn’t have to
wait for Valek. I could contact Irys myself. I asked Leif to keep
watch. “Better than freezing to
death,” he said. Lying on the hard
ground, I projected my thoughts. Irys’s tower sparked with life. And instead of
finding the Master Magician sleeping, she was bent over a handful of books in
her study. Because of the bond we shared, her thoughts were open to me. Irys, I said in her
mind. Yelena! Thank fate! Are
you okay? I’m fine. Where are you? I don’t know if I should
answer. What happened at the Council session? A long pause. Marrok
confessed. To what? He didn’t do
anything. To freeing Ferde and
conspiring against Sitia. Stunned, my mind blanked
for a moment. What…what was his motive? Just like Cahil said.
Marrok wanted to get Cahil arrested and be in charge of Cahil’s men. But… Go on, I urged. There’s a new wrinkle.
Marrok conspired to team up with Ferde and the Daviians to provoke a war with
Ixia. Why is that new? We
already know the Daviians want war. The new part is Marrok
named accomplices. Another pause. You and Leif. My body numbed.
Unbelievable. Someone must have forced Marrok to confess. It’s all a lie. Did
you feel any magic being used? How can the Council swallow that? The thoughts
tumbled one after another. Unless you have some
proof otherwise, the Council has signed an arrest warrant for you and Leif.
They wish to capture you so you can be safely executed. I almost laughed at the
words safely and executed said together. The whole situation was ridiculous. I’m not supposed to be
telling you this either. I could be incarcerated in the Keep’s dungeon if the
Council finds out. Bain and I are already being watched for disagreeing with
them. They’ve gone quite mad. That’s putting it
mildly. What are you going to
do? Irys asked. There has to be a reason
the Council has gone mad. Discovering the reason should be next. Guess I really
was going to stick my nose in Sitia’s business. Nothing like having a warrant
for your execution to get a girl motivated. But all the clans will
be alerted to your arrest warrant, and there’s already talk of a reward.
There’s no safe place for you in Sitia. I’ll figure something
out, and I think it’s best if I don’t contact you again for a while. You’re
already under suspicion. I don’t want to compromise you any further. Good point. Be very
careful, Yelena. I’ll try. But you know
me. Yes, I do. So I’ll say
it again. Be very careful. I pulled my awareness
back, breaking our connection. Exhaustion dragged at my body and I would have
drifted to sleep if Leif hadn’t bumped my arm. “Oh, no you don’t,
little sister. You were gone a long time. Tell me what’s happening.” I filled Leif in on the
details and managed to shock him into a rare silence. “So what do we do now?”
Leif finally whispered. “We wait for Valek.” Valek arrived near dawn.
He rode Kiki and had Rusalka in tow. The saddlebags bulged with supplies.
Fatigue lined his face. He peered at me. “You
know?” “Yes.” Valek dismounted. “Good.
Saves time. The Citadel and Keep are crawling with soldiers looking for you.” “How did you get the
horses out then? A secret spy maneuver?” Leif asked. “No. A distraction at
the Keep’s gate, and I bribed the guards at the Citadel’s south entrance.” Leif groaned. “Now
they’ll know where we are.” “I want them to think
you went south. But you should get as far away from here as possible.” “And go where?” Leif
asked. “Ixia.” “Why would we do that?”
Leif’s jaw set into a stubborn line. Danger flashed in
Valek’s eyes, but he bit back a sarcastic reply. “Things are happening too fast
right now. We need to regroup and plan. We need reinforcements.” Valek made sense. Ixia
was the only place where we would be safe. “We should go now,” I
said. “I’ll meet you at the
Commander’s castle.” Valek handed me Kiki’s reins. She nudged my arm, but I
ignored her. “You’re not coming with us?” “No. I still have a few
of my corps inside the Citadel. They need to be informed about what’s
happening. I’ll join you at the castle afterward.” Before he could go, I
pulled him aside. We embraced. “Stay safe,” I ordered. He smiled. “I’m not the
one getting pulled into fires, love.” “How did you know I was
in trouble?” “After I heard the
Council agree to your execution, I had an odd notion the Council was the least
of your worries.” “Thank you for saving
me.” “You keep things
interesting, love. It would be boring without you.” “Is that all I am to
you? An amusement?” “If only it was that
simple.” “I guess I’m no longer
retired.” I managed a tired smile. Valek kissed me goodbye.
“Take a roundabout route to Ixia. The borders north of the Citadel will
probably be watched.” “Yes, sir.” Valek left and the air
turned cold. I shivered. Kiki nipped at my sleeve and I opened my mind to her. I stay with Lavender
Lady. Keep warm. I’m glad you’re here, I
said. I checked my pockets for a treat. No luck. Ghost put peppermints in
bag. I laughed. Kiki always
knew where to find the mints. I marveled that Valek had taken the time to
include treats in his packing. The horses’ name for him was perfect, though. He
appeared and disappeared as if he were a true ghost. “Which way?” Leif asked. Good question. Valek
said to go around. The best direction would be to head northwest through the
fields of the Stormdance Clan’s lands. Then head north toward Ixia, skirting
the Featherstone lands surrounding the Citadel. I outlined my plan to Leif. “Lead on.” Leif’s
resignation tainted his voice. “I’ve never been to Ixia.” Throughout the day, our
passage through the fields hadn’t drawn any notice, but we still felt exposed
by the daylight. Leif and I decided to do the bulk of our traveling during the
night. After a short break for dinner, we rode through the dark hours. Between
galloping, walking and resting, the horses made progress toward our goal. We found an apple
orchard as the sun dawned. Kiki sniffed around the neat rows of trees, but they
had been picked clean of apples. Nothing grew in this area during the cold
season. Deciding to camp within the shelter of the orchard, we found a site
hidden from the few surrounding farmsteads. “Have we crossed into
Stormdance lands?” I asked Leif as I pulled Kiki’s saddle off her back. “Not yet. See that
ridge?” He pointed to the northwest. “Yes.” “That’s their border.
Stormdance lands are mostly shale. They have a few farms in the eastern portion
of their territory, but the west side is just sheets of shale on top of rock.
The storms blown in from the Jade Sea have carved fantastic sculptures along
their coast, but no one lives there. They only go to the coast to dance.” Leif
sat down and assembled sticks for a fire. I plopped next to him.
Saddle sore and drained of energy, I delayed grooming the horses. “Why do they
dance?” “It’s how they harness
the power from the storms. They capture the storm’s force in glass orbs. It’s a
dangerous dance, but the risk is worth it. If they’re successful, they protect
our land. Instead of being lashed with gale-force winds and soaked with heavy
rains, Sitia receives a mild rain. The added benefit is the Stormdancers can
use those orbs to fuel their factories.” I gestured for more
information. “Haven’t you paid
attention in class?” “My lessons kept getting
interrupted by mundane things like chasing after a Soulstealer. I’ll try harder
in the future to ignore such events.” “Boy, you’re grumpy when
you’re tired.” Leif started a small fire and poured water into his cooking pot.
“This container was made by the Stormdance Clan. They smelt ore to manufacture
different metal items, including Sitian coins. They also produce parchment and
make ink from indigo plants they grow on their eastern farms.” I mulled over Leif’s
lecture. Buying goods at the market, I hadn’t stopped to consider who might
have made them. In Ixia, every Military District had a particular product or
service contributing to the Territory which could be used for barter and trade.
It appeared Sitia worked the same way, although the Stormdancers were a new
twist. I wondered if they could harness the power of the blizzards blowing down
from the northern ice pack. Life in MD-1, MD-2 and MD-3 turned into a struggle
for survival during the cold season. Would Commander Ambrose
consider lifting his ban on magicians to alleviate the storms? He had grown up
in MD-3, working in the diamond mines so he was no stranger to the
incapacitating snowstorms. Even Valek, who had lived in MD-1, had seen his
father’s leather business destroyed by the heavy snow. I thought about the
chain of events that had started with the collapse of Valek’s father’s roof. He
didn’t have enough money to replace his equipment, feed his family and pay
taxes to the King. When Valek’s father asked the soldiers, who had come to
collect the taxes, for an extension, they had killed three of his four sons.
That act sent Valek on a mission of revenge against a King who allowed his
soldiers to murder innocent children. Becoming the best assassin in Ixia, Valek
eventually joined forces with Ambrose. Together they had defeated the King and
gained control of Ixia. If the roof hadn’t
collapsed, I wondered if the King would still be in power or if Ambrose would
have found another assassin to help him. Would I even be here? I shied away from those
thoughts and focused on our present situation. Leif and I needed to guard our
small camp. He manned the first shift while I tried to sleep. The fire had been doused
as soon as our meal was cooked. The smoke drifted on the breeze. Dreams swirled
in my mind like sparks rising from a hot fire. The dizzying images slowed for a
moment, and each time I glimpsed a horror. Stono’s twisted stomach transformed
into a necklace snake. Blood rained in the Illiais Jungle. Severed heads
floated over the sands of the plains. And fire danced on my skin. The hot prick
of each flame both seared and excited me. I jerked awake. My skin
tingled. Afraid to go back to sleep, I sent Leif to bed. Uneasy sleep came in
fits during the next two days. We kept out of sight, used small fires to cook
meals before we extinguished the flames, and shivered on the cold, hard ground.
On the third day, we crossed into the Krystal Clan’s lands and turned north for
the Ixian border. Located directly west of
the Featherstone Clan and the Citadel, the rolling terrain of the Krystals’
land was dotted with clumps of pine trees. Quarries stretched between the
wooded areas. The Krystal Clan mined marble for buildings and exported the
high-quality sand needed by the glassmakers in Booruby, leaving behind deep
pits gouged into the ground. We avoided the bustle of
activity around the quarries and journeyed through the pine forests. Another
day of travel would get us to the Ixian border. Our approach to the boundary
needed to be considered with care. Sitian soldiers could be waiting to ambush
us. And if we managed to get through, I would need to choose the right words
when addressing the Ixian guards. Or risk being arrested by them. In the end, all the
planning, all the time and energy Leif and I had spent finding the perfect spot
to cross the border without alerting the Sitians was for naught. Just as we
made our way into the hundred-foot-wide swatch of cleared land that was the
official neutral zone between Ixia and Sitia, two riders on horseback bolted
from the pine forest and into the borderland. Two things happened that
made the riders’ presence go from bad timing to a deadly coincidence. Their
horses headed straight toward us, and a whole squad of Sitian solders erupted
from the woods in armed pursuit. 18ONLY ONE OPTION
REMAINED. We spurred our horses toward the border, hoping the Ixian guards
would listen to our story before killing us. The unwelcome riders drew up
beside us as we entered Ixia’s Snake Forest. They kept pace as we penetrated
deep within the forest before stopping. As expected, the Sitian
soldiers hadn’t followed us into Ixia. “Stay where you are,” a
voice ordered from the woods. “You are surrounded.” I knew the Ixians would
be quick to find us. Just not this quick. I had chosen midmorning to cross into
Ixia to avoid the changing of the guards. At this time, there was only one team
of soldiers on duty. “Drop your weapons and
dismount,” the unseen guard said. Topaz. Garnet, Kiki
said. She whinnied a greeting. Cahil’s horse? I pulled
my bow and rounded on the riders, ignoring the orders from the guards. Two men
sat on Topaz and Moon Man rode Garnet. “What? How?” With shaking hands, one
of the riders on Topaz pulled back his hood, revealing his pale face before
collapsing. Tauno held him tight. “Marrok! What—” An arrow
struck a tree next to me. “Drop your weapons and
dismount. Or the next arrow goes into her heart!” the Ixian shouted. I tossed my bow to the
ground and gestured to the others to follow. Tauno slid off Topaz, lowered
Marrok down, then removed his bow and arrows. Moon Man frowned but released his
scimitar before getting off Garnet. Leif tossed his machete next to my staff. “Step away from the
weapons and raise your hands.” We did as instructed. I
made sure to step closer to Marrok. An arrow had pierced his side. The ring of Ixian
soldiers closed in. I counted four men and two women. Armed with crossbows and
swords, they advanced on us. “Give me one good reason
why I shouldn’t send you back to the squad of southerners?” asked an Ixian
captain. His uniform was mostly
black except for a row of yellow diamond shapes down his sleeves and pant legs.
We had crossed into Ixia’s MD-7. “Because it wouldn’t be
diplomatic to turn away a Sitian delegation,” I said. The captain laughed.
“Delegations come with honor guards not fleeing guards. Want to tell me another
one?” “I’m Liaison Yelena
Zaltana. I’m here to speak with the Commander even though my visit is not
sanctioned by the Sitian Council.” “Yelena? The ex-food
taster who saved the Commander?” the captain asked. “Yes.” “But you have magic. Why
would you want to come back to Ixia? I could kill you now and be considered a
hero.” “I see your reputation
has preceded you,” Leif said, grinning. I hoped his good humor was relief over
seeing Moon Man alive and well and not over the death threat to me. I frowned at him. Leif
didn’t understand just how precarious a situation we were in. The captain’s
boast had merit. I was quite sure the rumors about the order for my execution
had traveled throughout Ixia, while the fact that the Commander had ripped up
those orders when I agreed to be a Liaison probably had not. Especially since
everyone in Sitia and Ixia believed the Commander had stayed behind in Ixia
when the Ixian delegation visited Sitia a couple months ago. The Commander had
been disguised as Ambassador Signe, and she had no authority to cancel an
execution order. Because of the edict
that magicians were not allowed in Ixia unless invited, and any Ixians
discovered with magical powers were put to death, I had one volatile situation
on my hands. While killing us
wouldn’t be easy, the captain had what amounted to standing orders to execute
us on the spot. If he succeeded, though, he would have to face Valek. I shied
away from that line of thought. Instead, I said, “The
Commander has appointed me as a Liaison with the Council. I am a neutral third
party so I would not come with an honor guard of Sitians. I come with friends.
Those guards had been chasing him.” I gestured to Marrok’s prone form. “I need
to discuss something important with the Commander right away.” The captain’s crossbow
wavered. He appeared to be considering my answer. I pulled a thread of magic and
skimmed his mind, touching only on his surface thoughts and emotions. His ambition warred with
his intelligence. Tired of guarding the border, the captain wanted a promotion
and reassignment. Killing these southern magicians would give him enough recognition
to become a major. But what if Yelena told the truth? The Commander wouldn’t be
happy to have his Liaison killed. Still, bringing a magician close to the
Commander would be dangerous. What if Yelena lied and planned to assassinate
him? I nudged his thoughts to
trust us and to believe that if he led us to his commanding officer, he would
be doing a commendable deed. “You will accompany me
and my squad,” the captain said. “We will confiscate your weapons and horses,
and you will obey all orders. Any trouble or signs of revolt and you will be
incapacitated.” He signaled for a few of his soldiers to approach us. “Search
them. What about him?” I looked at Marrok. “Let
me attend to his wounds, Captain…” “Nytik.” Again the
captain signaled to one of his soldiers. “Lieutenant, search him for weapons.” After the lieutenant
secured Marrok’s sword, he gave me permission to examine him. The arrow had
pierced Marrok’s right side, missing his ribs. There wasn’t much blood and the
arrow hadn’t gone deep. Why was Marrok unconscious? Accessing my magic, I
scanned the rest of his body. He had been beaten. Two ribs and his collarbone
were broken. A mass of bruises covered his body and his jawbone was cracked. “Leif, I’m going to need
some help.” Healing the extensive damage in Marrok’s body would exhaust me and
I needed to reserve some energy in case Captain Nytik changed his mind. “A poultice?” Leif knelt
next to me. “No. His story threads
are frayed.” Moon Man placed his large hand on Marrok’s forehead. I glared at Moon Man. “Stay away from him. Leif, let’s deal with the physical injuries first.” Moon Man retreated. Leif
and I drew power from the source. With my brother’s help, I assumed his
injuries and repaired them. When Marrok woke, Leif gave him water and a
sustaining tonic to revive him. I questioned him on what
had happened and why he was here, but Marrok just stared at me with a wild,
unconnected look in his eyes. Worried about his mental state, I projected my
awareness into his thoughts. A cacophony of images
flooded his mind. Memories and emotions and secret thoughts were exposed,
unlocked and left to run amok, as if someone had taken a library full of books
and torn and scattered them all around the room. The sheer amount of disarray
overwhelmed Marrok. He could no longer bring two thoughts together to form a
coherent sentence. And there in the middle
of the mess, gleefully shredding what remained of Marrok’s mind, was Roze
Featherstone, First Magician. She turned to me. There
you are. I knew I’d find you in here if I looked hard enough. Now I can
discover where you’ve been hiding. She advanced, but I held
my position. I’m not a memory, Roze. You won’t be able to extract anything from
me. I wouldn’t be so sure.
Too much confidence can be a weakness. You tried twice before
and failed. I’m feeling pretty certain about my prediction. Why did you destroy
Marrok’s mind? She glanced around at
the chaos. He’s a criminal. And you shouldn’t be so shocked. It’s no different
than when you destroyed the Soulstealer’s mind. I ignored the jab.
Marrok isn’t a criminal and you know it. Did you force him to make a false
confession? He was honest, unlike
you. You’ve been lying to us and to yourself, thinking you can be a benefit to
Sitia. Now the Council knows the danger and I have permission to eliminate the
threat you pose. Again I failed to be
impressed with her boast. How did Marrok and the others find us? Roze smiled. You’ll have
to figure that out on your own. Are you trying to tell
me I have a spy in my midst? Dishonest people tend to
find each other, Yelena. It’s the price you pay for associating with the
criminal element. Frankly, I was surprised the Council hadn’t given me
permission to neutralize you before. After all, how can they trust the heart
mate of the most feared man in Sitia? Think about it. How could you be a
Liaison when it’s obvious where your loyalties lie? First sign of trouble and
you’re running for home. I will tell you one thing. You won’t be safe in Ixia. I didn’t say anything,
but she laughed. I have found what I needed. Good luck trying to put the pieces
of Marrok’s mind back together. She faded from his
consciousness. Standing in the middle of the destruction she had left behind, I
knew restoring order would be an impossible task. I returned to my body. There
was nothing I could do. Roze had the Council’s
support against me. If I hadn’t known any better, the web of lies Cahil spun
made complete sense. Roze even made sense. If she was as dedicated to Sitia as
she claimed, then her efforts to discredit me were valid. Why trust me? I’m a
Soulfinder, the one type of magician with an evil history. It would take a
major effort and physical evidence to counter Cahil now. “Moon Man, how did you
find us?” I asked. “Logic. I knew you would
go to Ixia and I knew you would not cross the Avibian Plains in order to go
around Featherstone lands. So that left west. Tauno found your trail in the
Krystal lands.” It was too much of a
coincidence. “But Leif saw you disappear into the fire. And what about Marrok
and the horses? How did you get them?” He had help and must have been sent by
Cahil or Roze. Moon Man worked for them now. “Gede pulled me from the
fire. Marrok had been dumped in the infirmary and left unguarded. The horses
came when we needed them.” It still sounded too
easy. “Why did Gede insist I go into the fire?” “You will have to ask
him. He is your Story Weaver now. I can not guide you.” His tone held sadness. “Why did you go into the
fire, Moon Man?” Leif asked. “Gede is the only
surviving leader of my clan. I follow his orders.” “Even when your life’s
at stake?” “Yes. Loyalty to one’s
clan comes before personal safety.” “Like being bait for a
necklace snake?” Leif gazed at me. “Exactly,” Moon Man
said. “Can your man walk?”
Captain Nytik asked. He had been standing nearby, watching us with distaste
creasing his forehead. “We need to get moving.” Marrok couldn’t walk,
but he could ride. Kiki and Topaz’s heads were together. I connected to Topaz,
and asked, Go home? Miss Peppermint Man? No. Stay. Why? Topaz had been with
Cahil for a long time. Bad smell. Blood. I turned to the captain.
“He’ll sit on his horse.” With the lieutenant in
the lead, Moon Man, Leif, Tauno and I followed. The captain and his remaining
soldiers formed a rear guard. We traveled north through the Snake Forest. On a map, the forest resembled a thin rope of green that undulated along the
entire east-west border from the Jade Sea to the Emerald Mountains. After a
half day of travel, we arrived at a guard station and barracks. Another round of explanations
had to be endured before we could care for the horses and eat lunch. We sat in
the middle of the guard house’s dining area surrounded by fifty suspicious
soldiers who shot us hard glances between bites of food. Moon Man guided Marrok
with a gentle patience. Basic skills like eating and caring for himself would
all have to be relearned. During our cold meal of
venison jerky and bread, I explained to my companions about Ixia’s uniform
system. “Everyone who lives in Ixia must wear a uniform. The standard colors
for the shirts, pants and skirts are black and white, but each Military
District has its own color. We’re in MD-7, which is governed by General
Rasmussen, who reports to the Commander. Rasmussen’s color is yellow and you’ll
see a line of yellow diamond shapes somewhere on the uniforms.” I gestured to
the guards around us. Their uniforms matched the captain’s, but the rank
insignia on their collars were different. “A cook’s uniform is all white with
diamonds printed side by side across the shirt. The color of the diamonds tells
you which district the cook works in. Red is the Commander’s color.” “Who’s that?” Leif
pointed to woman heading our way. She wore all black, but had two red diamonds
stitched onto her collar. Her blond hair was pulled into a tidy bun. She held
two bows in her hands. “She’s an adviser to the
Commander.” I stood and grinned. She tossed me my bow. I
caught it. The noise in the room ceased the instant it hit my hand. “Okay, Puker, let’s see
if you’ve been practicing,” she said with an exultant yet predatory glint in
her eyes. “Adviser Maren, didn’t
your mother teach you it’s not nice to call people names?” I hefted my bow.
“Especially not armed people.” She waved away my
comment. “We’ll deal with the niceties later. Stuck in this backwoods, I
haven’t had a decent bow fight in a long time. Come on!” She beckoned me to
follow as she threaded her way through the dining room. “Should we be worried?”
Leif asked. “She taught me all her
tricks, but I’ve learned a few new ones since our last fight. This should
be…interesting.” “Play nice,” Leif said. I navigated through the
quiet room. It erupted with sound as soon as I left. A mass of soldiers
followed me outside. Maren stretched her
muscles before picking up her bow. Tall and lean, she made a formidable
opponent. She swung her six-foot staff with deft hands. At a slight
disadvantage, my bow measured only five feet. I removed my cloak and rubbed my
hands along the smooth wood of my weapon, setting my mind into the zone of
concentration I used when fighting. Not quite magical in origin, this mental
state kept my mind open to my opponent’s intentions. As soon as I was ready
she attacked with two quick strikes toward my ribs. I blocked both, countering
with a strike to her arms. The fight began in earnest. The rhythmic crack of
our weapons filled the air. I ducked a temple strike and thrust the end of my
bow staff toward her stomach. She stepped back and attempted to trip me with
her bow. I jumped and did a front kick in midair, hitting her shoulder. Maren
retreated a few steps before coming at me with a series of jabs. “Did you get tired of
losing to Janco all the time and request a transfer?” I asked, knocking her bow
aside and executing a flurry of temple strikes. Maren had been a captain in the
Commander’s Special Forces, along with my friends Ari and Janco. “I was promoted,” she
said. She met my assault and feinted to the right. Sensing her intentions,
I ignored the feint and stopped the blow to my head just in time. “Promoted to
adviser? Sounds shady. Bribe anyone I know?” “Once I beat Valek, I
could choose any job in Ixia.” I froze for a moment in
surprise and she hit my upper arm, knocking me over. I rolled, avoiding her
jabs, but she pressed her advantage. Two moves later, she sat on my chest and
pressed her bow to my neck. The crowd of soldiers cheered. “Concede?” “Yes.” She grinned and pulled
me to my feet. “Rematch?” “Give me a minute.” I
brushed the dirt from my clothes. “What’s with the skirt?” “It’s not a skirt. See?”
Pulling the fabric apart, I revealed the pants. She snorted with
amusement. “We need to get you back into uniform, Yelena.” Her use of my proper
name meant that I had at least impressed her with my fighting skills. Which
reminded me of her comment that had thrown me off guard. “What’s all this about
you beating Valek? You’re adequate with a bow, but, come on, Valek?” Valek had issued a
challenge to everyone in Ixia. Beat him in a fight with the weapon of your
choice and win the right to become his second in command. Many soldiers had
tried and failed to win the right. “Adequate?” She laughed.
“I guess when I beat you again, you’ll up it to decent.” “That’s if you beat me,
and you haven’t answered my question.” “I had help. Happy now?
Valek never said we had to beat him one on one. Three of us got together and we
won the right to pick any position in Ixia. I chose to become an adviser for
the Commander. I’m in MD-7 on a temporary assignment to deal with some—” she
glanced at the soldiers “—issues.” Three against one was
still good odds for Valek. I wondered who the other two were, and the answer
came to me. “Please don’t tell me Ari and Janco were your partners.” Her chagrined expression
confirmed my guess. “Janco was insufferably
smug before. There’ll be no living with him,” I said. “Valek’s challenge has
been modified. Since Janco and Ari have been promoted to Valek’s seconds, if
other soldiers want to claim the second positions they must beat Ari and Janco,
but no more than six can attack at one time. Valek’s seconds should be able to
handle three each. If a soldier wishes to fight Valek alone, he must beat one
of us to have the chance.” “Having Janco in charge
when Valek’s away is a scary state of affairs.” “Not as scary as when
you’re begging for mercy.” Maren swung her bow. I blocked and countered.
Soon we were engaged in another brisk fight. But this time I stayed focused. I
swept her feet out from under her and stepped on her bow before she could roll
away. I won the match and received a few cheers from my brother, who had joined
the audience. Moon Man and the others stood apart. He watched me with no
expression on his face. “Tie breaker?” Maren
didn’t wait for an answer. Round three began. We fought until we
reached an impasse. Leif’s voice interrupted
us before we started another match. “As much as I enjoy watching my sister get
beaten, we really need to talk to the Commander. You’re wasting time.” Maren studied Leif with
a dubious expression. “I don’t see a family resemblance.” I introduced my brother
to Maren. “Although I hate to admit it, Leif’s right. We need to go.” Maren shook her head.
“General Rasmussen wants to talk with you first. These soldiers have orders to
keep you here until he gives you permission to leave.” “But I’ve explained—” “Everything but exactly
what you need to discuss with the Commander.” “That’s classified.” “That’s what I was
afraid of.” Maren leaned on her bow. “The general has become…cautious in his
advancing years. He won’t let you leave unless you tell him the reason you came
to Ixia.” From her choice of
words, I could tell there was more to the story. She worked for the Commander
but was helping the general, and probably reporting every bit of information to
Valek. “We’ll talk to the
general then,” I agreed. “Great. I’ll schedule an
audience with him tomorrow.” “Tomorrow? We have
pressing business.” “I’m sorry. The general
retires early. He’ll see no one tonight.” Leif opened his mouth to
protest. I touched his arm, stopping him. Maren and I had dueled the afternoon
away, and I suspected she had a good reason for it. “All right. We’ll wait
until tomorrow. How long will it take us to get to the manor? Perhaps it would
be best to leave tonight?” “No. It would be best to
leave in the morning. It’s a half-day’s ride.” Maren led us to a brick cottage
with a stable nearby. “You can stay in our guest quarters. This location is a
popular spot for travelers from MD-6 to stop.” The castle complex was
located in the southern end of MD-6. Two-and-a-half days’ ride directly north
of Sitia’s Citadel. I found it interesting the two centers of political power
remained physically close while their governing styles were worlds apart. We entered the cottage.
Although the furnishings in the main room were sparse, it looked comfortable
enough. Guards stationed themselves outside, but one lieutenant followed us in. “Beds! They have beds
with feather mattresses,” Leif called from a bedroom. “There is wood in the
back, and you can dine with the soldiers for your evening meal. I’ll let the
general know when you’re arriving.” Maren left with the Lieutenant close on her
heels, but two guards remained positioned by the front door. A quick peek out the
side and back windows revealed the presence of more guards. We were surrounded.
I thought about Maren’s comments. A few of the things she said didn’t add up. I
wondered what she planned to do. All I knew were my plans, and they didn’t
include visiting the general. I joined my traveling
companions in the bedroom. Moon Man sat next to Marrok, who lay on his back,
staring at the ceiling. Tauno perched on the edge of a chair. Leif had stretched out
across one of the beds. A sigh of contentment escaped his lips. “I haven’t
slept in a bed since…since…I can’t even remember!” “Don’t get too
comfortable,” I said. He groaned. “Now what?” I put a finger over my
lips then pointed to my forehead. Too many ears around, I said in his mind. What’s going on? he
asked. We are not going to
waste time with the general, Moon Man said. I scowled at him in
surprise, forgetting that he could link his mind to ours. Since you have chosen
Gede as your guide, I had to channel through Leif. I ignored Leif’s
confusion. Unchannel then. This is a private conversation. Moon Man remained quiet
for a while. I will withdraw. Care to tell me what
that was about? Leif asked. I filled him in on my
conversation with Roze. Moon Man’s a spy. No way. You can’t
believe that. Are you saying Roze is
lying? No. I’m saying maybe
you’re overreacting. Moon Man admitted Gede is his boss. Their clan was
decimated by the Vermin so Gede and Roze want the same thing. Gede probably
sent Moon Man to keep an eye on you. And that’s different
than spying how? He’s probably here to
protect you. To keep you safe until your name can be cleared. It would be nice just to
ask him, but I’m sure he has a vague non-answer already prepared. That’s harsh, Yelena. He
has witnessed the massacre of his clan. Although, I do wish for the old Moon
Man back, Leif said. I’ll take his teasing, cryptic advice and mysterious
arrivals over his somber demeanor any day. My brother put another
pillow under his head. Looks like we’ll be in Ixia for a while. Leif Liana Ixia
has a nice ring to it. If they don’t execute me for being a magician, perhaps I
can find a job at an Ixian apothecary. Do they have uniforms for an
apothecarist? We’re going back to
Sitia. To certain death? No
thank you. Perhaps the Commander will need one of my tisanes? We need to talk to the
Commander and rendezvous with Valek. I hoped. Surrounded by guards.
Remember? That’s right. We’re outnumbered.
It’s a shame we don’t have magic to help us. A mage could put the guards to
sleep. Or better yet we could use Curare. Too bad I don’t have any blowpipes in
my backpack. Sarcasm is an ugly
trait, little sister. You should avoid it. And you give up too
easy. And trust too easy, but I wouldn’t say it to him. I blame the feather
mattress. It has sucked all my motivation. If there is a comfortable bed in my
apartment above my apothecary shop, I will be quite content living in Ixia. Leif. I warned. All right. All right.
I’ll make you a few blowpipes just in case we can’t put everyone to sleep. He
grumbled to himself as he rolled out of bed and went over to his pack. I debated what I should
tell Tauno and Moon Man. As long as we didn’t have a fire, I could warn them
about my plans. And I wanted them with me so I could keep an eye on them. “We should go to bed
early tonight,” I said to them. “To rest for tomorrow.” They appeared to
understand my hint. Once the Ixian soldiers had gone to bed, we would make our
escape. I planned to be at the
Commander’s castle before the MD-7 guards realized we had gone. Approaching the
main gate of the castle complex without an Ixian guide would create instant
suspicion, but that was a problem I would deal with when it arose. After having dinner with
the soldiers, I eyed our new set of guards with care, trying to size them up. I
knew Tauno and Moon Man wouldn’t pass for Ixian, so either Leif or I would have
to wear a uniform and pose as a soldier until we reached the Commander.
Ideally, I should disguise myself, but at five feet four inches tall, I doubted
I would find a uniform that fit. Not bothering to build a
fire, we retired early. I slept for a few hours. The luxury of being in an
actual bed made it difficult to rouse. But I forced myself to get up and woke
the others, gesturing for quiet. Leif didn’t have the
skills to put our guards to sleep, but he could complement my energy. I held
his hand and projected my awareness to the circle of soldiers. Three men and
one woman stood watch. Reaching farther, I connected to the horses in the
stable. Ready? I asked Kiki. Yes. The two stable lads
slept on bales of hay, content to have horses in their stables. To them the
musky smell of horse, manure and straw equaled a feather bed. I swept the barracks
with my mind, seeking trouble. At two hours past midnight, the garrison was
calm. Since I couldn’t put the entire garrison into a deep sleep, I hoped we
were far enough away not to wake them. I returned to the sleeping lads and sent
them into a heavy slumber. The guards who ringed
our quarters proved resistant to my mental suggestion. Their Ixian training
fought my magic and I feared I would have to resort to using the Curare. Before
I broke the connection, one of the guards jerked in surprise as a sharp point
jabbed his neck. His vision spun as the drug entered his blood. I pulled away
before the man passed out. Leif released my hand. “Time to go,” I said,
moving fast. We had help and my heart soared. One person always knew when I needed
him. I threw open the door, expecting Valek, but found Maren instead. She
dragged one of the guards into the guest quarters, and was soon followed by
three others who each carried in a prone form, dumping them onto the floor. Her companions wore MD-7
uniforms. “Guess we had the same
idea. My men will pose as your guards while we head toward the castle,” she
explained. “Will they be out long?”
I poked one of the men on the floor with the toe of my boot. “A good six hours. I
used Valek’s sleeping potion on them.” She smiled with a mischievous glint in
her gray eyes. “Adviser Maren, you
aren’t doing a little moonlighting with Valek’s corps now, are you?” I tsked
with mock concern. “How did you know when to strike?” Maren gave me an odd
look. “When the horses left the stable, I thought you might be ready to go.” “Are you coming with us?
Can you ride?” “Yes. I have a horse
nearby. I need to return to the general’s manor house before you’re discovered
missing. I’ll take you to MD-6’s border and introduce you to the soldiers at
the way station there. They will take you to the Commander’s castle. Your
weapons are outside. Let’s go.” Leif, Moon Man, Tauno
and I carried our saddles until we were far enough away to risk the noise. Moon
Man and Marrok rode on Topaz. Marrok still couldn’t speak, but he mounted when
Moon Man asked him to. Maren proved to be an
adept rider and we covered the distance to MD-6 in record time. Before she
alerted the way-station guards, I asked her, “What will happen when General
Rasmussen finds out we escaped?” “Once you’re with the
Commander, he can’t admit to trying to delay you, because he’ll have to answer
why. He’ll probably have his people keep the whole incident quiet. Valek will
most likely let him believe he got away with it. Until Valek needs something
from him.” Another predatory grin spread on her face. Our transfer to MD-6 and
into the hands of General Hazel’s soldiers proceeded with quick efficiency. The
new guide wore a captain’s uniform with blue diamonds instead of Captain Nytik’s
yellow. In fact, the whole trip
to the Commander’s castle went smoothly. Admitted into his complex without any
trouble, I should have savored those few quiet hours. Because after we met with
Commander Ambrose, nothing went right. 19AFTER OUR ARRIVAL at the
castle complex, we waited in the outer courtyard. We received many curious
glances from the castle’s denizens, and I knew the servants would soon be
gossiping and laying bets about who we were and why we had come. They probably
didn’t recognize me without my food taster’s uniform on. Grooms from the stable
appeared to take the horses. I wanted to stay with Kiki, but we were instructed
to enter the castle to await a meeting with the Commander. My companions exclaimed
over the odd-shaped structure. With its multiple levels of unusual geometric
shapes, the castle resembled a child’s toy. Balanced on the rectangular base,
the other floors of the castle were a combination of squares, triangles and
even cylinders built on top of one another in a haphazard fashion. On some
levels all three shapes could be found. The windows of the building also
reflected the architect’s fondness for geometry, including octagons and ovals. It had been a year since
I last saw the castle. Once part of my everyday routine, I had grown used to
its strange style. Now, the sight of the structure jolted me and unease
fluttered through my body. The four towers at the
corners gave the viewer some sense of symmetry. They rose a few stories higher
than the main building and colored glass decorated their windows. I paused. The
Magician’s Keep also had four towers in the corners and I wondered about the
similarity. A servant led us to an
austere waiting room with minimal comforts. Served refreshments, I
automatically tested the drink for poisons, surprising Leif when I gargled the
juice. He had been staring at the blank walls, probably wondering where all the
legendary paintings and gilded mirrors had gone to. I assumed the Commander had
destroyed all the treasures from the King’s era, but, remembering a comment
Cahil had made to me about the amount of money needed to support Ixia, I
wondered if Commander Ambrose had traded them for services instead. “Did you live here?”
Leif asked. I nodded. “For two
years.” One of them in the dungeon. Not many people in Sitia knew about Reyad.
I preferred to keep the details of that time to myself. However, most Ixians
were aware I killed Reyad. “Where did you stay?” “I had a room in Valek’s
suite.” Leif shot me an
incredulous look. “Boy, you worked fast.” “And you assume too
much.” One day I would tell Leif and my parents about my ordeal, but not today. Leif grew thoughtful.
Tauno napped in one of the wooden chairs. I marveled at how the Sandseed could
wedge himself into a small space and still look comfortable. During our time
together, he had adapted to being within walls. Moon Man, on the other
hand, fidgeted in his chair. I couldn’t determine if his discomfort grew from
being in a confined space or from my hostility. He claimed I had a new Story
Weaver. It was an easy way for him to avoid telling me the truth. Knowing we were headed
toward Ixia, Cahil must have planned Marrok’s escape. The Sitian guards who
chased them were probably part of the ruse, too. I longed to pace the
room. The wait stretched as long as a necklace snake. There was nothing to
avert me from my list of worries. Valek remained near the top. Where was he? By
this time, he should be back in Ixia. Thoughts circled in my mind. To distract
myself, I sat in one of the hard chairs near the only window. Outside, a
portion of the barracks and practice yard where the Commander’s soldiers lived
and trained was visible, reminding me of Ari and Janco, my soldier friends who,
according to Maren, were now Valek’s seconds in command. I stood, desiring
action. Perhaps I should just go to the Commander’s office. I knew how to get
there, and I hated this unsettled sensation sloshing in the pit of my stomach.
Why was I so on edge? Understanding crashed
through me and I needed to sit down again. Inside these walls I had always been
a prisoner. Either by the bars of the dungeon or by the belief I had ingested a
poison called Butterfly’s Dust, knowing I couldn’t get far without the daily
antidote keeping me alive. And all the logic in the world couldn’t convince my
body I was free. Finally, an adviser
arrived to lead us though the main corridors of the castle. Leif gasped in
surprise when we entered the main hall. Greeted by the sight of the silk and
gold tapestries hanging in tatters, I sympathized with my brother’s reaction.
Black paint stained the once famous quilts that had symbolized each province
during the King’s era. They now represented the takeover. The old provinces had
been torn apart and borders redrawn into eight neat Military Districts. Commander Ambrose’s
disdain for opulence, excess and greed was evident in every part of the stone
building. Stripped of the trappings of royalty, the castle had been robbed of
its soul, and reassigned as a basic utilitarian structure. The transformation of
the throne room was another example of his disregard. Instead of lavish
decorations and thick carpets, the room buzzed with the activity of numerous
advisers and military officers from every Military District in Ixia, with no
sign of a dais or throne in sight. With desks wedged in tight together, getting
the five of us through the room turned into an exercise in agility as we
threaded our way toward the back. The Commander’s office
matched the rest of the castle. Stark, neat and organized, the room lacked
personality but reflected its occupant perfectly. Wearing a tailored black
uniform with real diamonds glittering from his collar, Commander Ambrose stood
when we entered. I studied his clean-shaven face as I introduced him to my
companions, detecting only a faint resemblance to Ambassador Signe. As if they
were truly cousins instead of the same person. The power of his gaze,
though, remained the same. My heart flipped in my chest when he focused his
gold-colored eyes on me. “This is an unexpected
visit, Liaison Yelena. I trust you have a good reason for bypassing standard
protocol,” he said, raising a single slender eyebrow. “An excellent reason,
sir. I believe Sitia will try to mount an offensive against you.” The Commander glanced at
my companions as he considered my words. More gray had infiltrated his black
hair, which had been cropped so short it looked as if Kiki had grazed on it. Walking to his office’s
door, the Commander called to one of his men. “Adviser Reydon, please
escort our guests to the dining hall for lunch and then to the guest suite.” He
turned to the others. “The Liaison will dine with me and meet up with you
later.” Leif looked to me for
guidance. I opened my mind to him. Do you want us to stay?
he asked. I don’t think you have a
choice. He isn’t my Commander. I
don’t have to listen to him. A childish, stubborn
remark. Perhaps Leif felt left out. Be a good guest and do as he says. I’ll let
you know what happens. You sure you don’t need
backup? This guy creeps me out. Leif, I warned. He left the office with
obvious reluctance, shooting me an annoyed frown before following the adviser. When the room emptied,
the Commander gestured for me to sit in the chair in front of his desk.
Unnerved, I perched on the edge. He served me a cup of
tea before settling behind his desk. I sipped the drink with care, testing for
poisons. In command of a powerful military and with eight ambitious generals to
oversee, the Commander needed a food taster on his staff. “Why have you come?” he
asked. “I told you. Sitia plans—” He stopped me with a
dismissive wave. “You know that’s old news. Why are you really here?” “To ask you to delay a
first strike.” “Why?” I paused, gathering my
thoughts. Only logic would persuade the Commander. “The Sitian Council has had
a dramatic change of opinion from wanting to trade and communicate with you to
being terrified of you.” “Yes. They’re very
unstable.” “But not that unstable.
They’re being influenced.” “With magic?” The
Commander said the word as if it pained him. General Brazell and Mogkan—my
kidnappers—had used magic and Theobroma on him to gain control of his mind
despite his ban on magicians. Though his firm censure softened, the Commander
still viewed magicians as untrustworthy. Consenting to let me act as Liaison
for Ixia had been his first and only concession. Valek had theorized the
Commander feared magicians, but I believed it had more to do with what the
Commander referred to as his mutation. Born with a female body, he believed his
soul was a man’s and he worried a magician would expose him. But from my
interaction with him when he had been disguised as the female Ambassador Signe,
I had sensed the presence of two souls within his body. Standing in front of
him, I suppressed the desire to project into his mind, avoiding even a surface
sweep. It would be a serious breach of protocol. Besides, it felt wrong. “Magic could be a
factor, but there could be another reason or even a person influencing them. At
this point I don’t know, but I want to find out. If you kill them all, you might
not solve the problem and those who replace them will be worse,” I said. “Sounds rather vague.
Perhaps you have more information on this?” The Commander flourished a scroll
then handed it to me. I unrolled the
parchment. Each word I read increased my concern and outrage. “And if you notice—” he
leaned over and tapped the bottom “—it’s signed by all the Councilors, but it’s
lacking two Master Magicians’ signatures. Curious.” Curious wouldn’t be the
word I would use. Disastrous sounded more fitting. I worried about Irys and
Bain. If the Council tried to coerce their signatures, what had happened to
them by refusing? I focused on the paper in my hand. Fretting wouldn’t help
Irys and Bain. In short, the letter
warned the Commander about my renegade status and suggested my treasonous
companions and I be killed on sight. Probably the reason Roze had been
confident I wouldn’t be safe in Ixia. “They seek to undermine
your credibility all the while planning to attack me. Do they think I’m a
simpleton?” He relaxed back in his chair and sighed. “Explain to me exactly
what’s going on.” “If I knew exactly, then
I wouldn’t have sounded so vague.” My turn to sigh. I wiped a hand over my
face, thinking how best to tell the Commander about Cahil. Did I mention the
Fire Warper or not? I had no idea what role he played in all this. Exactly the
problem. So I explained about
Ferde’s escape with Cahil’s help and how Cahil had turned it all around to
implicate Marrok, Leif and me. “Sounds like
assassinating the Council would be a good deed for Sitia,” the Commander said. “That would give Cahil
and his cohorts evidence they were right to suspect you. Sitia would rally
behind them in support. Valek agrees with me. He hasn’t targeted the Council
yet. He’s on his way here.” If the Commander was
surprised, he didn’t show it. “So you already delayed my preemptive strike. Yet
you have no proof.” “None. That’s why I
wanted you to wait before launching another attack. We need more information.
Valek and I—” The office door opened.
Star came into the room, carrying a tray of food. The Commander’s food taster
froze in shock when she recognized me. My own pulse skipped when I saw my old
uniform being worn by her. And not just any woman, but the former Captain Star,
who had been the leader of a successful black market and racketeering ring
before Valek uncovered her operation. Star stared daggers at
me. Her goon’s unsuccessful attempt on my life had led to her capture. Already
warned about Valek’s setup, Star could have disappeared into her own underground
network. Instead, she had let petty vengeance rule her and now she tasted food
for the Commander. “At least you survived
the training,” I said to her. She looked away. The
long red curls of her hair had been tied into a sloppy knot, and her prominent
nose led the way as she walked. Putting the tray onto the Commander’s desk, she
performed a fast taste and left. Even though two lunches had been set on the
tray, she tested only the one. I eyed my food. Star
seemed surprised at my presence, but that could have been an act. She could
still be nursing her desire for revenge. The Commander handed me a plate. Not
to appear rude, I took a tentative bite of the meat pie, chewing slowly and
rolling the food around my tongue. The beef was flavored with rosemary and
ginger and lacked poisons. At least, I couldn’t taste the poisons I remembered.
I lost my appetite when I remembered Moon Man’s comment about learning by doing
and how easy it was to forget dictated information. We talked about minor
things while eating. When I complimented his new chef on the lemon-wedge
dessert, he told me Sammy now held the position. “Rand’s fetch boy?” I
asked. He was thirteen years old. “He worked with Rand for
four years and it became evident only he knew all the ingredients in Rand’s secret recipes.” “But he’s so young.” The
kitchen during meal times had been a cacophony of ordered chaos guided by Rand’s firm hand. “I gave him a week to
prove he could do it. He’s still there.” I had forgotten age
didn’t matter to the Commander. He could have forced Sammy to divulge the
recipes, but he respected ability over experience or gender. My young friend,
Fisk the beggar boy turned entrepreneur, would have flourished in Ixia. When we finished lunch,
the Commander moved the tray aside and repositioned his snow cat statue. Glints
of silver sparked from the black stone. The single piece of decoration in the
room, the cat was one of Valek’s carvings. Killing a snow cat was considered
impossible. The citizens of Ixia avoided the lethal creatures living on the
northern ice pack. The cat’s preternatural ability to escape death made it
feared. Commander Ambrose was
the only person to successfully hunt and kill one, and in doing so, he proved
to himself that despite his mutation he could infiltrate a man’s world just as
he had lived among the snow cat’s world. He believed his female body had just
been a disguise for his soul. Only the Commander and I knew about his hunt and
dual personalities. He had sworn me to secrecy when I had rescued him from Mogkan’s
mind control. “Before Star came in
with lunch you mentioned getting more information about the Sitian Council. Now
that you’re a wanted criminal, how do you plan to achieve that?” the Commander
asked. “I had hoped to
infiltrate the Citadel and talk to one of the Councilors. But I fear the Master
Magician’s magic would discover me, so now I want to borrow Valek and a few of
his men. They could assist us in contacting the Councilor.” “Which one?” “Bavol Cacao Zaltana, my
clan’s Councilman. He has been my strongest supporter and if you see by his
signature…” I picked the Sitian letter up and pointed to his name. “He didn’t
include his family name, Cacao, in his signature, so it’s not an official
inscription. I believe it’s a message to me that he can be approached.” The Commander stared
across the room as if considering my words. After a while, he brought his
attention back to me. “You want me to risk my chief of security to help you
gain information. All the while I’m to do nothing and hope the Sitians don’t
attack before you discover what’s going on?” “Yes.” Although, the way
the Commander said it made the situation sound terrible. There was no sense
sugarcoating it. And the last thing I wanted was to put Valek or anyone else at
risk. But it had to be done. The Commander rested his
chin on his folded hands. “The information isn’t worth the risk. I could wait
to see what develops with the Council and then decide how to handle it.” “But—” A warning flashed in his
eyes. “Yelena, why would you care what happens to the Council? They have turned
their backs on you. You can’t go back to Sitia. You would provide the most help
here with me as my adviser.” An unexpected offer. I
considered. “What about my companions?” “Magicians?” A small
crease of distaste pinched his forehead. “Two.” “They could be part of
your staff if you want. But they can not use their magic against any Ixians
without my permission.” “What about my magic?
Would you place the same restrictions on me?” The Commander’s gaze
didn’t waver. “No. I trust you.” I froze for a moment in
shock. His trust was an honor, and, considering the recent reaction from the
Sitian Council about me, the temptation to become his adviser warred with my
emotions. It would probably be easier to stay and help defeat Cahil from this
side of the border. “Don’t answer right
away. Talk to your companions. I should have news from Valek soon. We’ll meet
again then. In the meantime, do you need anything?” I thought about our
dwindling supplies. If we left, we would need more provisions. “Could you
exchange Sitian coins for Ixian?” I rummaged in my pack, placing various loose
objects on his desk to get them out of my way. “Give them to Adviser
Watts. You remember my accountant?” “Yes.” The covering on
Opal’s bat had come undone and was all over the bottom of my pack. I removed
the glass animal and freed it from the wrapping. The Commander gasped. His focus was riveted on
the statue in my hand; his fingers poised as if to snatch the bat. “May I see?” he asked. “Sure.” With a snap of motion,
he plucked the statue from my palm. He spun the bat, examining it from every
possible angle. “Who made this?” “My friend, Opal. She’s
a glass artist in Sitia.” “It glows like there is
molten fire on the inside. How did she make it?” Trying to comprehend his
words, I stared. He saw the inner glow. Impossible. Only magicians could see
the light. The Commander had
magical powers. 20THE GLASS BAT GLOWED for
the Commander. I had theorized only magicians could see the inner light. But I
could be wrong. Maybe I hadn’t tested the bat on enough people. If the
Commander had magical power, his magic would have raged uncontrolled and flamed
out by now, killing him. The Masters in Sitia would have felt him long ago.
Irys would have sensed it when she stood next to him. Shaking those ridiculous
thoughts out of my mind, I answered the Commander’s questions about
glassmaking. “But what causes it to
glow?” I knew if I said magic,
he would drop it as if burned. Instead, I told him the internal workings were a
family secret. He passed the glass bat
to me. “Extraordinary. Next time you see your friend, please ask her to make
one for me.” I found the coins I had
been searching for, and repacked my bag. Only when I had slung my pack onto my
shoulders did I realize I forgot to rewrap the bat. The Commander picked up
the coins, walked to his office door and opened it. Summoning Adviser Watts, he
asked him to exchange my money and to show me to the guest area. Dismissed, I followed Watts into the throne room, holding the bat in my hand. The adviser noticed the creature
when handing me the Ixian coins. “Sitian art?” he asked. I nodded. “Not a bad likeness, but
rather dull. I thought the Sitians had more imagination than that.” I mulled over the
Commander and Adviser Watts’s comments as I followed Watts through the castle.
Still unable to bend my mind around the Commander’s ability to see the glow, I
had to postpone further ruminations when I entered the guest suite. Leif peppered me with a
million questions the moment I stepped through the door. The guest quarters
were rather lavish by Ixian standards. The main room contained a comfortable
sofa and soft chairs as well as a number of desks and tables. A faint odor of
disinfectant scented the air. Four bedrooms branched off from the living area,
two on each side. Sunlight streamed in through the circle of windows in the
back wall, warming the empty room. I stopped Leif’s
questions with a look. “Where are the others?” He pointed to the second
door on the right. “They’re all resting. Moon Man and Marrok are in the big
room next to Tauno’s.” Double doors marked the
entrance to Moon Man’s room. “Which one is mine?” “Second door on the
left, next to me.” I went into my room.
Leif trailed along like a lost puppy. A simple layout of a bed, armoire, desk
and night table all made of oak decorated the small interior. The bedding
looked fresh and inviting. I stroked the soft quilt. The air smelled of pine.
The lack of dust made me remember Valek’s housekeeper, Margg. She had plagued
my existence when I first became the food taster, refusing to clean my room and
writing nasty messages in the dust. I hoped I wouldn’t run into her during this
trip. Leif’s questions began
again, and I filled him in on what had happened in the Commander’s office, neglecting
to mention his ability to see the bat’s glow. I wasn’t convinced that the
Commander had magic, and certainly wouldn’t try to persuade Leif or anyone
else. “Black and red really
aren’t my colors. Which Military District has green? Maybe I can open my shop
there,” Leif said. Leif’s joke wasn’t as
funny now. “MD-5 is green and black. General Brazell used to govern the
district, but now he’s in the Commander’s dungeon.” I wonder who was promoted. “What are we going to do
next?” “I don’t know.” Leif pretended to be
shocked. “But you’re our fearless leader. You have it all planned out. Right?” I shrugged. “I’m going
to take a long hot bath. How’s that?” “Sounds good. Can I
come?” “As long as you promise
not to spend all day in there.” I gathered some clean clothes. “Why would I?” “You thought the feather
mattress was a luxury. Wait until you see the Commander’s baths.” The hot water soaked my
aches away. Leif joined me in the
corridor with a contented smile on his face. “I won’t have any trouble adjusting
to life in Ixia. Those pools and the overhead duct, pouring water…amazing. Does
every town have a similar bathhouse?” “No. Only the
Commander’s castle has such luxury. It’s a holdover from the King’s regime. The
Commander usually disdains the extravagance, yet it remains.” During my soak, I had
thought long and hard about our situation and the Commander’s offer. The
temptation to stay tried to overpower my logic, but I knew we needed to return
to Sitia. The Sandseed clan had already been destroyed by the Vermin, and Cahil
and the Fire Warper remained a problem. How I would deal with
them continued to be a mystery. Not being able to trust Moon Man, Tauno or
Marrok, left Valek, Leif and me against the Daviians, the Fire Warper, Cahil
and his army. And what would happen if
I revealed Cahil’s involvement with the Vermin? The Council trusted him. I
would need to convince them of his deceit. I would need hard evidence to gain
their trust. Evidence I lacked. In fact, the more I
thought about the whole situation, the less confident I felt about my ability
to find a solution. When Leif and I returned
to the guest suite, Moon Man and Tauno waited for us in the living room. “How’s Marrok?” I asked Moon Man. “Better.” “Can he talk?” “Not yet.” “Soon?” “Perhaps.” I stared at him. He
answered in typical Story Weaver fashion. Refraining from shaking information
out of him, I asked, “Have you learned anything while working with Marrok?” “I have seen bits and
pieces. Marrok’s feelings of betrayal are making it difficult for me to get
through to him. He does not trust me.” Moon Man’s eyes met mine and I could see
his unspoken words. “Trust has to go both
ways.” “It is not a lack of
trust which causes me to keep my silence. It is a lack of acceptance on your
part.” “And you’re afraid of
what you might discover once you accept your role in all this, aren’t you?”
Leif asked me. A knock at the door
saved me from having to reply to Leif’s question. One of the housekeeping maids
handed me a message from the Commander. We were invited to dine with him in his
war room. “You don’t have an
answer for me. Do you have an answer for the Commander? Are you going to stay
and be his adviser?” Leif asked when the maid left. “Actually Leif, I don’t
have any answers. I’ve no idea what I’m doing or going to do.” I went into my
room and shut the door. The Commander’s war room
was located in one of the four towers of the castle. With long stained-glass
windows reflecting the lantern light, the circular chamber reminded me of the
inside of a kaleidoscope. Our conversation
followed mundane topics while we ate spiced chicken and vegetable soup. Leif
wolfed his food with obvious relish, but I took my time, sampling all the
dishes with care. A few guards stood near the Commander. Star hovered close by,
ready to taste the Commander’s food whenever a new course was served. Moon Man
and Tauno remained quiet during dinner. We discussed the new
general in MD-5. Colonel Ute from MD-3 had been promoted and transferred. The
Commander thought it best an officer from outside the district be in charge. In
other words, a loyal person who had not been tainted by General Brazell’s
attempt to become the new leader of Ixia. When the subject turned
to General Kitvivan’s worry over the upcoming blizzard season, I told the Commander
about the Stormdance Clan and how they handled the storms from the sea. “Magicians could harness
the power of the blizzard,” I said, “saving the people in MD-1 from the killing
winds. Then you could use the power for General Dinno’s sawmills in MD-8.”
Dinno used the wind to fuel his mills, and calm days hurt production. “No. The matter of
magicians and magic in Ixia will not be discussed,” the Commander said. His stern tone had once
intimidated me, but not this time. “You want me to be your adviser, yet you
won’t consider using magic for the good of your people. I’m a magician. How can
I be an effective adviser to you?” “You can advise me on
how to counter the magicians in Sitia. I’m not interested in what magic can do
for Ixia.” He made a cutting motion with his hand. End of discussion. I wouldn’t let the
subject drop. “What happens when one of your generals becomes ill or injured
and I can save their life with my magic?” “You don’t. If they die,
I’ll promote another colonel.” I considered his answer with
mixed feelings. I knew his firm style of governing was inflexible. The Code of
Behavior’s strict list of proper Ixian conduct left no room for debate.
However, I hoped once he saw the benefits of magic to his people, he might
relax his views. As if reading my mind,
the Commander said, “Magic corrupts. I’ve seen it before with the King’s
magicians. They start out wanting to help and performing great deeds, but soon
the power consumes them and they hunger for more despite the cost. Consider
what has occurred to Moon Man’s clan. Frankly, I’m surprised something like
that hasn’t happened sooner.” “My clan will
repopulate,” Moon Man said. “I have no doubt.” “And I have no doubt if
these Vermin of Sitia are conquered, it’s only a matter of time before another
magician wishes to take over the current government. The talent to control
another’s mind and body is intoxicating and addicting. Better to ban magic and
eliminate magicians altogether.” I wondered if the
Commander’s views would change if he knew he might possess the skill to access
magic. My thoughts returned to Opal’s bat and his ability to see the glow,
mulling over the implications. “Better to kill people
the old-fashioned way,” Leif said, his voice indignant. “You’re saying that
taking over a government with poisons, knives and swords is much better than
using magic. Frankly, I see no difference.” “Magic forces a person
to do things they don’t want to. It controls their will.” The Commander leaned
forward; his eyes lit with an intense passion. Leif quailed under the
Commander’s scrutiny, but he continued with his debate. “And your Code of
Behavior doesn’t force people to do things they don’t want? Everyone in Ixia
wants to wear uniforms? They want to obtain permission to marry or move to
another district?” “Small inconveniences to
live in an area where there is no hunger and no corruption. To know exactly
where your place is in society and what is expected from you. Being rewarded
for your abilities and efforts instead of getting privileges because of who you
were born to or what gender you are.” “But the reward for
having magical abilities is death,” Leif said. “I’m sure the families of those
potential magicians don’t feel the loss of their loved one as inconvenient. Why
not send them to Sitia instead?” “Send them so they could
be used against me?” The Commander’s voice reflected his incredulity. “That
would be poor military strategy.” Leif remained quiet. “No government is
perfect,” the Commander said, relaxing back into his chair. “The loss of a few
personal freedoms has been embraced by most of Ixia, especially those who
suffered under the King’s corruption. However, I know the younger generation is
feeling restless and I will have to address that issue fairly soon.” He stared
at Leif as if contemplating the future. “Yelena, I see your intelligence is a
family trait. I hope you both decide to stay.” A determined line formed
along my brother’s jaw. Leif could be stubborn and perhaps he viewed changing
the Commander’s mind about magicians as a challenge. A messenger arrived and
handed a scroll to the Commander. After reading the message, he stood. “Please
enjoy the rest of your dinner. I have some matters to attend to.” He left,
taking his guards and Star with him. Before Star followed
him, she flashed me a calculating look. The Commander’s opinions
about magic and magicians replayed in my mind as we returned to the guest
suite. Although I agreed with Leif that Ixians with magical powers should not
be killed, I also felt magic corrupted. Even Roze, the most powerful magician
in Sitia, had been affected. To fear my potential as a Soulfinder was one
thing, to support Cahil was another. When we arrived at our
quarters, I pulled Leif into my room. “What’s the matter?” he
asked. “I want to contact Irys.
See what’s going on in the Citadel.” “What I want to know is
what’s going on with you?” “What do you mean?” “Since crossing the
border, you have changed, treating Moon Man like a traitor and not trusting
anyone. If you decide to stay as the Commander’s adviser, you’ll be a traitor
to Sitia. What happened to Liaison Yelena? The neutral third party?” “To be a Liaison, I need
to have support of both parties. Are you going to help me contact Irys or
lecture me?” Leif grumbled and pouted
but agreed to share his energy. I lay on the bed and drew power, projecting my
awareness south to the Keep. Bypassing the busy thoughts of the Citadel’s
inhabitants, I searched the campus for Irys. I couldn’t find her within her
tower, but I sensed a faint echo as if the scent of her soul remained behind
after she had left the room. Odd. I moved on to the Keep’s
other towers, hoping Irys was visiting with another Master. Zitora’s thoughts
were walled off from intruders. Bain’s tower had that same odd feeling as
Irys’s, and the cold barrier of Roze’s mind slammed into me. I bounced off and
retreated, but an icy wind sucked me back toward her. This time her barrier was
down, and cold fingers clamped around my awareness, pulling me into her mind. Searching for someone?
Roze asked. I refused to answer. You make it so easy,
Yelena. Roze laughed. I knew you would contact Irys. You won’t be able to talk
to her, I’m afraid. The Council decided Masters Irys and Bain were engaged in
treasonous activities. They’re currently in the Keep’s cells. 21HOW DID YOU MANAGE to
frame two Master Magicians, Roze? I said, suppressing my shock and outrage. They refused to sign the
letter to the Commander, and they have been stalwart defenders of you and your
brother. She said the word brother with heated contempt. They doubted Cahil’s
word. Cahil, who single-handedly increased the strength of our army with
Daviian Warriors. Those Warriors are not
there to help you. They’re there to use you. I’m not going to take
advice from you. Roze tightened her grip on my consciousness. A simpleton who’s
about to lose her mind. She peeled the layers of
my consciousness away with a knife made of ice. Cold stabbed deep into the core
of my thoughts, attempting to expose what I kept hidden. Thinking of becoming an
adviser to the Commander, what a laugh. After I’m done with you, you won’t be
able to advise a baby on how to suck its thumb. Unable to pull away, I
panicked. Leif’s energy poured into me, but I still couldn’t break free. Flayed
by her arctic magic, I remained helpless. Valek was in Sitia to
assassinate the Council. Hmm…most interesting, she said. Desperate and knowing I
couldn’t sever her hold, I reached closer to her, searching for a part of her I
could control. Her soul. I tugged at the ghostlike force, smelling its rotten
stench, and feeling it fray as if her soul was splitting into multiple
personalities. Roze jolted in horror
and expelled me from her grip. As I escaped, her words reached me. Try to rescue Irys and
Bain. Come to the Citadel. We’re ready for you. Roze yanked a defensive wall
between us, breaking our link. I returned to my body,
feeling exhausted and weak. Leif loomed over me.
“What happened? I lost you.” “I got caught by Roze…”
My thoughts returned to what she had said about Irys and Bain. “And?” “And, I broke free
before she could dissect all my thoughts.” “What did she find out?” I told him she knew
about the Commander’s offer and about Valek being in Sitia. He creased his thick
eyebrows as he considered. “Knowing about Valek could be a good thing. The Council
can take measures to protect themselves in case Valek comes back.” “If Roze warns them.
Their deaths may be exactly what she wants.” “No. Roze wants what is
best for Sitia. She’s a strong-willed person and many Councilors are swayed by
her arguments, but I don’t believe she would use murder or magic to get her
way.” I shook my head. After
the attack, I knew she would resort to both to get what she wants. “You were
her student. Of course you still hold charitable thoughts for her.” “I know her better than
you.” Leif’s voice huffed with anger. “I’ve worked for her and with her for
nine years. Her methods can be harsh, but her concern is always for Sitia. She
has always supported Cahil’s desire to become King of Ixia. In her mind, your
Soulfinder abilities are a threat to Sitia. And I’m starting to agree with
her.” Leif stormed from the room. I wondered what had
really upset Leif. In my opinion, Roze was a murderer. She didn’t kill the
body, but she destroyed minds without any remorse. Look at Marrok. But then
again I had done the same thing with Ferde. At least, I admitted to being a
killer. Was I any better? No. My mind sorted through
all the information from Roze. Rescuing Irys and Bain became a priority. I
needed eyes and ears inside the Citadel’s walls, and a way to get messages
inside the Keep. All without being seen or without risking anyone else. Magic
was no longer an option. If I projected my awareness near the Keep, Roze would
catch me again. Mundane methods remained my only recourse. A plan formed, making my
heart buzz with the possibilities. If I hadn’t been so drained of energy, I
would have started preparations that night. Instead, I mapped out the steps I
needed to take to return to Sitia. I hovered at the
entrance to Dilana’s workroom. The Commander’s seamstress sat in a pool of
early-morning sunlight, humming to herself as her deft fingers repaired a pair
of pants. Her soft curls glowed like fresh honey. I hesitated, not wanting to
disturb her. My need for information,
though, spurred me into the room. She glanced up in surprise and my heart
stopped. I braced myself for her reaction, guessing hate and anger ranked at
the top of her list. “Yelena!” She jumped to
her feet. “I heard you were back.” She pulled me into a warm hug then released me
for inspection. “You’re still too thin. And what’s this you’re wearing? The
material is far too light for Ixia’s weather. Let me get you some proper
clothes and something to eat. I have a fresh loaf of cinnamon bread.” She moved
away. “Dilana, wait.” I grabbed
her arm. “I ate breakfast and I’m not cold. Sit down. I want to talk to you.” Her baby doll’s beauty
hadn’t dimmed with time or grief, but I could see a touch of sadness in her
eyes despite her smile. “It’s so good to see you
again.” She rubbed a hand along my arm. “Look at how tan your skin is! Tell me
what you’ve been doing in Sitia besides sunning yourself.” I laughed at the fantasy
of me lounging in the sun, but sobered. She wanted to avoid the subject. Avoid
the reason I thought she might hate me. But I couldn’t go on without saying
anything. “Dilana, I’m sorry about Rand.” She waved the comment
away. “No need. The big oaf got himself mixed up with Star and her nefarious
deeds. Not your fault.” “But he wasn’t her
target. I was and—” “He saved you. The dumb
ox died a hero.” She blinked back tears threatening to spill over her long
eyelashes. “It’s a good thing we didn’t get married or I’d be a widow. No one
wants to be a widow at twenty-five.” She took a deep breath. “Let me get you a
slice of bread.” Dilana left before I
could stop her. When she returned with a plate, she had regained her composure.
I asked her about the latest gossip. “Can you believe Ari and
Janco are working with Valek? They were in here last month trying on their new
uniforms and preening in front of the mirrors.” “Do you know where they
are?” I asked. “Some mission with
Valek. I had to make a sneak suit for each of them. I used up all my black
fabric to cover Ari’s muscles. Can you imagine that big lunk sneaking around?” I couldn’t. Ari didn’t
strike me as the assassin type. He was more of a one-on-one fighter. Same with
Janco. He wouldn’t feel right killing someone without a fair fight. So why were
they with Valek? Dilana continued to
chat. When the subject returned to uniforms, I asked her about getting an
adviser’s uniform. “The Commander has asked me to stay and I feel like I stand
out in these Sitian clothes.” Not an outright lie, yet a pang of guilt twinged
in my chest. “Even though coral is a
beautiful color on you, you’ll be warmer in a uniform.” Dilana bustled over to
her piles of clothes. She picked out a black shirt and pants. Handing them to
me, she shooed me behind the changing screen. “Try them on.” I fingered the two red
diamonds stitched on the shirt’s collar. The last time I had stood here, I had
been exchanging my red prison gown for the food taster’s uniform. When I pulled
my shirt off, I saw my snake bracelet. Round and round, it hugged my arm. I
suppressed the sudden laughter bubbling in my throat. I’ve come full circle,
but this time I put on an adviser’s uniform. It fit better than my food taster
uniform, molding to my body like a second skin. The Commander wanted me to help
him, while the Council wanted me dead. About a year ago, the opposite had been
true. This time I allowed the hollow snort of laughter to escape my lips. “Something wrong?”
Dilana asked. I stepped out. “The
pants are a little big.” She grabbed the
waistband and pinched the material together, marking it with chalk. “I’ll have
these fixed by lunch.” I changed, thanked her
and headed out to visit Kiki and the horses. The Commander’s stables were
located next to the kennels. The animals shared a training ring and there was a
pasture for the horses along the castle’s walls. Kiki dozed in her immaculate
stall. I checked on the other horses. Their coats gleamed in the sunlight. They
seemed content and well cared for. I complimented the stable boys and girls,
who nodded and resumed their work. Their demeanor reminded me of adults and I
wondered if they had any fun. On my way back to the
castle, I spotted Porter, the Commander’s Kennel Master. His dogs never wore
leashes and their obedience to him was uncanny. I paused and watched him work
with a litter of puppies. He had hidden treats in the training yard and taught
the pups how to find them. Being puppies, they frequently forgot what they were
supposed to do, but once Porter caught the attention of a dog, he touched its
nose and said, “Go find.” Energized with its
mission, the puppy scented the air and made a beeline for a treat. Impressive.
Porter noticed me watching and gave me a curt nod. He had been good friends
with Rand, and I recalled a conversation I had had with Rand about Porter. Rand hadn’t believed the
rumors about Porter’s magical connection with the dogs. Since there was no
proof, Rand stayed true to their friendship when everyone else avoided contact
with the Kennel Master. As long as Porter continued to be useful and did not
draw attention to himself, his job for the Commander was secure. I wondered about the
magic, though. If he had magic and could use it without getting caught, then
there might be others in Ixia doing the same thing. Porter had worked for the
King many years before the Commander’s takeover, giving him plenty of time to learn
how to use and hide his power. Perhaps communicating with the dogs was all he
could do. One way to find out. I
pulled a thread of power and made a mental connection with one of the puppies.
Her energy and enthusiasm jumped from one smell to another. When I tried to
communicate with her, she either ignored me or didn’t hear me. Her nose filled
with the scent of soft laced with a sharp hint of squish, and she dug into the
ground seeking a worm. When a voice of warmth and caring called, she left her
task and ran toward Porter. He gave all the puppies
a rawhide stick to chew and filled the row of bowls with water. I moved my
awareness to him, sensing his surface thoughts. They were focused on the tasks
for the day, yet uneasiness lingered. Why was she here? What does she want? To help Ixia, I said in
his mind. He jerked as if bitten
in the leg and glared at me. You hear me, don’t you?
The rumors are true. He strode toward me. I
checked the empty yard. Although I knew how to defend myself, his tall muscular
frame reminded me that, despite the gray hair, Porter remained a formidable
opponent. He stopped mere inches from me. “You’re here to help
Ixia?” Porter growled. If he had hackles they would have been raised. “You can
help by leaving us alone.” He didn’t mean him and
the dogs. I caught a brief image of other Ixians. “There must be something
I can do?” “Like you did for Rand? No, thank you. All you’ll do is get us killed.” He turned away, but his words, or
enslaved, reached me. A cold splash of fear
drenched me. Was there someone in Ixia using magicians against their will? Why
was I surprised? Magic and corruption went hand in hand. Would it corrupt me as
well? I’d been using my magic without stopping to think about the consequences.
Connecting with Porter could get him killed, and I did it just to satisfy my
own curiosity. If I was so blasй about using magic now, how would I view it in
the future? Would I crave it like an addiction? I began to think it would be
better not to use magic at all. Before I could return to
the castle, I heard Kiki’s whinny. I hurried back to the stables, but Kiki had
already opened the door and met me in the walkway. Foot hurt, she said. She followed me to the
training yard and bent her front right hoof back for me to inspect the underside.
A rock was lodged in her frog. When did this happen? Night. Didn’t hurt then. Out in the sunlight, she
didn’t appear to be as well groomed as I had thought. She snorted. Lavender
Lady take care. You wouldn’t stand for
the stable boy? Too rough. Wait for you.
You’re spoiled rotten. I left Kiki in the yard,
and fetched my pick and brushes. She lifted her leg and I
dislodged the stone then pulled the shedding blade through her copper hair.
After a while, I removed my cloak. When I finished, clumps of horse hair clung
to my sweaty clothes. You’re beautiful and I
need a bath, I said to her. Pasture or stall? Stall. Nap time. And what about your
snooze before I groomed you? Pre-nap. Ah, the life of a horse.
I made sure her bucket held fresh water. On my way out, I bumped into Porter. “You’re good with that
horse,” he said. I waited, sensing he had
more to say. “Maybe you can help us.”
He scanned the area. A few lads worked nearby. He lowered his voice. “There’s a
meeting tonight in Castletown. Forty-three Peach Lane rear door. Come during
dinner. Don’t let anyone know where you’re going.” 22HE STRODE AWAY. TONIGHT
I had planned to be on my way to Sitia. A visit to Porter would delay me, but
it seemed too important to ignore. After my jaunt to the
stables, I arrived back at the doors of the guest suite at the same time as a
messenger. The Commander wanted us to meet him in the war room this afternoon.
Inside, Tauno paced the living area like a trapped animal, prowling next to the
windows. “Why don’t you go
outside?” I suggested to him. “The soldiers run laps around the castle complex
for exercise. You can join them if you want.” He stopped in surprise.
“I can leave this room without being escorted by an adviser?” “The advisers are a
courtesy provided by the Commander to help you find your way around the castle.
If you go out on your own, you’ll get some suspicious looks, but as long as you
stick to common areas, no one will bother you. Just make sure you’re back for
the meeting.” I told them about the message. Moon Man sat next to
Marrok on the couch. Marrok stared at us with an intense expression as if he
tried to decipher our conversation. “Interesting how you see
the advisers as a courtesy, while Tauno sees them as guards,” Moon Man said. I ignored the Story
Weaver’s comment and gave Tauno directions to find his way outside. Even with
my assurances, he still pulled the door open as if he expected to be accosted. “Has Marrok said
anything yet?” I asked. “No, but he is
understanding more and more. Unlike you.” I scowled. “What is that
supposed to mean?” Moon Man refused to
answer. My plan to leave my companions in Ixia so I could travel faster through
Sitia became more appealing as time went on. The Commander would keep an eye on
them and I wouldn’t have to worry about being betrayed. I looked around the
room. “Where’s Leif?” “In his room,” Moon Man
said. Judging by the
monosyllable response through Leif’s door, I guessed he was still upset with
me. I told him about the meeting then retired to my room. A quiet group followed
me to the Commander’s war room. Tauno had returned, seeming more settled since
he had burned off some of his energy. Moon Man’s calm demeanor returned, and
Leif frowned at the world at large and me in particular. My brother knew how to
pout. The Commander had a
surprise waiting for us. Valek, Ari and Janco sat around the circular table. My
emotions flipped to joy at seeing them. “Valek was just
informing me on the state of affairs in Sitia,” the Commander said. “Continue.” “I found the situation
to be rather ah…unique.” Valek leaned back in his chair. He scanned my
companions with a thoughtful purse of his lips. The sharp features of his
angular face would soften only when he smiled. “Unique is putting it
mildly,” Janco said. He rubbed the scar where the bottom half of his right ear
used to be. A sure sign of his worry. “Try alarming,” Ari
added. Panic began to simmer
under my heart. Ari tended to counter Janco’s exaggerations with cool logic.
His steadying presence helped keep Janco in check. Opposite in appearance,
Janco’s wiry build reflected his quick wit and lightning-fast fighting style,
while Ari’s strength could outmuscle most others. “Alarming would work,”
Valek agreed. “Taking out the Council wouldn’t result in better leaders. In
fact, it would have inflamed the citizens to all-out war. And they have some
new players who could potentially tip the battle in their favor.” “Players? Try creepy
men. Scary magicians. Evil demons.” Janco shuddered. Valek shot Janco a
warning look. “I need to obtain more information before I can assess the true
nature of the threat and determine the best way to counter it.” “Why have you returned?”
the Commander asked. Another glance from
Valek, but this time he aimed it at me. “I require more help. Things were
getting a little too hot even for me.” So much for my plans to
travel to Sitia alone. The room fell quiet as
Commander Ambrose considered. “What do you need?” “A few more men, Yelena
and her brother.” I had suspected Valek
would want me. By Leif’s grunt of shock, I knew his surprise matched my own
when hearing his name. “She hasn’t agreed to be
an adviser yet so I can’t order her to assist you,” the Commander said. “Then I will have to
ask.” Valek looked at us. “Yes,” I said the same
time Leif said no. “I’m a Sitian, remember?
I can’t aid Ixia in overthrowing Sitia,” Leif said. “I don’t want to take
control of Sitia,” the Commander said. “I just don’t want them to invade us and
I will take preventative measures to stop them.” “By helping us, you will
also help your country,” Valek said. “We can do it on our
own. We don’t need you or Yelena.” Leif turned to me. “You could never have
been a true Liaison, little sister. Ever since we’ve been in Ixia, you have
revealed your true loyalties.” Outraged, I asked, “Is
that what you believe?” “Look at the evidence.
At the first sign of trouble, you run for Ixia. We could have returned to the
Citadel, and explained everything to the Council.” His accusations stabbed
me as if he held a knife. “The Council will not
believe us. I told you what Irys said.” “But what if you lied?
You know I don’t have the power of mental communication on my own. You don’t
trust us so why should we trust you?” First the Council had
turned on me and now my brother. “Believe what you want, then. Valek, can we do
without him?” “We can.” The Commander stared at
Valek. “You will tell me your plans before you disappear again.” “Yes, sir.” “Good. You’re all
dismissed.” The Commander stood. “What about us?” Leif
gestured to Moon Man and Tauno. “Can we return to Sitia?” “Consider yourselves a
guest of Ixia until this unfortunate incident is resolved,” Valek said. “What if we no longer
wish to be guests?” Moon Man asked. “Then you will be our
first prisoners of war and your accommodations will not be so luxurious. It’s
your choice.” The Commander left. Leif glared at me and I
wanted to laugh. His current reaction mirrored the first encounter I had had
with him after fourteen years of being apart. Another full circle. I felt
dizzy. Perhaps this was a sign I should stay in this spot to avoid having to
exert time and effort to go around again. Valek turned to Ari and
made a slight movement with his hand. Ari nodded and stood;
his blond curls bounced with the motion. “We will be happy to escort you to
your quarters.” A gamut of emotions
flowed over my former companions’ faces as they followed Ari from the room.
Leif barely contained his fury, Tauno looked worried and Moon Man appeared
thoughtful. Janco brought up the
rear of the procession. He flashed me an inviting smirk. “Training yard, four
o’clock.” “You need more lessons?” “You wish.” My smile faded when the
door closed. Valek remained on the far side of the table, his face serious. I
felt awkward and uncertain. “Is it that bad?” I
asked. “It’s a situation I’ve
never encountered before. I’m worried.” “About Ixia?” “About you, love.” “Me?” “I’ve always been amazed
at how you can draw unwanted attention and ire from powerful people. This time,
though, you managed to get a whole country upset. If I was the Commander, I
would wait out the political strife in Sitia and then offer you to the victors
in trade for Ixia being left alone.” “Good thing you’re not
the Commander.” “Yes. And we should
leave Ixia before the Commander figures it out. What were you planning?” I tried to look
innocent. “Me? You’re the one with the plan.” “And the adviser uniform
you had Dilana size for you? You weren’t thinking of sneaking off to Sitia
without me, were you?” Another betrayal. “Did
she tell you?” “I had ripped a hole in
my favorite pants. When I dropped them off, she asked me to deliver your
uniform and gifted me with a leer. I would guess the servants were already
betting how soon one of them would spot us together.” He sighed. “If only
intelligence information worked through my corps as efficiently as gossip
flowed through the servants, then my problems would be minimal.” In one fluid motion,
Valek stood. He walked over to me, his smooth stride graceful as a panther.
Powerful energy coiled in his body. He leaned on my chair’s arms, bringing his
face inches from mine. His black hair hung to his shoulders; his expression was
lethal. “I’ll ask you again. Your plans include me, correct?” I slumped deeper into my
chair. “Yelena?” His voice
warned. “You said you had never
encountered this situation before. It’s an unknown. I don’t want to risk…” “What?” “Risk losing you. With
your immunity I can’t heal you!” “I’m willing to take the
chance.” “But I’m not willing to
let you.” “Sorry, love, that’s not
your decision. It’s mine.” I grumbled. Events had
spiraled out of my control. Again. I just spun in circles and never gained any
ground. “Okay, I promise not to
go to Sitia without you.” Which didn’t include my meeting tonight with Porter. “Thank you.” Valek
brushed his lips on my cheek. A tingle sizzled up my spine. “What about your plan?”
I tried to stay on topic, but I lost my motivation once Valek’s musky smell
enveloped me. “This is my plan.” He moved closer and
kissed me. Warmth spread throughout my body. The panic clutching my throat
eased. I pushed away my worries and focused on Valek, wrapping my arms around
him. But the feel of his muscles through his shirt wasn’t enough. I yanked at
it, wanting to touch his skin, wanting to wear his skin. He pulled away,
straightening. “In the war room, love? What if someone comes in?” I stood and removed his
shirt. “Then they’ll have a good story to tell.” “Good?” He adopted the
pretense of being offended. “Prove me wrong.” His eyes lit with the
challenge. Valek and I ended up
underneath the war room’s round table. Lying together, I felt safe for the
first time in weeks. We discussed the events in Sitia. “I could hardly move
within the Citadel,” Valek said. “The air was so thick with magic I felt like I
swam in syrup.” “But you weren’t detected.” Valek’s immunity to
magic remained a powerful weapon. Without it, I couldn’t have defeated Ferde. “No. Although it was
only a matter of time. With that many—what do you call them?—Warpers, my
presence would have eventually caused a noticeable dead zone.” I considered how fast
things had changed in the Citadel. Twenty-two days ago Moon Man had speculated
the Daviians had eight Warpers, but once he realized they were performing
Kirakawa we knew the actual number of Warpers could be much higher, depending
on how many victims they had used. And how far along in the ritual they were.
Plus only a victim with magical powers could make a Warper. If they had been
preparing for this offensive for a while, then who were the victims? They
wouldn’t have used clan members and the Sandseed Clan would have noticed if a
couple of their Story Weavers went missing. So would the other clans. Unable to
deduce an answer, I put the question to Valek. “They’re probably
targeting the homeless. Who would miss a few beggars in a big city? No one.” “What about the need for
magicians?” “The first year after a
magician reaches adolescence is a difficult and vulnerable year. Half the
people don’t even realize they can access the power source, and the other half
don’t have a clue how to use it. The Warpers could be hunting the streets,
looking for someone in that precarious situation.” My conviction to stop
using it became stronger the more I learned about magic and how others
exploited it. Valek and I mapped our
return to Sitia and planned how to contact Bavol Zaltana. “I’ll leave Ari and
Janco here. They won’t be happy, but security around the Citadel is too tight
and we’re better off just going ourselves. Two of my corps have already been
caught inside.” Valek sat up with reluctance. “I have some business to attend
to. I’ll meet you in my suite later tonight and we can finalize our time
schedule. I’ll have your belongings delivered there.” I should retrieve my
pack, but realized I had no desire to see Leif or the others. But I remembered
something. “Why did you want Leif to come with us?” He shook his head. “You
wouldn’t have agreed anyway.” “To what?” “To letting Leif get
caught and using your mental connection to him to find out what’s going on in
the Keep. But now you’re mad at him—” “No. He would be killed.
I’m not that angry with him.” Besides, if I used my magic anywhere near the
Citadel, all the preparation in the world wouldn’t be able to help me. “She’s quick and fast,
but she can’t get past,” Janco sang as he blocked my rib strikes. “You need to work on
your rhymes. Either that, or I’m getting better.” I faked a temple strike and
swept his feet out from under him. Before I could press my advantage, he rolled
away and regained his feet. “You hesitated,” Ari
said from the sidelines. “Too busy talking.” I renewed my attack and
Janco countered with ease. We fought in the soldier’s training yard, which had
been filled with the sounds of practice until Janco and I started this match.
We had attracted quite a crowd. “Can’t talk and fight.
So much for being polite.” Janco spun his bow. His weapon blurred. I backed up and blocked
the flurry of hits, keeping pace with his attack until he changed the rhythm. I
missed a connection. The air exploded out of my lungs as Janco landed a solid blow
to my solar plexus. I bent over, coughing and gasping for breath. “Funny,” Janco said. He
smoothed his goatee with a hand. “You’re usually not this easy to beat. Have I
succeeded in hiding my thoughts?” Once I regained my
composure and straightened, he smiled sweetly at me. The last time we had
fought in Sitia, he had found out about my zone of concentration, a semimagical
state allowing me to notice my opponent’s intentions when I sparred with them.
This time I had tried to fight him without setting my mind into that zone. “No. You’re still
self-centered and overly cocky,” I said. “They’re fighting
words.” “Do you need more time
to rest? Now you’re management, you probably need to expend extra energy moving
that paunch.” He swept his bow toward
my legs in response and we engaged in another match. I lost again, but kept
challenging him until we were both sweat soaked and exhausted. “Your fighting improved
as the matches went on,” Ari said. “But it wasn’t your best.” He looked at me
as if waiting for an explanation. I shrugged. “I was
trying something different.” “It’s not working.
Better go back to your old style.” “I like her new style.”
Janco piped in. “It’s good for my ego.” Ari frowned and crossed
his massive arms over his chest. “Life or death, Ari, and
I’d go back to using all my tricks. Don’t worry.” He seemed mollified, and
I hadn’t lied. When push came to shove, I knew I would fall back on using my
magic. Another problem. Magic made me lazy and when I encountered a bad
situation, I reached for it without thought. I needed to improve my other
skills, because magic wouldn’t help me against the Fire Warper. I changed the subject
and asked my friends about their new jobs. Janco regaled me with the story of
their battle against Valek. Every time Ari shook his head, I knew Janco had
exaggerated a detail. “What is it like being
second in command of Ixia’s intelligence network?” I asked. “I don’t like all this
sneaking around,” Ari said. “There’s a lot more going on in Ixia than I
thought. And there’s so much to do. Valek is the king of delegating.” “I’m getting to use my
lock-picking skills.” Janco grinned. Pure mischievousness danced in his eyes.
“And the information we’ve discovered. Did you know General Dinno has—” “Janco,” Ari warned. “We
enjoy the work. It’s just not what we had expected.” “Nothing is,” I said. My bones ached with
fatigue. I waved goodbye to Ari and Janco and headed toward the baths. Before
joining my friends in the training yard, I had retrieved my pack and stashed it
in the changing room. After a long soak, I dried and dressed in my adviser’s
uniform in preparation for the meeting with Porter. I rationalized I would draw
less attention wearing a uniform than my Sitian clothes. I cut a hole in the
pant’s pocket and strapped my switchblade to my right thigh. Not wanting to
show up armed with my bow, I felt it prudent to have a knife on me just in
case. Braiding my hair into one long braid, I let it hang between my shoulder
blades. Although my stomach
grumbled with hunger, Porter had instructed me to come during dinner. His
timing made sense, as most of the castle’s inhabitants would be busy either
serving dinner or eating it. And Castletown should be relatively quiet. I stopped beside the
pasture on my way out, checking to see if anyone followed me. A few servants
hustled between buildings, but no one paid me any attention. The cold hung in
the air as if waiting for a breeze. I fed Kiki and the other horses some
apples. Smells? I asked Kiki. Big snow. When? Half moon. Three days. Valek and I
would need to leave sooner than planned. Kiki come? Of course, and Garnet,
too. She sighed with
contentment as I scratched behind her ears. When I felt certain no one watched
me, I headed toward the south gate. I joined in with a group of town residents
returning home for dinner. With my Ixian wool cloak covering my adviser’s
uniform, I blended right in. My group hurried over the grass field surrounding
the walls. The Commander had ordered all buildings within a quarter mile of the
castle be destroyed when he had gained power. He also renamed Jewels-town,
named in honor of the former Queen Jewel to the rather unoriginal Castletown. Once we reached the edge
of town, the group dispersed as the others headed for their homes. The symmetry
of the town with its neat rows of wooden buildings conflicted with the
asymmetrical style of the castle complex. The logical array of businesses
interspersed among residences made navigating the town easier. Each district
had a name matching the merchandise sold there. Peach Alley would be located in
the Garden District. A few townspeople
bustled about, all intent on some errand. I walked as if I had a purpose so I
didn’t attract unwanted attention from the town’s guards, who watched the
streets. The colors of the
buildings thinned toward gray as the sun set. My perceptions shifted, and I
felt as if I had entered into a colorless shadow world. The buildings
transformed into a watery representation of a town populated with ghosts. I stumbled over some
unseen curb and snapped back to the real world. Dismissing the strange spell, I
rationalized hunger as the culprit. I picked up my pace, determined to find the
right address before the lamplighters came out. Peach Lane seemed devoid of
life, and only when I went around to the back alley did I see signs of
habitation. A glow of firelight came
from number forty-three. Keeping to the shadows, I approached the back door. I
pulled a thread of magic and scanned the area. Inside the house I felt Porter
waiting with two young girls. They were nervous about being found, but I didn’t
sense any duplicity. I paused as the
realization of how much I depended on my magic dawned on me. Not only with
searching for attackers, but with Kiki, too. Could I completely stop using my
magic? It would be much harder than I thought. The door opened right
after my light tap, as if Porter had been hovering near it. He pulled me into
the room and closed it behind me. “Did anyone see you?” he
asked. “No.” I looked around
the room. Small and tidy, the sitting area had a couch, a chair and three dogs
getting nervous attention from the girls. The girls perched on the edge of the
couch with their backs straight. They wore students’ uniforms, which consisted
of a simple jumper made of red linen. White-faced, their gazes jumped between
Porter and me. “You said I could help
you?” I asked. “We’re taking a big
chance trusting you.” Porter picked up a half-chewed roll of rawhide from the
floor. He clutched the dog’s treat in his hands as he stared at me. “You must
promise not to tell Valek or anyone else about all this.” “I can’t promise until I
hear what ‘all this’ is.” The rawhide popped and
cracked in Porter’s hands. He glanced at the girls and sighed. His wide
shoulders drooped with the release of his tension, and he gestured to the empty
chair. “Have a seat. This is going to take a while.” As soon as I sat down,
one of the dogs came over and put his head in my lap. Peering at me from
between his gray shaggy hairs, he pleaded for attention. I stroked his smooth
head and scratched behind his ears. The dog’s tail thumped on the floor. The
smell of wet dog and wood smoke mixed into a stuffy odor. Porter tapped the roll
on his leg as he talked. “I’ve set up a network of people throughout Ixia to
help me in smuggling children out of the country.” I leaned forward in
alarm, thinking about Mogkan’s kidnapping ring and how he had taken children
from Sitia to Ixia to abuse them for his own purposes. “Children?” “They seem like children
to me.” Porter gave the two girls a grandfatherly smile. “Adolescents who have
just discovered their magical powers.” He pointed to the couch. “Young people
like Liv and Kieran. I’ve been helping them to escape to Sitia before their
powers are known to others. But I believe something has gone wrong.” “What?” I prompted when
Porter appeared to be lost in his own thoughts. “I was in MD-7 last
month. General Rasmussen has a nice wolfhound I wanted to breed with my bitch.
While there, one of my contacts who works in the general’s stables told me the
last person I sent through the network never arrived. And two others he had
sent on never made it to the border contact. They have all disappeared.” My stomach twisted
around my heart. “Do you think Valek has killed them?” “I don’t know and I
can’t risk asking around. If my network has been compromised then I won’t be
able to send Liv and Kieran. Eventually they’ll get reported.” I hadn’t thought it
possible, but the girls’ faces turned whiter. Considering Porter’s story, I
said, “Tell me how your network operates.” “I have four contacts
from here to the border. A few people know about my underground efforts and
they’ll send their son or daughter to me as an apprentice. The Commander gives
me complete management of his kennel and no one pays too much attention to my students.
They come and go as part of their animal husbandry training. It’s risky, being
this close to Valek, but then I usually know where he is and can send my
charges when he’s gone on business.” Porter paced. “It’s too risky to have a
guide with them, so I instruct the person how to find the first contact and
then he sends them on until they get to the border contact, who takes them into
Sitia. They have transfer papers with them if they’re stopped by the guards. If
they had gotten caught, I would have been arrested by now.” His erratic
movements showed his frustration. “How can I help?” He stopped. “I wanted
you to go along with Liv, and maybe find out what’s happening to my charges.
With that adviser’s uniform you can go anywhere in Ixia without permission.” “No. Too dangerous for
Liv. The best thing to do would be for me to disguise myself as a student and
go through your network alone.” Porter’s eyebrows spiked
up in surprise. “You would do that for us?” “Yes. Unfortunately
though, it will have to wait.” The ability to connect
with the power source began at the onset of puberty. A person typically had a
year before anyone else noticed and reported them, and another three to four
years to learn how to harness their power. A fledgling magician’s power, when
uncontrolled, could flame out and warp the blanket of power that covers the
world, causing trouble for magicians everywhere. And the stronger the magician,
the bigger the flameout. One-trick power similar to Opal’s ability to capture
magic in molten glass tended to be unconscious and didn’t require formal
training. “How long do the girls
have?” I asked. “A year at most for Liv.
Kieran is younger so she could last up to two years, but I’d rather they both
be gone as soon as possible. I can hide them here if we’re desperate. I’ve had
some refugees who didn’t have time to work in the kennel,” Porter said. “Give me a couple
months. Sitia’s not the best place to be sending anyone right now. Once I
settle another matter, I’ll come back and help you. For now, I can teach the
girls how to tame their powers enough so they don’t give themselves away.” Relief shone on Liv and
Kieran’s young faces. I worked with them for the next hour. Irys would be proud
over how much I remembered from her guidance. A finger of dread stabbed my guts
with the thought of Irys. I hoped she was still alive. After my session, the
girls left Porter’s together while I waited for them to be well away before I
left. The need to begin my journey back to Sitia pressed on my mind as I
worried about Irys and Bain locked in the Keep’s cells. I made a quick sweep of
the area outside Porter’s door with my magic. The activity around the houses
seemed muted as everyone finished their daily tasks. No one lurked in the
alley. With a wave goodbye, I
exited Porter’s. I stood outside and let my eyes adjust to the darkness. When
the shadows grew less black, I strode toward the street. About halfway there I
felt a presence behind me. I spun, grabbing for my switchblade. Something
jabbed me in the neck and I saw Star lower a thin pipe. I yanked the dart out of
my throat. “How?” “Some great magician you
are,” Star said. “Missing my own tiny talent.” My world spun and I
stumbled. Star caught me, but I had no energy to fight her off. “What?” She cradled me in her arms.
“Valek’s goo-goo juice. Relax, Yelena. Star’s going to take good care of you.” My last coherent thought
focused on how her sinister expression didn’t match her soothing words. 23THE WORLD STIRRED. MY
thoughts scattered and failed to connect. Warm hands guided me. Whenever the
hands pulled away, the ground swelled and I tumbled off my feet. I thought about the lack
of fear for only a moment before the air spun around my head. Lying down felt
best. I sensed movement and smelled horses. Inside my chicken crate,
I wondered what I was supposed to be doing. Important things? My mind chased
the thought until the sunlight lit the dust motes. I studied the flecks
floating above me. The flecks transformed into daggers. I wanted to knock them
away. My hands stayed glued to my back. A leather strap lodged in my teeth. The
problem disappeared with the sun. Time ebbed and flowed.
My crate opened. It closed. Faces peered. Mouths talked. Words chimed in my
ears. Some like eat, drink and sleep I understood. Others resembled a baby’s
babble. Goo-goo. Goo-goo. A prick on my arm or neck or back. The air filled
with colors. My crate bobbed on an invisible sea. A small lucid part of me
wanted action. Freedom. Majority ruled and I let the world slide by me content
in my crate. My crate. My crate. I giggled. The fire woke me. A
finger of flame poked. I jerked away, no longer inside my crate. My thoughts
congealed into a coherent whole. The air became invisible, revealing my
surroundings. I braced for another prick. When none came I focused. The booted
feet of a couple guards stood near me. I lay on my side in front of a campfire.
Darkness pressed against the firelight, and my hands were tied behind my back. Actual conversation
reached my ears. The baby babble was gone. But for how long? I coaxed my mind
to think, but my thoughts remained sluggish. A man’s voice. “Should
not do this,” he said. “She should stay under until we reach our destination.
Jal is the only one strong enough to counter her power.” A familiar voice said,
“I made a promise to her. I want her to know who has her, and what we plan to
do to her.” Footsteps approached and
I tried to put a name to the familiar voice. My mind churned as if mired in
river mud. “Take the gag off,”
Familiar Voice said from behind me. One of the guards
removed the leather strap. A mixture of pain and relief flowed into my cracked
lips. I licked them, tasting blood. Other aches and cramps woke. Only the sight
of a pair of black riding boots covered with dust could distract me from my medley
of aches. My gaze followed the
boots up to jodhpurs that disappeared under a gray riding cloak. I squinted in
the firelight, hoping the person in front of me was an illusion. The cocky smirk caused
my heart to stutter. And when he kicked me in the ribs, I knew all hopes for a
pleasant reunion were gone. I coughed and wheezed as the pain shot through my
body. “That’s for hitting me
with Curare!” He kicked me again. “And that’s just because I can.” His words sounded thin
and distant, reaching me through my efforts to reclaim my breath. He loomed
over me. When the sharp pain dulled to a loud throb, I struggled to a sitting
position. I glanced around. Four guards stood a few feet away and I counted
three Daviian Vermin nearby, but I couldn’t tell if they were Warpers or not. “Cahil,” I said between
gasps. “You’re still…scared. Of me.” He laughed. The
washed-out blue of his eyes sparked with amusement. “Yelena, you’re the one
who should be scared.” He crouched down. We were face-to-face. He
held a dart between us. A drop of clear liquid hung from the end. Fear coiled
in my stomach as I smelled the sweet odor. Curare. I tried not to let my terror
show on my face. “I allowed you this
brief moment of lucidity. Listen closely. Remember what I said to you the last
time we were together?” “When you wanted to
exchange me for Marrok?” “No. When I promised to
find a person who could defeat you and Valek. I’ve met with success. In fact,
you have already had an encounter with my champion.” “Ferde?” I played the
simpleton to prolong the conversation, hoping my slow mind would produce a plan
for escape. “Act the fool, but I
know better. My champion makes you sweat with fear and desire. The Fire Warper
has been called to this world with one mission. To capture you. And you’re powerless
against him.” Pure satisfaction shone on Cahil’s face. “I will deliver you to
Jal and the Fire Warper. Jal will perform the Kirakawa ritual’s binding
ceremony on you, taking your powers as the Fire Warper claims your soul.” My mind buzzed with the
need to stop him yet produced nothing intelligent. I couldn’t even connect with
the power source. “And what do you get, Cahil?” “I get to witness your
death and watch your heart mate suffer before he meets the same end.” “But Jal gains power. Do
you really believe Jal will let you rule? And what about the Fire Warper? Do
you think he’ll be content to go back after his task is complete?” “He has come asking for
you. Once he has you, he’ll go back. Then Jal rules Sitia, and I rule Ixia.” I saw a faint trace of
uncertainty in Cahil’s eyes. My mind pulled free from the mire of the goo-goo
juice and I made a connection. “Before you said you called him. Now you say he
has come. Which one is it?” “It doesn’t matter.” “Yes it does. If you
called him, you have control over him.” He shrugged. “Jal will
deal with him. As long as I have Ixia. I don’t care.” “You should care. The
need for power is addicting. Ask your Daviian friends about the history of the
Sandseed Clan and the Daviian Mountains. Then you’ll realize Jal won’t be
content with just ruling Sitia. Once your usefulness is gone, you will be too.” “You’re just trying to
trick me. I know better than to listen to you.” He tried to stab the
dart into my throat. I fell back and pulled power as Cahil pinned me with his
weight. With no time to think, I focused the magic on my neck as he jabbed the
dart into my skin. Closing my eyes, I treated the area as I would an injury. In
my mind’s eye, I saw the Curare as a pulsing red light, spreading through my
throat. I used power to push the liquid back through the tiny hole in my skin.
It trickled down the side of my neck. My gaze met Cahil’s when
I opened my eyes. He stared at me with a mixture of triumph and hatred. Hoping he hadn’t seen
the drug run out, I said, “Pay close attention, Cahil. You’ll see the truth.” I
acted as if I had been paralyzed, unfocusing my eyes and letting my body go
slack. He grunted and stood.
“I’ve seen the truth. That’s why I want you dead.” The Vermin joined him
next to the fire, and I watched them from the corner of my eye. “I felt magic. Brief.
Did she use her power on you?” one of the Vermin asked Cahil. “No. I got her in time.” They discussed their
plans for leaving in the morning. When the others moved to
set up camp, Cahil said, “I should kill her now.” Alarmed replies told him
it would be imprudent. For the first time ever, I agreed with the Vermin. “Jal needs her and we do
not wish to infuriate the Fire Warper,” another said. “Why should I care about
infuriating the Fire Warper?” Cahil asked. “I’m in charge. He should answer to
me. He should worry about infuriating me, especially after the fiasco in the
jungle.” Soothing words were
muttered. “Put her back in the
box,” Cahil finally said. “Secure it, just in case we encounter trouble.” Two of the Vermin lifted
me. I concentrated on being a dead weight. My hands were tied and I couldn’t
use magic without alerting them. I knew one of the three was a Warper but was
unsure about the other two. At this point I needed more information. I decided
to wait for a better opportunity and hoped I would get one. The Vermin climbed onto
a cart, dropped me into a crate and shut the lid. In the darkness the sound of
metal latches being closed grated on my skin. I bit down on a cry of dismay
when the snap of three locks sounded. The coffin-shaped crate seemed to press
into me, and I drew in a couple of calming breaths. My gaze found the small
slit between the boards, allowing air to come in. And light. The faint flicker
of firelight seeped through the cracks. I wiggled into a more
comfortable position. My mind raced over my limited options. Magic remained my
only weapon. The desire to project my awareness and scan my surroundings pulled
at me, but I knew if they discovered I wasn’t drugged, all possibility of escape
would be gone. Would the Warper feel my power while he slept? Could I put the
Vermin and Cahil into a deep sleep? I would still be locked in a box, but I
could call someone to break me out. Who? Only a fellow
magician could hear my mental call, and I had no idea where I was. If I was
lucky enough to find a local citizen, perhaps I could discover my location. Unable to plan a course
of action, I marveled over my ability to push the drug out of my body. Had I
known I possessed that skill, I wouldn’t be in this situation. And my problems
with Curare, sleeping potion and goo-goo juice were solved. Although it was
hard to celebrate when locked in a box. Ever since I went to
Sitia, all I wanted was to learn about magic, to discover the extent of my
powers and be reacquainted with my family. Events conspired against me and I
had hardly had time to catch my breath, let alone spend time exploring my
magic. Pushing the Curare out
of my body was a new wrinkle. My abilities only affected living things, since
my magic didn’t move the drug; it must have made the muscles in my body do the
work. Desperation and raw
instinct had gotten me this far. I hoped it would carry me through, and as much
as I disliked using it, magic was unavoidable. If I was lucky enough to survive
this, I planned to retire as a Soulfinder and limit my magic to only
communicating with Kiki. I wondered if she knew I’d been taken. Did Valek know?
And what about Star’s role in all this? Too many questions
without answers swirled in my mind. Eventually, my thoughts bounced back to the
need to do something soon, because I sensed being delivered to the Fire Warper
would be the ultimate end. “Let’s get moving. If we
push, we can reach the Avibian border by sundown.” Cahil’s voice woke me
from a light doze. A few disorienting seconds passed before I remembered my
predicament and his words sank in. Shock followed understanding. We were in
Sitia. I must have been under the influence of the goo-goo juice for days.
Where was Valek? So much for my promise not to go to Sitia without him. “Should we check on
her?” a voice with an Ixian accent asked. “No. She’s under Curare
now. She can’t do anything besides breathe until the potion wears off,” Cahil
answered. “Finish feeding the girls. We’ll let the juice wear off before we
prepare them for the ritual.” The girls? I peered
through one of the slits in my crate. Another crate lay beside mine. My stomach
turned to ice. How many and could I help them? I suppressed a hollow laugh.
Here I was trying to save others while locked in a box. Two lids slammed then
the crate lurched forward. The sound of trotting horses added to the rumble of
the wagon. We were on our way. My body went through a
gamut of emotions as the day passed. Sometimes terrified, sometimes hopeful and
sometimes bored, I even listed an inventory of woes. Thirsty, hungry, aching
ribs, numb hands, sore muscles and a burning cramp between my shoulder blades.
With the noise of our travel masking my movements, I attempted to alleviate
some of my misery. I squirmed and wiggled until I managed to squeeze my body
and legs through my arms. The benefits of keeping limber and being small became
apparent as I succeeded in bringing my tied hands to the front of my body. I
almost groaned aloud when cool relief spread over my back. Having my hands in front
allowed me to explore. I patted my right thigh, checking for my switchblade. No
luck. Even the holder had been removed. I stared at the knots on the leather
straps binding my hands and pulled at them with my teeth. I untied a few before
the wagon stopped, but I decided to keep working, risking discovery. “We’ll camp here,” Cahil
said. “When you’re done setting up, let the girls out. They should be lucid by
now and you can get them ready for the Kirakawa tomorrow.” “What about the
Soulfinder?” one of the Vermin asked. “Drakke will give her
another dose tonight. Too much Curare could stop her heart,” Cahil replied. I listened to the sounds
of the men in the camp as I continued to gnaw and pull at my bindings. The
smell of roasting meat stole into my crate. My stomach grumbled with alarming
loudness. After a while, two crates were opened and two scared voices asked
questions. By the brief flash of a red jumper through the slits in my box, I
guessed the girls were the students from Ixia. Liv and Kieran. My heart went
out to them. Again I wondered how the
Vermin and Cahil had managed to smuggle us all out of Ixia. Perhaps the Vermin
had posed as traders taking a wagonload of goods across the border. I caught glimpses of the
camp. A tent had been erected and I counted four guards and three Vermin. Some
of the guards I recognized as Cahil’s men, while two looked unfamiliar. All
were armed with swords or scimitars. I searched for some sign of my backpack.
The limited view hindered me, although I guessed my pack would be found with
Cahil. The daylight faded, and
I renewed my efforts on the leather strips around my wrists. Each shrill scream
from one of the girls spurred me on. I ignored the pain, the smell of fear and
the metallic taste of blood as I yanked at the knots. Cahil had mentioned a
ritual tomorrow. Tonight would be my only chance to escape. The last knot proved
impossible to untie, but my spit had soaked the leather enough to give a little
when I moved. I pulled my hand through the last loop, scraping off a layer of
skin in the process. Panting with relief, I relaxed and waited for my crate to
open. My plan was simple, with
as much chance for failure as for success. Time moved at a glacial pace. Years
crept by. When the rasp and click of the lock finally sounded, I laced my hands
behind my back and froze. A soft yellow glow of
firelight reflected off the Vermin who opened my crate. He lifted the lid up
with one hand and reached toward me with the other. He held a tiny dart between
his finger and thumb. I moved. Grabbing his hand in
both of mine, I yanked him toward me, unbalancing him. He grunted with
surprise. His weight came forward. I bent his hand back and shoved the dart
into the Vermin’s shoulder. Letting go of his hand, I covered his mouth to
stifle his yell. Mere seconds later the
Curare paralyzed his muscles. The lid rested on his back and his body leaned on
my chest. Knowing I probably had seconds before someone discovered us, I pulled
the rest of him inside my box. An awkward, difficult maneuver to do while
trying to keep the lid from slamming down. Once the Vermin joined
me, I wriggled from under his body and lifted the lid to peek out. The guards
remained by the fire, but the other two Vermin were out of sight. The two girls
had been stripped and tied down by the fire. Bloody cuts lined their arms and
legs. There was nothing I could do for them right now. One problem at a time. I slid down to the end
of my crate and considered my options. Try to sneak out of the box and slip
into the night or just shove the lid up and make a run for it? What I really needed was
a distraction, but that involved magic. By the time they figured out the magic
came from me, I would be gone. I hoped. A flicker of black above
the campfire gave me an idea. Pulling a strand of power as thin as a spider’s
silk, I projected my mind toward the bat. He flew through the hot,
insect-filled air rising from the flames. I tapped into the collective
consciousness of his fellow bats and sent them all an image. An image of
insects covering the men below. Large juicy crawling things. Easy picking for a
mass of hungry bats. Black shapes swooped
down from the sky. The guards yelled and swung their arms around. Cahil and the
Warper exited the tent to investigate. The Warper yelled about magic, but his
words were cut off as the bats attacked. I pushed the lid wide
and hopped out. After a quick glance to make sure no one had noticed me, I
stepped off the wagon and bolted for the darkness, keeping the wagon between me
and the campfire. I encountered the third
Vermin who had been tending the horses. Prepared for my approach, he had pulled
his scimitar. With a gesture of his weapon magic slammed through my mental
defenses and my body froze. Another Warper. I cursed as he called for his
companions. Then I realized he didn’t have control of my mind. I projected to
the two horses. Tired, sore and
unsettled by the smell of blood, the horses welcomed my contact. I appealed to
them for help. Bad men want to hurt me,
I said in their minds. Kick? Please. The one horse backed up.
With a blur of motion, the Warper went flying. As soon as the man’s head
slammed into the ground, he lost consciousness, releasing his magical hold on
me. Thank you. I ran. Kick others? Sounds of pursuit drew
closer. The bats had lost their insect image when I switched my efforts to the
horses. If you can, I said,
increasing my speed. Shouts of surprise reached my ears. I glanced over my
shoulder. Four figures still chased me. The terrain remained flat and featureless,
as if part of the Avibian Plains. A black bulge in the distance looked
promising. Perhaps it was a cluster of trees. The men gained on me. My
hopes to reach cover faded with every step. I pulled power and
planned to baffle my pursuers’ minds, betting my life on the pure conjecture
that I possessed the ability to project confusing images into four minds in
rapid succession. A figure on horseback
approached from the left, aiming for me. I caught a glint of moonlight off a
sword. My options dwindled to either bewildering the men or stopping the horse. My chances of success
went from doubtful to none when a cold sting pricked my back. 24I DIVED TO THE GROUND,
rolling into a ball. The power I had drawn to confuse my pursuers I now applied
to the area turning numb on my back. In my mind, I saw the Curare spreading
through my muscles, seeking my bloodstream. I swept at it, using my magic like
a broom and guiding the substance to the hole. A warm wetness spread on my
shirt. The effort left me weak,
and I debated the merits of pretending to be paralyzed. The ground vibrated
with the drumming of hooves. The animal cut between the guards and me. An
unexpected sound of steel hitting steel rang in the cool night air. I crouched. The horse made a quick
turn and came back. Recognition shot through me. I knew that gait. I jumped to
my feet. “Yelena!” Valek threw me
my bow. I caught it in midair.
Kiki spun and Valek slid off her back. The rapid clash of blades followed as
Valek engaged four men in a sword fight. I hurried to join him before the
remaining Vermin and Cahil caught up. Four against one was pushing it for
Valek. He would be outnumbered against six. With the occasional kick
from Kiki, Valek and I fought side by side. Cahil and the Warper hung back. I strengthened
my mental defenses, sensing the Warper would try a magical attack. Once Valek cut a guard’s
arm in half, we pressed our advantage. As the man fell to the ground yelling
with pain, Cahil ordered the remaining men to disengage. They stepped back.
Valek shot me a questioning look. “The girls are still at
the camp,” I said. He nodded and we stalked
the retreating men. The Warper threw his
arms up and yelled, “Inflame.” Power pressed on my
skin. With a whoosh of hot air, the guard on the ground burst into flames.
Valek and I jumped away. The man screamed and writhed. He stilled as the
intense heat consumed him. Acrid puffs of charred flesh reached us, and I
covered my nose. “Come! Find your soul
mate!” The Warper’s voice cut through the roaring fire. A man’s form coalesced
from the pulsing flames. “What’s going on?” Valek
asked. “Let’s go.” I scrambled
onto Kiki’s back, Valek right behind me. Kiki took off. “What about the girls?” Guilt stabbed my heart.
“Later.” I let Kiki decide our
direction. Eventually we came to a farmhouse, modest in size and surrounded by
precise flower beds. Kiki stopped at the stable and Valek slid off. Where are we? I asked
Kiki. Ghost’s house. Good hay.
Nice lad. I eyed the wooden
structure with sudden distrust. Ghosts are here? Kiki snorted and nudged
Valek. Ghost. Moon Man had explained
to me Valek’s immunity to magic made him appear as a ghost to magical
creatures. I looked at him. “Summer
home? Isn’t it a little dangerous?” He smiled. “Safe house
for my corps. A base of operations.” “How convenient.” The stable was empty.
Valek helped me remove Kiki’s saddle and groom her, delaying the inevitable
conversation. I sagged with fatigue,
but needed to know what he had been doing while I was in my box. “How did you
find me? And your timing was impeccable as always.” Valek pulled me into his
arms. I molded to him, seeking warmth and comfort. My body shook with a delayed
reaction. The horror of the Warper setting his own man on fire replayed in my
mind. “You’re welcome, love. I
had wanted to sneak in and unlock you tonight, but you had other plans. I
should have been more prepared, but when I saw him poke you last night, I
thought for sure you would be out of it.” He pulled me away. “Let’s go inside.
I need a drink.” The interior of the
farmhouse lacked the homey warmth of its exterior. Spartan and utilitarian,
Valek’s operatives obviously didn’t entertain guests here. Valek lit a few
lanterns, but I refused to let him build a fire. We huddled together on the
couch, sipping brandy. “General Kitvivan’s
white brandy?” I asked. “You remembered!” Valek
seemed surprised. “There are tastes and
smells that call certain memories. White brandy reminds me of the Commander’s
brandy meeting.” “Ah, yes. And after
having to taste all those brandies for the Commander, you drunkenly tried to
seduce me.” “And you refused.” I
couldn’t pinpoint a specific time or event when Valek’s feelings for me had
changed. He had shocked me with his declaration of love in Brazell’s dungeon. “I wanted to accept. But
I didn’t know if your desire was from your heart or from the brandy. You might
have regretted it later.” The image of Valek
wearing his dress uniform recreated the desire to seduce him again, but we had
much to discuss. “Enough small talk. Tell
me everything,” I ordered. He sighed. “You’re not
going to like it.” “Compared to what I’ve
just been through these last—what? Three days? I don’t even know. It can’t be
that bad.” “I knew you were
swimming in some very dangerous waters,” he said, “but I hadn’t known they
extended so deep.” “Valek, get to the
point.” He fidgeted. Fear
brushed my heart. Something horrible had happened. I had never seen him fidget
before. He stood and started prowling the room. His liquid movements were
soundless. “Five days ago you were
taken—” “Five days!” So much
could have happened in that time. My thoughts went to Irys and Bain. They could
be dead. Valek put up his hand to
forestall my questions. “Let me finish first. You were kidnapped by Star, and
the reason she was able to smuggle you so far south, was because…I let her.” He
paused to let his words sink in. I stared at him in
astonishment. “You set me up?” “Yes and no.” “You need to do better
than that.” “I knew Star would want
to exact some type of revenge on you. She has kept in contact with the
underground network, and I allowed her because then I could learn who the new
players were. With the Code of Behavior, there will always be a black market
for illegal goods and forged papers. I like to keep tabs on the network to make
sure things don’t go too far, like when Star hired assassins to ruin the Sitian
trade treaty. And when—” “Get to the point.” “Star knew you would be
at Porter’s safe house—” “Porter set me up?” “I don’t think so. Are
you going to let me tell you or not?” He put his hands on his hips in
annoyance. I gestured for him to go
on. “I’ve known about
Porter’s rescue operation for a couple years and have allowed it to continue.
However, recently, his charges have been disappearing and I’ve been wondering
why. But that wasn’t the reason I watched the house. I had followed Star and
three of her men there, and was shocked to see you walk blindly into her trap.
Didn’t you even see her?” “She used a subtle kind
of magic.” “I haven’t felt her, and
I’ve been working with her for a while.” I thought back to the
night I had been captured. The only odd event had been when my perception had
altered for a moment before returning to normal. Perhaps she had affected my
vision somehow. “You didn’t pick up on my magic, either. And it flared out of
control a couple times within the castle.” “I will keep it in
mind,” Valek said with an icy tone. “Star’s motives for ambushing you, I
understood. The surprise arrived when she and her friends also targeted the
girls. I needed to know where they were taking you.” I mulled over his
explanation. “You could have helped me that night, but instead decided to
wait?” “A calculated risk. I
wanted to discover the extent of her operation and why she kidnapped the girls.
I had no idea you would end up across the border and in the Wannabe King’s
hands.” Valek knelt in front of
me, and would have taken my hands in his had I not kept my arms crossed. Anger
simmered deep within me. I had lost five days. Five days for the Fire Warper to
grow stronger. “This wouldn’t have
happened at all if you told me about your meeting with Porter,” he said. “A calculated risk. Like
it or not, I’m a magician, and if there’s a way to help my colleagues I’m going
to try. I wasn’t going to tell the Commander’s magician killer about it.”
Still, a small, guilt-inducing thought about killing magicians being preferable
to using them to increase the Fire Warper’s power pulsed in my mind. Valek sank back onto his
heels. His expression hardened into his metal mask. “Magician killer? Is that
what you think of me?” “That is one of your
duties for the Commander. I know how you operate. You like to stalk your prey
before you pounce. Allowing Porter’s network to continue is part of your modus
operandi.” His expression turned
flat and emotionless; my anger had ruled my tongue. My fury, though, remained. I changed the subject.
“How did Star get us into Sitia?” As if reporting to the
Commander, Valek said, “Put you into crates, stacked boxes of goods on top, and
dressed as traders. They had the proper papers. The border guards did a cursory
check and off you went.” He paused as extreme irritation flashed through his
eyes. “The border guards will be taken to task and retrained.” Valek stood. “I was
going to suggest we get a few hours’ sleep and try to rescue those girls. But
since I’m the magician killer, I guess I won’t concern myself about their
fate.” He left the room. 25THE LIFE DRAINED from
the room after Valek’s departure. I blamed fatigue for my harsh words, but knew
it was wrong. I had lost control of events the moment we crossed into Ixia. But
the real truth was I had never had control. From the instant the Fire Warper
stepped from the fire in the jungle, I’d been ruled by fear. Which had kept me
alive, so far, but it had certainly made a mess of things. Valek was just the
latest in a long list. I sighed. There was a
good reason for the fear. The Fire Warper’s power surpassed my own, and I
didn’t think a bucket of water would douse him. Curling up on the couch, I made
plans to free those girls. I couldn’t counter the Warper, but at least I could
try to stop the Vermin from gaining more power. But what about the next
shipment of young magicians from Ixia? From what Valek told me, I guessed Star
had tapped into Porter’s network, kidnapping his charges and selling those
adolescents for the Vermin to use in the Kirakawa ritual. After a few hours of
restless sleep, I went to the stables. Kiki dozed in her stall, but she woke to
my call. Do you have enough
energy for a trip? I asked. Yes. Where? Back to where you found
me. Bad smell. Yes, but I need to go
back and pick up their scent. They’ve probably moved into the plains by now. We go fast. That’s what I’m counting
on. Not bothering to saddle her, I hopped onto her back. All I had was my bow.
I glanced at the farmhouse. If I had apologized to Valek, he would have come
with me, but I wasn’t ready to admit I needed to apologize. At least he would
be safe for tonight. We were soon near the
border of the Avibian Plains. Evidence of the Vermin’s campsite littered the
ground, and from the number of items left behind, it appeared Cahil had left in
a hurry. Only a few hours of darkness remained. Kiki, which way? I
asked. She headed south, and I
let her choose her speed. She trotted until we reached the plains, then broke
into her gust-of-wind gait. The air sped past my ears as the ground blurred.
She didn’t maintain the pace for long, slowing when the smell of wood smoke and
horses strengthened. The Vermin’s magic
waited on the plains. Unlike the Sandseeds’ net of protection, the Daviians
preferred to lay traps, which would spring on the unsuspecting victim. Kiki
sensed these hot spots and avoided them. A faint glow of
firelight shone through Kiki’s eyes. We stopped and I was considering my next
move when Kiki reared and danced to the side. The sizzling odor of blood burned
in Kiki’s nose. She would have bolted, but I steadied her with a soothing hand
while my mind turned numb with shock. They hadn’t waited for
the next moon. Guilt slammed into me. I hunched over Kiki’s back, rocking with
anger and frustration. Girls hurt? Kiki asked. Yes. Go. Stop. What? But she didn’t
wait. She galloped toward the camp. Kiki! Help. Fix. She ran
through the camp. Rearing and jumping as if crazed with fear. Her sudden arrival
surprised everyone. The guards scattered and dodged her flailing hooves and my
bow. Kiki knocked down Cahil’s tent, kicked the wagon over and sent the horses
running. I froze in horror when I
spotted the two Warpers stooped over the still forms of Liv and Kieran. Blood
coated the Warpers’ arms up to their elbows. They each cradled a fist-size lump
of meat in their hands, lovingly stroking the object. I gasped with
recognition. They each held a human heart. Liv and Kieran’s hearts. Kiki knocked me to my senses
when she dumped me onto the ground. I gained my feet, ready for an attack, but
the Warpers remained engrossed in their ritual. Help, Kiki ordered as
she made another loop of the camp. I glanced at the fire.
No Fire Warper yet. I mentally kicked myself for even worrying about him, and
drew a thick strand of power. The Vermin defensive magic tried to clamp down on
my connection, but I had pulled such a fat rope it failed to cut even a thread. I launched my awareness
at the Warpers. A fog of magic surrounded them. Instinctively, I knew in order
for them to consume and maintain the power, they had to milk the blood from the
hearts and inject it into their skin. The Kirakawa ritual had
its own power and I couldn’t interfere with the Warpers. Their black lust for
magic sickened me and for a moment my vision filled with blood. But a movement from the
corner of my eye caught my attention. Liv’s ghost stood next to her dead body
and she gestured to me, thumping her heart with a fist. I squinted at the
apparition. Her ghost or her soul? When I understood her motions, I cursed
myself for my stupidity. I couldn’t affect the
ritual, but there was one thing only I could do. Concentrating on the girls’
hearts, I reached for their souls. The ritual had trapped them within its
chambers. I inhaled their essence, leaving behind dead flesh. The Warpers
wouldn’t gain any power tonight. Kiki slowed near me. I
grabbed her mane and hauled myself onto her back. Within two strides she moved
into her special gait. When we reached the edge
of the plains, I asked Kiki to stop so I could release the girls’ souls. The
sun began to rise, casting long shadows on the ground. I wished I had known the
girls better so I could make Sitian grief flags for them. The occasion called
for the fanfare of raising their flags to memorialize the girls’ short lives. Without silk or a
flagpole, I settled for expressing my deep regret for not saving them. They
felt content and relieved to be free. But what else could they say while I held
their souls? A vile thought occurred
to me. I wondered if my powers were enhanced while they remained with me. Could
I counter the Fire Warper if I increased my strength? Shuddering in revulsion
for just thinking about it, I released their souls to the sky. They rushed from
me. A lingering tingle of joy vibrated inside me before my body sagged with
fatigue. I arrived at Valek’s
safe house without any memories of the trip. Kiki headed for the stable and I
summoned enough energy to give her a good rubdown. The stack of hay bales
outside her stall appeared to be too inviting for me to pass. I lay down on top
of them and fell asleep. An army of flaming
soldiers chased me. My legs refused to run any faster as the burning men
advanced. Leif rushed to my aid but, as soon as he drew near me, he burst into
flames. Only Valek remained. He stood amid the conflagration, untouched by the
searing heat. A block of ice, he seemed indifferent to my plight. “Sorry, love.” He
shrugged. “Can’t help you.” “Why?” “You won’t let me.” The fire soldiers closed
in until a circle of fire surrounded me. Tongues of flames licked at my clothes
then grabbed the fabric. “Yelena!” Bright yellow and orange
danced along my cloak. Their movements held my attention in a bizarre
fascination as they consumed my clothes. “Yelena!” Cold water splashed on
me, followed by a drenching deluge. Steam hissed. I yelled and woke, choking on
the water. Valek stood next to me. He held an empty bucket. “What?” I sat up. My
clothes and hair were soaking wet. “What was that for?” “You were having a
nightmare.” “And shaking me awake
seemed too tame?” He was still angry. Valek didn’t answer.
Instead, he pulled me to my feet and pointed to the figure-shaped scorch mark
on the topmost hay bale. The place where I had slept. “You were too hot to
touch,” he said in a deadpan. I shivered. If Valek
hadn’t been here, what would have happened? “I take it your rescue
attempt last night has angered some powerful people? I saw you and Kiki create
chaos in the camp, ruining my plans yet again. What else did you do?” Valek hadn’t gone to
bed. He had left to help the girls. Kiki and I could have gone with him.
Together we might have reached the camp in time to save Liv and Kieran. Guilt
balled in my chest, souring my mood. I hadn’t managed to do anything right. I
didn’t find Cahil and Ferde in time. The Sandseed Clan was gone. Irys and Bain
were locked up. I had upset my friends and my brother. And Valek. He stared at me with his
flat expression, giving nothing away. An invisible wall grew between us. Mine
or his? I told him about the girls’ souls and how I had removed the power from
the ritual. “I should have let you
kill Cahil,” I said. If the change in subject
surprised him, he didn’t allow it to show on his face. “Why?” “It would have prevented
all this.” “I think not. Cahil’s
involvement is recent. These Vermin are prepared. They’ve been planning this
move for a while. Cahil wants you dead and wants his throne. I believe the
whole Kirakawa ritual sickens him.” “He helped with the
kidnapping.” “Because he wanted you.
He wasn’t at the camp last night. He’s probably heading to the Citadel.” “How do you know?” Valek gave me a tight,
joyless smile. “When you stormed the camp, I stole into the tent, intending to
put the Wannabe King out of my misery. I had a few seconds to determine he was
gone before the tent collapsed on me.” I suppressed a chuckle.
From the annoyed frown, I knew Valek wouldn’t appreciate it. “But I found that.” He
gestured to the floor. My backpack rested against Kiki’s stall door. A happy cry escaped my
lips and I knelt down to check the contents. Before I dug into the pack, I
looked up to thank Valek, but he was gone. I considered finding him to explain,
but I wasn’t ready to breach the wall surrounding me. Inside my little cocoon, I
could pretend the Fire Warper’s threat to the people I loved didn’t exist. My pack still held my
switchblade, my Sitian clothes, my lock picks, vials of Curare, lumps of
Theobroma, jerky, tea and Opal’s glass bat. The glow from the statue seemed
brighter. The intricate swirls of
liquid fire drew my gaze. I marveled at Opal’s talent. The whirlpool of light
in the core of the bat transformed into a snake. The roar of a kiln beat at my
ears. Hands wielded a pair of metal tweezers to shape the thin glass body
before it cooled. The thoughts of the glassmaker reached me. Opal’s thoughts. She dripped water on a
groove in the glass near the end of the pole. The snake cracked off. Using
thick mittens, she picked up the piece and put it into another oven to cool slowly.
This one was not as hot as the first. Opal, can you hear me? I
asked. No response. When my awareness
returned to the bat in my hand, I knew I had reached Booruby with my mind
without expending a lot of energy. Booruby! A six-day ride south of here. I hadn’t
been able to reach Bain from Booruby and I had been closer. What would happen
if Irys held the snake? Would we be able to communicate over vast distances
without sapping our strength? My mind raced with the implications. The cold air intruded on
my excitement. My wet hair felt icy in the breeze, and I remembered Kiki
mentioning snow. We were north of the Avibian Plains, but I had no idea if the
farmhouse resided in the Moon Clan’s lands or Featherstone’s. Either way, by
the time the storm reached us, it would turn to rain and sleet. And by looking
at the gray wall of clouds advancing from the west, it wouldn’t be long before
the storm hit. I shouldered my pack and
went inside. Valek had lit a small fire in the living room. His soft tread
padded on the floor above me. Probably planning to sleep after being up all
night. Hesitating on the
threshold of the room, I debated. My cloak was soaked. I needed the fire to dry
it and I wanted to warm myself. In the end, I changed
into Sitian clothes, hung my cloak by the hearth and filled a pot for tea. I
heated the water, but avoided looking directly into the fire. Feeling uneasy, I
chewed a piece of jerky and drank the tea as far away from the flames as I
could get. Unable to stay in the room any longer, I wanted to run upstairs to
Valek. Instead, I grabbed a blanket off the couch and ran to the stables,
joining Kiki. She snorted in amusement
when I made a bed of straw in her stall. I filled two buckets with water and
put them next to me. If I start to smoke,
pour these on me, I said to her. I don’t want to set fire to the barn. Soon after I laid down,
an odd melody of sleet drummed on the slate roof. The whistle of wind through
the rafters augmented the beat. Lulled to sleep by the storm’s music, I slept
without dreams. The arrival of a strange
horse woke me and Kiki the next morning. At least I hoped the weak storm light
meant the beginning and not the end of the day. Valek led in a black
horse with white socks. With its long legs and sleek body, the animal was built
like a racehorse. Pulling a thread of power, I linked my mind with the new
arrival. He felt uncomfortable in
this new barn. Strange smells. Strange horse. He missed his stall and friends. Smells here are good, I
said in his mind. You’ll make new friends. What’s your name? Onyx. I introduced him to
Kiki. Valek tied Onyx to a
hitch. “We need to leave for the Citadel.” He saddled Onyx. “This weather is
good cover.” My heart twisted with
pain. He had gotten his own horse so he didn’t have to sit with me on Kiki.
“How far?” “Two days. I have
another safe house about a mile north of the Citadel. We can set up operations
there.” We worked in complete
and utter silence. The next two days felt
more like ten. With the nasty weather, Valek’s cold shoulder and my anxiety to
hurry, I would have preferred spending the time in the Commander’s dungeon. Our arrival at the safe
house seemed a relief until the necessity of planning our actions made our
strained relationship almost unbearable. I remained stubborn, believing the
distance between us would make it easier for me to make life-threatening
decisions. After we settled into
the cottage, I headed for the Citadel. The weather again promised rain, lending
a bleakness to the landscape. Bare trees and brown hills seemed muted and
barren of life. I knew if I swept the area with my magic, I would feel the
small stirrings of creatures, waiting for the warmth. But the risk of using
magic this close to the Keep was too high. Disguised as a
Featherstone clanswoman, I wore a long-sleeved linen dress underneath a plain
sand-colored cloak. Although I left my bow behind, I had access to my
switchblade. My hair was pulled into a stylish knot favored by the
Featherstones and held in place by my lock picks. Valek had styled my
hair. He worked in a cold and efficient manner, making it easier for me not to
grasp his hands and pull him close. His deft fingers twisted the strands of my
hair expertly, and a strange vision of fire melting his arms to stumps rose in
my mind. I banished the image and
put my hood over my head. The north gate of the Citadel wasn’t as busy as I had
hoped. In fact, once inside, only a few people walked the streets. They hunched
over their packages and stared at the ground. The weather could be a factor,
but the rain had ceased. The streets should be teeming with citizens hurrying
to the market before the next squall. Even the beggars were
few and far between. Most of them wore expressions of worry as they glanced
around, and none approached me. The Citadel’s white marble
walls looked dingy and dull. The green veins resembled streaks of dirt and the
whole town felt as if a layer of grime coated it. The grunge had built up in
the cracks, and soaked into the foundations. The shine was gone from the town.
And it wasn’t due to the weather. I missed a step when the
first Daviian Vermin came into my sight. But soon they were everywhere.
Hunching over, I mimicked the citizens’ posture, searching for an alley or side
street free of Vermin. Blood throbbed in my ears. The Vermin’s gazes burned
into my soul. When I entered a shortcut to the market, my legs wobbled with
relief. But I kept out of view until I had studied the center square, watching
the people scurrying around the market’s stands. The sense of fear even diluted
the usual heady smell of spices and roasting meat. The concentration of
citizens meant more Vermin. I waited until I spotted my target and then joined
the shoppers. When I drew beside a young boy of ten, I had to suppress a smile
as I listened to him barter with the stand owner. “Four coppers, take it
or leave it,” Fisk said, sounding like an adult. “I can’t feed my family
for that!” the owner countered. “Since you’re my friend, I’ll take seven
coppers.” “Belladoora is selling
them for four.” “But look at this quality.
Hand embroidered by my own wife. Look at the detail!” He held up the fabric. “Five, and not a copper
more.” “Six, and that’s final.” “Good day, sir.” Fisk
walked away. “Wait,” the stand owner
called. “Five then. But you’re stealing the bread out of my children’s mouths.”
He grumbled some more while wrapping the fabric in paper, but he smiled when
the boy paid him the money. I followed Fisk to his
client. The woman paid him six coppers and he handed her the package. “Excuse me, boy,” I
said. “I’m in need of your services.” “What can I do for you?”
he asked. Then his eyes flew wide with shock before worry touched them. He
glanced around with small furtive movements. “Follow me.” He led me to a tight
alley and into a dark dwelling. I stood in the blackness while Fisk lit a few
lanterns. Thick curtains hung over the windows and only a few chairs decorated
the barren room. “This is where we meet,”
Fisk said. “We?” He smiled. “The Helpers
Guild members. We plan our day, divide up the money, and exchange gossip about
our clients.” “That’s wonderful.”
Pride at what Fisk had accomplished filled my heart. The grubby beggar boy I
had met on my first Citadel visit had transformed into a productive member of
his family. Fisk’s own pride showed
in his light brown eyes. “It’s all because of you, my first client!” Instead of begging for
money, now Fisk and the other beggar children helped shoppers find good deals,
carried packages and would do just about anything for a small fee. His grin dropped from
his face. “Lovely Yelena, you shouldn’t be here. There’s a reward for your
capture.” “How much?” “Five golds!” “Is that all? I thought
it would be more like ten or fifteen,” I teased. “Five is a lot of money.
So much I wouldn’t trust my own cousin not to turn you in. It’s dangerous for
you here. For everyone.” “What’s been going on?” “These new Daviian Clan
members. They have taken over. At first it was just a couple of them, but now
the streets are filled. Ugly rumors about their involvement with the Sandseed
genocide has everyone frightened. People living in the Citadel have been
questioned, and certain beggars have disappeared. Whispers about how the
Council members have lost control have spread, yet they are preparing for a
war.” Fisk shook his head. He
had wisdom beyond his years. I mourned the loss of his childhood. Being a child
of beggars had robbed him of fun, wonder and the ability to make mistakes
without fatal consequences. “How about the Keep?” I
asked. “Locked down. No one
enters or leaves except under the Daviians’ armed escort.” The state of affairs was
worse than I had anticipated. “I need you to get a message to one of the
Councilors for me.” “Which one?” “My kinsman, Bavol
Zaltana. But I don’t want you to write anything down. It must be a verbal
message. Can you do it?” Fisk frowned,
considering. “It will be difficult. The Councilors all have an escort while out
in the Citadel, but perhaps I could set up a distraction…” He rubbed his hands
along his arms as he contemplated the task. “I can try. No promises. If it gets
too hot, I’m out of there. And it’s—” “Going to cost me. And
you must not repeat the message to anyone.” “Agreed.” We shook hands on the
deal. I told Fisk my message. He left to recruit a couple helpers. I returned
to the market to purchase a few items and to eat, killing time without
appearing to be. My gaze kept returning
to the Keep’s towers. Located within the Citadel’s marble walls, the Magician’s
Keep occupied the northeastern section. Unable to suppress my desire to see the
pink-pillared entrance gates, my path led to the Keep. Instead of appearing
warm and inviting, the cold stone seemed impenetrable and daunting. I longed to
make contact with my friends and colleagues inside. Where were Dax and Gelsi?
Had they been allowed to continue their studies? I felt blind and cut off,
frustrated and lost. As if I had been exiled and would never see them again. Daviian guards stood
next to the Keep’s guards. Feeling too exposed, I returned to Fisk’s meeting
room to await the boy’s return. Time crept along in mind-numbing increments. A
small tan spider built its elaborate web in the corner of the room. To help the
spider, I hunted for an insect to place on the sticky strands. Fisk arrived as I stood
on a chair, attempting to nab a moth. He puffed out his chest and declared the
mission a success. “Councilor Zaltana said he would meet with you tonight in
his home.” Fisk deflated a bit with his next remark. “He warned his residence
is guarded by a Warper. What’s a Warper?” “A Daviian magician.” I
considered the complication. “What time?” “Anytime, but if you’re
out on the streets after midnight, the guards will arrest you. I would suggest
after the evening meal. There is usually a flurry of activity as the shops
close and everyone heads home.” Fisk sighed. “It used to be a good time to beg.
People would feel guilty passing by a child without a home when they had a warm
comfortable bed waiting for them.” “Used to be, Fisk.
That’s in the past. I bet you have a nice home, now.” His posture
straightened. “The best! Which reminds me. You had better leave before my
helpers come back. We meet in the morning and again in the late afternoon.” I paid Fisk, thanking
him for the help. “If you ever get caught, don’t hesitate to tell them about
me. I don’t want you to be hurt because of me.” Fisk gave me a confused
frown. “But you could be taken and killed by the Daviians.” “Better me than you.” “No. Things are bad and
getting worse. If you’re killed, I have a horrible feeling life wouldn’t be
worth living.” Fisk’s dire comments
followed me as I traveled through the Citadel. Keeping to the back alleys, I
hid behind buildings until the streets filled with residents hurrying home,
just as Fisk had predicted. I joined the flow, blending in as the sky grew dark
and the lamplighters began their evening chore. When I passed Bavol’s dwelling,
I slowed long enough to determine his house was empty. I made another loop
around the street to make sure, then slipped behind the building. Using my
picks, I unlocked the back door and startled a woman. “Oh my!” She dropped a
rake. It clattered on the edge of the stone heath, and the fire she had been
stirring to life dimmed. “I didn’t mean to
startle you,” I said, thinking fast. “I have an urgent appointment with
Councilman Zaltana.” “I don’t remember him
telling me about a guest. And certainly no guest would come creeping in the
back door!” She swept up the iron rake and hefted it in her big hands. She wore
a type of loose tunic the Zaltanas preferred, but it was hard to see in the
semidarkness. I chanced it. “We just
set the meeting today. It’s regarding clan business.” “Oh my.” She bent and
raked at the coals. When a flame ignited, she used it to light a lantern. She
peered at me through the glow. “Goodness, child. Come in then. Shut the door.
This is all highly unusual, but I don’t know why I’m surprised. These are
unusual times.” The woman bustled and
fussed about the kitchen, claiming the Councilman would soon be home and would
want his supper. I helped her by lighting the lanterns in the dining room and
living room. Bavol’s home was decorated with jungle art and valmur statues. A
pang of homesickness struck me. When I heard someone at
the front door, I hid in the kitchen. “His guard dog doesn’t
come in the house,” the woman said. “The Councilman won’t allow it. The day
that dog is allowed in will be the end of the Sitian Council.” But would the Warper use
his magic to scan the interior? Would I feel the power? I hovered by the back
door just in case. The woman said, “Call me
Petal, child,” and invited me to join them for supper. She shooed away any
protests about my limited time. “Nonsense, child. Let me tell the Councilman
you’re here.” “Ah, Petal,” I said,
stopping her. “Perhaps it would be best if you just asked him to come in here?
Dogs have very acute hearing.” She tapped a finger to
her forehead and then pointed to me before leaving. Bavol came into the kitchen
with Petal on his heels. He greeted me with a tired smile. “Smart to come before
me,” he said in a soft voice. He rubbed at the dark smudges under his eyes.
Worry lines etched his face and he stood as if he strained under a heavy
weight. “If you’re discovered…” He sank down to perch on an edge of a stool.
“You can’t stay long. If they hear or see anything out of the ordinary, the Warper
will barge in and I will tell him everything.” His matter-of-fact
statement about his response to the Warper sent a ripple of fear through my
body. What were the Warpers doing to gain information and cooperation? “I’ll be quick then. Why
did the Council allow the Daviians to come?” Alarm flashed on Bavol’s
face and he clamped his hands together in his lap. “Petal, could you please get
me a glass of whiskey?” She eyed him with
annoyance. Even though she stirred her stew pot on the other side of the kitchen,
she had been leaning toward us, trying to listen to our conversation. With a huff of
indignation, Petal left the kitchen. Bavol closed his eyes
for a moment and grimaced. But when he focused on me, his old confident self
returned. “We should have let them
die,” he said. 26“LET WHO DIE?” I ASKED,
but Bavol ignored me. “At first the Daviians
required minor things from us to keep them alive. A vote one way or another.
The requests became more frequent and alarming. Visitors grew in numbers and
the next thing we knew we had agreed to everything.” “Keep who alive?” “We made a mistake, but
you’re here now. Perhaps it’s not too late.” “Bavol, I don’t—” “The Daviians have our
children.” I stared at him for a
moment in stunned silence. “How?” Bavol shrugged. “Does it
matter how? Our families live with our clans most of the year. We’re not home
to protect them.” “Who do they have?” “My daughter,
Jenniqilla. She disappeared from the Illiais Market. I’ve been instructed not
to tell anyone. But from the other Councilors’ faces I knew the Daviians had
gotten to everyone. Eventually, we talked about it amongst ourselves. All the
Councilors with children had one taken. For the others, the Daviians kidnapped
Councilor Greenblade’s husband, and Councilor Stormdance’s wife.” “Where are they keeping
them?” “If I knew I wouldn’t be
here talking to you,” he snapped. “Sorry.” I considered
the implications. Petal returned with two glasses of whiskey and handed one to
me. She went back to stirring her pots. “When?” I asked, thinking
about Valek’s comment that the Vermin had been planning this before Cahil had
gotten involved. “Fourteen days ago,”
Bavol whispered. I thought back. Fourteen
days seemed like fourteen years when I sifted through everything that had
happened. The Vermin had grabbed the Councilors’ families right after I fled
the Citadel. It wasn’t Roze influencing the Council after all. “Do the Master Magicians
know?” “Master Bloodgood and
Master Jewelrose suspected when we wrote the letter to the Commander. Master Featherstone
interpreted their refusal as an act of treason. And the Daviians forced us to
agree with her and sign their arrest warrant and help incarcerate them in the
Keep. They cooperated,” Bavol added when he saw my concern. “It’s a shame
Master Cowan is still too young to exert much influence on Master
Featherstone.” “Do you think Roze is
working with the Daviians?” “No. She would be
horrified to know they are making the decisions. We are voting with her, so she
is content and the Daviians are offering her support in her campaign against
the Commander.” “Couldn’t she learn of
your dilemma from your thoughts?” Bavol’s gaze snapped to
me. “That would be a serious breach of the Magician’s Ethical Code. Master
Featherstone would never resort to invading our private thoughts.” I had a difficult time
believing in Roze’s high moral standards, but I possessed no evidence to the
contrary. “Should I set an extra
place for dinner?” Petal asked. Bavol and I both shook
our heads no. His anxious expression reminded me I needed to leave soon. She
tsked and carried a stack of plates from the kitchen. Finding and rescuing the
Council’s family members became a priority. There was one way I could discover
where they were being held, but I would have to use magic. “Bavol, I may be able to
find your daughter through you. But I can’t do it in the Citadel. Is there any
chance you can leave?” “No. My guard is with me
always.” “Could you slip out the
back door?” “I have to make contact
with my guard every hour. It is the only way he will give me any privacy.” “What about when you’re
sleeping?” “He sits in the living
room. Petal doesn’t know about it, since she retires so early and sleeps like a
log. I haven’t been able to sleep since Jenniqilla’s capture. I’m up before the
sun and can send him back outside.” “It will have to be
during the night, then. I’ll make arrangements. Just don’t be surprised if you
have company in your bedroom tomorrow evening. And leave the back window open.” “That’s Petal’s room,”
he said. “Perhaps you can make
sure she remains asleep?” He sighed. “I long for
the simpler days. Never again will I complain about Councilor Sandseed’s
stubbornness or Councilor Jewelrose’s petty problems.” “Dinner’s ready,” Petal
called. “You should go,” he
said. “Do you know any way I
could get into the Keep?” “The emergency tunnel.
But I don’t know if it has collapsed or been sealed up. The magicians dug it
when they first constructed their Keep, during the clan wars long ago. I hadn’t
known it existed until recently. Second Magician mentioned it to me a few days
before they arrested him and Fourth Magician.” “Are Bain and Irys still
being held in the Keep’s cells?” “As far as I know.” “Did Bain tell you where
the tunnel is located?” “He said something about
the east side of the Keep, and about how it was big enough for a horse.” Bavol
stood. “We have lingered too long. I expect to hear from you again. Stay safe.”
He went into the dining room. I waited a moment, then
opened the back door. Peeking out, I scanned the dark alley. It appeared to be
deserted, but without my magic, I couldn’t be sure. I risked it and left
Bavol’s. The Citadel’s quiet streets alarmed me. Only a few people walked on
the roads, and most of them were Vermin. Even the taverns remained dark and
desolate. My chances of getting
through the north gate undetected didn’t seem likely. I considered going to one
of the inns, but the Vermin could have people there watching for strangers. The
longer I stayed on the street increased the danger of being caught. In desperation, I found
a house with an outside staircase reaching the ground of a narrow alley.
Climbing up to the top of the steps without making too much noise, I stood on
the handrail and reached for the edge of the roof. I discovered a problem with
marble buildings as I tried to use the wall to push myself onto the roof. My
foot slipped and I just managed to regain my balance and avoid plummeting four
stories to the ground. In the end, I employed
my acrobatic training and made a leap of faith onto the roof. Good thing these
same marble walls were thick enough to mask the sound of my thud. I lay on the flat roof,
gasping, glad Valek hadn’t been here to see my awkward ascent. His ability to
scale the Commander’s castle walls was now more impressive. I wondered if he would
be worried when I failed to come back. Perhaps it was for the best that I had
stayed too long with Bavol. Multiple trips through the gate would arouse
suspicion. The night air turned
cold. I huddled in my cloak and slept. Dreams of fire haunted me. No matter
where I ran to or where I hid, the flames always found me. Always. I woke sweat soaked in
the morning light, achy and feverish. The prospect of climbing down from the
roof unseen and finding Fisk was as appealing as taking a cold bath. At least
descending proved easier than ascending the roof. I made it down the stairs and
into the alley without incident. Although the thumping in my head failed to
stop. Bleary-eyed and tired, I
searched for Fisk at the market. Remembering his meeting room, I hid nearby and
waited for him. The group of children
who left the building caused me to smile. So intent on their day’s work, they
moved with purpose and carried themselves with a businesslike air. After they
disappeared from sight, Fisk appeared beside me. “Did something happen?”
he asked. “Nothing bad. I have
another job for you.” I told him what I needed and he thought he could help me.
“I don’t want anyone to get into trouble, though.” “Don’t worry, you picked
a good night.” “Why is it good?” “It’s Midseason’s Night.
We celebrate the midpoint of the cold season. Gives everyone something to look
forward to.” Fisk grinned. “Doesn’t Ixia have something similar?” “Yes. They hold an
annual Ice Festival. People display their handcrafts and get together to
exchange ideas. I just hadn’t realized we were this far into the season.” “The celebration’s bound
to be quieter this year, but there should be enough activity to hide ours.”
This time Fisk’s smile held a hint of mischievousness, reminding me of Janco. I’d bet Janco had been
pure trouble as a kid. At least I hadn’t upset him and Ari before leaving Ixia.
Then again, since I hadn’t brought them along, they could be annoyed with me,
too. We made plans for the
evening and Fisk told me of a place where I could stay to wait for the night.
After he left, I walked over to the Council Hall. I made a loop around it while
trying not to appear as if I held any special interest in the square structure.
The activity on the wide steps leading to the first floor was busy. The Councilors’
offices, the great hall, record room, library and Citadel’s jail all resided
inside. My interest lay in the record room. Information from all the clans had
been stored there, and I wanted to find any mention about the magician’s
emergency tunnel within the records. Or perhaps the library would have some
reference to the Keep’s layout? Bain’s private stash of
books most likely contained the information I needed. The irony of my situation
was not lost on me. The Second Magician had told Bavol about the tunnel’s
existence because he knew Bavol would be the first person I would contact. What
Bavol had thought was an interesting tidbit of information turned out to be a
message for me. The lack of details
remained a problem. East side of the Keep and big enough for a horse didn’t
give me much to go on. The flow of people in
and out of the Council Hall stayed steady. However, a few Vermin hung about and
I decided not to risk my life for research. When I headed back
toward the market, a strange feeling touched my back as if a thousand little
spiders crawled up my spine in unison. Turning a corner, I glanced to the side.
A male Daviian walked a small distance behind me. He wore red pantaloons and a
brown hooded short cape. When I rounded another corner, he remained on my tail. His scimitar glinted in
the sunlight. I entered the market. Pausing at a vegetable stand, I hoped the
Vermin would pass me, but he leaned on a lamppost. Small darts of panic began
to pierce my heart. If the Daviian was a Warper, I wouldn’t be able to lose
him. Joining with a group of
women, I stayed with them as they shopped. The man kept pace with us. I needed
a distraction and fast. One of the women in the
group paid for a beaded necklace. She had been rather loud and full of opinions
as we went from stand to stand, and she made her annoyance over my unwanted
presence clear to me. When the stand owner
handed her the wrapped package, I leaned over and whispered to her, “He sold
that very same necklace to my friend for two silvers last week.” The woman had just paid
four silvers. As predicted, she loudly demanded the same price and the confused
seller tried to reason with her. The ensuing argument drew a considerable crowd
and I squeezed between them, hoping to lose the Daviian. No luck. He caught sight
of me and followed. A few shoppers temporarily blocked his way, and I ducked
under one of the market stands. Not the best decision,
but I had run out of options. I hunched under the table. A purple cloth had
been draped over it and the material hung to the ground. A few bolts of fabric
and a box of buttons had been stored underneath. I wondered when it would
be safe to leave. Popping up just as the Vermin walked by wouldn’t be ideal, so
I squirmed into a more comfortable position to wait. The purple fabric pulled
aside. I froze. A man’s face peered
through the opening. “Your friend’s gone. It’s safe to come out.” He backed away when I
started to move. “Thanks,” I said, brushing the dirt off my cloak. “Attracting their
attention is never a good thing,” the man said. His round face held a serious
expression. “People tend to disappear around here. Especially those with five
golds on their head.” I calmed my furious
heartbeat. The stand owner knew I hid under his table and he hadn’t reported
me. At least not yet. Perhaps he wished to strike a bargain? Something like six
golds to keep quiet. “Don’t worry. You’re a
friend to Fisk and his guild. And just the fact the Daviians would be willing
to pay five golds for your capture means you, of all people, scare them. I hope
for the sake of my family the reason you scare them is because you can do
something to bring our normal lives back.” “I scare them,” I
agreed, thinking about the Sitian Council and how terrified they had been over
me being a Soulfinder. “But I don’t know if I can restore your old way of life.
I’m only one person.” “You have Fisk’s help.” “Until my money runs
out.” “True. That little
scamp, forcing me to make an honest living!” The man paused and considered.
“Aren’t there any others to help you?” “Would you help me?” He blinked in surprise.
“How?” “Not all these Vermin
are Warpers. They carry scimitars and spears, but look around you—they are
outnumbered.” “But their Warpers have
powerful magic.” “You don’t have any
magicians? No one has escaped from the Keep? No one has come from the other
clans?” His eyes lit with
understanding. “But they’re scattered around the Citadel. They hide in fear.” “A concerned citizen
needs to convince them to act despite their fear, to organize them and, when
the time is right, to lead them.” “You can do that. You’re
the Soulfinder.” I shook my head. “My
presence would jeopardize the efforts. I’m needed elsewhere. If you’re
determined, you will find the right person.” The man smoothed out the
fabric on his table. He appeared deep in thought. “Merchants come and go from
the Citadel all the time…caravans of goods…” “Just be very careful.”
I started to walk away. “Wait. How will we know
when the time is right?” “I have a bad feeling
that you won’t be able to miss it.” After the day settled
into night, I met up with Fisk and his uncle. People walked the streets in good
humor despite their Vermin watchers and the late hour. While Fisk went to
prepare for later, I led his uncle onto the roof. Once we ascended, we
traveled over the roofs of the Citadel to Bavol’s dwelling. If they weren’t out
celebrating, the other residents had already gone to bed. I pulled the rope
Fisk had bought for me from my pack, and secured it around the chimney before
tossing the end over the side. The glow from the
lamplights didn’t reach the back alley, so I hoped Bavol had remembered to open
the back window. Clutching the rope, I shimmied down the side of the house and
was relieved to find the window open. I climbed into Petal’s room with the utmost
care. Inside the room, I stilled and listened to her breathing, steady with the
occasional snore. I yanked on the rope, then held it stable while Uncle slid
down. He joined me in the room with a thump. We both froze until Petal resumed
her even breathing. Bavol, awake and ready,
waited for us in his room. Uncle slipped into bed, pulling the blankets up to
his neck and the Councilor came with me to the back window. Living in the
jungle canopy all his life, Bavol had no trouble ascending the rope. I followed. Traveling over the
rooftops proved to be ideal. Eventually, we climbed down to the ground. When we
came within sight of the north gate, we found a place to hide. No traffic. I
worried, and the longer the gate remained empty the greater my fear. As I tried to decide if
we should risk crossing through, a group of obviously inebriated men and women
approached. With loud voices, a few of the group decided they wanted to go
outside the Citadel, and a discussion ensued, leading to a fight. When the guards became
entangled in the brawl, Bavol and I slipped through the gate unnoticed. Once
out of sight of the guardhouse, we ran. Our time was limited. We reached Valek’s
cottage and I hoped we would be far enough away from the Citadel and the
Warpers. Kiki whinnied in her
stall and I opened my mind to her. Lavender Lady safe, she
said with contentment. Ghost upset. I’ll talk later. No time
right now. I hustled Bavol into the cottage. Valek sat on the couch, his
expression set into cold fury. I ignored his anger. He of
all people should know the nature of this operation lent itself to unforeseen
circumstances. However, I knew why Bavol’s face blanched when he spotted Valek
on the couch. “You set me up,” he
said, taking a step back. “Relax, Bavol. If Valek
was going to assassinate the Council, you would be dead by now. He’s helping
me.” Valek snorted. “I am?
Funny how I forgot. Or is it because someone forgot about me?” Sarcasm spiked
each word. Again, I ignored his
fury and filled him in on what Bavol had told me. His face lost some of his ire
as he considered the new information. “Bavol, sit down. Close
your eyes. Think of your daughter,” I ordered. When he settled on the
couch, I reached for power. Touching the source caused a sudden rush of relief.
I hadn’t used magic in two days and reconnecting felt like being wrapped tight
in my mother’s arms. I projected my awareness
to Bavol. His loving thoughts dwelled on his little girl. She appeared to be
around eight years old. Strands of gold streaked her long brown hair and a
spattering of freckles dotted her warm maple-colored cheeks. A beautiful child,
she twirled with delight after being presented with a piece of sap candy. Through Bavol, I reached
toward Jenniqilla. Within the memory, her happiness over the candy matched her
joy over spending time with her father. I pushed past the memory and tried to
find the girl. She missed her father
with a painful desperation. Cold and hungry, she wanted her father and mother
more than food or heat. She rocked back and forth, trying to soothe the child
in her arms. The two-year-old boy’s crying had set off a chain reaction among
the children in the room. A woman paced with a year-old baby girl and the man
tried to cajole another two-year-old. The gloomy light in the
wooden room came from small cracks between the gray boards. The area contained
no furniture and only two slop pots had been placed behind a ripped screen.
From the harsh acidic smell, the pots hadn’t been emptied in a while. A coating
of grime clung to Jenniqilla’s skin and she promised herself she would never
fuss at her mother about bathing again. An icy chill seeped into her legs and
back from the dirt floor. Jenniqilla, I said in
her mind. Where are you? She glanced around,
wondering if someone had called her name. Seeing no one, she continued to sing
to Leevi. I’m your cousin, Yelena.
I need to know where you are so I can help you and the others. She remembered how her
second cousin was taken long ago, but had returned. If she got away, than I
can, too, she thought. Jenniqilla was too young
to access the power source. She couldn’t communicate with me directly, but she
felt the intentions of my power. She remembered her kidnapping. Somehow, she
had lost sight of her mother at the market. As she wandered around, searching for
Mama a man dressed in the loose tunic of the Sandseed clan picked her up.
Before she could yell, he clamped a sweet-smelling rag over her mouth and nose. Jenniqilla woke inside a
box and cried for Mama. A man banged on the wood and threatened to kill her if
she didn’t shut up. She felt movement and when the box stopped and opened, the
same Sandseed man pulled her out and brought her to an old dilapidated barn
smelling of rot. Within the barn was another structure. This one smelled like
sawed wood and had shiny locks on the door. When they shoved her
through the door, dark shapes moved in the corners. Distraught and confused,
she cried. A woman materialized from one of those black forms and took
Jenniqilla into her arms. After she had quieted, the woman, Gale Stormdance,
explained to her why they all were there. Ask Gale where you are,
I encouraged Jenniqilla. But Gale wasn’t sure. “I
think somewhere in Bloodgood’s lands,” she said. Her face grew thoughtful, and
I projected myself toward her and encountered a magical defensive barrier. She stared at Jenniqilla
in shock but lowered her defenses tentatively. I’m here to help, I said
to Gale, explaining who I was and how I had found her. Thank goodness, she
said. I’ve been hoping a Keep magician would look for us. Why did it take so
long? I updated her on what I
knew, then asked her again about her whereabouts. I only had a brief
glimpse. I sensed her frustration. Visualize the area
around the barn for me. Forest-covered hills
loomed behind the barn and a large stone farmhouse was located to the right.
Something odd had caught her eye on the left. A glint of sunlight off a
crimson-colored pond. The shape, though, had been stranger than the color. Her
mind sifted through all the panic and fear of being hauled out of a crate and
taken inside to find the required image. A diamond, she
exclaimed. The pond is shaped like a diamond. It was a start. I
thanked her for her help and promised to find them. I pulled away from Gale,
away from Jenniqilla and back to Bavol. A thin filament looped around my mind
as I returned to Bavol. As if another power had caught me in a parasitic
embrace. Through Bavol’s confused
mind, I returned to my body. Valek had disappeared and the smell of smoke
burned my nose. I rushed to the window. The stable was on fire. 27“KIKI!” I SCREAMED,
running. The image of her trapped in her stall and engulfed by flames filled my
vision. A voice yelled my name. A black horse stood in
the pasture. A Daviian Warper coaxed
the blaze higher. Brighter. Hotter. It didn’t matter. The parasite in my mind
had gained control. I ran straight into the
stable, diving into the fire. The heat burned my face
and seared the inside of my nose. Flames danced with delight on my cloak,
eating the fibers in gleeful disregard. The soles of my boots melted. The smoke
robbed air from my lungs. My throat closed. Hot knives of pain
stabbed into my skin. Layers burned off in sheets of torment. The sound of
boiling blood sizzled in my ears. Pleasure followed pain
and the colors of my world turned from white-hot and blinding yellow into
bloodred and ice-black. I marveled at my
surroundings. Lit with a soft gray light, the flat world extended for miles in
every direction. With reluctance, I glanced at my body, expecting to see a
burnt corpse, but was surprised to find no damage. A weightless feeling
tingled, and my arms and legs were slightly transparent. A ghost perhaps? Was I
in the shadow world? Then where were the others? All the Sandseeds who waited
for me. Perhaps they had been a figment of Moon Man’s imagination. A soft laugh sounded
beside me. “You don’t see them
because you have chosen not to see them,” a voice said. A voice I feared more
than anything. The Fire Warper stood next to me. He had lost his cloak of
flames and appeared as an ordinary man. Broad shouldered with short dark hair,
he stood as tall as Moon Man. His skin gleamed as if carved from coal. He raised his arm to me.
“Go ahead, touch it. It’s not hard.” I hesitated. “You read
my mind?” He laughed again. “No. I
read the question in your eyes. Despite your fear, you’re curious. An admirable
trait.” The Fire Warper stroked
my arm with his fingertips. I jerked away. “So afraid of being
burned. I knew I needed a big fire to attract my little bat. It wasn’t that
bad, was it?” “Bad enough.” Caught
here with him, my fear turned to resignation. He seemed delighted with
my response. Gesturing around, he said, “So what do you think of my fire world?
Rather dull?” “Yes. I thought it would
be…” I scanned the featureless plain, with black ground and crimson sky. “Hotter? Filled with
burning souls? That you would be welcomed by your old tormentor, Reyad, for an
eternity of rape and torture?” “Filled with souls,” I
agreed. Drawn into the fire before, I had seen others. “That’s because you were
with Moon Man. He has chosen to see those unfortunate souls. They’ve all lived
colorful stories of life. You block them from your mind. Unwilling to see and
unwilling for Moon Man to show you.” “I saw them in the
shadow world, and relieved him of those painful images,” I protested. “Really? Do they haunt
your dreams? Are you working with Moon Man to soothe them?” He paused and, when
I didn’t answer, he smiled. “Of course not! You have locked them away just like
you have pushed Moon Man and your brother out of your life. Soon Valek will
follow.” “At least they’ll be
safe.” “No one is safe.” Tired of his wordplay, I
asked him what he wanted. The amusement dropped
from his face in an instant. “The sky.” I stared at him. “I rule the fire world.
I now have control over the shadow world, thanks to those Daviian magicians.
And even though the shadow world is a borderland between fire and sky, I still
can’t access the sky.” “Why?” “Because once I rule the
sky, I can return to the living world.” Horror rolled through
me. “What’s in the sky?” “The source of all
magic.” I didn’t quite
understand. All magicians had access to the power source. Would he block others
from using it? “You know so little of
magic,” he said. His expression was incredulous. I peered at him. His
face had changed from smooth to covered with burn scars. His skin rippled as if
melting. “Why do you need me?” “You’re the only one who
can get me into the sky.” “And why would I do
that?” “Because this is what
I’ll do to your family and friends.” He touched my arm.
Burning pain seared up my shoulder and encompassed my head. My eyes turned hot
and dry. The other occupants of the fire world became visible through a
shimmering veil of heat. Souls writhed in pain,
dancing as if flames clinging to a log. Twisting and contorting, their misery
pulsed off them in waves. The force of their emotions slammed into me. I
stepped back into the Fire Warper’s embrace. He pointed to the
different souls. “A few belong here, like Hetoo and Makko. Others were sent by
the Daviians to feed me. Increased my power so much I can travel into the
shadow world and steal more souls.” He dragged me through the sea of suffering.
“Your brother would add nicely to my collection. His magic is strong. Moon Man.” He savored the Story Weaver’s name. “Would bring me a cooling blue power.
Combined, your mother and father would give me a boost. But I’ll let them all
live if you help me.” “If I help you, you’ll
be able to rule the living world, so how does that save them?” “I’ll show them special
favor.” I knew they wouldn’t
agree. Yet spending eternal life in complete misery wasn’t an attractive
alternative. The Fire Warper released
me. The souls faded from sight and the dull plain reappeared. “Much better, isn’t it?”
he asked. “Yes.” “This could be your
eternity. It’s not very interesting, but it is safe. However…” I leaned forward. “You could live in the
sky. It’s peaceful and filled with contentment and joy.” “Until you join them.” “I only need to use them
for a while. Once I’ve returned to the living, I will let you preside over
their happiness.” An appealing prospect,
except he had changed his story and I knew then I couldn’t trust anything he
said or promised. Being dead hadn’t released me from my responsibilities at
all. Perhaps if I went into the sky, I could tap into the power source and stop
him. “What would I have to
do?” I asked. “You need to find a soul
on its way to the sky and follow it.” “What about you?” “I’ll be with you.” I looked at him in
confusion. “When you go to the sky,
you’ll be able to explore all aspects of magic. But to get there, you need to
draw a soul to you. You know how to do that. Once you have the soul, step into
the fire. Come to me and together we will go to the sky,” he explained. “But I’m dead already.
Why can’t I take one of the souls that doesn’t belong here?” He shook his head. “You
must come under your own volition. You’re not dead. I pulled you from the
flames before they could consume your body. Besides, all these souls belong
here. They don’t deserve to be in the sky.” Another contradiction. I
didn’t know what to believe. And his motives were unclear, so I asked him, “Why
do you want to go back to the living world?” His burned face creased
with anger. Fire erupted on his shoulders. “He sent me here to spend an
eternity in misery. But his descendant released me, fed me power in exchange
for knowledge and obedience. My master is strong, but not that strong. I have
exceeded my savior’s power. Now I want to regain my life that had been stolen
from me.” “Who sent you here?” “An Efe traitor named
Guyan. Now do we have an agreement? If not, then you will remain here.” He
shrugged as if my decision didn’t concern him too much. Guyan’s name was
familiar to me. He was Gede’s ancestor. So my new Story Weaver was in league
with the Fire Warper. Perhaps Gede was also their leader Jal. I would have to
remember that tidbit the next time I had a lesson scheduled with Gede. I choked
out a laugh. At this point, there would be no future sessions for me. I scanned the flat plain,
peering into the red-tinged light. A gray shape swooped from the air. It dived
and danced over a figure. I moved closer. The shape was a bat. But there
weren’t any insects or sources of heat to warrant its actions. Yet it picked
and yanked at the figure. Another torture on the poor soul? “What do you see,
Yelena?” the Fire Warper asked. “Your future?” “Perhaps.” I turned
away. “Will you come back?” “Yes.” He held out his hand. I
grasped it. My world melted in a blaze of heat and cooled just as quickly in a
swirl of ash and smoke. I lay among the ruins of the stable. Charred beams
rested in crooked angles, twisted pieces of blackened metal littered the floor,
and the scorched smell of burnt leather hung in the air. I stumbled from the
still-warm pile of wood. Singed holes peppered my clothes and soot streaked my
skin. My cloak was gone. The hair on my arms had been burned away. I reached
for my head, stopping when I encountered half-burnt stubble instead of hair. My ruined boots crunched
on the remains of the stable and shuffled through ash-filled puddles as I
walked out, seeking Kiki. No response to either my mental or physical calls. A loud bang sounded
behind me and I turned to see Valek standing in the doorway of the cottage. I laughed at his expression
of complete and utter surprise. Then my legs turned to liquid as I realized
what I would really lose when I kept my promise to the Fire Warper. My efforts
were so focused on trying to protect him—protect everyone—I hadn’t considered
the cost of keeping them safe. I fell. He was beside me in an
instant. Caressing my face with a feather-light touch, he looked uncertain. “Are you real?” he
asked. “Or just some cruel joke?” “I’m real. A real
simpleton, Valek. I should never have said…I should never have done…” I drew in
a deep breath. “Forgive me, please?” “Would you promise never
to do it again?” he asked. “Sorry, I can’t.” “Then you certainly are
real. A real pain in the ass, but that’s who I fell in love with.” He pulled me
close. I clung to him with my ear
pressed against his chest. The beat of his heart, steady and solid, comforted
me. His soul, nestled within its chambers, was unreachable with my magic, but
he had given it to me freely. “Why were you so
determined to push me away, love?” “Fear.” “You’ve faced fear
before. What’s different?” Good question. The
answer horrified me. All this time I believed I wanted to protect my friends
and family from the Fire Warper. “I’m afraid of my magic.” The words tumbled
from my mouth, breaking through the invisible barrier I had built between us.
“If I harvested enough souls, I know I would possess ample power to defeat all
the Warpers, including the Fire Warper. That’s tempting. Tempting enough to
want to protect you from me.” Valek pulled back and
tilted my head so he could meet my gaze. “But all you need to do is ask. We
wouldn’t hesitate to give you our souls to defeat the Warpers.” “No. There has to be
another way.” “And that would be…?” “When I figure it out,
you’ll be the first to know.” Before he could comment, I added, “You never
answered me. Am I forgiven?” He sighed dramatically.
“You’re forgiven. Now come inside, you reek of smoke.” Valek helped me to my
feet. I swayed on unsteady legs for a moment. “Where’s Kiki?” “Once you disappeared
into the stable, she ran off and hasn’t come back.” I wanted to find her and
reassure her, but my body lacked the energy. We walked to the
cottage. The bright light of midday burned in the sky. I could no longer think
of the sky without remembering my deal with the Fire Warper. Unease wrapped
around chest. “Where’s Bavol?” I asked
to distract myself. “The Daviian Warper
captured him while I tried to douse the fire. Will they kill him?” “No. They need him and
all the Councilors for a while to keep up the pretense that the Council and
Master Magicians are in charge.” “How long will it last?” “Not very.” “Will they come after us
here?” The Fire Warper had
gotten what he wanted. “No. But we need to retake control.” “We, love? I thought you
could handle this by yourself.” Dealing with the Fire
Warper was my task, but, for the rest, I required assistance. “I was wrong.” Valek heated water and
filled the cast-iron tub. He removed my pile of burnt clothes. By the time I
finished bathing, he had brought me a clean outfit. “What’s this?” He held
Opal’s glass bat. I told him about my
visit with Opal. “As a fellow artist, what do you think of the construction?” Valek examined the
statue, turning it this way and that. “It’s an accurate reproduction. The
coloring matches one of the smaller jungle bat species. It’s sticky with magic.
I feel it, but can’t see it. Can you?” “The inside glows as if
molten fire has been captured by ice.” “That would be something
to see, then.” Thinking about what the
Fire Warper had done to show me his world, I touched Valek’s shoulder and
opened myself to him, letting him see the bat through me. “Ahh…spectacular. Can
everyone see this?” “Only magicians.” And
the Commander, I thought. “Good. That lays that
debate to rest. I am not a magician.” “Then what are you? You’re
not a regular person either.” Valek pretended to be
mortified. “Come on,” I said. “Your
skills as a fighter have an almost magical air. Your ability to move without
sound and blend in with shadows and people seem extraordinary. You can
communicate with me over vast distances, but I can’t contact you.” “An anti-magician?” “I suppose, but I’d bet
Bain could find it in one of his books.” I told Valek about the tunnel and
about the Councilors’ families, describing the pond to him. He considered. “That sounds
like Diamond Lake in the Jewelrose lands. It’s near the Bloodgood border. The
Jewelrose Clan had built a series of lakes that resemble shapes of jewels and
the water reflects the colors.” “Why red?” “Because the Jewelrose
Clan is famous for cutting rubies into diamond shapes. The Commander even has a
six-carat ruby on a ring, but he had stopped wearing it after the takeover. I
wonder…” Again, Valek’s gaze grew distant. “What?” He looked at me as if
deciding whether to tell me something important. “Have you shown your bat to
the Commander?” “Yes.” “And?” I hesitated. I had
promised the Commander to keep what he called “his mutation” a secret. Would
telling Valek about the bat break that confidence? “I know about the Commander,
love. How could you believe that I spent the last twenty-one years with him and
not know?” “I…” “After all.” Valek made
a scary face. “I am the anti-magician!” I laughed. “Why didn’t
you tell me?” “For the same reason you
didn’t.” He wrapped my bat and placed it back into my pack. “The Commander saw the
glow. I think his body contains two souls, but I have no idea how or why it’s
magical. And if he does have magic, why didn’t he flame out after puberty?” “Two? Ambrose’s mother
died during his birth and there was some confusion. The midwife insisted a boy
had been born, but later his father held a baby girl. They searched for
evidence of a second child but found nothing. They chalked it up to the midwife
being upset about losing her patient. Ambrose used to blame this invisible twin
whenever he was in trouble, which from his stories was quite often. His family
indulged him when he began wearing boy’s clothes and calling himself Ambrose.
It seemed mild in comparison to a few of his other antics.” “Was his mother a
magician?” “She was considered to
be a healer, but I don’t know if she healed with magic or with mundane
remedies.” Valek drained the tub
while I attempted to do something with my ruined hair. Some sections remained
long, while others had been burnt to stubble. “Let me, love.” Valek
removed the brush from my hands. He rummaged around the bath area until he
found his razor. “Sorry, nothing else will work.” “How did you get so good
with hair?” “Spent a season working
undercover as Queen Jewel’s personal groomer. She had beautiful, thick hair.” “Wait, I thought all the
Queen’s servants had to be women.” “Good thing no one
thought to look up my skirt.” Valek grinned with impish delight as he cut my
hair. Large chunks floated to the ground. I stared at them, trying to convince
myself losing my hair didn’t matter. Especially not when I considered I
wouldn’t need it in the fire world. After he finished, Valek
said, “This will help with your disguise.” “My disguise?” “Everyone’s looking for
you. If I disguise you as a man, you’ll be much harder to find. Although…” He
studied my face. “I’ll use a little makeup. Being a man won’t draw unwanted
attention unless they notice you don’t have any eyebrows.” I touched the ridge
above my eyes with my fingertips, feeling smooth skin. I wondered if they would
grow back. Again, I dismissed the notion. It wouldn’t matter in the end. “What should we do
first? Try to find the tunnel to the Keep, if it even exists. Or go and rescue
the Councilors’ families?” I asked. “We should—” Valek
sniffed the air as if he smelled a dangerous scent. “Someone’s coming.” 28HE SIGNALED ME TO WAIT
and left without a sound. I grabbed my switchblade and crept through the living
room. A murmur of voices filtered in from the kitchen. The door flew open as
soon as I reached it. I brandished my knife at the hulking figure in the
doorway. “What happened to your
hair?” Ari demanded. “Are you all right?” Janco followed him in.
“Look what happens when you sneak off without us!” “I’d hardly call being
captured and taken to Sitia inside a box sneaking off,” I said. Janco cocked his head
this way and that. “Aha! You look just like a prickle bush in MD-4. If we
buried you up to your neck, we could—” “Janco.” Ari growled. “If you gentlemen are
finished, I’d like to know why you disobeyed my orders,” Valek said. Janco smiled one of his
predatory grins as if he had anticipated this question and already composed an
answer. “We did not disobey any of your orders. You said to keep an eye on
Yelena’s brother, the scary-looking big guy and the others. So we did.” Valek crossed his arms
and waited. “But you didn’t specify
what we should do if our charges came to Sitia,” Ari said. “How could they possibly
escape the castle and get through the borders?” The expression on Valek’s face
showed his extreme annoyance. Glee lit Janco’s eyes.
“That’s a very good question. Ari, please tell our industrious leader how the
Sitians escaped.” Ari shot his partner a
nasty look, which didn’t affect Janco’s mood in the least. “They had some
help,” Ari said. Again, Valek said
nothing. Ari began to fidget, and
I covered my mouth to keep from laughing. The big man resembled a ten-year-old
boy who knew he was about to get into a lot of trouble. “We helped them.” “We?” Janco asked. “I did.” Ari sounded
miserable. “Happy now?” “Yes.” Janco rubbed his
hands together. “This is going to be good. Go on, Ari. Tell him why—although, I
think they magiked him.” He waggled his fingers. “They didn’t use magic.
They used common sense and logic.” Valek raised an eyebrow. “There’re strange things
going on here,” Ari said. “If we don’t put it right, then it’ll spread like a
disease and kill us all.” “Who told you this?” I
asked. “Moon Man.” “Where are they now?”
Valek asked. “Camped about a mile
north of here,” Ari said. The drumming of horses
reached us before Valek could comment. Through the window, I saw Kiki followed
by Topaz, Garnet and Rusalka. “How did they find us?”
Icy daggers hung from Valek’s voice. Janco seemed surprised.
“They didn’t know where we were going. I told them to wait for us.” “Isn’t it frustrating
when no one obeys your orders?” Valek asked. We went outside. Tauno
rode on Kiki and she came straight to me. She bumped my chest with her nose. I
opened my mind to her. Don’t go into fire
again, she said. I didn’t reply. Instead,
I scratched behind her ears as Tauno slid off her back. He greeted me with a
cold look and returned to the others. Leif, Moon Man and Marrok lingered near
their horses while they talked to Ari and Janco. From Leif’s various
frowns and Tauno’s scorn, I knew they remained angry with me. I couldn’t blame
them—I had acted badly. Liveliness lit Marrok’s face and I hoped Moon Man had
been able to weave his mind back into a coherent whole. Everyone went inside,
but I stayed behind, taking care of the horses as best as I could with
half-burnt brushes and scorched hay. Part of the pasture’s fence had caught
fire and collapsed. I stared at the gap, knowing the well-bred Sandseed horses
didn’t need a fence and Onyx and Topaz would stay with them. However, I attempted
to fix the broken section. And kept at it while the sun set and the night air
turned frosty. Kept working even when the horses decided it was too cold in the
open and left the pasture to find warmth under a copse of trees nearby. Valek arrived. I pounded
on a post with a heavy rock. He halted my swing and removed the rock from my
hand. “Come inside, love. We
have plans to discuss.” Reluctance pulled at my
feet as if I walked through thick, sticky mud. The living-room
conversation died the moment I entered. Moon Man looked at me with sadness in
his eyes and I wondered if he knew about my deal with the Fire Warper or if he
was disappointed by my actions. A fire had been lit. I
sat down next to it, warming my frozen and bleeding fingers, no longer afraid of
the flames. The trapped souls within the fire twisted. Their pain and presence
were clear and I wondered how I had been able to ignore them before. I averted my gaze.
Everyone stared at me. Ari and Janco had gained their feet and held their
bodies as if ready to spring into action. “Did I pass your test?”
I asked. “By not diving into the flames.” “That’s not it,” Janco
said. “You have a rather ugly bat clinging to your arm.” Sure enough, a hand-size
bat peered at me from my upper left arm. His eyes glowed with intelligence; his
claws dug into my sleeve. I offered a perch and he transferred his weight to
the edge of my right hand. Carrying him outside, my efforts to release him
failed. He didn’t want to leave. Settling on my shoulder, he seemed content so
I returned inside. No one commented on my
new friend. In fact, Leif regarded the bat with an intensely thoughtful
expression. The others waited. A
moment passed until I realized they waited for me to begin. To make the
decisions. To set events into motion. Even after leaving them as prisoners of
the Commander, they still looked to me. And this time, instead of backing down
and pushing them away, I accepted the responsibility. Accepted the fact that
they might be hurt or killed, and understood my life would be given in exchange
for keeping the Fire Warper from returning. “Leif,” I said. He jumped as if bitten. “I want you and Moon Man
to get into the Council Hall’s library and find everything you can about a
tunnel into the Keep.” I explained Bain’s comments. “Moon Man can disguise
himself as a Vermin and hopefully you won’t be caught. Do not use magic at all
from now on. It will only draw them to you.” Moon Man and Leif
nodded. “Marrok?” “Yes, sir.” “Are you able to fight?” “Ready, willing and
able, sir.” I paused, swallowing a
sudden knot in my throat. By their determined expressions, I knew they were all
willing. At least Valek’s smug smile was better than hearing him say, I told
you so. “Good. Marrok and Tauno
will accompany Valek and me. We’ll go south to rescue the hostages.” Ari cleared his throat
as if he wanted to protest. “I haven’t forgotten
about you two. I need you to go into the Citadel and help organize the
resistance.” “Resistance?” Valek
asked. “I hadn’t heard.” “I put an idea into a
merchant’s head, and, I think if Ari and Janco disguised themselves as traders,
they could move about the Citadel. Ari will have to dye his hair. Oh, and find
a boy named Fisk. Tell him you’re my friend and he’ll help you make contacts.” “And when and where, Oh
mighty Yelena, do we resist?” Janco asked. “At the Keep’s gates. As
for when, I don’t know, but something will happen and you’ll know.” Janco and Ari exchanged
a look. “Gotta love the confidence,” Janco said. “And when do we start,
love?” “Everyone get a good night’s
sleep and we’ll begin preparations in the morning. We’ll leave early. Do you
have enough disguises for four of us or do we need to get supplies? Money?” Valek smiled. “You mean
raid some laundry lines? Steal a couple purses? No. My safe houses are well
stocked with all types of items.” Leif was the only one to
be alarmed by his statement. The room erupted with
the noise of multiple conversations. Plans were made and actions decided.
Tauno’s unhappiness at being separated from Moon Man became apparent. He asked
why we wanted him. I explained about needing a good scout. “What about Marrok?” he
asked. “We need him just in
case they’ve moved the captives. He can track them to the new location.” Also I
wanted to talk to Marrok and find out why he had accused Leif and me of helping
Ferde escape. The next morning, my
group saddled the horses. Since we wouldn’t be crossing the Avibian Plains,
Valek rode Onyx, Tauno sat on Garnet and Marrok rode Topaz. Valek had used his
skills to transform us into members of the Krystal Clan. We wore the light gray
tunics and dark woolen leggings that the clan preferred, which matched the
short hooded capes and black knee-high boots. Before we left, Leif
handed me a bunch of his herbs. “Since you can’t use your magic, you might want
to have them. There are directions on how to use each one inside the packet.” “Leif, I’m—” “I know. Truthfully, I
didn’t like the distrustful and mean person you became in Ixia. The fire
brought my real sister back. So be careful, as I’d like to keep her around for
a while.” “You take care, too.
Don’t get caught. I wouldn’t want to tell Mother about it. She wouldn’t be
pleased.” Leif looked at Ari and
Janco. They fought over who would drive the wagon and who would guard. “Do they
always argue?” I laughed. “It’s part of
their appeal.” Leif sighed. “I’m amazed
we made it to Sitia without being discovered.” He paused and considered. “I
think I’m actually going to miss them.” “I always do.” We set a time and place
for everyone to rendezvous, knowing the cottage would no longer be safe. I said
goodbye to Leif and the others and we headed west, hoping to reach the Krystal
Clan’s border by nightfall. We would follow the border south to the Stormdance
lands. Then cross through Stormdance and Bloodgood before reaching Jewelrose’s
border. Should anyone stop us on
the road, we concocted a cover story. We were delivering samples of quartz to
the Jewelrose Clan. Irys’s clan cut and polished gems and stones of all types.
They designed and produced almost all the jewelry in Sitia. Disguised as a man, I
used the name Ellion, and asked everyone to call me by that name. The day turned warm in
the bright sunshine and we set a quick pace. Valek hoped the temperate weather
would draw people onto the roads. “Why?” Tauno asked. “Then we will be one of
many instead of the only ones,” Valek explained. They rode together and talked
about how best to find the barn that held the Councilors’ family members. Kiki stayed beside
Topaz. She had missed his company and I wondered if Cahil mourned the loss of
his horse. They had been together since Cahil was young. My eyes rested on
Garnet. I cringed when I imagined facing the Stable Master’s wrath. Garnet had
been with us so long and I had lost the Avibian honey I had bought to appease
the Stable Master. He would make me clean tack and scrub stalls for weeks. I
snorted with amusement. I had found one positive thing about spending eternity
with the Fire Warper: no mucking out. And no bat. My new
friend hung from the edge of my hood. His weight rested comfortably in the
small of my back. He seemed content to sleep away the daylight hours with me. Marrok remained quiet
throughout the day, but I wanted to know what had happened to him at the
Citadel. “Cahil tricked me,” he
said when I asked. “I fell for his lies about remaining with Ferde to discover
the extent of the Daviians’ operations. Applauded his plan to lure Ferde back
to the Citadel. Commiserated over your ill-timed interference. He convinced me
to confess and name you and Leif as accomplices. It would help him persuade the
Council to attack Ixia. He promised…” Marrok paused, rubbing a hand along his
right cheek. “After I confessed, he turned on me. A mistake I paid for…” He
shuddered. “Am still paying for.” “Betrayals are brutal,”
I agreed. Marrok looked at me in
surprise. “Don’t you think leaving us in Ixia was a betrayal?” “No. That wasn’t my
intention. I wanted to protect you and was honest with all of you from the
start. I just wasn’t honest with myself. A mistake.” “You’re still paying
for?” Marrok smiled. The gesture smoothed out the lines of worry and time on
his rugged face, erasing years from his age. “Yes. It’s the problem
with mistakes, they tend to linger. But once we’re done with the Vermin and
Cahil, I will have paid for all my mistakes. In full.” Marrok gave me a
questioning glance, but I didn’t want to elaborate. Instead, I asked, “Do you
remember your rescue from the Citadel?” He grinned ruefully.
“Sorry, no. At the time, I was in no condition to think. Moon Man is a wonder.
I owe him my life.” He glanced around then lowered his voice. “Being here
without him, I feel…fragile. And that’s hard for an old soldier to admit.” We rode the rest of the
way in silence. Around midnight we set up camp. Funny how we automatically
attended to the chores without discussion. Tauno hunted for rabbits and I cared
for the horses. Valek searched for firewood and Marrok prepared the meal. “I’m used to soldiers’
rations on the road, so don’t expect this to taste like Leif’s,” Marrok said as
he dished out his version of rabbit stew. The stew tasted a little
bland but filled our stomachs. After dinner, we arranged our sleeping mats and
set a watch schedule. I shared a blanket with Valek, wanting to be near him. I
clutched him tight. “What’s the matter,
love,” he whispered in my ear. “You’re rarely this quiet.” “Just worried about the
Councilors’ families.” “I think we have things
well in hand. Between my sleeping potion for the guards, your Curare for the
Warpers and the element of surprise, we should rescue them in no time.” “But what if one of the
captives is sick? Or dying? If I use my magic, I risk letting the Vermin know
where I am and what I’ve been doing.” “Then you’ll have to
decide what is more important—one person’s life or the success of the mission
for Sitia’s future. It’s pointless to worry. Instead, use your energy to decide
how you would react to each contingency you can imagine. It’s more prudent to
prepare for all possibilities than fret.” He was right.
Eventually, I slept. Shadows haunted my
sleep. They roamed the shadow world, lost and afraid. Whenever the bright heat
would appear, they hid and waited for the hot hunter to dissipate. Each time,
the hunter captured more of them in his net of fire. They didn’t understand why
he came and they knew nothing about the bridge to the sky. They clung to this
world, desiring revenge and justice. The shadows needed a guide to convince
them to let go and to show them the way. “Ellion…Ellion…Yelena!
Wake up.” I pushed the arm away,
wanting to roll over. “Tired,” I mumbled. “Yes, we all are. But
it’s your turn,” Valek said. I blinked. My eyelids
would not stay open. “There’s a pot of tea on
the fire.” When I failed to move, Valek pushed me off the mat and curled in my
place under the covers. “Ahh. Still warm.” “You’re evil,” I said,
but he feigned sleep. We had been on the road
for the past four days, riding every minute we could to turn a seven-day
journey into five days. And since Tauno had left before dinner to scout the
area ahead, we had one less to guard the camp. My bat swooped over the
rising heat of the fire. He’d been staying with me during the day and hunting
food at night. I longed to fly with him, soaring over the ground. Tauno returned the next
morning to report no signs of activity along our path to the Jewelrose border.
“There is a good site to camp about two miles south of the border,” he said. “I
will join you there.” He left. I wondered what had kept
him awake. Unlike Tauno, I had had a few hours’ sleep last night. Perhaps I
shouldn’t complain anymore. We packed and followed
Tauno’s trail. Another uneventful day and we found the camp location without
any problems. Tauno reappeared with dinner hanging from his belt. “I discovered the
location of the barn,” he said, while butchering the rabbits. “It is four miles
west of here in a little hollow.” Valek quizzed him for
the details. “We’ll have to strike in the dark,” he said. “We’ll go after
midnight, leave the horses in the trees and then attack.” Tauno agreed. He cubed
the meat and dropped it into the pot. “I will sleep, then.” While Marrok stirred the
stew, Valek prepped the reed pipes and I saddled the horses. Garnet sighed when
I cinched his straps tight. “It’s not far,” I said
aloud. “Then you can rest.” I joined Marrok and
Valek where they sat by the fire. They ate their stew and I filled a bowl for
me. The broth tasted better; there was a hint of spice. “This is good,” I said
to Marrok. “I think you’re getting the hang of it. What did you add?” “A new ingredient. Can
you tell what it is?” When I sampled another
spoonful, I rolled the liquid around my mouth before swallowing. The aftertaste
reminded me of Rand’s favorite cookie recipe. “Ginger?” Valek dropped his stew.
He jumped to his feet but stumbled. A look of horror creased his forehead.
“Butter root!” “Poison?” “No.” He sank to his
knees. “Sleeping draft.” 29VALEK COLLAPSED ONTO the
ground. But just before he closed his eyes, he winked at me. I glanced around.
Marrok hunched over his bowl, appearing to be asleep. A bone-deep fatigue
spread throughout my body, but I remained awake. Perhaps I hadn’t swallowed
enough butter root. Not wanting to be caught
“aware,” I pulled my switchblade and hid the weapon in the palm of my hand with
my thumb resting on the button. Slumping over, I let my upper body fall to the
side. The stew spilled off my lap and onto the ground, soaking into my pants.
Great. I feigned sleep. My
muscles stiffened and the cold seeped into my skin. Trying not to shiver, I
strained to hear any noise to give me a hint of what was going on. The horses whinnied in
alarm and I opened my mind to Kiki for the first time in days, hoping the tiny
use of my magic wouldn’t alert anyone. Bad smell, she said.
Quiet Man tied reins. Quiet Man? She huffed and showed me
an image of Tauno. Why would he do that? Ask Garnet. Where did you go today,
Garnet? I asked. See people. Smell fear. I cut off the connection
when voices approached. “So easy! All the talk
about the Soulfinder and the Ghost Warrior and look at them! Sleeping like babies,”
a male voice said. “Trust is a powerful
ally. Right, Tauno?” a female voice asked. She had the same lilt as a Sandseed. Was Tauno in league with
them? Or had they captured him today and forced him to help them? “Yes. And trust is
blind. No one suspected me even after the ambush in the plains.” He laughed.
“Trust is for stupid people. Even the Sandseed Elders had no idea. My ability
to find the Daviian camps amazed them.” They chuckled, enjoying
themselves. Anger seethed in my blood. Tauno could trust I would make him
regret his actions. As they decided what to
do, I counted four distinct voices. Two men and one woman plus the traitor
Tauno. They planned to use Marrok to appease the Council, and bring me to their
leader, Jal. “Kill the Ghost Warrior,”
one of the Vermin ordered. “Make sure you cut his throat and collect his blood.
It will be just revenge for Alea and her brother.” I waited. Arms wrapped
around my chest and another set around my ankles. They lifted me off the
ground. “Now!” Valek yelled. I triggered my
switchblade and yanked my knees toward my chest, pulling the surprised Vermin
holding my feet into my knife. Hot blood gushed onto my hands. I wrenched the
blade out of his stomach before the other Vermin dropped me onto the ground. I
scrambled to my feet as he pulled his scimitar. Switchblade against
scimitar. Bad odds. And I had used the Curare on my weapon on the first man.
This wouldn’t be a long fight. I glanced at Valek. He fought Tauno and the
woman. His sword against their spears. Better odds. I hoped I could last long
enough for Valek to help me. “Drop your weapon,” the
Vermin ordered me. When I didn’t obey, the
man swung and I dodged to the side. He lunged. I backed away. He swiped at my
neck. I ducked. He hacked and I danced. Winded with the effort,
the Vermin said, “You will not be harmed if you surrender.” After another attack, I
realized what he was doing. “You’re not allowed to kill me,” I said. “Jal wants
me alive so he can feed me to his pet Fire Warper!” My smugness infuriated
him. He increased the pace of his swings. Bad decision. “I can still hurt you.
Bleed you. Torture you.” His blade sliced through
my cape. I stepped back as blood welled from the slash along my arm. Really bad
decision. He advanced. I retreated. His scimitar found more open areas and soon
my arms and legs were crisscrossed with bleeding cuts. I felt light-headed and
my feet moved with an unusual slowness. My energy drained at an alarming rate. My bat appeared. He flew
at the Vermin, diving and pulling his hair. The Vermin flailed his arms, giving
me an opening, but my switchblade felt so heavy and my body reacted too slowly.
The Vermin must be a strong Warper. He had weakened my mental defenses without
my notice. The Warper stared at the
bat and the poor creature crashed to the ground. “Is that all you have?”
he asked. “What about your great soul magic? I think the Fire Warper will be
disappointed.” He shrugged. “Orders are orders.” He swung his weapon. My
arms moved, but couldn’t block the hilt of his scimitar from striking my
temple. My vision blurred as I
crumpled to the ground. The world spun. I rolled away from the Warper. When I
reached Kiki’s hooves, I let the blackness claim me. A hammer pounded on the
side of my skull. Wake up, it pounded. Open your eyes. More hammering. I
refused. The next time, a dull throb intruded on my oblivion. Come on, it
pulsed. Open your eyes. Please. I woke, feeling like a
cutting board. My arms and legs burned with pain and my head hurt. Valek
hunched over me, pouring water on my cuts, inflaming them. “Ow! Stop that,” I said. “Finally,” he said. But
he didn’t stop. He dabbed at them, cleaning the lacerations, and sat back on
his heels. “That’ll have to do for now. Come on. We need to go.” When I failed to move,
he pulled me into a sitting position. A wave of nausea swelled. “Here.” He thrust red
leaves into my hands. “I found them in your saddlebags. The note said to eat
them for head pain.” I chewed one. My stomach
settled, but my sight remained blurry. I peered into the semidarkness, assuming
the fuzzy white blob in the sky meant the moon had risen. Had I slept all day?
Valek’s words finally sank in. “Go where?” I asked. Valek yanked me to my
feet. “We need to find the barn.” My thoughts still moved
as if coated with sap. “Barn?” Valek shook the rest of
the canteen’s water onto my shorn head. A jolt went through me when the cold
breeze hit my wet skull. “When the Vermin don’t
come back with us, the others will know something has happened and will either
kill their hostages or move to another location.” Valek ennunciated each word
as if speaking to a simpleton. “Here.” He handed me a set of clothes. “Hurry.” I changed. The carnage
around our campsite made me sick and I sucked on another red leaf. Valek had
killed the woman and Tauno. Traitor! Marrok remained where he had fallen
asleep. And the Warper lay on his side. His head looked misshapen, as if kicked
by a horse. Kiki? I asked. Bad man. No one hurt
Lavender Lady. Thanks. Peppermints? When we’re done. And
apples, too! I wore my coral-colored
shirt and matching skirt/pants. They reflected the moonlight. No hope for me to
blend in. Valek dressed in the Warper’s clothes and he applied makeup to match
the Warper’s skin tone. Fear twirled up my spine as I figured out what he
planned. At least, I wasn’t going to be bait for a necklace snake. This time. We untied the other
horses. The smell of blood made them skittish, and they were happy to leave
despite being tired. Valek and I rode Kiki and Onyx while leading the others.
We traveled the four miles to the barn in silence. Approaching the edge of the
woods with care, I strained to see a sign of the Vermin hideout. An eerie red
glow shimmered above Diamond Lake. The small structure looked deserted, but
after a moment, the figures guarding the doors became visible. “Which horse?” I asked. “Onyx. Kiki is too
well-known.” I dismounted and told
the horses to stay in the woods until I called. “Take off your cape,”
Valek said. “Lie in front of me.” He took his foot from the stirrup. I pulled myself up and
lay across the saddle. He handed me my switchblade. The weapon had been cleaned
and the blade was retracted. “It’s been primed with
Curare.” Valek grabbed the reins with his left hand and held a scimitar in his
right. “Pretend to be unconscious,”
he ordered as he clicked at Onyx. We entered the open
area, hopefully appearing as the Warper coming back with his prize. Feigning to be a dead
weight, I bounced on Onyx’s saddle. The motion made me nauseous. A whoop of joy
cut through the air as we neared. I prepared for Valek’s signal. “Where are the others?”
a male voice asked. “They’re coming,” Valek
said in a rough tone. “Finally! We have her!”
another man said as he tugged my legs. “Help me.” Valek slid off on the
opposite side of the saddle, keeping Onyx between him and the Vermin. Another person joined in
pulling me off. “We’ll keep her asleep until she reaches Jal. Get the wagon,
you’ll leave tonight,” the man ordered. He cradled me in his arms. “Where is Jal?” Valek
asked. The man froze and I
risked a peek. The tip of Valek’s scimitar touched the Vermin’s neck. Although
armed with his own scimitar and a spear strapped to his back, the Vermin’s
hands held me. “At the Magician’s Keep.
Go ahead and find Jal. Just make sure to take her with you.” The man tossed me
at Valek and yelled for help. At that close distance,
even Valek couldn’t dodge out of the way. I hit him in the chest. We tumbled to
the ground, but I kept going until I cleared his body. Jumping to my feet, I
spun in time to see Valek rolling away to avoid being sliced by the Vermin’s
blade. Four more Vermin with
weapons drawn ran toward us. I triggered my
switchblade and threw it at the Vermin attacking Valek. He grunted when the
blade nicked his shoulder, but he didn’t stop. However, the Curare on my blade
spread throughout his body and paralyzed his muscles. I grabbed the man’s
spear. Valek regained his feet and his weapon. A mere second later, the
others reached us. Events blurred into one
long fight. I used the spear’s length to my advantage, keeping the scimitars
from reaching me. After a fake to the midsection, I swept my opponent’s feet
out from under him. I didn’t hesitate to plunge the tip of the spear into his
neck. His soul rose from his body and hovered above it. Should I help his soul? Before I could decide,
another man approached. But he stopped and I felt strands of magic tug at my
spear. A Warper who could move objects. The spear flew from my grasp, turned
and pointed straight at me. “Jal wants me alive.” I
reminded him. He advanced. “Why not
use your power to stop me? Afraid the Fire Warper will tell Jal what you’re
doing?” “Give the man a prize.
Your intellect is truly amazing.” The spear’s tip came
closer and poked me in the hollow of my throat. “Surrender or I’ll skewer her,”
the Warper called to Valek. Valek disengaged, his
gaze questioning. “He won’t do it,” I said
to Valek. “You are right. How
about surrender or I will set the barn on fire?” The Warper pointed to the
building. “Do you want to be responsible for the deaths of ten children?” 30“NO! DON’T,” I YELLED.
“Let the children go and I’ll come with you.” “I know you will,” the
Warper said. “I am more concerned about the Ghost Warrior.” He looked at Valek.
“Put your weapon down.” Valek placed his
scimitar on the ground, but as he straightened, he flicked his hand twice. A
small dart pricked the Warper’s neck. The man jerked in surprise. “Move,” Valek ordered. I twisted, avoiding the
spear’s thrust, but I wasn’t fast enough to stop the sharp edge from cutting a
gash across my neck. A line of stinging pain registered in my mind. It was
forgotten as soon as I saw the Warper turn. Fire erupted under the barn’s door.
He collapsed beside his colleague, finally overcome by Valek’s sleeping potion. Smoke reached my nose,
igniting memories of dread and fear. “Valek, go!” I waved him
on and whistled for the horses. They came and I raced
toward the barn. Kiki help! I said. Valek had gotten the
burning door opened, but flames crept toward the roof. Topaz and Onyx shied away
from the acrid smoke, but Kiki and Garnet braved the heat. “Tell them to move to
the left side,” I yelled to Valek over the roar. He sprinted through the
opening and I led Kiki and Garnet to the right side. I waited for two horrible
seconds then banged on the barn’s wall. Kiki. Garnet. Kick. I
dived to the side. The animals aimed their back hooves and punched a hole in
the wall with their powerful legs. When the opening was big
enough for the adults, I stopped the horses. Pulling a few splintered boards
clear, I looked inside and called to the captives. Even with the bright
firelight, the room was obscured by smoke. But a person grabbed my hand. I
pulled coughing children through the hole, counting them as they came out. The smoke thickened and
the inferno advanced. When Councilor
Greenblade’s husband crawled out with a small child clinging to his back and a
baby clutched to his chest, my count totaled ten children and one adult. “Where’s Gale?” I asked. Hacking with the effort
to expel the smoke from his lungs, he pointed through the opening. “Collapsed.”
He wheezed for air. “Couldn’t take…them all.” I moved to go in, but he
pulled me back. “Roof.” He coughed. We shooed the children
away from the barn mere moments before the roof buckled with a shower of sparks
and an explosion of sound. I counted children
again. Ten. One adult. No Gale. No Valek. He was still in the barn! Horror and anguish
twisted around my throat and shredded my heart. I bolted toward the blazing
building. The heat rolled off the structure, pushing me back. Roof beams had
fallen on top of the Vermin. The flames lapped at their bodies and sucked their
souls into the inferno. A porthole into the fire
world opened in front of me. I could have grabbed one of the Vermin’s souls and
returned to the Fire Warper. But I wasn’t ready. I had a few more things to
accomplish and a few goodbyes to make before I embraced the fire. Then I would crave the
fire. Living in this world without Valek held no appeal for me. The blaze raged all
night. By morning it settled into a large smoldering heap. Still too hot for me
to search among the ruins for some sign of Valek or Gale. Instead, I led the
children over to Diamond Lake to get cleaned up and tried to ignore the grief
burning inside me. Councilor Greenblade’s
husband, Kell, helped feed the children and tend their wounds. Kiki and Garnet
drank from the lake, and I washed the soot from their coats. The water was
clear. The red color came from the bottom of the lake as if someone had painted
the rocks and gravel. Perhaps they had. After all, it was a man-made lake. When everyone’s needs
were met, we headed back to the campsite. We found Marrok engaged in the grim
task of burying bodies. “Guess I slept through
the battle,” he said. “Did we win?” He inclined his head to Tauno. “Or lose?” “Both,” I said. My
anguish over Valek threatened to push from my throat. I bit down hard on my
lip, tasting blood. “Care to explain?” I filled him in on what
had happened. He accepted Tauno’s betrayal with a cynical snort and a wry twist
of the lips that reflected his black thoughts about trust. After I finished, he
said, “At least your little friend is all right.” “Friend?” He pointed to a nearby
tree. “I thought he was dead, but when I went to pick him up he flew off.
Scared the heck out of me.” I went over. My bat hung
upside down on a low branch. The creature opened an eye halfway then closed it
again, contented. Somehow I had created an emotional link with the bat that was
similar to my link with Kiki. Contemplation about my
affinity for animals would have to wait, though. More pressing matters needed
to be addressed—finding Valek’s body, for one. But I said, “We have to find a
safe place for the Councilors’ family members.” Bavol Zaltana’s
daughter, Jenniqilla, pulled at my cape. “I want to go home,” she said.
Although happy to be free, sadness touched her eyes and weariness lined her
young face. I crouched down next to
her. “I know, but I need you to pretend you’re still a hostage for just a
little while longer. It’s really important. Can you help us out?” Determination filled her
eyes, reminding me of Fisk. I assigned all the older children small jobs, and
they moved about with a renewed sense of purpose. “What about me?” Kell
Greenblade asked. The Greenblade lands
were east of Bloodgood’s. “Do you know anyplace where we can hide all of you?” He gazed off into the
distance. Tall and wiry, he resembled my friend, Dax, another member of his
clan. I hoped Dax and Gelsi were all right, and the thought of them being the
next victims of the Kirakawa ritual made me restless to get moving. Kell sensed my mood. His
attention focused on me. “My sister has a farm outside of Booruby that could
hold all of us.” “In the Cowan Clan’s
lands?” “Yes.” He tsked. “She
married a flatlander, but he’s a good man and will help us.” I looked at the ragtag
group of children. Booruby was farther east than I had wanted to travel and it
would be a slow trip. Kiki nickered at me. Get
wagon, she said. The wagon was burned in
the fire. I felt her huff of
impatience. Horses run off. Take wagon. Where are they? Stuck. Come. Kiki
flicked her tail. Marrok came with me. We
mounted Kiki and she went southwest through a small wood. What about Onyx and
Topaz? I asked her. I felt her sorrow. Can’t
smell. We reached the wagon.
When the fire had erupted, the panicked horses had bolted through the woods
until the cart wedged between two trees. The animals had calmed, but their
raised heads and alert ears meant they felt unsafe. The wagon had been
filled with empty coffin-shaped crates, but we found a toolbox underneath the
floor. Getting the wagon free was difficult and time-consuming. While fixing the broken
wheel, Marrok lost his patience and shooed me away. “You’re rushing and making
it worse. Go take a walk, Yelena. This is a one-person job anyway.” When I hesitated, he
added, “Go look for him or you won’t find peace. And we won’t either.” Being busy had been
good. Walking through the quiet forest, there was nothing to distract me from
my flaming thoughts. No respite from the wrenching pain deep inside me. It felt
as if I had swallowed a red-hot coal. The barn’s ashy remains
drifted in the air. Only a few beams at the edge of the structure retained
their shape. Everything else had been reduced to gray and white cinders. Smoke
curled from a few hot spots, but otherwise a pine-scented breeze blew the acrid
fumes away. The crunch of my boots
on the residue echoed a lonely and final sound in my ears. All hope disappeared
when I found Valek’s knives. Blackened and misshapen, the blades were
half-melted. I collapsed to my hands and knees and sobbed, turning the ash
under me into slurry. Gasping, ribs aching and throat raw, I tried to expel the
smoldering sadness within, only stopping when all moisture was gone from my
body. I sat back on my heels and wiped my face, smearing soot and tears. Once my breathing
returned to normal, I scooped up a handful of the ash near Valek’s weapons and
let the wind scatter them. Soon, love. I’ll join you soon. The knowledge of our
reunion in the other world was my only comfort. Eventually I returned to
Marrok. He had fixed the wheel. After looking at my face, he squeezed my
shoulder. I had washed off the dirt, but I knew my eyes were red and puffy from
crying. Marrok steered the
wagon, but finding a road around the wood used up our remaining daylight. By the time we returned
to the camp, Kell had settled the children next to the fire. I wanted to wake
everyone and get moving, but Kell convinced me the children would be upset by
being roused and hidden in those crates at night. After recalling my own
horrible experience with the boxes, I agreed. If Valek hadn’t shot the
Warper, I would have been shoved inside one of those crates. The Councilors’
families would still be hostages, but Valek and Gale would still be alive. I stared at the sleeping
children. Jenniqilla had a protective arm over Leevi and the baby curled next
to him, sucking on his thumb even while asleep. In that state, they embodied
innocence and peace and joy and love. Valek had known the risk when he went
into the barn and he hadn’t hesitated. I would have done the same. Eleven
living beings for one unselfish act. Pretty good odds. Even with the wagon, the
trip to Booruby lasted four days. Four days of worry, frustration, hunger,
sleepless nights and noise. By the time we arrived, I had a new appreciation
for parents, and was as glad to see Kell’s sister as she was to see us. She
wrapped Kell in a tight embrace for many heartbeats. I bit my lip and turned
away. My empty arms ached. Located about two miles
south of Booruby, the farmstead appeared to be isolated from its neighbors, but
her husband was quick to usher us inside. The children were fed their first hot
meal in weeks. Marrok and I made plans to return to the rendezvous location to
join the others. I kept my mind focused on action; otherwise, I knew I would
surrender to the grief consuming me from the inside out. We would risk crossing
through the western edge of the Avibian Plains. Garnet and Kiki’s gust-of-wind
gait would make up for the time lost traveling to Booruby. Before leaving, Kell
asked me, “How will I know when it’s safe for the children to return home?” I considered. “If
everything works out, you will receive a message.” “And if it doesn’t work
out?” Emotion choked his words,
reminding me that his wife was one of the Councilors. If I failed, she would be
among the first of many casualties. “If you don’t hear
anything after fourteen days, that means the Daviians are in charge. Send the
children to their homes and hope.” “Hope for what?” “Hope a person in the
future will be strong enough to rebel against the Daviian Vermin. And win.” Kell looked doubtful.
“We have four Master Magicians and a Soulfinder, yet they still managed to take
control.” “It has happened before.
One person can bring peace to Sitia.” I didn’t add that the
man had leveled the Daviian Mountains in the process. But it did lead me to
wonder if the Sandseeds’ legendary warrior had had help. My mind reviewed Moon
Man’s story about the origins of the Sandseed Clan and I remembered the
warrior’s name was Guyan. Guyan had imprisoned the Fire Warper, and his
descendant, Gede, had freed him. A complete circle. Marrok and I said
goodbye to Kell and the children. We traveled northwest, planning to skirt
Booruby on our way to the plains. My little bat hung from Kiki’s mane and
didn’t appear to be bothered by the jostling motion. Our plans changed when I
spotted Opal’s family’s glass factory in the distance and I had a sudden idea. Before I could fully
explore my intentions, we stopped outside their gate. Marrok accepted our
detour without concern. “Should I wait here?” he
asked. “Yes. I won’t be long.”
I left Kiki with him. As I approached the door
to their house, Opal came out of the factory. She hesitated, but drew nearer,
eyeing Marrok and me with suspicion. “Can I help you, sir?”
she asked me. I had forgotten all
about my hair. At least I knew my disguise worked. I smiled for the first time
in days. She squinted at me.
“Yelena?” Then she glanced around in concern. “Come inside! There’s a price on
your head!” She ushered me into the house. “Thank goodness you’re
okay.” Opal squeezed me in a quick hug. “What happened to your hair?” “It’s a long long story.
Is your family around?” “No. They went into
town. Father received a shipment of sand that was full of rocks so he went to
complain and Mother—” “Opal, I need more of
your glass animals.” “Really? Did you sell
the bat?” “No. However, I
discovered I can use your animals to communicate with other magicians far away
without using my own magic. I’d like to buy as many as I can.” “Wow! I never knew.” “How many do you have?” “Six. They’re in the
factory.” She set a quick pace as
we crossed the yard and entered the factory. The heat from the kilns sucked all
the moisture from my mouth. I followed her through the thick air and roar of
the fires. Lined up on a table by the back wall were half a dozen glass
animals. They all glowed with an inner fire. Opal wrapped the animals
and I counted out coins. Another idea flashed in my mind when she handed me the
package. “Can you show me how you
make these?” I asked. “It takes a lot of
practice to learn.” I shook my head. “I just
want to watch you make one.” She agreed. Picking up a
five-foot-long hollow steel pipe, she opened the small door to the kiln. Bright
orange light and intense heat emanated from the doorway, but, undaunted, she
dipped the end of the pipe into a large ceramic pot inside the kiln that was
filled with molten glass. Turning the pipe, she gathered a taffylike slug and
pulled it out, closing the door with her hip. The slug pulsed with a red-hot
light as if alive. “You have to keep the
blowpipe spinning or the glass will sag,” Opal said over the noise. She rolled
the slug over a metal table to move the glass off the end of the pipe and
shaped it so the pipe looked as if it had a clear ball attached to its end. Her motions quick, Opal
then rested the pipe on the edge of the table and blew into the other end.
Magic brushed my arm as her cheeks puffed. The glass on the opposite end didn’t
inflate with air. Instead, a thread of magic was trapped within its core. “It’s supposed to
expand, but mine never does,” she said as she went back to the kiln and
gathered another slug overtop the first. She took the pipe to a bench designed
to hold it and other metal tools needed to shape the glass. Buckets of water
sat within easy reach. Opal grabbed a pair of
steel tweezers and pinched and squeezed the slug with her right hand while
rolling the pipe with her left hand the whole time. “You have to move quickly
because it cools fast.” Within seconds the ball
transformed into a cat sitting on its back legs. She stood and put the cat back
into the kiln, but this time she just spun the pipe above the pot. “You have to
keep plenty of heat in the glass or you can’t work with it.” Sitting back on her
bench, Opal exchanged her tweezers for another set. These were bigger and as
long as her forearm. “Jacks, a great all-purpose tool. I’m putting in a jack
line so I can crack the piece off the pipe.” When the groove was to
her liking, she took the tweezers in hand again and dipped them into the bucket
of water. She dribbled a few drops into the jack line. “You have to be careful
not to get water onto your piece. So you move from the pipe down.” The glass
hissed and a spiderweb of cracks spread over the glass on the pipe. She carried the pipe to
another oven close to the kilns. Shelves of trays had been stacked inside and
Opal banged the end of the tweezers on her pipe. The cat fell onto the tray.
She closed the door. “If the glass cools too
fast, it’ll crack. This is an annealing oven.” Opal pointed to the tracks
underneath the oven. “To slowly cool the piece, the oven is pulled away from
the kiln over the next twelve hours.” “Why do you blow into
the pipe if the glass doesn’t expand for you?” I asked. “It’s a step I have to
do.” She made a vague motion with her arms as if casting about for the right
words. “When Mara does it, she makes beautiful vases and bottles. Mine always
ends up looking like an animal and if I don’t blow into the pipe it doesn’t
look like anything at all.” She cleaned up her work
area, taking the tools from the water and drying them before replacing them.
The bench needed to be ready for the next project, and working with glass
didn’t give you time to search for tools. “I love creating things.
There’s nothing like it,” she said, more to herself than to me. “Working the
glass. Turning fire into ice.” I thanked Opal for her
demonstration and rejoined Marrok. He leaned against Garnet. “I think your definition
of ‘won’t be long’ doesn’t match mine,” he said by way of a greeting. “Did you
encounter another change in plans?” “Yes. You might as well
get used to them.” “Yes, sir!” He grinned. “Sarcasm? You’ve been
hanging around with Leif too long. What happened to the tough old soldier who
mindlessly follows orders?” His demeanor sobered.
“He lost his mind. And when he found it again, his priorities had all been
rearranged.” “For the better?” “Only time will tell.” We mounted and headed to
the western edge of the Avibian Plains. Once in the plains, Kiki and Garnet
broke into their gust-of-wind gaits and flowed over many miles. We camped
outside the plains at night. I hoped our passage wouldn’t attract any unwanted
attention. My thoughts lingered on Opal’s glassmaking skills. Better than
giving in to the deep despair that threatened to overwhelm me whenever I
thought of Valek. Our journey to the
rendezvous location lasted three days. During that time, Marrok had spotted
signs of a large army that had crossed from the Avibian Plains and turned north
toward the Citadel. At night, the glow of many fires lit the distant sky and
wood smoke tainted the air. We had agreed to meet
Moon Man and the others in Owl’s Hill, a small town within the Featherstone
lands. According to Leif, the Cloverleaf Inn’s owner could be trusted not to
report us. “He owes me one,” had been Leif’s explanation. Owl’s Hill was located
on a small rise about three miles northeast of the Citadel. The four towers of
the Magician’s Keep were visible from the road into town. A bright orange
radiance shone from within the Keep’s walls. The Fire Warper’s home fire? Still disguised as
Krystal Clan traders, Marrok and I entered the town. Situated near the main
crossroads, the Cloverleaf Inn’s common room bustled with activity, but the
stable was only half full. The stable lad suggested we arrive early for dinner
as the inn was a popular stop for caravans. “One less night of road
rations,” the boy said as he helped me rub down Kiki. “And the merchants prefer
camping near here instead of overnighting in the Citadel.” “Why is that?” I asked. “The rumors have been
wild, so I don’t know what to believe. But the merchants who do come back say
everyone is afraid of these new Daviians and they say the Daviians have
convinced the Council to prepare for a war.” “With Ixia?” “Don’t know. They’ve
drafted every able-bodied person. Benn said the Daviians are in league with
Ixia, and once a person’s drafted they hypnotize him. They plan to use them in
the army to turn Sitia into another Ixian Military District. MD-9!” The boy regaled me with
even wilder speculation. I knew the Commander wasn’t in league with the
Daviians, but the possibility of using the Sitian army against Sitia sounded
like a Vermin tactic. When we finished with
the horses, I entered the inn. Marrok had already paid for two rooms for the
night. “We’re running out of
money,” he said. “Are the others here?” I
asked. “Ari and Janco are in
the dining room. Leif and Moon Man haven’t arrived yet.” That worried me. It had
been thirteen days since we had left to rescue the hostages. Plenty of time for
them to discover anything about the Keep’s emergency tunnel. In the back corner of
the inn’s common room, Ari and Janco held court. Drinking from tankards of ale,
they were surrounded by a group of merchants. Serious expressions gripped all
their faces and they peered at us with suspicion. Marrok and I picked a
table on the far side of the room. Eventually, the knot of people disbanded and
Ari and Janco joined us. Ari had dyed his hair black and both of them had
darkened their skin. “Janco, do I see
freckles?” I asked, failing to suppress a snicker. “Don’t laugh. It’s this
southern sun. It’s the middle of the cold season and it’s sunny! Bah.” He
looked at me. “Although, I’d rather have freckles than be bald!” I put my hand to my
hair. “It’s growing.” “Enough,” Ari said, and
the mood around our table immediately dampened. “Were you successful?” The question stabbed
into me as if his words were flaming daggers. I struggled to collect my
thoughts; to shoo my emotions away from the black, burning grief that refused
to die down. Marrok saw my inability to answer and he told them about Tauno,
the rescue and about Valek. To see my pain and shock reflected in my friends’ eyes
became unbearable. I excused myself and went outside. Taking deep breaths of
the cool night air, I wandered through the town. A few people walked along the
dirt streets, carrying lanterns. I felt a tug on my cape as my bat landed on my
arm. He stared at me with a sense of purpose in his eyes then flew off to the
left. He returned, swooping around my head and again flew to the left. Getting
the hint, I followed him until we reached a dilapidated building. The bat settled on the
roof as if waiting. I pulled the warped door open with trepidation, but the
interior held a collection of discarded barrels and broken wagon wheels. When I
turned to leave, I stepped on a wooden ball. A child’s toy. I picked it up and
examined it. My bat wanted me to find or see something in here. I squashed my growing
frustration and concentrated on using my other senses. Closing my eyes, I
inhaled. The musty smell of decay dominated, but I detected a faint whiff of
lemons. I followed the clean and pure scent—not easy as I tripped and banged my
shins on the clutter—until I stood in the back corner. There a tingle danced on
my skin, raising the hair on my arms. Instinctively I whispered, “Reveal
yourself,” and opened my eyes. Gray light bloomed
before me and transformed into a young boy. He sat on one of the barrels. A ghost. A lost soul. “Where is my mother?” he
asked with a thin, tentative voice. “She was sick, too. She went away and never
came back even when I cried for her.” I moved closer to the
boy. The light from him illuminated the room. The rusted remains of a bed frame
and other items indicated the area had been used as the child’s bedroom long
ago. My bat fluttered in and
circled above the boy’s head. I waved it away and muttered, “Yes, yes, I know.
I get it.” With a squeal sounding
like an exasperated finally, he flew out. I asked the child
questions about his mother and family. Just as I suspected, they had lived and
died here many years ago. “I know where they are,”
I said. “I can take you to them.” The boy smiled. When I
held out my hand, he grabbed it. I gathered him to me, inhaling his soul before
sending it to the sky. The true job of a
Soulfinder. Not to save souls and
return them to their bodies, but to guide them to where they belonged. My true
purposed flared to life finally. Stono and Gelsi should have both been released
to the sky. Their personalities changed because they were unhappy at being
denied peace. Death was not the end.
And I knew Valek waited for me, but he wouldn’t want to see me until I finished
finding all the lost and misplaced souls and sent them to their proper
destinations. There hadn’t been a
Soulfinder in over a hundred and twenty-five years. Why wasn’t Sitia filled
with lost souls? Perhaps they were rare. Renewed determination to
find a way to defeat the Fire Warper spread throughout my body. I left the
building and stopped. Five souls hovered in different locations along the
street. The leathery flap of wings announced my bat’s arrival. He settled on my
shoulder. “Did you call them?” I
asked the bat. “Or did I?” I guess I should have been more specific when I
called to the boy. Either that, or now I’d learned a trick I couldn’t shut off. I gathered and released
souls as I headed back to the Cloverleaf Inn. Most went to the sky. One dripped
with hate and when he sank into the ground, I worried I might have increased
the Fire Warper’s powers. Before I could enter the
inn, the clatter of hooves sounded behind me. I spun in time to see Leif stop
Rusalka. His panic reached me before his words. “Moon Man,” he gasped.
“Moon Man’s been captured!” 31BACK IN THE INN’S common
room, the five of us sorted through all the details we had. Moon Man had been
captured that afternoon. “We found no references
to the tunnel in the Council Hall’s library,” Leif said. “We were meeting with
an old magician who was hiding from the Vermin. Another had told us he had
information on the construction of the Keep, but when we talked to the magician
he only had vague details. He knew how to create a null shield and he taught me
how to make one. I shouldn’t have tried it. The magic called the Warpers and we
were attacked as we left his house.” “How did you get away?”
Janco asked. Leif threw his hands up.
“One minute we’re surrounded by Vermins, the next a group of brawling merchants
and screaming children practically rolled over everyone. It was mass confusion.
A man grabbed my hand and pulled me out. I hid until dark. One of the children
from the Helping Guild told me Moon Man hadn’t escaped.” “The Vermin will know
we’re here,” Ari said. “We need to leave now. There’s a caravan camping about
two miles north of here. We can stay with them.” “Which way is the
caravan going?” I asked Ari. “They have a delivery in
the Citadel tomorrow, and then they’re going south to the Greenblade lands.
Why?” “Oh no!” Leif said.
“She’s got that look in her eyes. What are you scheming, little sister?” “We have to get inside
the Keep.” “Impossible. There’s a
bubble of protective magic around it. We couldn’t find the entrance to the
tunnel. A few Warpers have gained master-level power. You’re powerful, but
nowhere near their level. You’ll be caught in an instant.” Leif crossed his
arms as if his statement ended the discussion. “That’s a great idea,” I
said. “What? I ignored Leif’s
confusion. “Ari, how ready are the people in the Citadel to revolt?” “They’re organized, have
some weapons and a few magicians. What I would really like to do is run a few
training sessions, but that’s not going to happen. They’re as ready as they’re
going to get.” “Would the caravan be
willing to lend us one of their wagons?” I asked. “Something could be
arranged.” Comprehension dawned in
Janco’s face. “If we get you inside, can we keep the five golds?” “Only if you get us back
out again,” I said. “I don’t like the odds,”
Janco said. He brightened. “Gotta love the underdog, though.” “There are no odds. It’s
suicide,” Leif said. “Look at it this way,
Leif. It’ll put an end to our arguing,” I said. “How?” “We die, you’re right.
You don’t die, I’m right.” “I feel so much better
now.” Janco tsked. “Sarcasm is
detrimental to the team spirit.” Ari frowned at me.
“Don’t you mean, we don’t die, Yelena?” I didn’t answer. Valek
waited on the other side. My reward. We packed our supplies
and headed out. The merchants of the caravan agreed to include us in their
group and we spent most of the night preparing our wagon. When we finished with
the cart’s alterations, we stood around it, discussing the plan for the next
day. “Marrok, you’ll ride
Garnet. Janco can take Kiki, and Ari, you’ll drive the wagon. No matter what
happens, Ari, make sure we get to the Keep’s gate,” I ordered. “Yes, sir.” “What about me and you?”
Leif asked. I grimaced. “We’re the
cargo.” The last thing I wanted to do was get inside one of those crates again,
but there was no other way. “Ari is going to use me to get us inside. He’ll
demand his five golds for bringing me to the Vermin.” “I never thought I’d
miss my days as necklace snake bait,” Leif said. “What happens once we’re
inside?” Ari asked. “That will be the signal
for the Citadel’s citizens to riot, which should keep a bunch of the Vermin and
Warpers busy.” “But what about all
those powerful Warpers?” Leif asked. “Can you make a null
shield?” He hesitated. “Yes.” “When the riot starts,
all the magicians will come to the Keep’s gate and help you build and maintain
a null shield,” I said. “But it won’t last
long.” “I just need a little
time.” “Time for what?” “To get to the Fire
Warper.” Leif stared at me. “You
can fight him?” “No.” “Tell me again why this
isn’t a suicide mission.” “I think I can stop him
and keep him in the fire world. And in doing so, I think I might be able to
pull some of the Warpers’ powers from them. If Bain and Irys are still alive,
and if you round up as many magicians as you can, then you should be able to
counter the Warpers.” “That’s a lot of ‘ifs’
and ‘thinks,’” Janco said. “And there’s no ‘when,’”
Ari said. “When?” Leif asked. “When she returns.
There’s a when, isn’t there, Yelena?” Ari asked. “The only way to keep
him in the fire world is if I stay, too.” The words tasted like ash in my
mouth. Thinking about an event was completely different than stating it aloud.
Once said, it was final. But Valek would be there and I would find him. No
“if,” “think” or “when” about it. “There has to be another
way,” Leif said. “You always manage to produce ingenious plots.” “Not this time.” Everyone remained quiet. I was about to suggest
we all get a little sleep when Leif asked, “What if we can’t counter the
Warpers?” “Then you’d better have
a person who’s unaffected by magic on your side,” a voice said from beyond the
wagon. We all looked at one
another. The same question perched on everyone’s lips. A ghost voice? “Although this time I
would appreciate it if you didn’t leave me behind.” Valek stepped into view. He
appeared to be solid. His angular face held annoyed amusement. The faint
moonlight glinted off his bald head. He wore the brown tunic and pants of a
Bloodgood clansman. Disbelief followed
surprise; I reached out to touch him. He pulled me close and my world filled
with the sight, smell and feel of Valek. Seconds, minutes, days,
seasons could have passed and I wouldn’t have noticed or cared. I clung to him
as if my feet dangled over a precipice. His heart beat in my ear. His blood
flowed in my veins. I molded my body to his solid flesh, wanting to fuse with
him and let nothing—not even air—come between us. Relief and joy frolicked
in my heart, extinguishing the smoldering grief until I remembered my promise
to the Fire Warper. Blazing sadness ignited,
flooding my senses. My reward for babysitting the Fire Warper would have to
wait. Better to have him here. I gathered my resolve
and calmed myself. The others moved away, leaving Valek and me alone. His lips
found mine. Our souls twined. The gaping emptiness inside me filled. He pulled away,
breathless. “Easy, love.” His panting turned into a coughing fit. “How did you survive the
fire?” I asked. “The roof collapsed and you didn’t…” “Two things happened at
once. At least, I think they did.” He gave me an ironic smile. “I was carrying
Gale when the roof fell. The force of it sent us through the floor and into a
small root cellar.” Valek rubbed his ribs and grimaced. “You’re hurt and I can’t
heal you!” A nasty gash snaked along the side of his skull. “Just bruised.” He ran a
hand gently over his head. “A beam knocked me out and I would have probably
died from the smoke and heat, but Gale kept us in a pocket of cool air. She had
been hit by a piece of the barn’s wall when it shattered. But she came to and used
her magic. She conjured a cushion of air around us to keep the burning debris
from filling our hole.” “Why didn’t I see you
the next morning? Why didn’t you call out?” “The roof had tented
around us, and there was nothing you could do to help until the fire died.” His
hand went to his ribs again. “I didn’t have enough air to yell and Gale needed
all her strength to keep us alive.” “Why couldn’t she blow
the fire out? Or save the children?” “Her powers are limited.
It’s all part of her weather dancing thing.” He gestured past the wagon. “You
can ask her. I’ve brought her along.” When he saw my questioning look, he
added, “We’re going to need all the help we can get.” I looked on the other
side of the wagon. Gale held Onyx’s and Topaz’s reins. Kiki had already found
them and nuzzled Topaz. Garnet stood nearby. Gale’s unease about being
surrounded by horses was reflected in the queasy look on her face. “Did you learn anything
else?” I asked Valek. “Yes. Finding clothes
when you’re half naked is harder than you think. And scared horses can travel
pretty far in the wrong direction before you find them.” He studied the group
of horses. “Onyx and Topaz are fast, but there’s nothing like a Sandseed horse
when you’re in a hurry. And despite your detour to Booruby, love, I had a hard
time catching up.” “You could have found a
way to tell me you were all right. I’ve spent the last week in utter misery.” “Now you know how I felt
when you jumped into the stable fire. And you know how I’ll feel if you don’t
come back from fighting the Fire Warper.” I opened my mouth then
closed it. “You were eavesdropping.” “I had hoped to hear
everyone discussing how much they missed my altruistic qualities, my legendary
skills as a fighter and as a lover.” He leered. “Instead, you’re making plans
for tomorrow. Interesting how life goes on in spite of itself.” Valek sobered and stared
at me with a fiery intensity. “With all that planning, love, I’m sure you can
figure a way to return.” “I’m not smart enough.”
My frustration wrapped around my chest and squeezed until I wanted to scream
aloud. “I don’t know enough about magic! I don’t think anyone does. We’re all
just bumbling along, using it and abusing it.” “Do you truly believe
that?” “Yes. Although I’ll
admit to being a hypocrite. First sign of trouble and I fall back on using
magic.” My ability to guide souls hadn’t taxed my energy like using magic. I
didn’t draw from the power source. It was a natural effort just like inhaling
and exhaling. “When I think about magic, all I see is the harm it has done to
this world.” “Then you’re not looking
in the right places.” And this from someone
who was immune to magic’s effects. I’d seen firsthand the Kirakawa ritual, the
blood magic, the corruption of power, the Sandseed massacre and the tormented souls.
It had to stop. Valek studied my
expression. “Think about what you said to the Commander about magic.” “I tend to agree with
the Commander about how magic corrupts.” “Then why did you
mention to the Commander how magic could harness the power of a blizzard and
save his people instead of discussing the possibility of using power as a
weapon? If magic corrupts, then why hasn’t it corrupted you? Or Irys? Moon Man?
Leif?” “We haven’t let it
corrupt us.” “Right! You have the
choice.” “But it’s a very tempting
choice. Power is addictive. It’s only a matter of time.” “Oh yes. Sitia has been
battling Warpers for ages. Though you wouldn’t know it from all the peace and
prosperity hanging around.” Sarcasm dripped from Valek’s words. “Let’s see, how
long ago did the magicians use blood magic? I think Moon Man told me two
thousand years. Then you’re right! It’s only a matter of time. A matter of two
thousand years. I’ll take those odds any day.” “I never realized how
annoying you can be.” “You know I’m right.” “I could prove you
wrong. I can be corrupt.” It was my turn to leer. Valek looked over at
Janco and the others. They milled about a small fire, trying to appear
nonchalant, but I knew they listened to every word. “Not in front of the
children, love. But I’ll hold you to that.” The night disappeared in
a hurry. We finished prepping the wagon and updating our plans to include Valek
and Gale. The others had taken
Valek’s return in stride, although Janco made a comment about Valek’s lack of
hair. “You ever notice how couples start to look alike?” he asked. In a deadpan, Valek
replied, “Yes. In fact, I was just thinking how much you and Topaz resemble
each other. It’s uncanny.” Ari chuckled at Janco’s
chagrined expression before saying, “The caravan is leaving soon. What part of
the line do we want to be in?” “Near the back, but not
the last wagon,” Valek instructed. “When we’re out of sight of the gatehouse,
head to the Keep.” “Yes, sir.” Ari snapped
to attention. I stared at our small
group. Marrok eyed Valek with dislike, but he had assumed the posture of a
soldier waiting for orders. Leif chewed on his lip, a nervous habit. Gale’s
face was bleached with fear, but she set her mouth into a determined frown. She
told me her power was weak compared to a Stormdancer, but she could agitate the
wind and kick up enough dust to impair the Daviians’ vision. “We don’t know what
we’ll encounter inside the Keep. Listen for instructions and follow orders even
if they don’t make sense,” Valek ordered. “Yes, sir,” everyone
said in unison, including Gale. Before we could get into
position, I handed three of Opal’s glass animals to Leif and the other three to
Gale. “What are these for?”
Leif asked. “Keep one each, but give
the rest to Moon Man, Irys, Bain and Dax if they’re still alive.” I swallowed
the sudden lump in my throat. “I think I can use the animals to communicate
with you when I’m in the fire world.” Leif peered at me with
sad eyes, but I turned away before he could say anything. “Come on, you first.”
I gestured to the cart. Leif, Gale and Valek hid
in the three boxes at the bottom of the wagon. We put another empty crate and
some genuine goods on top of them. Then I lay down inside the top crate. When Marrok closed the
lid, my heart slammed in my chest in a sudden panic. My throat closed when the
rugs were piled on top. The wagon lurched. I wanted out. I felt trapped. The
others could get out of their boxes through the hidden panels we had installed
on the wagon’s floor. I could not. This wasn’t going to work. The Vermin would
figure it out before we could reach the Keep. And then what would happen? I drew in a few
steadying breaths. We would be captured. I would be fed to the Fire Warper just
like I wanted. All we would lose was the element of surprise. While helpful, I
believed even with it the chances of the others living through the encounter
were little to none. My morose line of
thought was not helping my state of mind. So I focused instead on the motion of
the wagon. It had been a long and emotionally exhausting night. I fell asleep
during the trip to the Citadel. The sound of an
unfamiliar voice roused me from sleep. We had stopped, and I gathered by the
voices we were at the Citadel’s north gate. The voices came closer and a person
banged on my box. I jumped, clamping my lips against a shout. “What’s in this one?” a
man asked. “The finest silk sheets
woven by the Moon Clan, sir,” the merchant replied. “Perhaps you care to
purchase a set? Just feel the fabric and you’ll know your wife will be most
anxious to try them out.” The man laughed. “I’ll
not be spending a month’s pay for a night with my wife. That’s why I married
her.” Their laughter trailed
away as the guard questioned the merchant on his reasons for entering the
Citadel. After what seemed like hours, the wagon began to move. Ari picked up
the pace and I guessed we had broken off from the caravan. When the sounds from the
market reached me, the wagon slowed. Ari called out to the stand owners, giving
them the sign to prepare to revolt. A network of messengers would fan out to
spread the news, then remain in place to deliver the signal for action. The fighting would erupt
when our wagon went inside the Keep. The cart turned around a corner. It
stopped with a jerk. Ari cursed and the
jangle of many horses surrounded us. A familiar voice called out, “Oh no. This
will not do.” Cahil. 32CAHIL AND HIS MEN had
found us. Trapped inside my crate, I could do nothing but wait for the
inevitable. I hoped Valek and the others hiding in the wagon would be able to
sneak away. “I assume you have
Yelena hidden somewhere in your wagon?” Cahil asked. “Have who, sir?” Ari
asked, playing innocent. “All I have is goods for the market.” “For the market? The
market you just rode through without stopping to unload? I don’t think so. Despite
your disguises and weak attempts to explain your presence, I know who you are
and why you’re here. In fact, I was sent by Jal to come and escort you to the
Keep.” I heard a creak as Ari
shifted his weight and I detected a faint rustling from below me. Probably
Valek opening his escape panel. “Relax,” Cahil said.
“I’m not here to capture you. I’m here to join you. And I hope for the sake of
all our lives you have a decent plan.” I had to let Cahil’s
words sink in. Had he just said he wanted to join us? “A plan, sir?” Ari
asked. Cahil snorted with
exasperation. “Yelena! Leif!” he called. “Come out and tell your big northern
friend I’m telling the truth. Look for yourselves. My men have not drawn
their—” A surprised yelp
followed a thud. Then Ari moved off the wagon and the rugs on top of my crate
scraped away. The lid lifted. I had my switchblade in hand, but Ari’s amused
face greeted me. He helped me stand. Valek had a knife to Cahil’s throat. He
and Cahil were on the ground. Cahil’s men remained on their mounts. The men
appeared tense and alert but hadn’t drawn any weapons. Leif and Janco joined
Ari and all three pulled their blades. Marrok stayed on Garnet. “Tell me why I shouldn’t
cut your throat?” Valek asked Cahil. “You won’t get into the
Keep without me,” he said. He kept still and held his hands up and away from
his body. “Why this sudden change
of heart?” I asked. Cahil’s gaze met mine.
Hatred still radiated from his eyes but the pain of betrayal tainted them. “You
were right.” He said each word as if it hurt him. “They’re using me and…” “And what?” I prompted. “The rituals and
killings have gotten out of hand. I can’t be a part of it anymore.” He looked
at Marrok. “I wasn’t raised to be a killer. I was raised to be a leader. I’ll
earn my throne the old-fashioned way.” Although the expression
on Marrok’s face never changed, his body relaxed. “How do we know you’re
telling the truth?” Ari asked. “Yelena knows through
her magic.” I shook my head. “I
can’t use it. It will alert Jal and risk the mission.” “She already knows
you’re here. You have thwarted her a number of times, although it will be more
difficult now, as she has gained an incredible amount of power through the
Kirakawa ritual.” “She?” Valek and I asked
in unison. “We thought Jal was
Gede,” I said. Cahil blinked at us for
a moment. “You didn’t know? What else don’t you know? You were planning an
attack at the Keep, right? I thought you had it all figured out.” “You thought wrong,” I
said, annoyed. “We had to guess about the state of affairs inside the Keep.” “Then here’s a way for
me to prove my loyalty. I’ll tell you what’s been going on and will help you
get inside. Agreed?” Valek and I exchanged a
glance. “Do I still get to kill
him?” Valek asked. “At the first sign of
betrayal, yes,” I said. “What about after this
is all over?” “Then it’s your call.” Cahil stared at us.
“Hold on. I’m risking my life to help you. I’d like some guarantees.” “We’ve come to a point
where there are no guarantees. For any of us,” I said. “That’s not very
encouraging,” Cahil said. “It’s not supposed to
be. You should know what happens when you play with fire, Cahil. Eventually,
you’ll get burned. Now, tell us what you know,” I ordered. Valek removed his knife
from Cahil’s throat and stepped back. Cahil scanned the area. We had attracted
quite the crowd, but I saw to my relief that there were no Vermin among them.
Then it hit me—why not? I asked Cahil. He gave me a sardonic
smile. “They’re all at the Keep. Roze plans a massive Kirakawa ritual using all
the magicians she has captured to empower all her favorite Warpers in one
sweep. And you’re to be the coup de grвce.” My blood turned to ice.
“Roze?” A superior expression
settled on Cahil’s face. “Yes, Roze Featherstone, First Magician also known as
Jalila Daviian, First Warper and founder of the Daviian Clan.” All color drained from
Leif’s face. “But how? Why?” “I had no idea until
Ferde was caught. She asked me to rescue him in exchange for the Council’s
support to invade Ixia,” Cahil said. “I thought it was an undercover mission to
learn who else was behind his bid for power. Though, when I discovered the
truth about her and the other Warpers, I must admit it didn’t bother me at the
time. She promised to attack Ixia and make me king.” “How many Warpers are
inside and who are the victims for the ritual?” I asked. “Six very powerful
Warpers, including Roze and Gede. They have been very careful about who they
allow to increase their powers, keeping crucial information about the Kirakawa
ritual to a select few. There are fifty Vermin soldiers and ten medium-powered
Warpers. Two of those Warpers are scheduled to be given master-level powers
during the massive ritual. The victims for this ritual will be the three other
Masters, who are incarcerated in the Keep’s cells, Moon Man and the
Councilors.” “What about the
students?” “The older apprentices
have been put in the cells. The younger ones obey out of fear.” “How does Roze plan to
control the Master Magicians?” “She has the power, but
I think she does plan to prick them with Curare to save her energy. Once they
are tied down, a dose of Theobroma will weaken their defenses.” “They seem to have an
unlimited supply of Curare,” I mused out loud. “Gede Daviian has
provided the drug for them. He also helped recruit dissatisfied Sandseeds to
the Daviian Clan. And having a pet Fire Warper has made him the Daviians’ most
valued member.” I mulled over the
information. “How do you plan to get us inside?” “As my prisoner. She
knows I went to find you. I’ll bring you to her and since my feelings for you
haven’t changed, I won’t have to act like I hate you. Sensing nothing wrong,
Roze will probably order me to take the rest—” Cahil pointed to Ari and Janco
“—to the cells.” “Why would I cooperate
with you?” “Because I’ll have Leif,
and I’ll make a bargain to keep him safe in exchange for your cooperation.” My mind raced through
the options and possibilities. For the first time, I felt hopeful about my
friends’ survival. “Cahil, when you take the others to the cells, can you free
everyone inside?” “As long as Roze is
occupied.” Valek smiled. “What’s
the plan, love?” We approached the Keep’s
gate at a slow walk. I sat in front of Cahil on his horse. Ari and Marrok sat
on the wagon with their hands tied behind their backs. Valek and Janco hid in the
bottom crates, and Leif sat on Kiki with one of Cahil’s men sitting behind him
armed with a knife. I didn’t have to pretend
to be scared and concerned for my friends. We were waved through the gate
without hesitation. Ari had informed the Citadel’s citizens to wait ten minutes
before storming the entrance to the Keep. Ten minutes for Cahil and the rest to
free the prisoners and for me to jump into the fire. I hoped it was enough
time. The wagon bypassed the
Keep’s administration building to where the apprentice barracks formed a ring
around an open area. A few students hurried past, keeping their gazes on the
ground as they carried out their tasks. The grassy glen had been
transformed. I stared at the waste-land in shock. The bonfire was expected, but
the grass around the fire had been covered with sand. Brownish-red stains
soaked the sand and stakes had been driven into it. It was the killing
ground for the Kirakawa ritual. And the next victim had already been tied down
and prepped. Bloody cuts crisscrossed
his abdomen, legs and arms. Although in pain, Moon Man still managed to smile.
“Now we can start the party,” he said. Roze frowned at him and
he writhed in agony. She stood next to Moon Man. Gede was beside her. Other
Warpers ringed the fire pit, watching with predatory eyes. “I see you finally
managed to get something right, Cahil,” she said. “Bring her here.” Cahil slid off the
saddle and grabbed me around the waist. He knew he didn’t need to help me down,
so he must have a reason. I let him yank me from the saddle, and drop me on the
ground. “Where do you want to
go?” he asked in a tight whisper as he jerked me to my feet. “As close to the fire as
I can.” “Really?” “Yes.” Although my heart
beat a different answer. No! it pounded. Let’s go! Run! He clamped his hand
around my arm and pulled me to Roze. We stopped a few feet from the fire. The
heat pulsed in waves. Sweat dripped down my back. Roze gestured to a
couple of Warpers. “There are two hiding in the boxes. Take them.” The Warpers and a few
soldiers advanced on the wagon. After some banging and cursing, Janco and Gale
were hauled out. “There are three
compartments, but one is empty,” a Warper called. Roze looked at me with a
question in her eyes. “For me. So I could get
inside the Citadel.” The truth. I kept my mind on the task at hand and didn’t
allow it to wonder about Valek. “At this distance,
Yelena, do you realize your mental defenses are nothing but a thin shell? I
will see your lies before you can form them in your mind. Remember that.” I nodded and
strengthened my barrier. She laughed and ordered
the soldiers to take the others to the cells. “I’ll deal with them later.” Once
the cart was out of sight, she peered at me and Cahil. “Your capture was too
easy,” she said. “You must think I’m a simpleton, but no matter, I’ve only to
expand a sliver of power to find out what you’re planning.” Her strong magic
invaded my mind. I kept my thoughts on
saving Moon Man, Leif and the others as I mentally dodged her onslaught. It
failed to work. To distract her, I asked, “Why?” “Nice try.” Her magic
crashed through my defenses, and seized my body. “You are in my power now.
Sitia is saved.” “Saved from me?” At
least I could still talk. In fact, even with her incredible strength, she could
only control either my mind or my body. Not both. “Saved from you. The
Commander. Valek. Our way of life is secured.” “By killing Sitians?
Using blood magic?” “Small price to pay for
our continued prosperity. I could not let the Commander invade us. The Council
failed to see the problem. I created the Daviians as a backup—a hidden weapon
for when we needed them. It worked. The Council eventually agreed with me.”
Smug satisfaction shone in her eyes. Through our mental link,
I sensed she didn’t understand the whole truth or she chose to ignore it. “The
Daviians forced the Council to agree with you. They had their children.” Extreme annoyance
creased Roze’s forehead. She shot Gede a venom-laced look. He wisely remained
quiet, but his muscles tensed. “Are you sure you have
control of the Daviians?” I asked. “Of course. And once we
choose a new Council we will attack Ixia and free them. They will welcome our
way of life.” She smiled. “So you saved Sitia?
Tell me, how is sacrificing the Council different than Valek assassinating
them?” Roze frowned and a wave
of pain pulsed through my body. My thoughts scattered as an unrelenting torment
twisted my muscles. When I regained my senses, I was lying in the sand, looking
up at her. “Isn’t choosing new
Councilors the same as appointing generals?” I asked. Another jolt of pain
sizzled along my spine. I arched my back and screamed. Sweat poured from my
head and soaked my clothes. My heart pumped as if it ran for its life. I gasped
for breath. “Would you care to ask
anything else?” Danger glinted in her eyes. “Yes. How are your
actions different than the Commander’s?” She paused, and I
pressed my advantage. “You want to protect Sitia from the Commander, but in the
process you turned into him.” Her mouth opened to
protest, but I interrupted. “You’re worried the Commander would invade Sitia
and turn your clans into Military Districts. But you’re planning to attack Ixia
and turn his Military Districts into clans. How is that different? Tell me!” She blustered and shook
her head. “I’m…he’s…” Then she laughed. “Why should I listen to you? You’re a
Soulfinder. You want to control Sitia. Of course you would try to sway me with
your lies.” Gede relaxed and
chuckled with Roze. “She will twist your words. You should kill her now.” Roze drew a breath. “Wait for the ritual! I
have something you want,” I said. “What could you have
that I can not take from you?” “According to the
ritual, a willing victim releases more power than a resisting one.” “And you will submit to
me in exchange for what?” “For all my friends’
lives.” “No. Only one. You
choose.” “Moon Man, then.” I
hoped the others managed to escape. She released her hold on
me. I stood, but she pointed. “Lie in the sand,” she ordered. “Can I ask another
question first?” “One.” “What happens to the
Fire Warper after this ritual?” “Once you’re dead, our
deal is complete. We have promised him your power and fed him in exchange for
knowledge about the blood magic. He will then have enough power to rule the
underworld.” A shout reached us and I
felt a magical onslaught. Roze turned to the
commotion and gestured to her Warpers. “Take care of them.” Unconcerned, she
said to me, “You know they will not get close to us. My Warpers and I have
enough power to stop them.” “Yes, I know.” “But I don’t think you
believe it. Watch what I can do. This used to drain me of energy. Now it takes
only a thought.” Her gaze went to Moon Man’s. His face paled and his
body jerked once then stilled. The shine in his eyes dulled as his soul left
his body. 33I DIVED OVER HIS PRONE
form and inhaled his soul before crashing to the sand. Gede gasped. “He was for
the ritual.” Roze laughed and said,
“Don’t worry. She’ll now give me two sources of power when I cut her heart
out.” “We made a deal, Roze.
My cooperation for Moon Man.” I brushed the sand off my clothes. “And you won’t cooperate
when I press a knife to Leif’s throat?” she asked. By the expression on my
face, she knew I would. “You’re too soft, Soulfinder. You could have raised a
soulless army. They would have been undefeatable. Magic doesn’t work on them.
Only fire.” Another cry split the
air, but this time from the opposite direction. A Vermin raced toward us. “Now what?” Roze asked
him. “The Keep’s gates are
under attack,” he said, panting. She glanced at the
Warpers fighting with the Keep’s magicians. A vision of the battle formed in my
mind. The ferocity of the combat dwindled. The confusing array of magical
images was gone and Gale’s whirling dust devils had died. People fell to the
ground after being hit with Curare-laced darts. Leif, Ari and Bain lay
paralyzed. Janco fought a soldier, keeping the man between him and the
blowpipes. His movements slowed as another Warper focused his magic on him. Roze’s Warpers had
gained the upper hand; it was only a matter of time. “There is nobody left to
rescue you,” Roze said. Her comments hit home
when she called a few Warpers away from the battle to deal with the revolt at
the gates. But there was one person
I didn’t see and that gave me some hope. “Roze, you haven’t figured everything
out.” She looked dubious.
“What have I missed? Valek? Oh, I know he’s here. Magic might not affect him,
but Curare will do the trick.” “No. The Fire Warper.” “What about him?” “You haven’t taken into
account that he might have different plans than you.” “Don’t be ridiculous.
Gede and I feed him. We give him his power. Who else would help him?” “I would.” I ran toward the fire.
Roze’s yell sounded faint over the roar of the blaze. The heat encompassed me
in a loving embrace. Burning pain transformed into pinpricks of pleasure. But
this time the world didn’t settle into the smooth plain of black. Souls filled
my world, writhing and crying with misery. The air stank of decay and
infection. Help! Help! they cried. The Fire Warper ordered
them to be quiet and pushed them away from me. “She is here for me,” he said.
“She will not help you.” He studied me. “You have
brought me a treat. No only a soul for the sky, but Moon Man’s bright power
will increase my strength.” Moon Man stood next to
me. He peered about the fire world with mild interest. “I’m sorry you’re here,”
I said. “I didn’t plan for it to be you.” “Why not? I am your
guide, Yelena. In life and in death. That never changes.” “But you said Gede was
my new Story Weaver.” “You were looking for an
easy road. Which Gede provided. You could have reclaimed me as your Story
Weaver at any time.” “How?” “You just needed to ask.
Or rather begged for my return—much better for my ego.” The Fire Warper stepped
between us. “How sweet. Now take me to the sky,” he demanded. “No,” I said. “You cannot refuse me.
We made a deal.” “I promised to come
back. I didn’t promise to take you into the sky.” “Then you and Moon Man
will stay here in misery and I will use your power to reach the sky.” He
advanced and grabbed my arms. My skin boiled as
searing daggers of pain spread throughout my body. I screamed, but he didn’t
have the ability to take what he wanted. I had to give it to him. He tried another tactic.
Waving with an arm, a window opened and I could see Roze and her Warpers. Leif,
Bain, Ari, Janco, Gale, Cahil and Marrok all were staked in the sand. “They lost. There are a
few more left, but when they are captured, the fun begins. However, if you lead
me to the sky, I will stop Roze and release all your friends and family.” I looked at Moon Man. “If you do not help the
Fire Warper,” Moon Man said, “we are stuck here and Roze will send each of them
to suffer in this world with us.” This was the one
scenario I had hoped to avoid. “Are you saying that’s what I should do?” “No. I am merely
pointing out the consequences.” “Then what should I do?” “Your decision to make.
You are the Soulfinder. Find your soul.” I wanted to strangle
him, but he was already dead. “Do you think you could give me a straight answer
one time?” I demanded. “Yes, I could.” I gazed out as
frustration and futility twisted tightly around me. Sensing I was conflicted,
the Fire Warper let the souls draw near to me so I could see the fate of my
friends. Their cries grew shrill in my ears and the heat baked my skin, making
it difficult to concentrate. The fetid odor assaulted my senses. “Watch,” he said, and
pointed to the scene beyond the fire. “Roze has ensnared Irys in a cocoon of
magic. She will force her to lie upon the sand and be tied down.” Sure enough Irys walked toward
Roze. She knelt before her. Irys’s eyes glanced to the side before the other
Warpers secured her in the sand. I followed her gaze and spotted Valek. He fought four Warpers
with swords, but I knew they threw every ounce of magic at him. And by Roze’s
intent gaze, she aimed all her power against him. Even though the magic didn’t
work, he still felt the presence and it slowed his movements. A soldier waited
nearby with a blowpipe, seeking the first opportunity to hit Valek with a dart. “And Valek will be
next,” the Fire Warper said. “What do you want to do? Watch your friends and
lover die or guide me to the sky?” I held out my hand to
Moon Man and to the Fire Warper. “Come,” I said. 34A TRIUMPHANT GRIN SPREAD
on the Fire Warper’s face. Moon Man remained unflappable. He held my hand. Even
though it appeared to be made of smoke, his hand felt solid in mine. Moon Man
looked at me. The oval shape of his eyes matched Roze’s. Why hadn’t I noticed
the resemblance before? Roze’s comments replayed
in my mind. Could I reanimate Moon Man’s body after I took him to the sky?
According to Roze, soulless bodies were unaffected by magic. Could I create a
small force to help Irys and Valek? My bat flew around my
head. Odd. How could he be here? Moon Man sighed. I missed
the point. It didn’t matter how the bat had gotten here, but why was he here at
all. Bats. Opal’s glass bat. I reached for my pocket, but the answer halted the
motion. Opal’s sister. Tula! When Ferde had stolen Tula’s soul and strangled her, I had used my magic to breathe for Tula, but as soon as I
had stopped, she had stopped. I didn’t possess the
power to raise a soulless army. The magician born
one-hundred-and-fifty years ago wasn’t a Soulfinder, but a Soulstealer. I was a true Soulfinder.
And I knew what my job entailed. The Fire Warper grew impatient with my delay
and reached for my free hand; I yanked it away. My bat cried out with joy and
disappeared. I sought Roze with my
mind, seeing her soul and the souls of all her victims trapped within her. Their
blood had been injected into her skin to bind them to her. I pushed at the
blood, sweeping and forcing it through her pores, pulling the souls free,
sending them to the sky. She yelped and rolled up
her sleeve. Black liquid oozed from her arms, dripping onto the sand. The
putrid smell of rancid blood surrounded her like a fog. Each one I removed
weakened Roze until only her own power remained. Then I projected my mind
to Gede and did the same to him. One by one I plucked souls from the Warpers,
weakening them. The Fire Warper cried an
oath and lunged for me. Moon Man intercepted and fought him so I could return
my attention to the Keep. Roze’s magical hold on
Irys had slipped when I extracted her power. Freed from the magic, Irys used
her own skills to draw a knife close to her and cut the rope. Once loose, she
ran to a few others who had not been pricked with Curare but who, like her, had
been captured by magic. Gale and Marrok joined
her and they attacked Roze. Valek’s opponents had been distracted by the scene
around them, giving Valek the opportunity to dispatch them. The man with the
blowpipe ran off. Valek turned his full attention to Roze. Satisfied all was well
with my friends, I focused on the Fire Warper. He held Moon Man in a tight
grip, compressing Moon Man’s soul to bind him to the fire world. “Stop,” I said. “You’ll
gain no more power today.” I pulled at Moon Man with my magic and he popped
from the Fire Warper’s grasp. “I find souls and ensure they arrive at the
proper destination. He doesn’t belong here. But you do.” I moved past him. He
tried to stop me, but he was a soul just like all the others and I controlled
him. Moving through the fire world, I found those who didn’t belong and
released them to the sky. The Fire Warper screamed at me with each one, but I
ignored him. A long time passed as I freed them all, but my energy increased
with every rescue. “Why aren’t I tired?” I
asked Moon Man. He smiled. “Think about
what you have learned today.” I glanced around. The
Fire Warper’s power had diminished with each freed soul. Perhaps stealing his
power had increased my own? “No.” Moon Man looked a
little exasperated, as if he couldn’t believe how slow I was. I did take some
pleasure from his expression. To alter his calm demeanor required much effort
on my part. The Fire Warper glowered
at me. “It is only a matter of time before I regain my strength,” he said.
“There is always someone who desires more power and I will be waiting for
them.” “Not if I can help it,”
I said. “Then you will have to
spend eternity with me to prevent it. The knowledge is out there now. Another
fool will figure out how to contact me through the flames.” He had a point. But I
was the Soulfinder. In order to do my job, I would have to stay in the
underworld and send the souls to their proper places. Thinking about my job, I
remembered a promise to Moon Man. “Can you guide me to the
shadow world?” I asked him. “No. But you can lead
me.” “And you call yourself a
guide?” He smiled serenely. “I hate you.” I clasped
Moon Man’s hand. I thought of the shadow
world with its gray plain and sky. The red glow faded and soon the featureless
expanse spread in front of us. “This is only the
corridor between worlds, Yelena. Look deeper to see the real shadow world.” Another cryptic instruction.
For all my abilities, I still couldn’t get Moon Man to give me a straight
answer. I pushed away my frustration and focused on who I was trying to find.
The Sandseeds who had been killed by the Vermin in the Avibian Plains. The flat area began to
undulate and transform into the plains. Small outcroppings of rocks grew and
the smooth gray ground sprouted grass and a few bushes. A cluster of canvas
tents popped up and circled a fire pit. The scene before me resembled a
Sandseed camp. Yet there was no color. Only black and white and every shade of
gray. Sandseeds huddled
together in this camp on the altered Avibian Plain, living in the shadow cast
by the real world. They clung to their memories of life, not realizing peace
awaited them in the sky. I walked among them and
talked to them. Their numbers grew and I had to stop myself from reliving the
horror of the Vermin’s attack and massacre. I made promises to watch over the
living Sandseeds who had hidden during the attack. Days and weeks could have
passed while I convinced them to move on. I had no concept of time. Again, as I sent each
one into the sky, my strength grew. “There are many more souls clinging to the
shadow world,” I said to Moon Man, thinking about all the towns and cities in
Sitia and Ixia. “Let me return you to your body and you can tell the others my
fate.” “I can not return,” he
said. “My body has died, unlike yours. And even if you heal me, I would be
unhappy and would wish for death.” “Like Stono and Gelsi?” “Yes. Eventually both
will find their way back to where they belong.” “Then I will send you to
the sky. You deserve to be there.” “Not until you
understand.” “I do understand. I’m
doing my job. I’ve resigned myself to living here to keep Sitia and Ixia safe
from more Warpers!” I clamped my hands together to keep them from wrapping
around Mr. I-know-everything-and-you-don’t Man’s thick neck. “Have you truly resigned
yourself?” he asked. “I…” I huffed in
frustration. I would rather be back with Valek, Kiki, my parents, Leif, Irys,
Ari, Janco and my other friends. I had learned my true job, but there were
still many aspects of my magic and others’ magic to explore. I thought about
Opal’s unique ability. Then I remembered my glass bat. Had it survived the
fire? I felt inside my pockets. Odd how my clothing had survived the flames. My
fingers touched a smooth lump. I pulled the animal from my cape. The inner core
glowed with magic. Staring at the light, I saw Leif’s sad face. He peered at me
in sorrow, then disbelief when I smiled at him. “Hello from the
underworld,” I said. “Yelena! What the…?
Where are…? Come back!” “I can’t. Tell me what
has happened?” He gave me a quick
sketch of how the battle had played out after I jumped into the fire. Most of
the Warpers were dead, only Roze, Gede and four others remained alive. They
were in the Keep’s cells, awaiting trial. “They will be hanged for
treason and murder,” Leif said. He grew somber. “We buried Moon Man last week.” “Last week? But—” “You’ve been gone for
weeks. We keep the fire burning, hoping you’ll return. Also Valek will not let
us quench it. He’s been helping the Councilors and Master Magicians recover
from their ordeal and to smooth out relations with the Commander via Ambassador
Signe. Valek went from the scourge of Sitia to the hero of Sitia.” Leif smiled
sardonically. Valek. The one person I
wouldn’t mind spending eternity with. Leif continued, “And the
rest of us are coping with the aftermath. Many students were killed by the
Vermin. We’re still sorting out who is left. Your friend Dax is okay, but Gelsi
died resisting a Warper.” Moon Man was right,
Gelsi found her way back. I hoped Stono wouldn’t suffer too much before his
soul found the sky. He paused. “The Sitian
army’s hunting down the remaining Vermin who escaped. The Sandseeds have moved
back to the plains to repopulate.” Leif sighed. “You’re missed by everyone. Why
can’t you come back?” “Someone needs to keep
the Fire Warper from regaining power.” Leif frowned as he
thought, then looked hopeful. “Bain has burned those old Efe texts to stop
someone from learning about the blood magic.” “But there are others
who know how to perform the ritual, and, even though you will execute them,
they will be here in the fire world and able to communicate to someone who is
determined to seek them out.” “You’re a Soulfinder,
can’t you send them somewhere out of reach?” Leif asked. “They don’t deserve to
be in the sky.” “Why not?” Moon Man
said. My mind thought over
what I knew of the sky, which was very little. “I think they would taint it.
It’s pure and their vile deeds would soil it.” “Finally. What is the
sky?” What indeed? When I sent
souls there, I felt refreshed, energetic even though I used power, which
usually caused me fatigue. I added souls to the sky. Adding to the power
blanket surrounding the world. The source of magic! The world’s soul. Moon Man beamed at me.
“Now you can send me there! And then you can return to your life.” He chuckled at my
dubious expression. “You will find a way, Yelena. You always do.” “Last piece of cryptic
advice?” “Consider it my farewell
gift.” I hesitated for a
moment. Once Moon Man was gone I would be all alone. “All the more reason not
to stay,” Moon Man said. “There’s one thing I
won’t miss.” “And that is?” “You reading my mind all
the time and making me figure things out for myself.” “All part of being your
Story Weaver. It does not stop, you know. You will hear my voice in your mind
from time to time, giving you my unique advice.” I groaned. “And I
thought living in the underworld for eternity was bad!” Before sending him to
the sky, I stared at him, trying to hold his features, including his sardonic
grin, in my mind. When he disappeared, his absence felt like an icy coating on
my skin. I realized I still held Opal’s bat, but my connection to Leif was broken. I wandered through the
shadow world and found lost souls. Every so often I checked in the fire world
to make sure the Fire Warper remained as he should be. He cursed, taunted and
tried to cajole me, depending on his mood. Irys, Leif and Bain all
talked to me through the glass animals. They were the only ones who had the
ability to use them. Through them I knew Roze, Gede and the other Warpers would
be hanged soon. I prepared to receive them in the fire world. In the meantime, I
stared at my bat, trying and failing to connect to Valek. My desire to talk to
him, to hold him, clawed at my body. Frustration at my inability to communicate
with him caused a window to open to the real world, and I could view events
around my fire. I laughed at my intense feelings of ownership. My fire. But I
sobered. I knew after they hanged Roze and the others, my fire would be doused
and my window closed for good. The Council planned to
hang Roze and her accomplices on gallows built in the bloodstained sand then
burn their bodies in my fire. An insult given only to traitors. The sand would be
cleaned up and perhaps the gardeners would plant grass in the space. Or some
trees. Flowers. A memorial? Perhaps a structure similar to one of the Citadel’s
jade statues or fountains. To remember me and Moon Man. Now I was being maudlin
and dramatic. Next thing I knew, I’d be designing the memorial, sketching its
dimensions in the sand. I wondered about what they would do with all the sand.
Send it to Booruby to be melted into glass? So Opal could turn fire into ice? I froze in shock as a
wild idea formed in my head. Thinking it through, I found many holes and
reasons for it not to work. But success or not, at least I could say I tried.
And the effort alone would keep Moon Man from nagging me for a while. 35CALLING TO LEIF through
my bat, I hoped there would be enough time. He seemed eager to help and rushed
off to make the arrangements. Events had to happen in
a particular order for this to work. I returned to the fire world. The Fire
Warper would be our first test subject. Watching out my window, I waited for
Leif to return. I didn’t like being in the fire world. The shrill noise drilled
through my skull and the putrid smell permeated the air. I preferred the quiet
dullness of the shadow world. The Fire Warper enjoyed
my anxiety. “Look at how you long to return. Your suffering is my only
pleasure. And I will enjoy keeping you here. Already I sense an unhappy boy who
seeks revenge on his tormentors. If his desire grows, I’ll be able to talk to
him. Unless you prevent it.” Doubt flared about what
I planned. Was I being selfish? Could I still rescue souls lost in the shadow
world? Yet I had done it before with the ghosts in Owl’s Hill. Suppressing all
my fears, I ignored the Fire Warper’s comments. What seemed like a
couple of weeks to me, but could have been a month or more, passed. By my brief
glimpses into the Keep, the cold season had ended and the warming season was in
full swing. I received updates from Leif, but now that I had a chance to
escape, my impatience grew. Finally, all the
elements were in place. The gallows were built and the needed equipment brought
in. My incredible relief at seeing Opal surprised me. Her mouth was pressed in
pure determination as she readied her tools. Another worry crossed my
mind. Within the underworld, I hadn’t felt cold, hot, hunger or thirst. But if
I stepped back through the fire, would it burn me? I would find out soon
enough. The Fire Warper hovered near me, his amusement plain. Opal grasped a long metal
pipe and poked it into the kiln. I wondered where they had gotten the
glassmaking supplies. She turned the pipe and drew it out. And proceeded to
create a glass animal. When she moved to blow
into the pipe, I inhaled the Fire Warper’s soul. He yelped in surprise and
seared my skin as I sent him through Opal and into the glass. He screamed in
panic and resisted. But I controlled him. He was a soul after all. Opal jerked as if
burned, but returned to her task, making the ugliest, squattest looking pig I
ever saw. Placing the animal into
the annealing oven, the wait began. Had our experiment worked? If the Fire
Warper was truly trapped within the glass, then we could encase all the Warpers
who knew how to perform blood magic, preventing them from passing the
information along. And I could go home. Twelve of the longest
hours passed before Opal withdrew the pig and held the statue up for all to
see. It was then I noticed just how many people had come to watch. I expected
Leif, the Master Magicians and Councilors, but it appeared that Fisk and the
entire Helping Guild members were there. My mother and father lingered at the
edges. Perl’s hand was clamped to her throat in dismay, but she looked as
determined as Opal. Cahil and a regiment of
soldiers, including Marrok stood at attention. Ari and Janco waited with Leif.
Janco scowled, showing his extreme dislike of magic. Valek glowed with his
own inner fire. For him, I would risk the flames’ heat. I turned my attention to
Opal’s creation. It pulsed with a muddy red light. The Fire Warper was locked
inside. The audience cheered.
Opal placed the pig in the sand, and gathered another blob of molten glass,
preparing for the next soul. Roze, under the control
of three Master Magicians, was forced to mount the gallows’ steps. The noose
was tightened around her neck and the executioner stepped back. Her face
contorted with rage and she shouted. Time froze for a moment
and I felt what it would have been like to stand there terrified, waiting for
the floor to open and my life to end with a quick snap of my neck. If I had
chosen the noose instead of becoming the Commander’s food taster two years ago,
I wondered if any of this would have happened. Roze fell in slow
motion. Her body jerked at the end of the rope. Her soul flew. I captured it. Her hateful thoughts
filled my mind. Guardian of the underworld suits you, Yelena. You belong here.
You don’t really believe you can go back? You’ll be feared by all and become an
outcast in record time. If I was a Soulstealer,
I would agree with you, I said. You don’t scare me, Roze. You never did and
that bothered you more than me being a Soulfinder. Opal blew. I sent Roze
on her final journey. Then Gede. Then the other four Warpers. Seven in all,
including the Fire Warper. When all the Warpers had
been encased in glass, Opal sank to the ground in exhaustion. Now I could
leave. I glanced around, trying to determine whether I missed anything, whether
a soul who could do harm remained. Roze’s words had a bit of truth to them.
Regardless of my explanations, Sitians would be frightened of me and the
Council’s suspicion and unease would linger for a long time. I welcomed the
difficulties. All part of living, and I planned to enjoy every minute. As I walked through my
window to the Keep, sounds reached me first. The roar of the fire. Leif calling
my name. Then scalding heat sucked my breath away. Bright yellow and orange
stabbed at my eyes. My cape caught fire. I dived to the sand and rolled on the
ground to snuff the flames. So much for my grand entrance. 36I SPENT MY FIRST HOURS
back cocooned in an excited babble of all my friends and family. Everyone
except Valek. But I knew I would see him when the horde dispersed. Once my fire had
finished its macabre task of burning the traitors to ash, it was doused. Thick
smoke boiled from it and clung to the ground until Gale Stormdance created a
fresh breeze to whisk it away. I noted with much
interest how fast life resumed. Though glad I had returned, the Councilors left
for a meeting, and Fisk and his guild hurried off to work in the market. Before he left, Fisk
flashed me a wide smile and said, “Lovely Yelena, you’ll need new clothes for
the hot season. I know the best seamstress in the Citadel. Come find me when
you’re ready.” The hot season? Ari told
me it had just started. I had lived in the underworld for seventy-one days,
missing the entire warming season. I viewed the time with mixed emotions: glad
my perceptions in the underworld didn’t match reality, especially if I ever
needed to go back; and upset I wasn’t here to help clean up the mess left
behind by the Vermin. Ari and Janco grumbled
over the hot, sticky weather and confessed their desire to go home to Ixia. “We had fun rooting out
all those Daviians,” Janco said. “But I’m sure Maren misses us.” Ari looked doubtful. He
had washed the black dye from his hair, and his light skin had burned in the
Sitian sun. Janco’s skin had tanned, matching his Sitian clothes. “Oh this?” Janco said,
when I mentioned his new coloring. “You missed some beautiful days.” “Janco’s been sunning
himself every chance he gets,” Ari said with obvious disdain. “He claimed he
kept the fire going, but I caught him snoozing in the sand a few times.” “Once!” Janco said. They began to bicker. I
laughed and moved away, but heard Ari call out, “Training yard, five o’clock.” Kiki’s urgent summons
had nagged me the whole time I’d been back. I hurried over to the stable to
spend an hour with her. Perhaps Valek would show up and we could get
reacquainted in the straw. I scratched her ears,
fed her peppermints and ducked behind a stack of hay bales when the Stable
Master came looking for me, probably to give me a lecture about borrowing
Garnet for so long. Lavender Lady not go
again, Kiki said in my mind. I’ll try to avoid it. No
promises, though. She huffed. Next time
Kiki go. A Horsefinder? Help Lavender Lady, Kiki
said, as if that ended the discussion. Even though I longed to
return to my rooms in Irys’s tower, my parents insisted I come to their
quarters in the Keep’s guest wing after I visited the stables. Leif, Irys and
Bain followed me, and the six of us sat in the living room, sipping tea. Wedged
tightly between my father and mother on the couch, I was held prisoner. My
desire to seek Valek would have to wait. Bain and Irys were most
interested in what had happened in the fire and shadow worlds. After giving
them a brief sketch, Bain made me promise to visit him and recite the details
for his book. “You passed the
Master-level test,” Irys said. “What?” Caught off guard
by this sudden change in topic, I choked on my tea. “You entered the
underworld and returned with a spirit guide. Your encounter with the Fire
Warper was your challenge, and his defeat your success.” “But I don’t have a
spirit guide.” Leif laughed. “Your bat!
I thought he was strange. Beside the obvious fact that he wanted to hang out
with you.” “Leif. That’s not nice,
considering all your sister has done for you,” Perl admonished. “Oh, right. How can I
forget that she made me bait for a snake, left me under house arrest in Ixia
and smuggled me into the Keep in a coffin. And don’t forget the time…” I ignored Leif’s rant. I
wondered, why a bat? Why not something fearsome like a fire dragon or necklace
snake? Irys had a hawk, Bain a wind leopard and Zitora a unicorn. Thinking of
Zitora, I reminded myself to go visit her in the infirmary. She had been
severely wounded during the fight with the Warpers, and her recovery had been
slow. I kept glancing out the
window, hoping to see Valek. My mind circled through various excuses for me to
leave everyone to search for him. Bain interrupted Leif’s
list of grievances against me. “According to our policies, Yelena is Fourth
Magician.” I raised my hand to
prevent any more wild speculation. “No. I can’t light fires or move objects like
the Masters can. I’m a Soulfinder. My job is to find lost souls and send them
home, including the souls of Ixia. There is still need for a Liaison between
the two countries. I plan to reassume the role.” And the first order of
business would be to assess Cahil’s intentions. His help in defeating Roze and
uncovering all the Vermin nests had proven invaluable to the Council, but I
wasn’t convinced his new role meant he wouldn’t try some way to claim Ixia’s
throne. Leif asked, “What do we
do with those glass prisons? They’re under guard, but we don’t want them
falling into the wrong hands.” “What would happen if
they break?” Perl asked. They all looked at me.
“If the souls are freed, they will go to the fire world, unless there is
another Soulfinder to place them elsewhere.” “Elsewhere?” Leif raised
his eyebrows. “Into another body or to
the sky.” I sighed. “We will have to find a place to protect and to hide them.” “The Keep,” Bain said. “The Illiais Jungle has
some deep caves,” Esau suggested. “Under the Emerald Mountains,” Irys said. “Sunken in the deepest
part of the sea,” Leif said. “Buried under the
northern ice,” Perl recommended. “All good ideas, but the
Council will need to debate the issue and decide.” My gaze met Irys’s. She
gave me a wry smile. We both knew the Council would argue for months, and it
was up to me to find a home for them. I spent the rest of the
afternoon with my family. Perl and Esau made me promise to come visit them. “A nice relaxing visit,”
Perl ordered. “No chasing Vermin or saving anyone. We’ll sit and talk and I’ll
make you a new perfume.” “Yes, Mother.” She made me eat before I
could leave. I hurried to the training yard, hoping Valek would be there. He was not. The man must
be torturing me on purpose. I had made him wait over two months. Perhaps he was
returning the favor. Ari and Janco sparred
with swords. And although Janco sang his rhymes and Ari used his brute
strength, they were equally matched in skill. They stopped when they saw me. “Come on,” Janco said.
“Ari wants to make sure you’re in good fighting shape before we leave.” “I do?” “Yes, you do. Otherwise
you’ll worry about her.” “I will?” “Of course.” Janco waved
away Ari’s comments. “Besides, this is just a lull before the next storm. We
need to be ready!” This time I piped in.
“The next storm?” Janco sighed
dramatically. “There’s always another storm. It’s the way the world works.
Snowstorms, rainstorms, wind-storms, sandstorms and firestorms. Some are fierce
and others are small. You have to deal with each one separately, but you need
to always keep an eye on what’s brewing for tomorrow.” Ari rolled his eyes.
“Janco’s unique view of life. Yesterday he compared living to food.” “That’s because some
food leaves you full while others—” “Janco,” I said.
“Prepare for my storm.” I swept my bow toward his feet. He jumped over it with a
nimble grace. Dropping his sword, he reached for his bow and our match began. Since I had returned
from the underworld, I could see everyone with a new sight. With a blink of my
eyes, I saw through their bodies and directly into their souls. I knew their
thoughts, feelings and intentions as if they were my own. Before I had to pull
power for the source and project myself to them. Now the connection was there
the second I thought about it. Janco’s comical surprise
when I dumped him on the ground in three moves was almost worth my trip through
the underworld. Almost. He huffed and blustered
and tried to make excuses. I stopped our second fight to guide a soul to the
sky. Many hung around the Keep and I knew I would have to do a sweep of the
Citadel. Janco viewed my magical
actions as if they were distasteful to him. “At least you’re expending energy.
You’ll be easier to beat,” he smirked. “Wishful thinking,” I
said. After losing the next
four matches, Janco finally conceded. “Am I ready for the next
storm?” I asked him, smiling sweetly. “You are the next
storm.” Bruised ego aside, Janco
and Ari were pleased with my fighting skills. “You found your center,”
Ari said with a note of approval in his voice. “You’re not afraid to embrace
who you are. Now Janco won’t have to worry anymore.” “I’ll let Ari do all the
worrying for both of us. Oh wait! He already does.” “I do not. You’re the
one who moaned and fussed about Yelena all these weeks.” “I did not.” They launched into
another round of bickering. I never thought I would enjoy listening to them,
but I did. Until I saw Cahil walking toward the training yard. He held his long
broadsword. I watched him approach, preparing to defend myself if need be. I
studied his emotions with my other sight. Hate, determination and anxiety
dominated his feelings. Cahil stopped at the
fence. “I didn’t come here to fight,” he said. “I want to talk to you.” Ari and Janco didn’t
seem concerned by his presence, and continued their debate. But they hadn’t
been on the wrong side of Cahil’s wrath. I moved closer with my bow in hand,
keeping the wooden fence between us. “What do you want to
talk about?” I demanded. Cahil pulled in a deep
breath and let the air out fast. “I wanted to…” “Go on. Say it.” Irritation flared in
Cahil’s light blue eyes, but he stifled it. “I wanted to explain.” “Explain why you’re
nasty, ruthless, opportunistic—” “Yelena! Will you shut
up.” My expression must have
warned him, because he rushed to continue. “You bring out the worst in me. Can
you listen?” A pause. “Please?” “All right.” “When I found out that I
didn’t have royal blood, that my whole purpose in life was a sham, I refused to
believe it. Even when Marrok admitted I was just a soldier’s son, I didn’t want
to hear it. Instead, I transferred my anger to you and Valek and decided I
would find a way to make the Council support an attack on Ixia to reclaim the
throne.” Cahil looked down at the sword in his hand. “You know what I did
after. I lost my way and swallowed every morsel of Roze’s lies.” Cahil handed me his
sword. It had been the King of Ixia’s sword. Rescued after the King had been
assassinated, the sword had been given to Cahil as part of the ruse to make him
believe he was the King’s nephew. “Give it to the
Commander for me,” Cahil said. “By rights, it should be his.” “Have you given up your
desire to rule Ixia?” He looked at me and I
saw a renewed sense of purpose in his soul. “No. I still seek to free Ixia from
the Commander’s strict rule. But I no longer feel I should inherit the throne.
I plan to earn the privilege.” “Then that’s going to
make for some interesting discussions between us.” I held his gaze. “You can count on it.” The summons from
Ambassador Signe came after a long soak in a hot bath. I exchanged my damaged
cape and smoky clothes for a clean pair of cotton pants and shirt. My hair
hadn’t grown while I was in the underworld. The inch-long strands, though, were
long enough to lay flat on my head. The Ambassador waited in
the Keep’s administration building. She had the use of a meeting room and an
office during her stay. I hurried up the stairs and into the marble building,
hoping to see Valek there. My disappointment churned in my stomach and I
wondered if Valek was avoiding me. Ambassador Signe greeted
me warmly, inquiring about my health. I studied her face. So similar to the
Commander’s almost delicate features, yet missing the full force of the
powerful spark residing in his gold eyes. With my new vision, I saw the two
souls that struggled for dominance. They took turns, but I could see the red
spiral of conflict within. “Irys Jewelrose informed
me you wish to resume your duties as Liaison. Is this true?” “Yes. Becoming an
adviser to the Commander is very tempting, but I feel my skills should serve
both Ixia and Sitia by keeping relations open and fostering an understanding
between the two nations.” “I see. Then your first
order of business should be to negotiate a salary.” “A salary?” “You can not be paid by
the magicians or the Council. You must receive equal wages from Sitia and Ixia
to maintain your neutrality.” She smiled. “For all that you have done recently,
I would suggest you barter for a considerable amount.” “Obviously, there are
many things I need to think about in my new role.” “I trust, then, your
education is complete?” I laughed. “There will
never be a time when it’s complete, but I’ve reached an understanding with my
abilities.” “Good. I look forward to
our negotiations.” Before the Ambassador
could dismiss me, I said, “I have something for the Commander.” She looked at me
expectantly. “It’s with your guard.
He wouldn’t let me bring it in.” Rising from her desk,
she opened the door and returned with the King’s sword. “May I speak to the
Commander?” I asked. The transformation from
the Ambassador to the Commander happened in a heartbeat. Even the physical
features changed from a woman to a man. I had seen it before, but this time I
watched with my other sight. It revealed much. “What is this for?” the
Commander asked. He studied the weapon in his hand. “Cahil is returning it
to you. You won the right to wield it over seventeen years ago.” A thoughtful expression
settled on his face as he placed the sword on the desk. “Cahil. What should I
do about him?” I told the Commander
about his plans. “He could cause trouble for you in the future, although I hope
my efforts will change his mind.” “I know Valek would be
happy to assassinate him.” He considered that scenario. “But he might prove
useful, especially in dealing with the younger generation.” He saw my confused
frown. “It’ll give them something to do.” “Or give them someone to
rally behind.” “All part of the fun, I
suppose. Is that all?” “No.” I gave the
Commander one of Opal’s glass animals. He admired the tree
leopard and thanked me for the gift. “The glow you see is
magic,” I said. His gaze pierced me and
I felt his sense of betrayal as if I poisoned him. He placed the statue on the
desk. I explained why he could view the fire. “I can see two souls
within your body. Your mother didn’t want to leave you alone when she died so
she stayed with you. Her magic lets you see the glow. And it’s her fear of
discovery that has made you afraid of magic in all its forms.” Commander Ambrose held
his body as if any movement would crack it into a thousand pieces. “How do you
know this?” “I’m a Soulfinder. I
find lost souls and send them to the sky. Does she want to go? Do you want her
to go?” “I don’t know. I…” “Think about it. You
know where to find me. There’s no time limit.” I glanced back before I
left. He stared at the tree leopard, lost in his thoughts. Night had fallen while I
talked with the Commander. Walking across the silent campus, I inhaled the warm
breeze, soaking in the smells of life and the feel of air on my skin. I scanned
my surroundings, searching for some sign of Valek. Irys had lit all the
lanterns in her tower. Even though she had given me three floors of the
structure for my use, I found myself thinking about a salary, and my mind
drifted to Valek’s cottage in the Featherstone lands. It would be nice to be
close to Kiki and get away from the Council’s and Commander’s politics each
night. The cottage was near the Ixian border, too. It would be neutral
territory. A place of my own. I
couldn’t claim any room, cell or dwelling as my own. It would be the first
time. My excitement grew. I trudged up three
floors of the tower to my bedroom. The sparse furnishings and layer of dust
made for an unwelcoming sight, although the bedding was fresh. I opened the shutters to
let in clean air and felt a presence behind me. Without turning, I demanded,
“What took you so long?” Valek pressed against my
back. His arms wrapped around my stomach. “I could ask you the same thing.” He
spun me to face him. “I didn’t want to share you, love. We have a lot of
catching up to do.” He leaned in and kissed
me. I drank in his essence, it soothed my soul. Eventually, I pulled
away, and laid my head on his chest, content to just feel his heartbeat against
my cheek. “That’s the second time
I lost you,” he said. “You would think it would be easier, but I couldn’t douse
the burning pain. I felt like my heart had been pierced by a spit and was
cooking over a fire.” His arms tightened
around me as if he worried I would slip from his grip. “I would beg you to
promise never to disappear again, but I know you won’t.” “I can’t. Just like you
can’t promise to stop being loyal to the Commander. We both have other duties.” He huffed with
amusement. “We could retire.” “From being a Liaison,
but not a Soulfinder. There are many lost souls to guide.” Ever the analyst, Valek
drew back enough to study me. “How many? It’s been a hundred-and-twenty-five
years since Sitia crisped the last Soulfinder. Hundreds?” “I don’t know. The
Soulfinders documented in the history books were really Soulstealers. Guyan
could have been the only one in the last two thousand years. Bain would delight
in helping me with that assignment. But I will need to travel around Sitia and
Ixia to help them all. Do you want to come? It could be fun.” “You, me and a couple
thousand ghosts? Sounds crowded,” he teased. “At least you already found one
soul, love.” “Moon Man’s?” “Mine. And I trust you
not to lose it.” “The only magic to
affect the infamous Valek.” It reminded me of a question I had. While in the
shadow world, I had had plenty of time to contemplate every single facet of
him. “How old were you when the King’s men killed your brothers?” I ignored his
questioning look. “How old?” “Thirteen.” An old
sorrow pulled at the corners of his mouth. “That explains it!” “Explains what?” “Why you’re resistant to
magic. Thirteen is around the age when people can access the power source. The
trauma of seeing your brothers killed probably caused you to pull so much power
you formed a null shield. A shield so impenetrable you can no longer access
magic.” “After a season in the
underworld, you’re now an expert in all things magical?” Although he was quick to
dismiss the notion, the shock of the revelation was evident in his wide eyes. “I’m an expert in all
things Valek.” “Analyze this, love.” He
drew me in and kissed me. When his hands pulled at
the fabric of my shirt, I stopped him. “Valek, as much as I want you to stay, I
need you to do a favor for me.” “Anything, love.” I smiled at his loyalty.
He agreed without hesitation, without knowing what I needed. “I want you to
steal those glass prisons. Hide them in a safe place where no one will find
them. Don’t tell me or anyone else where you put them.” “You don’t want to know.
Are you sure?” “Yes. I can still be corrupted
by magic. And if I ever ask you for their location you are not to tell me. No
matter what. Promise.” “Yes, sir.” “Good.” I felt relieved. “It may take me a few
days or weeks. Where will you be?” I told him about staying
on as the Liaison. “I plan to commandeer a certain cottage in the Featherstone
lands and declare that parcel of land neutral territory.” “Commandeer?” He smiled. “Yes. Having safe houses
for Ixian spies in Sitia is not very friendly. Spying on each other is not
conducive to the type of open dialogue I want between the two nations.” “You’ll need to rebuild
the stable. Hire a lad,” Valek teased. “Don’t worry. I already
have a houseboy in mind. A loyal and handsome fellow, who will be at my beck
and call.” Valek raised an eyebrow
as desire danced in his eyes. “Indeed. I’m sure the boy is most anxious to
attend to his duties.” He slid a hand under my
shirt and along my skin. Warmth spread across my stomach and chest. I tried to
move away, but his other arm snaked behind my back. “You need to finish one job
before you begin another,” I said. “The night has just
begun.” He pulled my shirt off. “Plenty of time to take care of my lady before
I run her errand.” His lips found mine,
then he nuzzled my neck. “I must.” He paused to place a line of kisses down my
chest. “Help my lady.” He picked me up and laid me down. “To bed.” Then he removed the rest
of my garments and all concerns about the glass prisons disappeared as Valek’s
caress took control of my senses. My entire being focused on the musky smell
and smooth feel of him. My lungs filled with Valek’s breath. My heart pumped
Valek’s blood. I thought his thoughts and shared his pleasure. The feelings of
contentment, peace and joy flowed through our bodies. Locked tight together, we
owned a piece of the sky. ISBN: 978-1-4268-1344-3 FIRE STUDY Copyright © 2008 by
Maria V. Snyder. All rights reserved.
Except for use in any review, the reproduction or utilization of this work in
whole or in part in any form by any electronic, mechanical or other means, now
known or hereafter invented, including xerography, photocopying and recording,
or in any information storage or retrieval system, is forbidden without the
written permission of the publisher, MIRA Books, 225 Duncan Mill Road, Don
Mills, Ontario, Canada M3B 3K9. This is a work of
fiction. Names, characters, places and incidents are either the product of the
author’s imagination or are used fictitiously, and any resemblance to actual
persons, living or dead, business establishments, events or locales is entirely
coincidental. MIRA and the Star
Colophon are trademarks used under license and registered in Australia, New Zealand, Philippines, United States Patent and Trademark Office and in other
countries. www.MIRABooks.com FIRE STUDYByMaria V. Snyder To my parents, James and
Vincenza, for your constant support ACKNOWLEDGMENTSBy this time you all
should know how wonderful my husband, Rodney, can be. After all, I have thanked
him and listed the many ways he supports me in the acknowledgments of my first
two books. However, the writing wouldn’t get done and the holes in plot logic
wouldn’t get filled without him. So once again, thanks go to him, because I don’t
ever want to take him for granted. And thanks also go to my two little sparks
who fire my imagination—my children, Luke and Jenna. One of the best
decisions I’ve made is to attend Seton Hill University’s graduate writing
program. Through this program I’ve learned so much and met a talented group of
writers. Thanks to them all, and special thanks go to my critique partners,
Diana Botsford, Kimberley Howe and Jason Jack Miller, who helped me with this
book. Kim, I hope this reads better than the ingredients on a frozen dinner! I
would also like to thank my Seton Hill mentor, David Bischoff. First drafts of novels
can be pretty rough, but my editor, Mary-Theresa Hussey, has the knowledge and
experience to wade in and guide me to calmer waters. Thanks, Matrice, for all
your hard work and the smiley faces on my manuscript. They keep me going! Thanks go to my
excellent agent, Robert Mecoy, who has taught me so much about the publishing
business and about how important it is to have a knowledgeable agent on your
side. Many thanks to Erin Craig, who turned up the heat for this beautiful
cover. Researching for a book
is always fun, and this time I enrolled in a glassblowing class. My
appreciation for glass art rose considerably as I struggled to craft simple
items from molten glass. Thanks go to my teacher and glass artist Helen
Tegeler, whose patient instruction not only added to my knowledge of glass for
this book, but made the experience a blast. 1“THAT’S PATHETIC,
YELENA,” Dax complained. “An all-powerful Soulfinder who isn’t all-powerful.
Where’s the fun in that?” He threw up his long thin arms in mock frustration. “Sorry to disappoint
you, but I’m not the one who attached the ‘all-powerful’ to the title.” I
pulled a black strand of hair from my eyes. Dax and I had been working on
expanding my magical abilities without success. As we practiced on the ground
floor of Irys’s Keep tower—well, mine too, since she has given me three floors
to use—I tried not to let my own aggravation interfere with the lessons. Dax was attempting to
teach me how to move objects with magic. He had rearranged the furniture, lined
up the plush armchairs in neat rows and turned the couch over on its side with
his power. My efforts to restore Irys’s cozy layout and to stop an end table
from chasing me failed. Though not from lack of trying—my shirt clung to my
sweaty skin. A sudden chill shook me.
Despite a small fire in the hearth, the rugs and the closed shutters, the
living room was icy. The white marble walls, while wonderful during the hot
season, sucked all the heat from the air throughout the cold season. I imagined
the room’s warmth following the stone’s green veins and escaping outside. Dax Greenblade, my
friend, tugged his tunic down. Tall and lean, his physique matched a typical
Greenblade Clan member. He reminded me of a blade of grass, including a sharp
edge—his tongue. “Obviously you have no
ability to move objects, so let’s try fire. Even a baby can light a fire!” Dax
placed a candle on the table. “A baby? Now you’re
really exaggerating. Again.” A person’s ability to access the power source and
perform magic manifested at puberty. “Details. Details.” Dax
waved a hand as if shooing a fly. “Now concentrate on lighting this candle.” I cocked an eyebrow at
him. So far, all my efforts on inanimate items were for naught. I could heal my
friend’s body, hear his thoughts and even see his soul, but when I reached for
a thread of magic and tried to use it to move a chair, nothing happened. Dax held up three tan
fingers. “Three reasons why you should be able to do this. One, you’re
powerful. Two, you’re tenacious. And three, you’ve beat Ferde, the
Soulstealer.” Who had escaped, and was
free to start another soul-stealing spree. “Reminding me of Ferde is helping me
how…?” “It’s supposed to be a
pep talk. Do you want me to list all the heroic deeds you’ve—” “No. Let’s get on with
the lesson.” The last thing I wanted was to hear Dax recite the latest gossip.
The news about my being a Soulfinder had spread through the Magician’s Keep
like dandelion seeds carried by a strong wind. And I still couldn’t think about
the title without a cringe of doubt, worry and fear touching my heart. I pushed all distracting
thoughts aside and connected to the power source. The power blanketed the
world, but only magicians could pull threads of magic from it to use. I
gathered a strand to me and directed it to the candle, willing a flame to form. Nothing. “Try harder,” Dax said. Increasing the power, I
aimed again. Behind the candle, Dax’s
face turned red and he sputtered as if suppressing a cough. A flash seared my
eyes as the wick ignited. “That’s rude.” His
outraged expression was comical. “You wanted it lit.” “Yeah, but I didn’t want
to do it for you!” He glanced around the room as if seeking the patience to deal
with an unruly child. “Zaltanas and their weird powers, forcing me to light the
candle. Pah! To think I wanted to live vicariously through your adventures.” “Watch what you say
about my clan. Or I’ll…” I cast about for a good threat. “You’ll what?” “I’ll tell Second
Magician where you disappear to every time he pulls one of those old books off
his shelf.” Bain was Dax’s mentor, and, while the Second Magician delighted in
ancient history, Dax would rather learn the newest dance steps. “Okay, okay. You win and
you’ve proved your point. No ability to light a fire. I’ll stick to translating
ancient languages.” Dax made a dour face. “And you stick to finding souls.” He
teased, but I sensed an undercurrent to his words. His uneasiness over my
abilities was for excellent reasons. The last Soulfinder was born in Sitia
about a hundred and fifty years ago. During his short life, he had turned his
enemies into mindless slaves and almost succeeded in his quest to rule the
country. Most Sitians didn’t react well to the news about another Soulfinder. The awkward moment
passed as a mischievous glint lit Dax’s bottle-green eyes. “I’d better go. I
have to study. We have a history test tomorrow. Remember?” I groaned, thinking of
the large tome waiting for me. “Your knowledge of
Sitian history is also pathetic.” “Two reasons.” I held up
my fingers. “One, Ferde Daviian. Two, the Sitian Council.” Dax gestured with his
hand. Before he could say
anything, I said, “I know. Details, details.” He smiled and wrapped
his cloak around him, letting in a gust of arctic wind as he left. The flames
in the hearth pulsed for a moment before settling. I drew closer, warming my
hands over the fire. My thoughts returned to those two reasons. Ferde was a member of
the unsanctioned Daviian Clan, who were a renegade group of the Sandseed Clan.
The Daviians wanted more from life than wandering the Avibian Plains and
telling stories. On a power quest, Ferde had kidnapped and tortured twelve
girls to steal their souls and increase his magical power. Valek and I had
stopped him before he could complete his quest. An ache for Valek pumped
in my heart. I touched his butterfly pendant hanging from my neck. He had
returned to Ixia a month ago, but I missed him more each day. Perhaps I should
get myself into a life-threatening situation. He had a knack for showing up
when I most needed him. Unfortunately, those
times were fraught with danger and there hadn’t been many chances to just be
with each other. I longed to be assigned a boring diplomatic mission to Ixia. The Sitian Council
wouldn’t approve the trip until they decided what to do with me. Eleven clan
leaders and four Master Magicians comprised the Council, and they had argued
about my new role of Soulfinder all this past month. Of the four Masters, Irys Jewelrose,
Fourth Magician, was my strongest supporter and Roze Featherstone, First
Magician, was my strongest detractor. I stared at the fire,
following the dance of flames along the logs. My thoughts lingered on Roze. The
randomness of the blaze stopped. The flames moved with a purpose, divided and
gestured as if on a stage. Odd. I blinked. Instead
of returning to normal, the blaze grew until it filled my vision and blocked
out the rest of the room. The bright patterns of color stabbed my eyes. I
closed them, but the image remained. Apprehension rolled along my skin. Despite
my strong mental barrier, a magician wove magic around me. Caught, I watched as the
fire scene transformed into a lifelike picture of me. Flame Me bent over a
prone body. A soul rose from the body, which I then inhaled. The soulless body
stood and Flame Me pointed to another figure. Turning, the body stalked the new
person and then strangled him. Alarmed, I tried to stop
the fire vision to no avail. I was forced to observe myself make more soulless
people, who all went on a massive killing spree. An opposing army attacked.
Fire swords flashed. Flames of blood splattered. I would have been impressed
with the magician’s level of artistic detail if I hadn’t been horrified by the
blazing carnage. In time, my army was
extinguished and I was caught in a net of fire. Flame Me was dragged, chained
to a post and doused with oil. I snapped back to my
body. Standing next to the hearth, I still felt the web of magic around me. It
contracted and tiny flames erupted on my clothes. And spread. I couldn’t stop the
advance with my power. Cursing my lack of fire skill, I wondered why I didn’t
possess this magical talent. An answer echoed in my
mind. Because we need a way to kill you. I stumbled away from the
blaze. Sweat poured down my back as the sound of sizzling blood vibrated in my
ears. All moisture fled my mouth and my heart cooked in my chest. The hot air
seared my throat. The smell of charred flesh filled my nose and my stomach
heaved. Pain assaulted every inch of my skin. No air to scream. I rolled around the
floor, trying to smother the fire. I burned. The magical attack
stopped, releasing me from the torment. I dropped to the floor and breathed in
the cool air. “Yelena, what happened?”
Irys touched an icy hand to my forehead. “Are you all right?” My mentor and friend
peered down at me. Concern lined her face and filled her emerald eyes. “I’m fine.” My voice
croaked, setting off a coughing fit. Irys helped me sit up. “Look at your clothes.
Did you set yourself on fire?” Black soot streaked the
fabric and burn holes peppered my sleeves and skirt/pants. Beyond repair, I
would have to ask my cousin, Nutty, to sew me another set. I sighed. I should
just order a hundred of the cotton tunics and skirt/pants from her to save
time. Events, including magical attacks, conspired to keep my life interesting. “A magician sent me a
message through the fire,” I explained. Even though I knew Roze possessed the
strongest magic in Sitia, and could bypass my mental defenses, I didn’t want to
accuse her without proof. Before Irys could
question me further, I asked, “How did the Council session go?” I hadn’t been
allowed to attend. Although the rainy weather wasn’t conducive for walking to
the Council Hall, it still rankled. The Council wanted me
well-versed in all the issues they dealt with on a daily basis as part of my
training to be a Liaison between them and the Territory of Ixia. My training as a Soulfinder, though, remained a subject the Council hadn’t agreed on. According
to Irys’s theory, my reluctance to begin learning could be the cause of the
Council’s indecision. I thought they worried I would follow the same path as
the Soulfinder from long ago once I discovered the extent of my powers. “The session…” Her lips
twisted in a wry smile. “Good and bad. The Council has agreed to support your
training.” She paused. I steeled myself for the
next bit of news. “Roze was…upset about
the decision.” “Upset?” “Fiercely opposed.” At least now I knew the
motive behind my fire message. “She still thinks you’re
a threat. So the Council has agreed to let Roze train you.” I scrambled to my feet.
“No.” “It’s the only way.” I bit back a reply.
There were other options. There had to be. I was in the Magician’s Keep,
surrounded by magicians of various skill levels. There had to be another who
could work with me. “What about you or Bain?” “They wanted a mentor
who was impartial. Out of the four Masters, that left Roze.” “But she’s not—” “I know. This could be
beneficial. Working with Roze, you’ll be able to convince her you’re not out to
rule the country. She’ll understand your desire to help both Sitia and Ixia.” My doubtful expression
remained. “She doesn’t like you,
but her passion for keeping Sitia a safe and free place to live will override
any personal feelings.” Irys handed me a scroll,
stopping my sarcastic comment on Roze’s personal feelings. “This arrived during
the Council session.” I opened the message. In
tight-printed letters was an order from Moon Man. It read, Yelena, I have found
what you seek. Come. 2THE MESSAGE I HELD WAS
typical for Moon Man, my Sandseed Story Weaver and friend. Cryptic and vague. I
imagined he had written the note with a devilish grin on his face. As my Story
Weaver, he knew I sought many things. Knowledge about Soulfinders and finding a
balance between Sitia and Ixia resided at the top of my list. A quiet vacation
would be nice, too, but I felt certain he referred to Ferde. Ferde Daviian, the
Soulstealer, and killer of eleven girls had escaped from the Magician’s Keep
cells with Cahil Ixia’s help. After the Council failed to recapture him, they
debated for an entire month about how to find them both. My frustration mounted
with every delay. Ferde was weak from when I had pulled the souls—his source of
magical power—from him during our fight. But all it would take was another
girl’s murder for him to regain some of his strength. So far, no one had been
reported missing, but the knowledge that he remained free clawed at my heart. To avoid imagining the horror
Ferde might cause, I focused on the message in my hand. Moon Man hadn’t
specified to come alone, but I dismissed the notion to tell the Council as soon
as the thought formed in my mind. By the time they decided what to do, Ferde
would be long gone. I would go without informing them. Irys would call it my
rush-into-a-situation-and-hope-for-the-best method. With only a few minor
mishaps, it had worked in the past. And at this point, rushing off held more
appeal. Irys had moved away when
I unrolled the message, but, by the way she held herself so still, I knew she
was curious. I told her about the note. “We should inform the
Council,” she said. “So they could do what?
Debate every possible issue for another month? The message invited me. If I
need your help, I’ll send for you.” I sensed her resolve softening. “You should not go
alone.” “Fine. I’ll take Leif
with me.” After a moment’s
hesitation, Irys agreed. As a Council member, she wasn’t happy about it, but
she had learned to trust my judgment. My brother, Leif, would
probably be as glad as I was to get away from both the Keep and the Citadel.
Roze Featherstone’s growing animosity toward me put Leif in a difficult
situation. Apprenticed to Roze while training at the Magician’s Keep, he had
become one of her aides upon graduation. His magical skill of sensing someone’s
emotions helped Roze determine a person’s guilt in a crime, and his magic also
aided victims in remembering details about what had happened to them. Leif’s first reaction to
my reappearance in Sitia after a fourteen-year absence had been immediate
hatred. He had convinced himself that my kidnapping to the Territory of Ixia had been done to spite him and my return from the north had been an Ixian
plot to spy on Sitia. “At least we should tell
the Master Magicians about Moon Man’s message,” Irys said. “I’m sure Roze would
like to know when she can begin your training.” I frowned at her, and
considered telling her about Roze’s petty fire attack. No. I would deal with
Roze on my own. Unfortunately, I would have plenty of time with her. “We’re having a Masters
meeting at the administration building this afternoon. It will be the perfect
time to inform them about your plans.” I scowled, but she
remained steadfast. “Good. I’ll see you
later,” she said. Irys sailed out of the
tower before I could voice my protest. I could still reach her with my mind,
though. Our minds always remained linked. The connection was as if we both
stood in the same room. We each had our own private thoughts, but if I “spoke” to
Irys, she would hear me. If she did probe into my deeper thoughts and memories,
it would be considered a breach in the magician’s Ethical Code. My horse, Kiki, and I
shared the same connection. A mental call to Kiki was all that was needed for
her to “hear” me. Communicating with Leif or my friend Dax proved more
difficult; I had to consciously pull power and seek them. And, once found, they
had to allow me access through their mental defenses and into their thoughts. Although I possessed the
ability to take a shortcut to their thoughts and emotions through their souls,
the Sitians considered the skill a breach of the Ethical Code. I had scared
Roze by using it to protect myself against her. Even with all her power, she
couldn’t stop me from touching her essence. Anxiety rolled in my
stomach. My new title of Soulfinder didn’t sit well with me, either. I shied
away from that line of speculation as I wrapped my cloak around me before
leaving the tower. On my way across the
Keep’s campus, my attention returned to my musings about mental communication.
My link with Valek couldn’t be considered a magical connection. To me, Valek’s
mind was unreachable, but he had the uncanny ability to know when I needed him
and he would connect with me. He had saved my life many times through that
bond. Turning Valek’s snake
bracelet around my wrist, I pondered our relationship until a biting wind laced
with icy needles drove away all warm thoughts about him. The cold season had
descended on northern Sitia with a vengeance. I shuffled through slushy puddles
and shielded my face from the sleet. The Keep’s white marble buildings were
splattered with mud and looked gray in the weak light, reflecting the miserable
day with perfection. Spending most of my
twenty-one years in northern Ixia, I had endured this type of weather for only
a few days during the cooling season. Then the cold air would drive the
dampness away. But, according to Irys, this horrid mess was a typical Sitian
day during the cold season, and snow was a rare event that seldom lasted more
than a night. I trudged toward the
Keep’s administration building, ignoring the hostile stares from the students
who hurried between classes. One of the results of capturing Ferde had been the
immediate change in my status from an apprentice of the Keep to a Magician’s
Aide. Since Irys and I had agreed to a partnership, she offered to share her
tower. I had accepted with relief, glad to be away from the cold censure of my
fellow students. Their scorn was nothing
in comparison to Roze’s fury when I entered the Masters’ meeting room. I braced
myself for her outburst, but Irys jumped from her seat at the long table and
explained why I had come. “…note from a Sandseed
Story Weaver,” Irys said. “He may have located Ferde and Cahil.” The corners of Roze’s
mouth pulled down with disdain. “Impossible. Crossing the Avibian Plains to
return to his clan in the Daviian Plateau would be suicide. And it’s too
obvious. Cahil is probably taking Ferde to either the Stormdance or the
Bloodgood lands. Cahil has many supporters there.” Roze had been Cahil’s
champion in the Council. Cahil had been raised by soldiers who had fled the
takeover in Ixia. They convinced Cahil that he was the nephew of the dead King
of Ixia and should inherit the throne. He had worked hard to gain supporters
and attempted to build an army to defeat the Commander of Ixia. However, once
he discovered he was really born to a common soldier, he rescued Ferde and
disappeared. Roze had encouraged
Cahil. They held the same belief that it was just a matter of time before
Commander Ambrose set his sights on conquering Sitia. “Cahil could bypass the
plains to get to the plateau,” Zitora Cowan, Third Magician, offered. Her
honey-brown eyes held concern, but as the youngest of the four Master Magicians
her suggestions tended to be ignored by the others. “Then how would this
Moon Man know? The Sandseeds don’t venture out of the plains unless it’s
absolutely necessary,” Roze said. “That’s what they want
us to believe,” Irys said. “I wouldn’t put it past them to have a few scouts
around.” “Either way,” Bain
Bloodgood, Second Magician, said, “we must consider all options. Obvious or
not, someone needs to confirm that Cahil and Ferde are not in the plateau.”
With his white hair and flowing robes, Bain’s appearance matched what I had
assumed to be a traditional magician’s uniform. Wisdom radiated from his
wrinkled face. “I’m going,” I declared. “We should send soldiers
with her,” Zitora said. “Leif should go,” Bain
added. “As cousins of the Sandseed, Yelena and Leif will be welcomed in the
plains.” Roze ran her slender
fingers along the short white strands of her hair and frowned, appearing to be
deep in thought. With the colder temperatures, Roze had stopped wearing the
sleeveless dresses she preferred and exchanged them for long-sleeved gowns. The
deep navy hue of the garment absorbed the light and almost matched her dark
skin. Moon Man had the same skin tone, and I wondered what color his hair would
be if he hadn’t shaved it off. “I’m not sending anyone,”
Roze finally said. “It’s a waste of time and resources.” “I’m going. I don’t need
your permission.” I stood, preparing to leave. “You need my permission
to exit the Keep,” Roze said. “This is my domain. I’m in charge of all
magicians, including you, Soulfinder.” Her hands smacked her chair’s arms. “If
I had control of the Council, you would be taken to the Keep’s cells to await
execution. No good has ever come from a Soulfinder.” The other Masters gaped
at Roze in shock. She remained incensed. “Just look at our history. Every
Soulfinder has craved power. Magical power. Political power. Power over
people’s souls. Yelena will be no different. Sure now she plays at being a
Liaison and has agreed to my training. It’s only a matter of time. Already…”
Roze gestured to the doorway. “Already she wants to run off before I can begin
lesson one.” Her words echoed through
the stunned silence. Roze glanced around at their horrified expressions and
smoothed the wrinkles from her gown. Her dislike of me was well-known, but this
time she had gone too far. “Roze, that was quite—” She raised her hand,
stopping Bain from the rest of his lecture. “You know the history. You have
been warned many, many times, so I will say no more about it.” She rose from
her seat. Towering a good seven inches above me, she peered down. “Go, then.
Take Leif with you. Consider it your first lesson. A lesson in futility. When
you return, you’ll be mine.” Roze made to leave, but
I caught a thread of her thoughts in my mind. …should keep her
occupied and out of my way. Roze paused before she
exited. Looking over her shoulder, she gave me a pointed stare. Keep out of
Sitia’s affairs. And you might be the only Soulfinder in history to live past
the age of twenty-five. Go take another look at
your history books, Roze, I said. The demise of a Soulfinder is always reported
along with the death of a Master Magician. Roze ignored me as she
left the meeting room, ending the session. I went to find Leif. His
quarters were near the apprentice’s wing on the east side of the Keep’s campus.
He lived in the Magician’s building, which housed those who had graduated from
the Keep and were now either teaching new students or working as aides to the
Master Magicians. The rest of the
magicians who had also completed the curriculum were assigned to different
towns to serve the citizens of Sitia. The Council tried to have a healer in
every town, but the magicians with rare powers—like the ability to read ancient
languages or find lost items—moved from place to place as needed. Magicians with strong
powers took the Master-level test before leaving the Keep. In the past twenty
years, only Zitora had passed, bringing the number of Masters to four. In
Sitia’s history, there never had been more than four Masters at one time. Irys thought a
Soulfinder could be strong enough to take the Master’s test. I disagreed. They
already had the maximum, and I lacked the basic magical skills of lighting
fires and moving objects—skills all the Masters possessed. Besides, being a
Soulfinder was bad enough, having to endure and fail the Master test would be
too much to bear. Or so I guessed. The rumors about the test sounded horrific. Before I even reached
Leif’s door, it swung open and my brother stuck his head out. The rain soaked
his short black hair in an instant. I shooed him back as I hurried into his
living room, dripping muddy slush onto his clean floor. His apartment was tidy
and sparsely furnished. The only hint of his personality could be gleaned from
the few paintings that decorated the room. A detailed rendering of a rare
Ylang-Ylang flower indigenous to the Illiais Jungle, a painting of a strangler
fig suffocating a dying mahogany tree and a picture of a tree leopard crouched
on a branch hung on his walls. Leif scanned my
bedraggled appearance with resignation. His jade-colored eyes were the only
feature that matched my own. His stocky body and square jaw were the complete
opposite of my oval face and thin build. “It can’t be good news,”
Leif said. “I’d doubt you would brave the weather just to say hello.” “You opened the door
before I could knock,” I said. “You must know something’s up.” Leif wiped the rain from
his face. “I smelled you coming.” “Smelled?” “You reek of Lavender.
Do you bathe in Mother’s perfume or just wash your cloak with it?” he teased. “How mundane. I was
thinking of something a little more magical.” “Why waste the energy on
using magic when you don’t have to? Although…” Leif’s eyes grew distant
and I felt the slight tingle of power being pulled. “Apprehension. Excitement.
Annoyance. Anger,” Leif said. “I take it the Council hasn’t voted to make you
Queen of Sitia yet?” When I didn’t answer, he
said, “Don’t worry, little sister, you’re still the princess of our family. We
both know Mother and Father love you best.” His words held an edge,
and I remembered it hadn’t been long since he had wanted to see me dead. “Esau and Perl love us
equally. You really do need me around to correct your misconceptions. I’ve
proved you wrong before. I can do it again.” Leif put his hands on
his hips and raised one dubious eyebrow. “You said I was afraid
to come back to the Keep. Well—” I spread my arms wide, flinging drops of water
onto Leif’s green tunic “—here I am.” “You are here. I’ll
grant you that. But are you unafraid?” “I already have a mother
and a Story Weaver. Your job is to be the annoying older brother. Stick to what
you know.” “Ohhh. I’ve hit a
nerve.” “I don’t want to argue
with you. Here.” I pulled Moon Man’s note from my cloak’s pocket and handed it
to him. He unfolded the damp
paper, scanning the message. “Ferde,” he said, coming to the same conclusion.
“Have you told the Council?” “No. The Masters know.”
I filled Leif in on what had happened in the meeting room, omitting my
“exchange” with Roze Featherstone. Leif’s wide shoulders
drooped. After a long moment, he said, “Master Featherstone doesn’t believe
Ferde and Cahil are going to the Daviian Plateau. She doesn’t trust me
anymore.” “You don’t know that
for—” “She thinks Cahil is
headed in another direction. Normally she would send me to determine his
location and send for her. Together, we would confront him. Now I get assigned
the wild-valmur chase.” “Valmur?” It took me a
moment to connect the name with the small, long-tailed creature that lived in
the jungle. “Remember? We used to
chase them through the trees. They were so fast and quick, we never caught one.
But sit down and hold a piece of sap candy and they’ll jump right into your lap
and follow you around all day.” When I failed to
respond, Leif cringed with guilt. “That must have been after…” After I had been
kidnapped and taken to Ixia. Although I could imagine a young Leif scampering
through the jungle’s canopy after a fleet-footed valmur. The Zaltana Clan’s
homestead had been built high in the tree branches, and my father had joked
that the children learned to climb before they could walk. “Roze could be wrong
about Cahil’s intentions. So pack some of that sap candy. We might need it,” I
said. Leif shivered. “At least
it will be warmer in the plains, and the plateau is farther south.” I left Leif’s quarters,
heading to my tower to pack some supplies. The sleet blew sideways and tiny
daggers of ice stung my face as I hurried through the storm. Irys was waiting
for me in the receiving room just past the oversize tower entrance. The flames
in the hearth pulsed with the rush of cold air slipping around the doors as I
fought to close them against the wind. I hustled to the fire
and held my hands out. The prospect of traveling in such weather was
unappealing. “Does Leif know how to
light fires?” I asked Irys. “I think so. But no
matter how skilled he is, wet wood won’t ignite.” “Great,” I muttered.
Steam floated from my soaked cloak. I draped the soggy garment around a chair
then dragged it closer to the fire. “When are you leaving?”
Irys asked. “Right away.” My stomach
grumbled and I realized I had missed lunch. I sighed, knowing dinner would
probably be a cold slice of cheese and mushy bread. “I’m meeting Leif in the
barn. Oh snake spit!” I remembered a couple of commitments. “Irys, can you tell
Gelsi and Dax I’ll start their training when I get back?” “What training? Not
magic—” “No, no. Self-defense
training.” I pointed to my bow. The five-foot-long staff of ebony wood was
still threaded through its holder on my backpack. Drops of water beaded and
gleamed on the weapon. I pulled it free,
feeling the solid weight of the staff in my hands. Underneath the ebony surface
of the bow was a gold-colored wood. Pictures of me as a child, of the jungle,
my family, and so on had been etched into the wood. Even Kiki’s loving eyes had
been included in the story of my life. The bow moved smoothly in my hands. A
gift from a master crafts-woman of the Sandseed Clan who had also raised Kiki. “And Bain knows that you
won’t be at his morning lesson,” Irys said. “But he said—” “Don’t tell me he
assigned homework,” I pleaded. Just thinking about lugging the heavy history
tome made my back hurt. Irys smiled. “He said
that he would help you catch up on your studies when you return.” Relieved, I picked up my
pack, sorting the contents to see what other supplies we would need. “Anything else?” Irys
asked. “No. What are you going
to tell the Council?” I asked. “That Roze has assigned
you to learn about your magic from the Story Weavers. The first documented
Soulfinder in Sitia was a Sandseed. Did you know that?” “No.” I was surprised
but shouldn’t have been. After all, what I knew about Soulfinders wouldn’t fill
a page in one of Master Bain’s history books. When I finished packing,
I said goodbye to Irys and muscled my way through the wind to the dining hall.
The kitchen staff always had a supply of travel rations on hand for the
magicians. I grabbed enough food to last us a week. As I drew closer to the
stables, I could see a few brave horse heads poking out of their stalls. Kiki’s
copper-and-white face was unmistakable even in the murky half-light. She nickered in greeting
and I opened my mind to her. We go? she asked. Yes. I’m sorry to take
you out on such a horrible day, I said. Not bad with Lavender
Lady. Lavender Lady was the
name the horses had given me. They named the people around them just like we
would name a pet. I had to smile, though, remembering Leif’s comment about my
bathing in the pungent herb. Lavender smell like…
Kiki didn’t have the words to describe her emotions. A mental image of a bushy
blue-gray lavender plant with its long purple cluster of flowers formed in
Kiki’s mind. Feelings of contentment and security accompanied the image. The main corridor of the
stable echoed as if empty despite the pile of feed bags nearby. The thick
supporting beams of the building stood like soldiers between the stalls and the
end of the row disappeared into the gloom. Leif? I asked Kiki. Sad Man in tack room,
Kiki said. Thanks. I ambled toward
the back of the barn, inhaling the familiar aroma of leather and saddle soap.
The dry smell of straw scratched my throat and clung to the earthy scent of
manure. Tracker, too. Who? But before Kiki could
answer I spotted Captain Marrok in the tack room with Leif. The sharp tip of
Marrok’s sword was aimed at Leif’s chest. 3“STAY BACK, YELENA,”
Marrok ordered. “Answer me, Leif.” Leif’s face had paled,
but his jaw was set in a stubborn line. His gaze met mine, questioning. “What do you want,
Marrok?” I asked. The bruises on Marrok’s
face had faded, but his right eye was still puffy and raw despite Healer
Hayes’s efforts to repair his broken cheekbone. “I want to find Cahil,”
Marrok said. “We all want to find
him. Why are you threatening my brother?” I used a stern tone to remind Marrok
that he now dealt with me. Having an infamous reputation had a few advantages. Marrok looked at me. “He
works with First Magician. She’s in charge of the search. If she has any clue
as to where to find Cahil, she’ll send Leif.” He gestured to the bridles in
Leif’s hands. “On a day like today, he’s not going to the market or out for a
pleasure ride. But he won’t tell me where he’s going.” It continued to amaze me
just how fast news and gossip traveled through the Keep’s guards. “Did you ask him before
or after you pulled your sword?” The tip of Marrok’s
blade wavered. “Why does it matter?” he asked. “Because most people are
more willing to cooperate if they don’t have a weapon pointed at their chest.”
Realizing that Marrok was a career soldier who did most of his talking with his
sword, I switched tactics. “Why didn’t you plan to
follow Leif?” Marrok’s tracking abilities had impressed the horses so much that
they had given him the name Tracker. Marrok touched his cheek
and winced. I could guess his thoughts. Marrok had followed Cahil with the
utmost loyalty, but Cahil had beaten and tortured him to find out the truth
about his common heritage, leaving Marrok for dead. The soldier sheathed his
sword in one quick motion as if he had made a decision. “I can’t follow Leif.
He would sense me with his magic and confuse my mind.” “I can’t do that,” Leif
said. “Truly?” Marrok rested
his hand near his sword, considering. “But I can,” I said. Marrok’s attention
snapped back to me. “Marrok, you’re hardly
fit for travel. And I can’t let you kill Cahil. The Sitian Council wants to
talk to him first.” I wanted to talk to him. “I don’t seek revenge,”
Marrok said. “Then what do you want?” “To help.” Marrok
gripped the hilt of his weapon. “What?” Leif and I said
at the same time. “Sitia needs Cahil. Only
the Council and the Masters know he doesn’t have royal blood. Ixia is a real
threat to Sitia’s way of life. Sitia needs a figurehead to rally behind.
Someone to lead them into battle.” “But he aided in Ferde’s
escape,” I said. “And Ferde could be torturing and raping another girl as we
speak!” “Cahil was just confused
and overwhelmed by learning the truth of his birth. I raised him. I know him
better than anyone. He probably already regrets his rashness. Ferde is most
likely dead. If I get a chance to talk to Cahil, I’m positive he would come
back without a fight, and we can work this out with the Council.” Power brushed me. “He’s sincere about his
intentions,” Leif said. But what about Cahil’s
intentions? I had seen him be ruthless and opportunistic in his quest to build
an army, but never rash. However, I had only known him for two seasons. I
considered using magic to see Marrok’s memories of Cahil, but that would be a
breach in the magician’s Ethical Code unless he gave me his consent. So I asked
for it. “Go ahead,” Marrok said,
meeting my gaze. Pain lingered in his
blue-gray eyes. His short gray hair had turned completely white since Cahil’s
attack. Granting me permission
was enough to convince me of his sincerity, but despite his good intentions he
still wanted to build an army and attack Ixia. And that ran counter to what I
believed. Ixia and Sitia just needed to understand each other and work
together. A war would help no one. Do I leave Marrok here
to influence the Council toward an attack, or take him with me? His skills as a
tracker would be an added benefit. “If I allow you to come
with us, you must obey all my orders. Agreed?” I asked. Marrok straightened as
if he stood in a military formation. “Yes, sir.” “Are you strong enough
to ride?” “Yes, but I don’t have a
horse.” “That’s all right. I’ll
find you a Sandseed horse. All you’ll need to do is hold on.” I grinned,
thinking of Kiki’s special gust-of-wind gait. Leif laughed and his
body relaxed with the release of the tension. “Good luck convincing the Stable
Master to loan you his horse.” “What do you mean?” I
asked. “Garnet is the only
other horse in the Keep’s stables bred by the Sandseeds.” I wilted in defeat just
thinking about the stubborn, cranky Stable Master. Now what? No other horse
breed would be able to keep up with us. Honey, Kiki said in my
mind. Honey? Avibian honey. Chief Man
love honey. Which meant, if I
offered to bring some Avibian honey back for the Stable Master, he might lend
me his horse. We left the Citadel
through the south gate and headed down the valley road. Farm fields peppered
with corn stubble and wagon ruts swept out from the right side of the road. The
Avibian Plains dominated the left side. The long grasses of the
plains had turned from yellow and red to brown in the cold weather. The rains
created extensive puddles, transforming the rolling landscape into a marshland
and scenting the air with a damp smell of earthy decay. Leif rode Rusalka, and
Marrok had a death grip on Garnet’s reins. His nervousness affected the tall
horse, who jittered to the side at every noise. Kiki slowed so I could
talk to him. “Marrok, relax. I’m the one who promised to bring back a case of
Avibian honey plus clean the Stable Master’s tack for three weeks.” He barked out a laugh
but kept his tight grip. Time to switch tactics.
I reached for the blanket of power hovering over the world and pulled a thread
of magic, linking my mind with Garnet’s. The horse missed Chief Man and didn’t
like this stranger on his back, but he settled when I showed him our
destination. Home, Garnet agreed. He
wanted to go. Pain. Marrok’s rigid hold hurt
Garnet’s mouth, and I knew Marrok wouldn’t relax even if I threatened to leave
him behind. Sighing, I made light contact with Marrok’s mind. His worry and
fear focused more on Cahil than on himself. His apprehension came from not
feeling in control of the powerful horse underneath him despite the fact that
he held Garnet’s reins. And also from not being in charge of the situation,
having to take orders from her. A dark undercurrent to
his thoughts about me pulled a warning bell in my mind, and I would have liked
to explore deeper. He had given me permission to see his memories of Cahil, but
he hadn’t given me carte blanche to probe. Instead, I sent him some calming
thoughts. Even though he couldn’t hear my words he should be able to react to
the soothing tone. After a while, Marrok no
longer held himself so rigid, and his body moved with Garnet’s motion. When
Garnet felt comfortable, Kiki turned east into the plains. Mud splashed from
her hooves as she increased her pace. I gave Leif and Marrok the signal to let
the horses have control. Please find Moon Man.
Fast, I said to Kiki. With a slight hop, she
broke into her gust-of-wind gait. Rusalka and Garnet followed. I felt carried
by a river of air. The plains blurred under Kiki’s hooves at a rate about twice
a full-speed gallop. Only Sandseed horses
could achieve this gait, and only when they rode in the Avibian Plains. It had
to be a magical skill, but I couldn’t tell if Kiki pulled power. I would have
to ask Moon Man about it when we found him. The plains encompassed a
massive section of eastern Sitia. Located to the southeast of the Citadel, it
stretched all the way to the base of the Emerald Mountains in the east, and
down to the Daviian Plateau to the south. On a normal horse, it
took about five to seven days to cross the plains. The Sandseeds were the only
clan to live within the borders, and their Story Weavers had shielded their
lands with a powerful protective magic. Any stranger who ventured into the
plains without Sandseed permission became lost. The magic would confuse the
stranger’s mind and he would travel in circles until he either stumbled out of
the plains or ran out of water and died. Magicians with strong
powers could travel without being affected by the magic, but the Story Weavers
always knew when someone crossed into their land. As distant cousins of the
Sandseeds, the Zaltana Clan members could also travel the plains unharmed. The
other clans avoided the area altogether. Since Marrok rode on a
Sandseed horse the protection didn’t attack him and we were able to ride all
night. Kiki finally stopped for a rest at sunrise. While Leif collected
firewood, I rubbed the horses down and fed them. Marrok helped Leif, but I
could see exhaustion etched in his pale face. The rain and sleet had
slowed during the night, but gray clouds sealed the sky. Our campsite had
plenty of grass for the horses. It was on a high spot in the plains next to a
rocky out-cropping with a few scrub trees growing nearby, and was a solid place
for us to stand without sinking ankle-deep into the mud. Our cloaks were soaked,
so I tied my rope between two trees to hang the wet garments. Leif and Marrok
found a few dry branches. Making a tent of the twigs, Leif stared at the wood
and small flames sprang to life. “Show-off,” I said. He smiled as he filled a
pot with water for tea. “You’re jealous.” “You’re right. I am.” I
growled in frustration. Leif and I were both born to the same parents, yet we
had different magical powers. Our father, Esau, had no overt magic, just a
flair for finding and using the plants and trees of the jungle for food,
medicines and his inventions. Perl, our mother, could only sense if a person
had magical abilities. So how did Leif get the
magical abilities to light fires and sense a person’s life force while I could
affect their souls? With my magic, I could force Leif to light a fire, but
couldn’t do it on my own. I wondered if anyone in Sitian history had studied
the relationship between magic and birth parents. Bain Bloodgood, Second
Magician, would probably know. He owned a copy of almost every book in Sitia. Marrok fell asleep as
soon as we finished eating our breakfast of bread and cheese. Leif and I
remained by the fire. “Did you put something
in his tea?” I asked. “Some fiddlewood bark to
help him heal.” Wrinkles and scars lined
Marrok’s face. Through the yellowed bruises along his jaw, I spotted some white
stubble. His swollen eye oozed blood and tears. Red streaks painted his right
cheek. Healer Hayes hadn’t allowed me to help with Marrok’s recovery. He had
only let me assist with minor injuries. Another who feared my powers. I touched Marrok’s
forehead. His skin felt hot and dry. The fetid smell of rotten flesh emanated
from him. I reached for the power source and felt the Sandseeds’ protective
magic watching me for signs of threat. Gathering magic, I projected a thread to
him, revealing the muscles and bone underneath Marrok’s skin. His injuries
pulsed with a red light. His cheekbone had been shattered and some bone
fragments had gotten into his eye, affecting his vision. Small dark growths of
an infection dotted the ruined area. I concentrated on the
injury until his pain transferred to my own face. A sharp needle of pain
stabbed my right eye as my vision dulled and tears welled. Curling into a ball,
I pushed against the onslaught, channeling the magic from the power source
through my body. The flow chugged, and I strained. All of a sudden the current
of magic moved with ease as if someone had removed a beaver’s dam, washing away
the pain. Relief swept through me. I relaxed. “Do you think that was a
good idea?” Leif asked when I opened my eyes. “The wound was
infected.” “But you used all your
energy.” “I…” I sat up, feeling
tired but not exhausted. “I—” “Had help,” a voice
snapped out of nowhere. Leif jerked upright in
surprise, but I recognized the deep masculine tone. Moon Man appeared next to
the fire as if he had formed from the rising heat and ashes. His bald head
gleamed in the sunlight. In deference to the
chill, Moon Man wore a long-sleeved tan tunic and dark brown pants that matched
the color of his skin, but no shoes. “No paint?” I asked Moon Man. The first time I had met him he had coalesced out of a beam of moonlight covered
only with indigo dye. He had claimed to be my Story Weaver and proceeded to
show me my life’s story and unlocked my childhood memories. Six years of living
with my mother, father and brother had been suppressed by a magician named
Mogkan so I wouldn’t long for my family after Mogkan had kidnapped me. Moon Man smiled. “I did
not have time to cover my skin. And it is a good thing I came when I did.” His
tone conveyed his displeasure. “Or you would have spent all your strength.” “Not all,” I countered,
sounding like a belligerent child. “Have you become an
all-powerful Soulfinder already?” He widened his eyes in mock amazement. “I
will bow down before you, Oh Great One.” He bent at the waist. “All right, enough,” I
said, laughing. “I should have thought it through before healing Marrok. Happy
now?” He sighed dramatically.
“I would be content if I thought you learned a lesson and would not do it
again. However, I am well aware that you will continue to rush right into
situations. It is weaved into your life’s pattern. There is no hope for you.” “Is that why you sent
for me? To tell me I’m hopeless?” Moon Man sobered. “I
wish. We had heard that the Soulstealer had escaped from the Magician’s Keep
with Cahil’s help. One of our Story Weavers scouting in the Daviian Plateau
sensed a stranger traveling with one of the Vermin.” “Are Cahil and Ferde in
the plateau?” Leif asked. “We think so, but we
want Yelena to identify the Soulstealer.” “Why?” I asked. The
Sandseeds didn’t waste time on trials and incarceration. They executed
criminals on capture. However, the Daviian
Vermin had been very hard to find, and they had powerful magicians. The Vermin
were a group of Sandseed youths who had become discontented with the Sandseed
lifestyle of keeping to themselves and limiting contact with the other clans.
The Vermin wanted the Sandseed Story Weavers to use their great powers to guide
all of Sitia and not just the inhabitants of the plains. They had broken from the
Sandseed Clan and settled in the Daviian Plateau, becoming the Daviian Clan.
The plateau’s dry and inhospitable soil made farming a nightmare, so the
Daviians stole from the Sandseeds, and earned the nickname of Vermin. The
Sandseeds also referred to the Vermin’s magicians as Warpers, since they used
their magic for selfish reasons. “You need to identify
the Soulstealer because he may have harvested more souls, and only you can
release those souls before we kill him,” Moon Man said with a flat and emotionless
voice. I grabbed his arm. “Have
you found any bodies?” “No. But I am concerned
about what we will discover when we raid their camp.” The horror of the last
two seasons threatened to overwhelm me. Eleven girls mutilated and raped by
Ferde so he could steal their souls and gain more magical power. Valek and I
had stopped him before he could collect the final soul. If he had succeeded,
Sitia and Ixia would now be his to rule. Instead, I had released all those
souls to the sky. To think that he might have started again was unbearable. “You’ve found their
camp?” Leif asked. “Yes. We put our lives
on hold,” Moon Man said. “The warriors of the clan have done a complete sweep
of the plateau. We found a large encampment on the southern edge near the
border of the Illiais Jungle.” And close to my family.
I must have gasped because Moon Man touched my shoulder and squeezed. “Do not worry about your
clan. Every Sandseed warrior is ready to attack if the Vermin show any signs of
departing their camp. We will leave when the horses are rested.” I paced around the
campfire, knowing I should get some sleep but unable to still my racing
thoughts. Leif groomed the horses and Marrok slept. Moon Man reclined next to
the fire, staring at the sky. Marrok woke as the sky
darkened. His eye had stopped weeping blood, and the swelling was gone. He
probed his cheek with a finger. Amazement lit his face until he spotted Moon
Man standing next to him. He jumped to his feet and pulled his sword,
brandishing the weapon at the Story Weaver. Even armed, Marrok looked slight
next to the muscular Sandseed, who towered six inches over him. Moon Man laughed. “I see
you are feeling better. Come. We have plans to make.” The four of us sat
around the fire while Leif made dinner. Marrok settled next to me, and from the
corner of my eye I could see that whenever Marrok touch his cheek, he stared at
Moon Man with a fearful fascination. And his right hand never strayed far from
the hilt of his sword. “We will leave at dawn,”
Moon Man said. “Why does everything
have to start at dawn?” I asked. “The horses have good night vision.” “That will give the
horses a full day to recover. I will be riding with you on Kiki. She is the
strongest. And once we reach the plateau, there will be no rest stops until we
join the others.” “And then what?” I
asked. “Then we will attack.
You are to stay close to me and the other Story Weavers. The Soulstealer will
be protected along with the Warpers. Once we break through the outer guards,
then the hard part begins.” “Dealing with the
Warpers,” I said. He nodded. “Can’t you move the Void
again?” Leif asked. The Void was a hole in
the power blanket where no magic existed. The last time the Sandseeds had
uncovered a Vermin hideout, it had been protected by a shield of magic that created
an illusion. The camp appeared to be occupied by only a few warriors. When the
Sandseeds had moved the Void over the Vermin, the illusion was broken.
Unfortunately, the encampment held four times the number of soldiers, and we
had been vastly outnumbered. “They are aware of that
trick and will be alerted to our presence if we try to move the power blanket,”
Moon Man said. “Then how are you going
to beat the Warpers?” I asked, worried. If the Vermin had access to magic it
would be a difficult battle. “All the Sandseed Story
Weavers will link together and form a strong magical net that will seize them
and prevent them from using their magic. We will hold them long enough for you
to find the Soulstealer.” Breaking his silence,
Marrok asked, “What about Cahil?” “He helped the
Soulstealer escape. He should be punished,” Moon Man said. “The Council wants to
talk to him,” I said. “And then they will
decide what to do with him,” Leif added. Moon Man shrugged. “He
is not a Vermin. I will tell the others not to kill him, but in a large battle
it might be hard.” “He’s probably with the
Daviian leaders,” Marrok said. “Marrok—you and Leif
find Cahil and take him north of the fighting and I’ll rendezvous with you
after the battle.” “Yes, sir,” Marrok said. Leif nodded, but I could
see a question in his eyes. Problem? I asked in his
mind. What if Cahil convinces
Marrok not to take him back to the Council? What if they join together and I’m
outnumbered? Good point. I’ll ask
Moon Man to— Assign one of my
warriors to stay with Leif, Moon Man said. I jerked in surprise. I
hadn’t felt Moon Man draw power to link with us. What else can you do? I
asked. I am not telling you. It
would destroy my mysterious Story Weaver persona. The next morning we
saddled the horses and made our way south toward the plateau. Even with the
weight of two riders, Kiki easily carried us. Stopping only once for a warm
dinner and sleep, we reached the border in two days. At sunset on the second
day, we stopped to rest the horses at the edge of the plains. The flat expanse of the
plateau stretched to the horizon. A few brown clumps of grass clung to the
sunbaked surface. While the plains had a few trees, rolling hills, rocks and
sandstone protrusions, the plateau had bristle bushes, coarse sand and a few
stunted spine trees. We had left the cold,
cloudy weather behind. The afternoon sun had warmed the land enough for me to
take off my cloak, but as the light slipped into the darkness, a cool breeze
stirred to life. Moon Man left to find
his scout. Even at this distance from the Vermin camp, it was too risky to make
a fire. I shivered as I ate my dinner of hard cheese and stale bread. Moon Man returned with
another Sandseed. “This is Tauno,” Moon
Man said. “He will show us the way through the plateau.” I peered at the small
man armed with a bow and arrows. Only an inch taller than me, he wore short
pants despite the chilly air. His skin had been painted, but in the dim light I
couldn’t discern the colors. “We will leave when the
moon is a quarter up,” Tauno said. Traveling at night was a
good idea, but I wondered what the warriors did during the day. “How do the
Sandseeds stay hidden in the plateau?” I asked. Tauno gestured to his
skin. “We blend in. And hide our thoughts behind the Story Weavers’ null shield.” I looked at Moon Man. “A null shield blocks
magic,” Moon Man explained. “If you were to scan the plateau with your magic,
you would not sense any living creature behind the null shield.” “Doesn’t using magic to
create the shield alert the Vermin?” I asked. “Not when it is done
properly. It was completed before the Story Weavers left the plains.” “What about the Story
Weavers behind the shield? Can they use magic?” Leif asked. “Magic can not penetrate
the shield. It does not block our vision or hearing, just protects us from
being discovered by magical means.” As we prepared to
travel, I thought about what Moon Man had said, and realized that there were
many things I still didn’t know about magic. Too many. And the thought of
learning more with Roze quelled my curiosity. When the moon had
traveled through a quarter of the black sky, Tauno said, “It is time to go.” The muscles along my
spine tightened in apprehension as Moon Man settled behind me on Kiki’s saddle.
What if my lack of magical knowledge caused me to endanger our mission? No sense worrying about
it now. I pulled in a deep breath, steadied my nerves and glanced at my
companions. Tauno sat with Marrok on Garnet’s back. From the pained expression
on Marrok’s face, I knew he wasn’t happy about sharing his mount with a
Sandseed warrior. And to make it worse, Tauno insisted on being in front and
holding Garnet’s reins. To stay behind the null
shield, our path through the plateau had to be precise. Tauno led us. The soft
crunch of the horses’ hooves on hard sand was the only sound. The moon crawled along
the sky. At one point I wanted to yell out and urge Kiki into a gallop just to
break the tension that pressed around us. When the blackness in
the sky eased in the east, Tauno stopped and dismounted. We ate a quick
breakfast and fed the horses. As the day brightened, I saw how well Tauno
blended in with the plateau. He had camouflaged himself with the plateau’s
colors of gray and tan. “We walk from here,”
Tauno said. “We will leave the horses. Take only what you need.” The clear sky promised a
warm day so I removed my cloak and stowed it in my backpack. Dry air laced with
a fine grit blew, scratching at the back of my throat. I decided I needed my
switchblade. Strapping the sheath around my right thigh, I removed the weapon
and triggered the blade. I treated the tip of the blade with some Curare. The
muscle-paralyzing drug would come in handy if Cahil wouldn’t cooperate. After I
retracted the blade, I positioned the weapon in its holder through a hole in my
skirt/pants pocket. I wrapped my long black hair into a bun and used my lock
picks to keep the hair in place. Finally, I grabbed my bow. Dressed for battle,
though, didn’t mean I was prepared for battle. I hoped I would be able to find
Cahil and Ferde and take them without killing anyone. But the grim knowledge
that I would kill to save myself formed a knot in my throat. Tauno scanned our
clothes and weapons. Leif’s machete hung from his waist. He wore a green tunic
and pants. Marrok had strapped his sword onto his belt. The dark brown scabbard
matched his pants. I realized that we had all dressed in the colors of the
earth, and, while we didn’t blend in as well as Tauno, we wouldn’t stand out
either. We tied our packs and
supplies onto the horses’ saddles, then left the horses to graze on what little
grass they could find, and walked south. The plateau appeared deserted. The
need to search the area with magic crept along my skin, and I tried to ignore
the desire. Connecting with the life around me had become almost instinctive
and I felt exposed and out of sorts by not knowing what breathed nearby. Taking a circuitous
path, Tauno eventually stopped. He pointed to a cluster of spine trees. “Just
beyond that copse is the camp,” he whispered. I searched the plateau.
Where was the Sandseed army? The earth undulated as if the sand had liquefied.
The waves on the ground grew. I clamped a hand over my mouth to stifle a cry of
surprise. Row upon row of Sandseed warriors stood. Camouflaged to match the
sand, they had been lying on the ground in front of us and I hadn’t noticed
them. Moon Man smiled his
amusement at my dismay. “You have been relying on your magical senses and have
forgotten about your physical senses.” Before I could respond,
we were joined by four Sandseeds. Though they dressed the same as the warriors,
these Sandseeds held themselves with authority. They issued orders and power
radiated from them. Story Weavers. A male Story Weaver
handed Moon Man a scimitar. His sharp gaze pierced me as he studied my
features. “This is the Soulfinder?” Doubt laced his words, but he spoke softly.
“She is not what I expected.” “What did you expect?” I
asked. “A large dark-skinned
woman. You look like you could not survive a sandstorm let alone find and
release a soul.” “It’s a good thing
you’re not my Story Weaver. You’re easily distracted by the pattern of the
cloth and can’t see the quality of the threads.” “Well done,” Moon Man
said to me. “Reed, show us the camp.” The Story Weaver led us
to the trees. Through the spiky needles on the branches, I saw the Daviian
camp. The air shimmered around
the camp as if a bubble of heat had gotten trapped near the ground. A large
cook fire burned in the central area. Many people scurried about either helping
with breakfast or eating it. Tents fanned from the area, extending out until
they reached the edge of the plateau. Squinting in the
sunlight, I looked beyond the encampment’s border. Just the tops of the trees
in the Illiais Jungle were visible. They reminded me of a time when I had stood
on a platform built near the peak of the tallest tree in the jungle and had
seen the flat expanse of the plateau for the first time. The sheer rock
drop-off into the jungle had appeared to be an impossible climb. So why set up
camp there? I wondered. Moon Man leaned next to
me. “The camp is an illusion.” “Do you have enough
warriors to attack?” I asked, thinking the illusion hid many more Vermin. “Every one.” “All—” The Sandseeds
yelled a battle cry and dashed toward the camp. Moon Man grabbed my arm,
pulling me with him. “Stay with me.” With Leif and Marrok
right behind us, we followed the Sandseeds. When the first warriors crossed
into the illusion, they disappeared from sight for a moment. The sound of
rushing water reached my ears as the chimera dissipated. I blinked a few times to
adjust my vision to what the Daviians had concealed. The central fire remained
the same. But instead of many Vermin around the flames, there stood only one
man. The rest of the camp was empty. 4WHEN THE ILLUSION
disappeared, so did the expanse of tents and all the Daviians. The lone man
standing by the fire collapsed before the Sandseed warriors could reach him. Evidence that a large
army had camped here was imprinted on the ground. Although, by the time the Sandseed
leaders restored order to the milling warriors, many of the Daviian tracks had
been ruined. And the only witness had
taken poison. “One of their Warpers,”
Moon Man said, nudging the corpse with his bare foot. “He held the illusion and
killed himself once it broke.” “If you can clear the
area, I might be able to tell you where they’ve gone,” Marrok said. The Sandseed warriors
returned to the copse of spine trees. Moon Man and I stayed by the fire as
Marrok and Leif circled the camp. Marrok looked for physical evidence while
Leif used his magic to smell the intentions of the Daviians. I projected my mental
awareness as far as I could. If I sought a specific person, then I could reach
them from far away, but with a general search my magic could only extend about
ten miles. I reached no one in the plateau, and the bounty of life in the
jungle was too overwhelming to sort out. When they had finished
their circuit, Marrok and Leif returned. Their glum expressions reflected bad
news. “They’ve been gone for
days. The majority of the tracks head east and west,” Marrok reported. “But I
found some metal spikes with rope fibers in the ground near the edge of the
plateau. A few Vermin could have climbed down into the jungle.” I touched Leif’s arm.
“The Zaltanas?” “If the Vermin can even
find our homestead among the trees, they’re still well protected,” he said. “Even from one of the
Warpers?” I asked. Leif blanched. “Are the ropes still
there?” I asked Marrok. “No. The others must
have waited and either cut the rope or taken it along with them,” Marrok said. “Do you know how many
went down?” Moon Man asked. “No.” Leif said, “There were
so many scents and emotions mixed together. The need for stealth and urgency
predominated. They moved with a purpose and felt confident. The eastern group,
though, had the most men and they…” Leif closed his eyes and sniffed the
breeze. “I don’t know. I need to follow their trail for a while.” Marrok led Leif to the
eastern tracks. I asked Kiki and the other horses to come to us. While waiting
for them, Moon Man and the other Story Weavers split the warriors into two
groups, and sent two scouts, one to the west and the other to the east. But what about those
that went down the rope to the jungle? What about Cahil and Ferde? Were they
even with the Daviians? And, if so, which way had they gone? When the horses arrived,
I grabbed my pack off Kiki’s saddle. Opening it, I pulled my rope out and
headed for the rim of the plateau. I found one of the metal spikes Marrok had
mentioned and tied the end of the rope to it. On my belly, I inched closer to
the edge until I could see down into the jungle. The sides of the cliff
appeared to be smooth, with no hand-holds in sight. I tossed the rope over, but
knew it wouldn’t reach the bottom far below. The end stopped a quarter of the
way down. Even with a longer rope, the climb looked dangerous. Water sprayed
out of fissures in the rock face about halfway down. The stones below
glistened. I considered the
descent. A desperate person might attempt it, but Leif’s assessment of the
Vermin hadn’t included desperation. Moon Man waited for me
by the horses. “When the scouts return,
we will set out,” he said. A notion that had been
bothering me finally clicked. “Your people have swept the plateau and have been
watching the camp. How could the Vermin slip away without you knowing?” “A few of their Warpers
had been Story Weavers. They must have learned to make a null shield.” “That would only hide
their presence from a magical search. What about seeing them?” Before Moon Man could
answer, a shout rang out. Leif, Marrok and the scout ran toward us. “Found a trench,” Marrok
panted. “Heading east then
north.” The scout gestured. “Ill intent,” Leif said. North toward the Avibian
Plains. Toward the Sandseeds’ unprotected lands because their warriors were
here in the plateau. Every one. Moon Man covered his
face with his hands as if he needed to block out the distractions and think. The second scout arrived
from the west. Puffs of sand from his passage reached us before he did. “Another trench?” Marrok
asked. “The trail ends. They
doubled back.” The scout reported. Moon Man dropped his
hands and began shouting orders, sending the warriors northeast at a run,
ordering the Story Weavers to make contact with the people who stayed behind on
the plains. “Come on,” he said,
turning to join the others. “No,” I said. He stopped and looked
back. “What?” “Too obvious. I don’t
think Cahil would go along with that.” “Then where did he go?”
Moon Man demanded. “The bulk of the
Daviians went east, but I think a smaller group either went west or south.” “My people are in
trouble,” Moon Man said. “And so are mine,” I
replied. “You go with your warriors. If I’m wrong, we’ll catch up with you.” “And if you are right,
then what?” Then what, indeed. There
were only three of us. “I will go with you,”
Moon Man said. He called one of the Story Weavers and a touch of magic pricked
my skin as they linked their minds. Not wanting to intrude
on their mental conversation, I focused on finding Cahil. I examined the edge
of the plateau. A branch from one of the tall jungle trees reached toward the
cliff. I could use my grapple and rope and hook it— No, Leif said in my
mind. Suicide. I frowned at him. But I
could swing— No. Nutty could do it. Our
cousin climbed trees as if valmur blood coursed through her veins. You’re not Nutty. I reluctantly abandoned
that course of action. Even if I could swing to the tree, I doubted anyone else
would follow me. Then I would be alone. I berated myself for being worried about
being on my own: living in Sitia had made me soft. It has made you smarter,
Leif said. Then he added, not much smarter, but we can still hope for
improvement. “Where to?” Tauno asked
as he joined our group. I looked at Moon Man. He shrugged. “He is
better at scouting than fighting. We will need him,” he said with certainty. I sighed at the
implication. “West.” Perhaps we would find a
better way down into the jungle or, failing that, we would follow the plateau’s
edge west toward the Cowan Clan’s lands. Once in Cowan land, we would turn
south into the forest then loop east into the Illiais Jungle. And hope we
weren’t too late. We mounted the horses.
Tauno and Marrok once again led us. The point where the Daviians had turned
around was obvious even to me. The hard-packed sand had been scuffed where they
stopped, and only flat unblemished sand continued westward. Tauno halted the horses
and waited for more instructions. “A ruse. I can smell
deceit and smugness,” Leif said. “Why so smug?” I asked.
“Laying a false trail is a basic strategy.” “It could be Cahil,”
Marrok said. “He tends to think he is smarter than everyone. Perhaps he thought
this would fool the Sandseeds into sending half their warriors in the wrong
direction.” I projected my magical
awareness over the smooth sand. A few mice skittered into the open, searching
for food. A snake curled on a warm rock, basking in the afternoon sun. I
encountered a strange dark mind. I withdrew my awareness
and scanned the plateau. Sure enough there was a small area a few feet away
where the sand looked pliant, as if it had been dug up and packed back down. I
slid off Kiki and walked over to the patch. The sand felt spongy beneath my
boots. “A Vermin must have
buried something there,” Marrok said. Tauno snorted with disgust.
“You have probably found one of their waste pits.” With Moon Man still on
her back, Kiki came closer. Smell damp, she said. Bad damp or good damp? I
asked. Just damp. Taking my grapple out of
my pack, I started to dig. The others watched me with various expressions of
amusement, distaste and curiosity. When I had dug down
about a foot, my grapple struck something hard. “Help me clear the sand.” My reluctant audience
joined me. But eventually we uncovered a flat piece of wood. Marrok rapped his knuckles
on it and proclaimed it the top of a box. Working faster to remove the sand, we
sought the edges. The round lid was about two feet in diameter. While Tauno and Moon Man
discussed why the Vermin would bury a circle box, I found the lip and pried the
top up. A gulp of air almost sucked the lid back down. Everyone was stunned
into silence. The lid covered a hole in the ground. And, judging by the pull of
air into its depths, a very deep hole. 5THE SUNLIGHT ILLUMINATED
a few feet of the hole. Below the lip a couple rough steps had been cut into
the sandstone. “Can you sense anyone in
there?” Leif asked. Pulling a thread of
power, I projected into the darkness. My awareness touched many of those dark
minds, but no people. “Bats,” I said. “Lots of
bats. You?” “Just smug
satisfaction.” “Could this be another
false trail?” Marrok asked. “Or a trap?” Tauno
asked. He glanced around with quick furtive movements as if worried the sand
would erupt with Vermin. “One of us needs to go
inside and report back,” Moon Man said, looking at Tauno. “I knew we would need
a scout.” Tauno jerked as if he
had stepped on a hot coal. Sweat ran down his face. He swallowed. “I will need
a light.” Leif retrieved his
saddlebags and removed one of his cooking sticks. “This won’t burn long,” he
said. He set the end on fire and handed the stick to Tauno. With the flaming stick
to lead the way, the Sandseed scout crawled into the opening headfirst. Tempted
to link my mind with his to see what he found, I forced myself to focus instead
on the ground beneath my feet, trying to discover a sign of life that would
indicate the end of the cave. The jungle’s pulse
throbbed in my soul, but I couldn’t tell if it came from an opening below the
ground or just from being so close to it on the plateau. Waiting proved
difficult. I imagined all types of hazards in Tauno’s way and was convinced he
had fallen and broken a leg or worse when he appeared at the hole’s opening. “The steps lead to a big
cavern with many tunnels and ledges. I spotted a few footprints in the dirt,
but had to come back before my light died,” Tauno said. “I also heard water
gurgling nearby.” Now we knew. Vermin had
gone through the cave. “Leif, what do you need
to make a light last longer?” I asked him. “You’re not thinking
about going in there, are you?” Marrok asked, sounding horrified. “Of course. You want to
find Cahil, don’t you?” “What makes you so
certain he went that way?” I looked at Leif.
Together we said, “Smug satisfaction.” While Leif and Tauno
returned to the Daviian camp for firewood, Moon Man and I discussed what to do
with the horses. We would need Marrok’s tracking skills and Tauno’s keen sense
of direction to find our way through the cavern. Leif and I needed to take
Cahil back to the Council, so that left Moon Man. “I am not staying
behind,” Moon Man said. “Someone needs to feed
and water the horses,” I said. Kiki snorted at me. I
opened my mind to her. Don’t need, she said. We
wait then go. Go where? Market. An image of the
Illiais Market formed in my mind. As the main southern trading post for Sitia,
the market was tucked between the western edge of the Illiais Jungle and Cowan
Clan lands. How do you know about
the market? I asked. Know land like know
grass. I smiled. Kiki’s concise
view of life kept surprising me with its many layers of emotion. If I could
view the world the same way, I knew it would make my life easier. Moon Man had been
watching me. “Perhaps Kiki should mentor you.” “On what? How to become
a Soulfinder?” “No. You are a
Soulfinder. She can help you be a Soulfinder.” “More cryptic Story
Weaver advice?” “No. Clear as air.” Moon
Man drew a deep breath and grinned at me. “Let us get the horses ready.” We removed their bridles
and reins and packed the tack into their saddlebags. When Leif and Tauno returned,
we sorted our supplies, distributing them among our packs and repacking the
rest into the saddlebags. The horses would keep their saddles on, but we made
sure nothing would hang down or impede their motion. My pack weighed heavier
than usual, but I had an uneasy intuition we might need a few of the items
inside. When we were ready, Leif
lit the firewood torches dipped in the plant oil he had stored in Rusalka’s
saddlebags. He left most of his odd concoctions and medicines behind, boasting
he could find anything we needed in the jungle. “If we find a way out,”
Marrok muttered. “What will we do if we become lost in the caves?” “That will not happen,”
Moon Man said. “I will mark our way with paint. If we can not find our way
through, we will return to the plateau. The horses will wait until Yelena tells
them to go.” Moon Man wrapped his
muscular arm around Marrok’s shoulders. Marrok tensed as if he expected a blow. “Trust yourself,
Tracker. You have never been lost,” Moon Man said. “I have never been
inside a cave.” “Then it will be a new
experience for both of us.” Moon Man’s eyes glinted with anticipation, but
Marrok hunched his back. I wasn’t a stranger to
small dark places. Before becoming the Commander’s food taster, I had spent a
year in the Commander’s dungeon awaiting execution. While I wasn’t anxious to
return to a confined space, I would push past my nerves to recapture Ferde. “There are a few caves
in the jungle,” Leif said. “Most of them are used as dens by the tree leopards
and are avoided, but I’ve explored some.” His gaze met mine and, by the sad
smile, I knew he had searched those caves looking for me. Tauno and Marrok each
held a torch. With Tauno leading the way, I followed, crawling headfirst
through the small opening. Leif was close behind, then Marrok and finally Moon Man. The torchlight
illuminated the three-foot-wide tunnel. Shovel marks scraped the rough walls,
indicating the space had been dug. The steps turned into bumps that helped slow
our progress as we slid down the sloped passageway. I coughed as the dust of
our passing mixed with the steady flow of cool damp air. When we reached the
cavern, the tightness around my ribs eased. Tauno’s light reflected off stones
resembling teeth. A few of these hung from the ceiling and others rose from the
ground as if we stood inside the mouth of a giant beast. “Don’t move,” Marrok
ordered as he examined the floor. Shadows danced on the
pockmarked walls as Marrok searched for signs. Deep wells of blackness
indicated other tunnels, and small puddles of water peppered the floor.
Dripping and running water filled the air with a pleasant hum that countered
the unpleasant wet mineral smell mixed with a sharp animal musk. Moon Man hunched his
shoulders and short breaths punctuated his breathing. “Is something wrong?” I
asked him. “The walls press on me.
I feel squeezed. No doubt my imagination.” He went to mark the tunnel to the
surface with red paint. “This way,” Marrok said.
Amplified by either the stone walls or by fear, his voice sounded louder than
usual. He showed us a series of ledges descending down a chute. The smell rising from
the chute turned sharp and rank. I gagged. Tauno climbed down. The ledges
turned out to be large chucks of rocks stacked crookedly on top of one another.
In certain places he hung over the side and dropped down. We followed and with
some mumbling and cursing we caught up to Tauno. He waited on the last
visible ledge. Beyond him, the chute ended in a pit of blackness. Tauno dropped
his torch. It landed on a rock floor far below. “Too far to jump,” Tauno
said. I pulled the grapple
from my pack and wedged the metal hooks into a crack, glad I had decided to
bring it along. Tying the rope onto the hook, I tested the grapple’s grip.
Secure for now, but Moon Man braced himself and gripped the rope when Tauno
swung over the edge and descended. Moon Man’s forehead
dripped with sweat despite the cool air. His uneven breathing echoed off the
walls. When Tauno reached near the bottom, Moon Man released the rope. The
grapple held Tauno’s weight. He jumped the last bit and picked up the torch,
exploring the area before giving us the all-clear signal. One by one we joined
him at the bottom of the chute. We left the grapple in place in case we needed
to return. “I have some good news
and some bad,” Tauno said. “Just tell us,” Marrok
barked. “There is a way out of
this chamber, but I doubt Moon Man or Leif will fit.” Tauno showed us a small
opening. The torch’s flame flickered in the breeze coming from the channel. I looked at Leif. Even
though Marrok was taller than him, Leif had wide shoulders. How had Cahil and
Ferde fit through? Or had they traveled a different way? It was hard to judge
size based on a memory. Perhaps they hadn’t encountered any trouble. “First explore the
tunnel. See what’s on the other side,” I instructed. Tauno disappeared into
the hole with a quick grace. Leif crouched next to the opening, examining it. “I have more plant oil,”
Leif said. “Perhaps we can grease our skin and slide through?” He stepped back
when Tauno’s light brightened the passageway. “It gets wider about ten
feet down and ends in another cavern,” Tauno said. Black foul-smelling muck
covered his feet. When questioned about the mud, he wiggled his toes. “The
source of the stench. Bat guano. Lots of it.” Those ten feet took us
the longest to traverse. And I despaired at the amount of time we used to
squeeze two grown men through a narrow space. It might be impossible to catch
up with Cahil and the others. And Moon Man’s panic attack when he had become
wedged for a moment had set everyone’s mood on edge. Standing ankle deep in
bat droppings, we made for a miserable group. My dismay reflected in everyone’s
face. And it wasn’t due to the putrid and acidic smell. Leif’s shoulders were
scratched raw and bloody, and the skin on Moon Man’s arms looked shredded.
Blood dripped from his hands. Moon Man’s breathing
rasped. “Go back. We should…go back.” He panted. “Bad idea. Bad idea. Bad
idea.” I suppressed my worries
about Cahil. Connecting with the power source, I gathered a fiber of magic and
sought Moon Man’s mind. A claustrophobic fear had pushed logic and reason
aside. I probed deeper into his thoughts to find the strong unflappable Story
Weaver, reminding him of the importance of our journey. A Sandseed Story Weaver
would not let himself panic. Moon Man’s breathing settled as calm reclaimed his
emotions. I withdrew from his mind. “I am sorry. I do not
like this cave,” Moon Man said. “No one does,” Leif
muttered. Keeping my thread of
magic, I focused on Moon Man’s arms. Large chunks of his skin had been gouged
out. My upper limbs burned with pain as I concentrated on his injuries. When I
could no longer endure the stinging fire, I used magic to push it away from me.
I swayed with relief and would have fallen to the floor if Leif hadn’t grabbed
me. Moon Man examined his
arms. “I could not lend you my strength this time,” he said. “Your magic held
me immobile.” “What’s this?” Leif
asked. He raised my hand into
the light. Blood streaked my skin, but I couldn’t find any damage. When I had
helped Tula, one of Ferde’s victims and Opal’s sister, Irys had speculated that
I had assumed her injuries then healed myself. I guessed it had been the same
with Marrok’s crushed cheek. But seeing the physical evidence turned Irys’s
theory into reality. I stared at the blood and felt light-headed. “That’s interesting,”
Leif said. “Interesting in a good
way or bad?” I asked. “I don’t know. No one
has done that before.” I appealed to Moon Man. “A couple Story Weavers
have the power to heal, but not like that,” he said. “Perhaps it is something
only a Soulfinder can do.” “Perhaps? You don’t
know? Then why have you led me to believe you know everything about me?” I
demanded. He rubbed his newly
healed arm. “I am your Story Weaver. I do know everything about you. However, I
do not know everything about Soulfinders. Do you define yourself strictly by
that title?” “No.” I avoided the
title. “Well then,” he said, as
if that settled the matter. “Let’s go,” Marrok said
through his shirt. He had covered his nose and mouth to block the smell. “The
Daviians’ trail through this muck is easy to follow.” With Marrok in the lead,
we stepped with care. About halfway through the bats’ cavern, I sensed an
awakening. Sending a thin tendril of power, I linked with the dark minds above
me as they floated toward a collective consciousness. Their need for food
pushed at me, and, through them, I felt the exact location of each bat, of each
wall, of each exit, of each rock, and each figure below. They launched. “Duck!” I yelled as the
cloud of flying creatures descended. The drone of beating
wings reached a crescendo as black bodies flew around us. The air swirled and
filled with bats. They deftly avoided knocking into us or each other as they
headed toward the exit, seeking the insects and berries of the jungle. My mind traveled with
them. The instinctual exodus of thousands of bats flying through the tight
tunnels of the cave was as organized as a military attack. And like any
well-planned event, it took time for all the bats to leave. The muscles in my legs
burned when I finally straightened. The flapping and fluttering sounds echoed
from the tunnels then faded. I looked at my companions. No one appeared to be
hurt, although a few of us were splattered with dung. Marrok had dropped his
torch, and his arms covered his head. He puffed with alarm. “Captain Marrok,” I
said, hoping to calm him. “Give me your torch.” My order pierced his
panic. He picked up the unlit stick. “Why?” “Because the bats have
shown me the way out.” I cringed as my hand closed on the muck-covered handle.
“Leif, can you relight this?” Leif nodded. Flames
grew. When the torch burned on its own, he asked, “How far to the jungle?” “Not far.” I led the
group, setting a quick pace. No one complained. All were as eager as I to exit
the cave. The sound of rushing
water and a glorious freshness to the air were the only signs we had reached
our destination. The day had turned into night while we had traveled through
the cave. From the bats, I knew
water flowed along the floor of the exit and dropped down about twenty feet to
the jungle. The waterfall splashed onto a tumble of rocks. The others followed me
to the edge of the stream. We doused the torches and waited for our eyes to
adjust to the weak moonlight. I scanned the jungle below with my magic,
searching for signs of an ambush and for tree leopards. Necklace snakes were
also a danger to us, but the only life I touched were small creatures scurrying
through the underbrush. “Prepare to get wet,” I
said before wading into the cold knee-deep water. My boots filled
immediately as I sloshed to the edge. There were plenty of rocks below to climb
on, but they were either under the water or wet. I eased off my backpack and
threw it down, aiming for a dry spot on the rocky bank. “Be careful,” I
instructed. I turned around and
crouched, leaning into the force of the water. Keeping my face above the
stream, I stuck my feet over the edge and felt for a foothold. By the time I
reached the bottom, my clothes were soaked. At least the water had washed away
the foul-smelling dung. Once everyone climbed
down, we stood dripping and shivering on the bank. “Now what?” Leif asked. “It’s too dark to see
trail signs,” Marrok said. “Unless we make more torches.” I looked at our ragtag
group. I had a dry change of clothes in my backpack, but Tauno and Moon Man had
nothing with them. The bank was big enough for a fire. “We need to dry off and
get some rest.” “You need to die,” a
loud voice said from the jungle. 6ARROWS RAINED DOWN.
Tauno cried out as one pierced his shoulder. “Find cover,” Marrok
ordered. An arrow jutted from his thigh. We scrambled for the
underbrush. Moon Man dragged Tauno with him. Marrok fell. An arrow whizzed by
my ear and thudded into a tree trunk. Another slammed into my backpack before I
dived under a bush. I scanned the treetops
with my magic, but couldn’t sense anyone. “Null shield,” Moon Man
shouted. “No magic.” Marrok lay in the open,
unmoving. Arrows continued to fly, but they missed him. He stared at the sky. “Curare!” I yelled. “The
arrows are laced with Curare.” The ambushers wanted to
paralyze us, not kill us. At least not yet. The memory of being completely
helpless from the drug washed over me. Alea Daviian had wanted revenge for her
brother’s death, so she had pricked me with Curare and carted me to the plateau
to torture and kill me. Leif yelped nearby. An
arrow had nicked his cheek. “Theobroma?” he asked before his face froze. Of course! My father’s
Theobroma, which had saved me from Alea. I ripped open my pack, searching for
the antidote to Curare. The rain of arrows slowed, and a rustling noise from
above meant our attackers were climbing down. Probably to take better aim. I
found the brown lumps of Theobroma and put one into my mouth, immediately chewing
and swallowing it. Moon Man cursed and I
broke cover to run to him. An arrow hit my back. The force slammed me to the
ground. Pain rippled through my body. “Yelena!” Moon Man
grabbed my outstretched arm and pulled me to him. “Here.” I panted as the
Curare numbed the throb in my lower back. “Eat this.” He ate the Theobroma
lump without a moment’s hesitation. An arrow’s shaft had pinned his tunic to a
tree. I lost feeling in my
legs. “Are you hit?” He ripped his shirt free
and examined the skin along his right side. “No.” “Pretend to be,” I
whispered. “Wait for my signal.” Sudden understanding
flashed in his deep brown eyes. He broke the shaft off the arrow that had
missed him, and swiped blood from my back. Lying down, he held the shaft
between two bloody fingers of his left hand which he placed on his stomach,
making it look like the arrow had pierced his gut. His right hand gripped his
scimitar. Men called as they
reached the jungle floor. Before they could discover me, I put my right hand
into my pant’s pocket, palming the handle of my switchblade. Numbness spread
throughout my torso, but the Theobroma countered the Curare’s effects to a
point where limited movement remained. Even so, I lay still, pretending to be
paralyzed. “I found one,” a man
said. “Over here’s another.” “I found two,” a rough
voice right above me said. “That’s the rest of
them. Make sure they’re incapacitated before you drag them out. Dump them
beside their companion in the clearing,” said a fourth voice. The rough-voiced man
kicked me in the ribs. Pain ringed my chest and stomach. I clamped my teeth
together to suppress a grunt. When he grabbed my ankles and hauled me through
the bushes and over the uneven stones of the bank, I was a bit glad for the
Curare in my body. It dulled the burning sting as the left side of my face and
ear were rubbed raw by the ground. The Curare also dulled
my emotions. I knew I should be terrified, yet felt only mild concern. Curare’s
ability to paralyze my magic remained the most frightening aspect of the drug.
Even though the Theobroma counteracted it, Theobroma had its own side effect.
The antidote opened a person’s mind to magical influence. While I could use
magic, now I had no defense against another’s magic. Marrok still lay where
he had fallen. The loud scrape of Moon Man’s weapon on the ground reached me
before he was dropped beside me. “His fingers are frozen
around the handle,” one of the men said. “A lot of good it will
do him,” another joked. Listening to their
voices, I counted five men. Two against five. Not bad odds unless my legs
remained numb. Then Moon Man would be on his own. Once the men brought
Leif and Tauno to the bank, the leader of the attackers dropped the null
shield. It felt as if a curtain had been yanked back, revealing what lurked
behind. All five men’s thoughts were open to me now. Their leader shouted
orders. “Prepare the prisoners for the Kirakawa ritual,” he said. “We should not feed
these men to it,” Rough Voice said. “We should use their blood for ourselves.
You should stay.” My gaze met Moon Man’s.
We needed to act soon. I suppressed the desire to make mental contact with the
Story Weaver. Their leader had to be a strong Warper to have created such a
subtle null shield. There was a chance he would “hear” us. The crunch of gravel
under boots neared. My stomach tightened. “I have orders to bring
the woman to Jal,” the leader said from above me. “Jal has special plans for
her.” Without warning, the
arrow in my back was yanked out. I bit my tongue to keep from yelling. The
leader knelt next to me. He held the arrow, examining the weapon. My blood
stained the smooth metal tip. At least the tip wasn’t barbed. Strange I should
worry about that. “Too bad,” Rough Voice
said. “Think of the power you could have if you performed Kirakawa on her. You
might become stronger than Jal. You could lead our clan.” My lower back pulsed
with pain. The Theobroma was working. Another minute and I should regain the
use of my legs. “She is powerful,” the
leader agreed. “But I do not know the binding rite yet. Once I bring her to
Jal, I hope to be rewarded and allowed to ascend to the next level.” He smoothed tendrils of
hair from my face. I made a conscious effort not to flinch as his fingers
caressed my cheek. “Are the rumors true?
Are you really a Soulfinder?” he whispered to me. He stroked my arm in a
possessive way. “Perhaps I can siphon a cup of your blood before I deliver you
to Jal.” He reached for the knife hanging from his belt. I moved. Pulling my
switchblade from my pocket, I triggered the blade and rolled over, slicing his
stomach open. But instead of falling back in surprise, he leaned forward and
wrapped his hands around my neck. A blur of motion beside
me, and Moon Man leaped to his feet, swinging his scimitar in a deadly arc
through Rough Voice. I struggled with the
leader. His weight trapped my arms. The pressure from his thumbs closed my
windpipe. He attempted to connect with my mind, and would have succeeded with
his magical attack if the Curare on my switchblade hadn’t worked so fast to paralyze
his power. One problem remained.
Trapped under the frozen Vermin, I couldn’t breathe. Moon Man, I called.
Help! One minute. The clang of
weapons split the air. I’ll be dead in a
minute. Just push him off. A brief flurry of steel hitting steel was followed
by silence. The man on me fell to the side. I freed my arms and pried his hands
from my neck. Moon Man reengaged in
the battle. He fought three men. One man’s decapitated head rested next to me.
Lovely. My short blade wouldn’t
last against their long scimitars and my bow was in the jungle with my pack.
Gathering power, I sent a light touch to one man’s mind. Relieved he wasn’t a
Warper, I sent him puzzling images to distract him. He dropped out of the
fight with Moon Man and stared at my approach with a baffled expression. The
man raised his sword a second too late. I stepped close to him and nicked his
arm with my switchblade, hoping Curare still clung to my blade. Unable to use
his sword, the man dropped his weapon and lunged. His intent to subdue me rang
clear in his mind, but I deepened my mental connection and forced him to sleep. With only two attackers
left, Moon Man had both their heads off in short order. He strode over to the
man sleeping at my feet and raised his scimitar. “Stop,” I said. “When he
wakes, we can question him about Cahil’s plans.” “The other?” “Paralyzed.” Moon Man rolled the
leader over. The blood from his stomach wound had pooled on the rocks. After
touching the man’s neck and face, Moon Man said, “He is gone.” The cut was deeper than
I thought. A felt a tinge of guilt as I scowled at the body. The leader
probably had more information than the other man. “It is a good thing. He
was a Warper. We would not have gotten anything from him except trouble.” I looked at the scattered
carnage. The headless bodies cast macabre shadows in the pale moonlight. The
side of my face and the wound in my back throbbed. The cool night air felt icy
on my wet clothes. Tauno and Marrok both needed medical attention, and we
couldn’t go anywhere until the Curare wore off. And the thought of spending the
night surrounded by corpses… “I will take care of
them,” Moon Man said, reading my thoughts. “And I will build a fire. You take
care of the wounded. Including you.” Pulling the arrows from
Marrok’s thigh and Tauno’s shoulder, I gathered power but couldn’t assume their
injuries. The Curare in their bodies blocked my magic. An interesting
discovery. It seemed when under the influence of the drug, a person couldn’t do
magic or be affected by it. I mulled over the
implications as I searched in my pack. Finding a few lumps of Theobroma, I gave
it to Moon Man to melt over the fire and feed to our paralyzed companions. From
my own experience with Curare, I knew the drug didn’t affect the body’s ability
to swallow, breathe and hear. So I told them what I planned to do. The last of my energy
faded after healing my own wound. I curled into a ball on the ground and fell
asleep. When I woke, watery
streaks of color painted the sky. Moon Man sat cross-legged next to a fire,
cooking a divine-smelling hunk of meat. My stomach grumbled in anticipation. I checked on the others.
Marrok, Leif and Tauno still slept. Leif’s cut had scabbed over, but I would
need to heal Marrok’s and Tauno’s wounds. Moon Man had tied the Daviian
prisoner’s arms and legs with some jungle vines even though the Vermin remained
unconscious. Moon Man gestured for me
to join him. “Eat first before you heal them.” He handed me a sliver of meat
speared on a stick. When I sniffed at the offering, he said, “Do not analyze
it. It is hot and nourishing. That is all you need to know.” “Why do you get to
decide what I need to know? Why can’t you just give me the information I ask
for?” My frustration extended beyond the mystery meat. “That would be too easy.” “What’s wrong with easy?
I can understand if the most stressful aspect of my life was worrying about
Bain’s next history test, but lives are at stake. Ferde could be stealing
another’s soul and I might have the power to stop him.” “What do you want? For
me to tell you to do this or do that and wa-lah!” Moon Man flourished his hand
in the air. “Instant success!” “Yes. That is exactly
what I want. Please, tell me.” A thoughtful expression
settled on his face. “When you were training to be the Commander’s food taster,
would you know what the poison My Love tasted like if Valek had just described
it to you?” “Yes.” There was no
mistaking the sour-apple taste. “Would you trust your
life on that knowledge? Or others?” I opened my mouth to
reply but paused. Now I couldn’t remember the poisons I hadn’t tasted or
smelled. But I’ll never forget the tartness of My Love, the rancid orange
flavor of Butterfly’s Dust, and the bitter thickness of White Fright. “I’m talking about
magic. Testing food for poisons is different.” “Is it?” I pounded my fist on the
ground. “Do Story Weavers sign a contract or make a blood oath to be difficult
and stubborn and a pain in the ass?” A serene smile spread on
his face. “No. Each Story Weaver chooses how he will guide his charges. Think
about it, Yelena. You do not respond well to orders. Now eat your meat before
it gets cold.” Stifling my desire to
fling the food into the fire and prove the insufferably smug Story Weaver right
about my inability to take orders, I bit off a large chunk. Spiced with pepper, the
oily meat tasted like duck. Moon Man fed me two more pieces before he would let
me return to the sleeping men and heal them. Tired, I snoozed by the fire. When everyone had roused
and gathered around the campfire to eat, we discussed our next move. “Do you think they would
set more ambushes in the jungle? Leave more Warpers in our path?” I asked Moon Man. He considered my
question. “It is possible. They left one at the camp who sacrificed himself.
This one was supposed to come back. Our spies have determined the Daviian
Vermin have about ten Warpers—eight now. Two are very powerful, and the rest
have various lesser talents.” “The ambush leader had
enough magic to create and hold a null shield.” Moon Man turned the meat
roasting over the fire. “A valid and alarming point. Which means they might
have been performing Kirakawa for some time.” “What’s Kirakawa?” Leif
asked. “It is an ancient
ritual. It has many steps and rites. When done correctly, it transfers the life
energy of one person to another. All living beings have the ability to use
magic, but most cannot connect to the power source. A person performing
Kirakawa will either increase their magical power or gain the ability to
connect with the power source, and therefore become a Warper. “Their leader mentioned
levels and a binding rite. They are probably using the Kirakawa to grant
certain members magical abilities and increase certain Warpers’ powers. Their
leader would not want all the clan members to be equally powerful.” “How is the Kirakawa
different than the Efe ritual Ferde used?” Leif rubbed the cut on his cheek. “The Efe ritual binds a
person’s soul to the practitioner, increasing their power. While blood is
needed, it isn’t the medium holding the power in Efe. The soul carries the
power. And the person performing the ritual must be a magician.” “It sounds like anyone
can use this Kirakawa to gain power,” Leif said. “If they knew the proper
steps. With the Kirakawa, the victim’s soul is trapped in blood. It is
gruesome, too. The victim’s stomach is cut open and the heart is removed while
the victim is still living. The Kirakawa is also more complex than the Efe
ritual.” “Could any magician use
Efe? Or just the Soulstealer?” I asked. “A Soulfinder could, but
no one else. Is that a straight enough answer for you, Yelena?” I didn’t dignify his
comment with a reply. Instead, I asked about Mogkan, Alea’s brother. In Ixia,
he had captured over thirty people, turning them into mindless slaves so he
could siphon their power and augment his own. Valek and I had eventually
stopped him from gaining control of Ixia, which explained Alea’s desire for
revenge. “Mogkan tortured them
both physically and mentally until they could no longer bear to be aware of
their surroundings. They retreated within themselves and just became a conduit
for him to exploit. Their magic remained in their bodies.” The implications over
the different ways for people to abuse power raced through my mind. “Going back
to the Kirakawa. If the Daviian Vermin have been performing it for a while,
then they could have more than eight Warpers.” Moon Man nodded. “Many
more.” Paranoia sizzled up my
spine. Convinced Warpers surrounded us, my desire to return my friends to the
safety of the plateau pressed between my shoulder blades. However, if the Daviians
wanted to find more victims for their ritual, the Zaltana Clan teemed with
people and magicians. With the Warpers using a null shield, the clan would have
no warning. Fingers of desperate fear squeezed my stomach as the images of my
mother and father being mutilated filled my mind. 7“HOW DO YOU COUNTER the
null shield?” I asked Moon Man, failing to keep the panic out of my voice. The
jungle around us darkened and I imagined predators lurking behind every tree
and bush. Only the small fire we huddled around gave off any light. “Magic cannot pierce the
shield, but find a way around the shield’s edges and you can use your magic.” “What are the shield’s
dimensions?” “Depends on the strength
of the builder. The one we used in the plateau was as tall as a man astride a
horse, and as wide as thirty men. But we had four Story Weavers combine their
powers to build it. For one Warper, the shield would have to be smaller.” I looked up at the
trees. The ambush had come from above. Would they use the same tactic for
another ambush? No. If the first attempt hadn’t worked, then a different
strategy would be used. Being higher than your target had many advantages, and
if I climbed into the tree canopy, I might be able to get past the edges of another
null shield and discover where another ambush lurked. Knowing my next move
helped to dampen my terror for my family. I made contact with Kiki, projecting
my awareness up toward the plateau. Any trouble? I asked. No. Bored, she replied.
Go? Yes. I’ll meet you at
the Illiais Market rendezvous location. I then told my plan to
the others. “Not without me,” Leif
said. “I grew up in the jungle. I know every leaf and tree.” His body stiffened
with determination. “That is why you need to
stay with them. To show them the way to the homestead. To help them avoid
predators.” Leif crossed his arms
over his broad chest. But he knew I made sense, so he couldn’t argue. “I need to question our
prisoner before I go. There could be a chance the other Vermin might not be
targeting my family.” The man groaned and
blinked at me when I woke him from his deep sleep. Moon Man had been right to
tie his arms. There hadn’t been enough Curare left on my blade to paralyze him. The Vermin’s tunic and
pants had been ripped, and I glimpsed portions of blackish-red tattoos on his
brown skin. Moon Man reached over and ripped the man’s right sleeve off. The Story Weaver pointed
to the symbols on the man’s arm. “He has made the proper blood sacrifice to
prepare for the Kirakawa ritual. That ink in his skin has been mixed with
blood.” Moon Man’s shoulders dropped as if he grieved. “The Sandseeds were wise
to banish the old rituals.” “You were misguided and
fooled into following the teachings of Guyan,” the prisoner said. “Not wise but
weak and pitiful, giving up your power to become docile pathetic Story Weavers
instead of—” Moon Man grabbed the man
by the throat and lifted him off the ground. Docile and weak were not words I
would have used to describe the Story Weaver. “Where did you get the
instructions?” Moon Man asked, shaking him. The man smiled. “I am
not telling you.” “Instructions?” I asked. “The details for the old
rituals had been lost to time. At one point in history, we knew how to perform
many different rituals to increase our power. Our clan passes information down
to our children through teaching stories. Once Guyan became our leader, the
evil ones who knew the required steps were killed. The information should have
died with them.” He dropped the Daviian to the ground. I remembered Dax reading
a bunch of ancient tomes when we had tried to interpret Ferde’s tattoos to
discover why Ferde had been raping and killing those girls. “There were a few books
in the Magician’s Keep. A Sandseed might have written the instructions and symbols
down before they died. Perhaps there is another copy that the Vermin are
using.” I turned to the man. “I guess you’re not going to tell us what the
Vermin’s plans are either?” He met my gaze and
sneered. It was all I needed. My family could be in danger. I sent a rope of
power toward his mind and rifled through his thoughts and memories, extracting
the information I needed. I suppressed the pang of guilt and my recollections
of when Roze Featherstone had tried to examine my mind in a similar fashion. She
had thought I was a spy from Ixia, and the Ethical Code didn’t apply to spies
or criminals. I could argue the same in my defense. Did that make me the same
as Roze? Perhaps. The thought made me uncomfortable. Besides a few horrid
memories of watching an initial level of the Kirakawa ritual, the man knew
almost nothing. Ordered to stay behind and ambush anyone who came out of the
caves, his small unit had scheduled a rendezvous with the larger jungle group
at a later time. Where and when the meeting would be, he had no idea. And, more
important, he didn’t know what the others planned to do. He had a few tidbits of
information. I confirmed that both Cahil and Ferde had come this way and they
traveled with a group of twelve Vermin. “Fourteen is not enough
to win in an attack on the Zaltanas,” Leif said, pride in his voice. I agreed. “But winning
isn’t everything.” My anxiety to leave
increased a hundredfold. A group of Vermin had entered the jungle and my clan
could be in trouble. Images of my father and mother being captured and staked
to the ground replayed in my mind. The thought of my cousin Nutty climbing
without care through the trees and falling into a trap, hurried my
preparations. I shouldered my pack,
threading my bow through its holder. “What about our prisoner?” I asked Moon Man. “I will take care of
him.” “How?” “You do not want to
know.” “Yes, I do. I want you
to tell me everything!” Moon Man sighed. “The
Vermin were once a part of the Sandseed clan. They are our wayward kin, and
they are infesting the rest of Sitia. How we deal with them is in accordance to
our laws, and it is the proper way to take care of Vermin.” “And that would be?” “You exterminate them.” A protest perched on my
lips. What about those members who might have been misguided? But my question
remained unvoiced. Now wasn’t the best time to argue crime and punishment. Instead, I gazed at the
tall trees, looking for a way up into the canopy, wishing I hadn’t left my
grapple and rope in the cave. I found a long vine and used it to climb into the
higher branches. After a moment to reorient myself—the Zaltana homestead was to
the west—I swung over to the next tree. I kept my magical senses
tuned to the life around me, seeking the Daviians and other predators as I
traveled toward home. The web of branches and crowded trees slowed my progress.
After a few hours, my sweat-soaked clothes were ripped, and my skin burned and
itched from innumerable cuts and insect bites. Resting on the branch of
a hawthorn tree, I scanned the area between me and Moon Man. There was no sign
of any intelligent life so I linked my mind with Moon Man’s and Leif’s. You will be safe to
travel to this area, I said, picturing the small clearing below. Stay there
until I contact you again. They agreed. After I rested, I pushed
my way through the jungle’s canopy, staying alert to any sign of the Daviians.
The rhythm of climbing from tree to tree combined with the steady pulse of the
jungle’s undisturbed life force. When an out-of-tune presence plucked at my
senses, my energies focused on the distant ripple. Engrossed, I concentrated on
discovering the source. A man in the tree canopy. Before I could determine if
he was friend or foe, my left hand grasped a smooth and pliant branch.
Surprised, I jerked my awareness back and my mind connected with a hunter
lurking in the trees. The leaves rustled with
movement. The terrifying rasp of a stirring snake surrounded me. The limb under
my feet softened. I scrambled for a solid branch, and touched nothing but the
snake’s dry coils. The necklace snake’s coloring blended with the jungle’s
greenery so well that I couldn’t determine where the rest of it lay. I closed my eyes and
projected into the snake’s mind. It had looped part of its body between two
branches, creating a flat net now closing around me. Pulling my switchblade
from my pocket, I triggered the blade. When the heavy coils of
the snake dropped onto my shoulders, I knew I had mere seconds before the
predator would wrap around my throat like a necklace and choke me to death. I
sensed satisfaction from the snake as it moved to tighten its hold. I stabbed my knife into
the snake’s thick body. Would the Curare on the blade affect the creature? Mild
pain from the thrust registered in the snake’s mind, but it considered the
wound minor. The snake contracted
around me, trapping my legs and left arm. I realized the necklace snake held me
aloft. If I cut through its coils, I would plummet to the ground. Another loop brushed my
face as the snake tried to encircle my neck. I pushed it away with my free arm.
A coil slid up my back. Deciding the odds of
surviving a fall were better than dying by strangulation, I stabbed my blade in
the nearest coil with the intention of sawing through it. Before I applied more
pressure, the creature stopped. Perhaps Curare had
paralyzed the snake. I pulled the blade out and the snake resumed its
tightening. The Curare hadn’t worked. But when I reinserted the knife, the
creature paused. Odd. I must have found a vulnerable area. We were at an
impasse. Through my link with its
mind, I sensed the snake’s hunger warring with its desire to live. I tried to
control the predator’s will, but our minds were too incompatible. Even though I
could feel its intentions, I couldn’t direct its movements. I wanted to avoid killing
the snake, but I could see no other way. Once dead, I should be able to cut my
way back into the trees. “Hello. Is someone in
there?” a man’s voice asked. My struggle with the
snake had seized all my attention. Cursing myself for forgetting the man, I
directed my mind into the tree canopy and encountered the well-protected
thoughts of another magician. But Warper or Story Weaver, I couldn’t tell. “Has the snake got your
tongue?” He laughed at his own joke. “I know you’re there. I felt your power.
If you don’t belong in the jungle, I’ll gladly let the snakes have you for
dinner.” “Snakes?” I asked. His
speech patterns sounded familiar. Not Daviian. Not Sandseed. I hoped Zaltana. “Your necklace snake has
sent a call for help. You might kill this one and untangle yourself, but by
then its kin will be here to finish the job.” I scanned the jungle
canopy and, sure enough, I felt five other snakes moving toward me. “What if I do belong in
the jungle?” I asked. “Then I’ll help you. But
you’d better make a strong case. Strange things have been happening lately.” I thought fast. “I’m
Yelena Liana Zaltana. Daughter of Esau and Perl and sister to Leif.” “Common knowledge. You
have to do better.” Soul mate to Valek, the
scourge of Sitia, I thought, but knew that wouldn’t help my case. I searched my
mind for a bit of information only the Zaltanas knew. The problem was, since I
had been raised in Ixia, I knew only a few things about my lost clan. “I could send you on a
wild-valmur chase, but wouldn’t it be easier if I gave you a piece of sap
candy?” I held my breath, waiting. Just when I was
convinced I would have to cut my way out of the snake before its brothers
arrived, a low drumbeat throbbed. More beats followed. The vibrations pulsed
through the snake. The snake relaxed. A gap
appeared above my head and a green painted face smiled down at me. He extended his hand,
which was also camouflaged. “Grab on.” I clasped his wrist. He
pulled me from the snake’s net and onto a solid branch. Relief puddled in my
knees and I had to sit down. The man’s clothes
matched the jungle’s colors and patterns. He placed a leather drum on the
branch and played another song. The snake unraveled and disappeared into the
jungle. “That should hold them
off for a while,” he said. From his clothes and
dyed-olive hair color, I knew the man had to be a Zaltana. I thanked him for
helping me. His answering nod
reminded me of someone. “Who are you?” I asked. “Your cousin, Chestnut.
I was out on patrol when you were here the last time so I didn’t get a chance
to meet you.” After living in Ixia for
fourteen years, I had finally returned to a home I hadn’t known existed. It had
been such an emotional whirlwind, and I had met so many cousins, aunts and
uncles it was unlikely I would have remembered him even if I had been
introduced to him. Seeing no sign of
recognition on my face, he added, “I’m one of Nutty’s brothers.” Nutty’s stories about
her siblings had been humorous and I remembered a game I used to play with her
against her brothers before my kidnapping. “How did you control the
snake?” I asked. “I’m a snake charmer,”
he said as if the title explained everything. But when I failed to respond, he
said, “It’s part of my magic. The necklace snakes are very hard to spot. Not
only do they blend in so well, but also they mask their life energy. Even if
you’re able to sense the other jungle animals you probably wouldn’t feel the
snakes. Not until it was too late.” He rubbed his hands together in
appreciation. “They usually hunt alone, but if one gets into trouble it can
call to the others with a low sound we can’t hear. My magic allows me to locate
the snakes and hear their calls. And my drum is my way to talk to them. It
doesn’t work on the other animals.” He shrugged. “But I keep the snakes away
from our homestead.” “You were out on patrol
when you heard my snake?” Funny how I had become possessive of the creature
that had tried to squash and eat me. “Yes. Although, when I
left this morning, I had hoped to find more than snakes.” He gave me an odd
look. “I guess I just did. Why are you here, Yelena?” “I’m following a group
of people who had been living in the plateau,” I said. “They came through here.
Has anyone seen them?” But what I really wanted to ask was had they attacked
the clan? Were my mother and father okay? “Seen? No. Strangers are
in the jungle, but we can’t find them and…” He paused, probably considering
what information he should divulge. “Perhaps it would be best for you to talk
to our clan elders. Are you alone?” “No. My brother and some
Sandseeds are traveling with me.” “In the trees?” “On the ground.” I told
Chestnut about the attack and how I had been acting as a scout for our group. Chestnut accompanied me
to the Zaltana homestead. It contained a vast network of living, sleeping and
cooking areas connected by bridges and suspended above the ground. Hidden by
the thick jungle vegetation, the homestead was hard to find, but once inside
the complex, I continued to be amazed the tree canopy could camouflage such a
collection of rooms. Built of wood, the
floors of the buildings were anchored to wide branches. Ivy grew on the outside
of all the walls to hide their shape. Almost all of the furniture was
constructed of wood, and rope hammocks provided comfortable places to sleep.
Handcrafts made of jungle items like seeds and sticks decorated the various
rooms, including animal sculptures created by colored pebbles glued together. The main throughway of
the homestead tended to be common areas of each of the families within the
clan. The living and sleeping quarters branched off from the public rooms. Besides being extensive,
the homestead was also well defended. The Zaltana magicians kept a vigilant
watch for any strangers. After our arrival,
Chestnut hurried to find the clan elders and I scanned the path back to Moon Man. Once I was certain that the way was clear, I made contact with the Story Weaver’s
mind. Come, I told him. Come
quickly. We are on the way, he
replied. I raced to my parents’
suite. A few surprised glances and quizzical calls followed me as I dashed
toward the Liana quarters, but I ignored them. My mother, Perl, paced
the living room. The air smelled like ginger and cinnamon, but her perfume
distillery set up on the long table against the back wall appeared to be empty. “Yelena!” She flew into my arms. A
few inches shorter than me, the slender woman clutched me as if to keep from
falling. “Mother. What’s the
matter?” I asked. “Esau,” she said, and
cried. I suppressed the urge to
shake her as she sobbed in my arms. Instead, I waited for the flow of tears to
subside before I pulled her away and looked into her light green eyes. “What
about Father?” “He’s missing.” 8I RESISTED THE URGE to
use magic to calm my mother. Many horrible scenarios played in my mind before
she settled enough to tell me the details. My father had been expected back
from an expedition yesterday and had failed to return. “There was a clan
meeting,” Perl said between sobs. “A couple of scouts had gotten lost, and he
went to find them.” “Lost scouts?” She gave me a watery
smile. “Some of the newer ones will lose their way. Esau always finds them. No
one knows the jungle as well as he does.” “Maybe one of the scouts
was hurt,” I said, hoping to calm her and to stop myself from imagining Esau
being a victim of the Kirakawa ritual. “Why was he expected yesterday?” “Another clan meeting.
The jungle creatures have been restless and disturbed and we can’t pinpoint
why. When the two scouts failed to return, the clan decided everyone should
stay close to our homestead. Each night we gather in the common room to make
sure everyone is safe. Esau was only supposed to be gone a few hours.” Tears
tracked down her cheeks. Her face reflected the
hours of worry and fear. Her long hair had more gray than black. I couldn’t
leave her alone, yet I needed more information. “I have to talk with the
clan elders,” I said. “You can come along only if you promise not to get too
upset.” She agreed, but
uncertainty filled her eyes. Her hand went to her throat. Maybe taking her with
me was a bad idea. Perhaps Nutty could stay with her? Perl stiffened as if
with a sudden realization. “Wait,” she said before bolting toward the lift. As I watched her pull
the ropes and ascend to the second floor of the apartment, my heart filled with
dread. Esau had invented that lift, using vines from the jungle and a pulley
system. I wouldn’t be able to forgive myself if anything happened to him. Panic made me fidget,
and just as I was about to call out to Perl to hurry, the lift moved. My mother
had splashed water on her face and had tied her hair back. She also wore my
fire amulet around her neck. I smiled. “For strength,” she
said, and she met my gaze. This time only stubborn resolve radiated from her.
“Let’s go.” I thought about the fire
amulet as we made our way to the homestead’s meeting room. Winning an acrobatic
contest during an Ixian fire festival, I had achieved a moment of pure joy in
the midst of hell. Reyad—one of my captors, the first man I’d killed—had tried
to keep me from participating, and I was severely punished for my disobedience,
but I knew I would do it again. I now realized the stubborn streak from both my
parents had kept me fighting despite Mogkan and Reyad’s efforts to control me. Our clan name might be
Zaltana, but our family name was Liana, which meant vine in the old Illiais
language. Those vines grew everywhere in the jungle, pulling down trees in
their search for the sun. When cut and dried, the vines turned rock hard. Looking at the firm set
of my mother’s shoulders, I knew she had reached the point where she would no
longer bend to her emotions, but do what was needed to help find her husband. The common room was the
largest area of the homestead. Big enough to hold the entire clan, the round
area had a stone fire pit at its center. The black ashy remains of the fire
drifted in the sunlight, streaming from the smoke hole in the room’s wooden
ceiling. Benches made of branches and hardened vines ringed the pit. The scent
of many perfumes lingered in the air and I remembered the first time I stood
here. The entire clan had
filled the room then. Curious to see the lost child returned from—according to
their viewpoint—the dead, they peered at me with a mixture of hope, joy and
suspicion. My hopes for an uneventful reunion dissolved when my brother
declared to all that I reeked of blood. Chestnut interrupted my
reminiscence by introducing me to the clan elders. “Oran Cinchona Zaltana and
Violet Rambutan Zaltana.” They bowed in the formal
Sitian greeting. Their dark faces creased with worry. These two dealt with the
day-to-day problems of the clan when our clan leader, Bavol, was at the
Citadel. Missing scouts plus unexpected guests equaled big problems. “Your friends have
reached the palm ladder,” Violet said. “When they climb up, they will be escorted
here.” A slight smile flickered across her face. Relieved they had
arrived safely, I projected my awareness to encourage Leif to hurry. When Leif
opened his mind to me, his annoyance was clear. You should have taken me
with you to search for the Vermin, he said. Leif’s muscles ached from the
day-long march through the jungle. The trails tended to get overgrown quite
fast in the steamy warmth, and Leif had had to cut a path for the others with
his machete. We can fight about it
later, I said. Right now I need you here. I can’t leave Tauno. Leif and Marrok had
reached the tree canopy, but through Leif’s eyes I saw Tauno frozen about
halfway up the rope ladder, clutching the rungs with a death grip. I moved my awareness to
Tauno. Although he couldn’t hear my words in his mind, I sent him calming
emotions, reminding him how he had climbed down from rocks in the blackness of
the cave. I chased his memory of that descent and realized why he hadn’t been
frightened then. Close your eyes, I
instructed. He did. Tauno relaxed
his hold and climbed the ladder. I pulled away and
reconnected to Leif. Hurry. By the time Leif and the
others joined us, I felt my desire for action pushing out, threatening to
explode. I updated the clan elders on what I knew, but the only information
that Oran and Violet added was the direction that the lost scouts had been
assigned. South and east, and Esau had gone east first to find them. “It has to be the
Daviians,” I said. “We have to rescue them before they can do any part of the
Kirakawa ritual.” “Let’s go.” Leif held
his machete tightly, a fierce countenance on his square face. “You do not know for
sure if the Vermin have your father,” Moon Man said. “Or where they are. Or how
many Warpers there are. Or how well defended they may be.” The words tumbled
out in a rush. Moon Man’s eyebrows pinched together, reflecting his obvious
discomfort with being surrounded by walls. “All right, Mr. Logic.
How do you propose we get this information?” I asked. “Marrok and Tauno will
search for trail signs and report back.” “Where?” I asked. “To the east.” “And stumble into the
same ambush as my father? They’ll be caught and killed,” I countered. “It’s too
risky to send people out there. The jungle is the perfect setting for ambushes.
Unless—” A sudden idea circled in my mind. I thought it over, looking for any
holes. If the Daviians hid behind a null shield, no magic could pierce it, but
mundane physical things like sound and light would. “Unless,” Leif prompted. “Unless we could get a
bird’s-eye view,” I said. “They probably have men
stationed in the trees,” Marrok said. “Isn’t that how the scouts would have
been captured?” “Actually I was being
literal. I could link with one of the birds in the jungle and see out through
its eyes.” “You will not see much
during the daytime,” Moon Man said. “The Vermin will be well camouflaged. In
the night, they will need a small fire and the moon to perform even the first
level of the Kirakawa ritual.” A cold wave of dread
washed over me. “The moon rose last night.” “Too soon. They need
time to properly prepare themselves.” “For someone who claims
the old rituals have been lost, you certainly know a lot about them,” Marrok
said. Accusation laced his voice. “The specifics of the
ritual have been forgotten, but some knowledge about them has been included in
our teaching stories,” Moon Man replied, meeting Marrok’s stare. “It keeps us
from making the same mistakes over and over and over again.” A warning to Marrok or
just cryptic Story Weaver advice, I couldn’t tell. Marrok rubbed his healed
cheek. He tended to stroke the spot whenever he was upset or frightened. The
wounds from Cahil’s beating went deeper than shattered bone fragments. Broken
trust was harder to fix than bones. I wondered if Marrok would change his
opinion about Moon Man if he knew the Sandseed had helped repair his injuries. “Can a bird see at
night?” Leif asked, bringing our attention back to the problem at hand. “There’ll be light from
the fire,” Marrok said. “But what about guards
in the trees or outside the firelight?” Tauno asked. “We need to know how many
Vermin are there.” I considered the
difficulties and a solution flew into my mind. “Bats.” Tauno hunched over.
“Where?” “I’ll link with the bats
to find the Vermin. Their fire should attract insects the bats like to eat,” I
said. “Can we afford to wait
until dark?” Leif asked. “What if Yelena can’t locate them with the bats? Then
we will have wasted time that could have been spent searching for Father.” “Yelena will find them,”
my mother said. She had kept her promise and controlled her emotions during our
discussion. Her confidence in me was heart-warming, but I still worried. Three
lives were at stake. “What happens when we
find the Vermin?” Marrok asked. “An army of Zaltanas
could capture them,” Leif said. “That might or might not
work,” Moon Man said. “It will depend on how many Warpers they have with them.” “No. It’s too risky.”
Oran Zaltana broke the silence he had held during our discussion. “I won’t send
clan members until we know what and who we’re dealing with.” I glanced at the floor
beneath the ceiling’s smoke hole. The patch of sunlight had shifted. It would
be dusk in a couple hours. “Let’s find the Vermin first and determine their
strength. Everyone else should eat and rest. It might be a long night.” When we filed out of the
common room, Chestnut touched my arm. He had stood apart from our group as we
talked. His dark brown eyes showed concern. “Esau is my favorite uncle. Let me
know if I can help.” “I will.” I followed
Leif and Perl back to her apartment. She made us sit down on the couch Esau had
built from vines. The leaves in the cushions crackled under my weight. Perl
went into the kitchen and fetched a tray of food and tea. Our mother hovered
over us until we ate. I pushed the fruit and cold meat past my numb lips and
chewed without tasting. Eventually fatigue from
climbing through the jungle caught up to me and I dozed on the couch.
Nightmares about serpents coiling around my body plagued my sleep as they
hissed in my ear. “—wake up. It’s getting
dark,” Leif whispered. I blinked in the gray
light. Perl, curled in a ball, dozed on one of the armchairs. Moon Man stood
near the door to the apartment. I woke my mother. “Can
you fetch the clan elders? We’ll need to make plans once I’ve found Esau.” She hurried out the
door. “Where do you want to
go?” Leif asked. “Upstairs, to my old
room,” I said and headed for the lift. Leif and Moon Man joined
me in the closet-size lift. Two thick ropes went through holes in the ceiling
and floor. Moon man bent over to fit. His breath came in uneven huffs and he
muttered about Sandseeds, the plains and suffocating. Leif and I pulled on the
ropes and the lift began to move. We ascended to the upper level and walked
down the hallway. My room was on the right. Pulling back the cotton curtain, I
let Leif and Moon Man precede me into the small clutter-filled space. A few years after my
kidnapping, Esau had started using the area for storage. Fourteen years of
collecting jungle samples had resulted in rows and rows of shelves filled with
glass containers of every size and shape. The only places free of the
assortment were a small bed and a wooden bureau. Wanting to focus all my
energy on linking with the bats, I stretched across the bed. “Try to keep all
distractions away from me and be ready to help.” Leif and Moon Man
signaled their understanding. Both had enough magical energy I could draw from
if needed. I tried to keep the horrible thoughts about Esau’s plight in the
back of my mind as I projected my awareness toward the mouth of the cave. The
bats would soon be leaving their roost in search for food. My mind met the dark
consciousness of the bats. They didn’t perceive the world by sight, but by
sensing objects and movement around them. Unable to direct them to where I
wanted to go, I flew with them, my mental perception floating from one bat to
another, trying to make sense of my location in the jungle. The flutter of
wings and hum of insects cut through the silent night air. Even though the bats had
spread over many miles, they remained connected to each other, and I soon had a
detailed mental image of the jungle. It was a bird’s-eye view without
colors—just shapes, sizes and movement. In my bat mind, the trees and rocks
were not visual, but in scapes of sound. The straight walls of
the Zaltana homestead felt odd to the bats. They avoided the clan’s dwellings,
but I jumped over to the minds flying east of the homestead. Frustrated because I
couldn’t affect their movements, I had to wait and watch until one bat found a
small campfire. I channeled my awareness on the bat as it dived and flew
through the hot rising air, snatching the insects that danced above the light. Instinctively avoiding
the creatures below, the bat stayed high in the air. I used the bat’s senses to
determine the number of Vermin. Three around the fire, two crouched in the
trees and four stood guard outside the camp. A pair of tents were close to the
fire. Three unmoving forms lay flat on the ground next to them. Alarmed, I
focused my attention on them until I felt their chests rise and fall. When I had the exact
location of the Vermin’s camp in my mind, I withdrew from the bat’s
consciousness. “There are nine of
them,” I said to Leif and Moon Man. “I don’t know how many are Warpers.” “We should have enough
Zaltana magicians to overpower them,” Leif said. “If we could surprise them, it
would give us the advantage. Can you form a null shield?” Leif asked Moon Man. “No. That is not one of
my skills.” I sat up. A wave of
dizziness crashed into me and I hunched over until the feeling passed. Linking
with the bats had used my energy. Moon Man put a steadying hand on my elbow and
his strength coursed through me. I thought about what
Leif said. If we attacked with a large group, the Vermin would know we were
coming, and they would either flee and hide again, or fight back. Either way
they would have time to kill their prisoners. The element of surprise was key,
but how to achieve that? “Could Tauno shoot the
guards with Curare-laced arrows and immobilize them?” Leif asked. “Or could we
blow treated darts through reed pipes?” “Too many trees,” Moon
Man said. “It would be hard in the
dark,” I agreed. “We could get close and jab them.” “But what about the
guards in the trees? Getting close without alerting them is a difficult if not
impossible maneuver,” Leif said. If I’d had the ability
to control the bats, I could use them as a distraction. We needed something
else to cause a commotion. I followed the logic and found an answer. Leif, sensing my mood,
smiled. “What are you scheming, little sister?” 9WE DIDN’T HAVE MUCH TIME
to waste. Leif, Moon Man and I rushed down to my parents’ living area. Perl had
returned with Oran and Violet. “Did you find them?”
Perl asked. “They’re about three
miles southeast of us.” “We’ll need some
magicians and soldiers,” Leif told Oran. “How many are there, and
what do the Vermin plan to do?” Oran asked me. “Nine. And it doesn’t
matter what they plan. The Vermin have Esau and your scouts. We need to rescue
them!” Oran hemmed and hawed. “We
should consult Councilman Bavol—” “Bavol’s at the Citadel.
It will take weeks to get a reply.” I suppressed the desire to wrap my hands
around Oran’s thin neck. “We can’t leave our
homestead unprotected,” Violet said. “We’ll call a meeting and request a few
volunteers.” Sitians! I thought in
exasperation, couldn’t do anything without consulting a committee. “Fine. Call
your meeting. Do whatever.” I shooed Oran and Violet out the door. “Yelena—” my mother
began. “You can scold me later.
We’re leaving now.” Leif and Moon Man looked
at me as if waiting for orders. “Get Tauno and Marrok. I’ll catch up to you at
the base of the ladder.” “Where are you going?”
Leif asked. “To get our
distraction.” They hurried from the
room and I was about to follow when my mother grabbed my arm. “Just a minute,” she
said. “There are only five of you. What are you planning? Tell me now or I’m
coming along.” That Liana stubbornness
radiated from her and I knew her threats weren’t idle. I sketched a brief
outline of my plan. “That won’t work without
some help,” she said. “But I’m going to—” “Need more incentive. I
have just the thing. Go. I’ll meet you at the base of the ladder.” Perl rushed
off. After a few minutes of
frantic searching, I found what I needed. By the time I slid down the ladder,
the others were ready. Shafts of bright moonlight pierced the darkness of the
jungle floor, giving just enough light to make out the shadowy shapes of the
tree trunks. I told Tauno and Marrok
how to approach the Vermin camp and guards and instructed them on where to
position themselves nearby. “No noise. Keep your distance. Wait for my signal
before attacking.” “Signal?” Marrok asked.
His face hardened into grim determination, but uncertainty lurked behind his
eyes. Even though Cahil had issued orders to his men, Marrok had really been
the one in charge. “Something loud and
obnoxious,” I said. Marrok frowned. “This
isn’t the time to joke.” “I wasn’t joking.” After a mere moment’s
hesitation, Marrok and Tauno set off. Moon Man stared after
them. “What about us?” There was a faint
rustling from above as someone took hold of the rope ladder. A few heartbeats
later, Chestnut joined us on the jungle floor. He wore a dark-colored tunic and
pants, and his drum was tied to his belt. The green paint and dye had been
washed from his hair. “I’m glad I could help,”
Chestnut said. “But you need to know I’ve never done this before.” “Done what?” Leif asked.
“Yelena, what’s going on?” “I’m hoping Chestnut
will be able to call a few necklace snakes to join the Vermin’s party.” “Ah. Your distraction,”
Moon Man said. “How close do you need
to be?” I asked Chestnut. “Probably within a mile,
but it’ll all depend on how many snakes are around.” He hesitated. “I’m used to
chasing them away, not calling them. What if it doesn’t work?” As if on cue, the rope
ladder swung with the weight of another person. Perl descended. She moved as
graceful as liquid, and I would have bet Nutty hadn’t been the only Zaltana
child to drive her parents crazy by learning to climb before she could walk. “Here.” My mother handed
me ten grape-size capsules and several straight pins. “Just in case your first
plan fails.” “What if the second plan
fails?” Leif asked. “Then we’ll storm the
camp and hope for the best. Come on.” I put the capsules in my pocket, put the
pins through my shirt so they didn’t stick me, adjusted my pack so its weight
rested between my shoulder blades, and pulled my bow. “Be careful,” Perl said. I hugged her before
setting off. While I had told Marrok and Tauno to take a wider more circuitous
path to the Vermin, I wanted to lead the three men straight toward them. Once
again I made a light mental connection to the bats flying above us. Guided by
the bats’ shape map of the jungle, I moved with ease through the tight trail
even though the tree canopy blocked the dim moonlight in places. The jungle’s night
sounds echoed in the damp air. A howler bat cried in a loud staccato. Valmurs
climbed and swung through the trees. The rustle and shake of branches and
bushes hinted at the unseen activity of other night creatures. About a mile from the
Vermin camp, I halted. Chestnut leaned his forehead on a nearby tree and power
brushed my skin. “There is only one snake
nearby,” he said. “He is waiting for the men in the trees to stumble into his
trap. Necklace snakes are not active hunters. They prefer to lie in wait, using
the element of surprise.” Chestnut looked at me. “And I don’t want to teach
them how to hunt.” “That is a good point,”
Moon Man said. “Now what?” Leif asked. “I’m thinking,” I said. “Think faster,” Leif
urged. One snake wasn’t enough.
Time for Perl’s suggestion. I handed everyone two capsules and a pin. “Get as
close to the guards as you can. Poke a small hole in the capsule and squirt the
liquid near them. Don’t get it on you,” I instructed. “Why not?” Leif asked. “You’ll have a necklace
snake trying to mate with you.” “Gee, Yelena. I’m so
glad you’re home,” Leif grumbled. “It’s good to know Mother is doing something
useful with her time.” “I thought your mother
made perfumes,” Moon Man said. “It all depends on how
you look at it,” Chestnut said. “To a male necklace snake, that stuff is a
perfume.” “There are six guards.
Moon Man, Leif and I will each spray two,” I said. Taking off my pack, I
stashed it behind a tree. “Chestnut, you stay back here. Can you keep the
snakes from grabbing us when they come?” “I’ll try. They have an
excellent sense of smell so get clear once you spray that stuff.” “What about the guards
in the trees?” Leif asked. “Aim high and be quiet
about it.” Leif muttered to himself
as the three of us fanned out to approach the Vermin guards. Chestnut stayed
behind to communicate with the predators while we moved into position. Once our
distraction arrived and the guards became busy dodging amorous snakes, Leif and
Moon Man would find Marrok and Tauno and await my signal. I would spy on the
Vermin in the camp. I crept through the
trees, seeking a sign of the guards. I disconnected with the bats and reached
out with my mental awareness, searching for the Vermin. Beyond the outer guards,
I knew the camp held six people, three Daviians and three Zaltanas, yet I
couldn’t detect them, which meant someone had erected a null shield. At least
one of the Vermin was a Warper and he could be performing one of the Kirakawa
rites while we snuck around in the dark. It was then I realized the sounds from
the jungle had ceased. My heart drummed a
faster beat as my stomach cramped with fear. A presence hovered above me and I
connected with a man crouched in the lower branches of a tree. His mind was
alert for signs of intruders, but he hadn’t detected me. Poking a hole in one
capsule, I sprayed the liquid along the tree’s trunk, and then slipped away. Five minutes later, I
found my second guard. She failed to notice my approach and I squirted some of
Perl’s snake perfume on the bushes near her. I hoped she would rub against them
at some point. As I retreated, I
tripped over a buttress root and fell. I turned over on my back in time to see
her aim an arrow at me. “Freeze,” she shouted.
“Hands up.” So much for being quiet.
I raised my hands and cursed myself for not reestablishing my link with the
bats. Through their eyes, I never would have tripped. She called to another
guard. “Stand up slowly,” she
ordered. “Leave your weapon.” My bow rested on the
ground within reach. She stepped closer and
peered at me in the semidarkness. The guard gasped and said, “Soulfinder.” I rolled as her weapon
twanged and snatched my bow. The arrow stuck the dirt. I jumped to my feet,
swinging my staff in a wide arc. The end of my weapon caught her behind her
ankles. I yanked her feet out from under her. She went down with a loud oath.
The black shape of her partner grew bigger as he ran toward us. Great. The air filled with a
strange rasp as if a person had pulled a rope from a wooden holder very fast.
The noise grew louder and came from all directions. The three of us stopped.
All thoughts of fighting banished as we searched for the source of the sound. A necklace snake
slithered past my legs. It aimed for the female guard and wrapped around her
with amazing speed. All my preconceptions about a slow-moving creature
dissipated. The other guard looked
at his partner and bolted. Another snake slid after him. The vibrations of the
necklace snakes and Chestnut’s drum thrummed in my chest. I projected into
Chestnut’s mind for an update. He kept the creatures from going after us, but
he didn’t know how long he could maintain control. Faster is better, he
said. Right. I switched my
awareness to Moon Man. He and Leif had marked the other four guards. They
waited with Marrok and Tauno for my signal. Running toward the
campfire, I avoided snakes, terrified guards and broke through the null shield.
I stumbled for a moment as an array of thoughts and emotions washed over me.
The air was charged with magic and fear. My panic pressed on my back, but I
forced myself to slow down. When I reached the edge
of the Vermin camp, my blood turned to ice. Three men pulled out the stomach of
one of the prone forms on the ground. The Vermin turned their attention to me,
their surprise evident in their openmouthed gapes. I had moved without
realizing it and stood in the middle of their camp, screaming at them to stop. 10WE BLINKED AT EACH OTHER
for a stunned moment. Blood and gore dripped from the Vermin’s hands. The three
men then returned to their macabre task, ignoring me. Astonished, I moved
toward them, raising my bow to strike when a blistering force slammed into me
from behind as if I’d been struck with a red-hot iron pan. I hit the ground hard.
My bow flew from my grasp. My breath whooshed out. Searing pain clung to my
back; I rolled over, convinced my clothes were on fire. Gasping for air, I
thrashed on the ground until I spotted what had attacked me. I froze in horror.
The Vermin’s campfire had grown to three times its previous size. A man stood
in the midst of the roaring bonfire. The man stepped from the
burning wood. Scorched black from head to toe, small flames clung to him like
feathers. He advanced toward me. I broke my paralysis and scrambled away from
him. He stopped. A trail of fire linked him with the campfire. “Did I surprise you, my
little bat?” the man asked. “Counted nine when there really were ten. Hot
little trick.” He knew my consciousness
had flown with the bats. But who was he? I scanned the
surrounding jungle, looking for my backup. Leif and my friends were at the edge
of the clearing. Their arms and hands were raised as if they protected their
faces from a searing wind. Sweat and soot stained their clothes and they
averted their gazes from the man. “No help from them, my
little bat. They will burn if they come any closer.” I tried to project into
the flaming man’s mind, but his mental defenses proved impenetrable, a Warper
of incredible strength. Running out of options, I glanced behind me and caught
sight of my bow. The blazing Warper
pointed and a line of fire appeared between me and my weapon. I jumped to my
feet. The heat singed the hair in my nose. The moisture evaporated from my
mouth. I tasted ashes. A wall of hot air pushed against me and the Warper was
before me. Yet his connection with the burning wood remained. “Fire is your downfall,
little bat. Can not call it. Can not control it.” My body roasted as if I
had been staked to a spit over a giant campfire. I cast my awareness into the
jungle, hoping to find help. Nothing but the panicked thoughts of my friends
and one curious necklace snake nearby. Just when I thought I
would faint, he extended his hands and a bubble of cool air caressed my skin.
The break from the heat was an intoxicating relief. I swayed. “Take my hands. I will
not burn you. Travel with me through the fire.” “Why?” “Because you belong to
me.” “Not good enough. Many
others have made that claim.” “I need you to complete
my mission.” “Which is…?” The flames on his
shoulders pulsed in amusement. He laughed. “Nice try. Take my offer or I will
burn you and your friends into a pile of ash.” “No.” Flaring brightly, the
flames jumped in size before he shrugged. “No matter.” The cold air disappeared
and I gasped. The heat’s intensity robbed my lungs of air. “I need only wait until
you go to sleep, little bat. Then I will take you.” My throat strained as my
vision scrambled. Sleep was a nice way of describing the process of
suffocation. It was a strange notion, but it gave me an idea. With my last bit of
energy, I grabbed a capsule from my pocket and crushed it in my hand. The
sticky liquid coated my palm, dripping down my arm. My legs buckled as I
collapsed to my knees. The last thing I remembered before the world melted was
a brown and green coil reaching for me. I woke, shivering.
Chestnut’s concerned face peered at me. He waved a large leaf, fanning me with
cool clean air. Exhaustion lined his brown eyes. “I guess that’s one
necklace snake who’ll go away hungry,” Chestnut said. “What do you mean?” I
asked, wincing at the sharp pain in my throat. When I tried to sit, I realized
we were on a tree branch. Chestnut helped me. “If
you died, I told the snake he could eat you.” He smiled. “I’m sorry to disappoint
him.” “No matter. Perhaps
we’ll have some extra Vermin to feed him.” His grin faded. I jerked as my memory
returned. “The Fire Warper! My father! The others! What—” Chestnut raised his
hand. “When the snake grabbed you and pulled you into the trees, he distracted
the Warper long enough for Leif to break through the wall of heat. With Moon
Man’s help, Leif was able to quench the link between the main fire and the
Warper.” Chestnut glanced away. “The Warper disappeared.” He shuddered. “The remaining
Vermin ran off, with Moon Man, Tauno and Marrok chasing after them.” “And Leif?” “Below with your
father.” Before I could ask,
Chestnut said, “He’s fine. Although I fear Stono will not live to see the
dawn.” Sudden purpose energized
me. “Help me get down.” My limbs trembled as I
slid and crashed through the lower branches. I hit the ground hard, but didn’t
stop until I stood next to Leif. He had Stono’s head in his lap. My gaze shied
away from the gruesome mess that used to be Stono’s stomach. My father and the
other scout lay on the ground next to them, unmoving—still paralyzed by the
Curare. I couldn’t see my friends. “Where are the others?”
I asked. “They haven’t returned,”
Chestnut said. He sank to the ground next to Leif and took Stono’s left hand in
his own. “At least he isn’t
feeling any pain,” Leif whispered. Streaks of soot and sweat lined Leif’s face.
Burn holes peppered his clothes. He reeked of smoke and body odor. I knelt beside Leif. I
put two fingers on Stono’s neck and felt a tentative heartbeat. Stono groaned
and his eyelids fluttered. “He’s not paralyzed like
the others so the Kirakawa ritual could work,” I said. “Can you save him?” Leif
asked. Stono’s wounds were
fatal. I hadn’t healed anyone with such extensive damage before. Tula’s windpipe had been crushed when she was killed. I was able to repair the damage, but
couldn’t “wake” her without her soul. Why not? According to Roze’s fire
scenario, I had the power to create a soulless army. “Yelena.” Leif’s
impatience cut through my musings. “Can you save him?” Would I be able to save
myself once I assumed his injuries? I drew in a shaky breath. Only one way to
find out. Closing my eyes, I
pulled power and wrapped thick strands of magic around my stomach. I reached
for Stono and forced myself to examine the bloody distended mass, seeing his
wounds through my magic. His wounds pulsed with an urgent red glow as I focused
on them. Without warning, Stono’s
heart stopped its labor and his soul rose from his body. Instinct drove my
actions as I breathed in his soul from the air and tucked it into a safe corner
of my mind. I ignored his confused thoughts, concentrating on his injuries. My
stomach exploded with the pain of a million sharp knives digging deep into my
guts. Clutching my abdomen, I curled into a ball. Blood coated my hands, arms,
and pooled on the ground. The air filled with the hot stench of body fluids. I struggled to push the
pain away, but it clung to me, eating its way through my spine and toward my
heart. Leif’s voice battered at my ears. He wanted something. Annoyed by his
persistence, I transferred my attention to him for a moment. His energy flooded
my body. We stopped the advance of pain, but we couldn’t conquer it. It was
only a matter of time before our strength failed and we would lose the battle. Moon Man’s resigned
voice sounded in my mind. I can not leave you alone. What made you believe you
could counter the power of the Kirakawa ritual on your own? I didn’t— Know? Think? Does it
matter now? Moon Man’s blue energy added
to Leif’s and together the three of us banished the pain. I reached for Stono and
laid my hand on his smooth stomach. Go back, I instructed his soul. A tingling
sting pulsed down my arm. When I felt his gasp for breath, I pulled my hand
back. Too exhausted to move, I
fell asleep where I lay. At one point a hand
shook me into semiconsciousness. “Theobroma?” Leif asked,
his voice a distant call. My tired thoughts
slogged through a fog. “Pack,” I muttered. “Where?” Leif shook me again. I
batted at his arms, but he wouldn’t stop. “Where?” “Backpack. In jungle.
Snake.” “I’ll go,” Chestnut
said. His retreating footsteps
lulled me back to sleep. I woke choking on a
foul-tasting liquid. Coughing, I sat up and spit. “You still need to drink
the rest,” my father said. He offered me a cup. “What is it?” I clasped
the mug. The green-colored contents smelled like swamp water. “Soursop tea. Restores
the body’s strength. Now drink.” I grimaced and put the
cup to my lips, but couldn’t produce the nerve to consume it. Esau sighed. Blood and
dirt matted his shoulder-length gray hair. He looked older than his fifty
years. Weariness pulled at his broad shoulders. “Yelena, I would like to get
home. And your mother must be having fits by now.” Good point. Cringing at
the rancid flavor, I gulped the tea. My raw throat burned as I swallowed the
liquid, but, after a few moments, I felt more awake and energetic. The sun loomed high in
the sky and the clearing was empty. “Where is everyone?” I asked. Esau grunted. “I’ll tell
you on the way home.” He stood. Spotting my backpack
nearby, I checked through the contents before shouldering the pack. My bow
rested on the ground next to a wide scorch mark. I hefted the weapon, running
my hands along the ebony wood. It appeared to be unharmed. A nice surprise
since, during the skirmish, I had thought the Fire Warper had reduced my bow to
a pile of ash. A hot flush of fear
raced over my skin when I thought of the Fire Warper. I had never encountered
magic like his. I had been completely unprepared to fight him, and I couldn’t
think of anyone in Sitia who could match his power. But what about in Ixia? My
thoughts turned to Valek. Would his immunity to magic save him from the Fire
Warper’s flames? Or would he be consumed? “Come on, Yelena,” Esau
said. I shook off my morbid
thoughts and followed my father from the clearing. He set a quick pace, and,
once I caught up to him, I asked him what had happened after I had fallen
asleep. He huffed in amusement.
“Passed out, you mean?” “I had just saved Stono’s
life. And yours, too.” Stopping, Esau grabbed
me in a tight hug. “I know. You did good.” He released me just as
fast as he had seized me and continued through the jungle. I hurried after. “The others?” I asked. “You were asleep for a
full day. We thought it best for Leif and Chestnut to take Stono and Barken
back to the homestead. The Sandseeds and the other Ixian fellow never came
back.” I stopped. “They could
be in trouble.” “Two Sandseed warriors
and a swordsman against three Daviians? I doubt it.” “How about against three
Vermin with Curare?” “Ah, hell!” Esau spit.
“I wish I had never discovered that foul substance!” He pounded his fists on
his thighs. “I had hoped the supply they stole from the Sandseeds would be
almost gone by now.” “You extracted the drug
from a vine in the jungle?” “Yes.” “So how do they know how
to make more?” I wondered out loud. “And where are they
making it?” Esau glanced around. “Maybe in the jungle. I’m going to cut down
every single Curare vine and burn it,” Esau vowed. I put a hand on my
father’s arm. “Remember why you searched for it. There’re plenty of good uses.
Our immediate concern should be for Moon Man and the others. I’m going to try
to contact him.” Gathering power, I
projected my mind into the surrounding jungle. My awareness touched a variety
of life. Valmurs swung through the tree canopy, birds perched on branches, and
other small creatures scurried through the underbrush. But I couldn’t locate
Moon Man’s cool thoughts. Did the Vermin have him
hidden behind a null shield? Was he dead? I searched for Tauno and Marrok, also
to no avail. My father said, “Let’s
go home and figure out a way to find them. All of them, including the
Curare-making Vermin.” He reminded me of the
other Vermin guards we had sprayed with the snake perfume. “We can question the
Daviian guards. Are they at our homestead?” Esau tugged on his
stained tunic as if deciding how to tell me something unpleasant. “When you
were picked up by that snake, the creature wasn’t happy to discover you weren’t
a female snake. So in order for Chestnut to keep you from being devoured, he
had to concentrate all his efforts on saving you.” He paused. “And that means…?” “He lost control of the
other snakes.” “The guards are dead?” “An unfortunate
development, but there is an upside,” Esau said. “Which is?” “Now there are four very
full necklace snakes who won’t be bothering the Zaltanas for a long while.” I washed as much dried
blood and sticky gore from my body as I could in the small stream flowing
underneath my clan’s homestead. My mother would worry and fuss over my
disheveled appearance despite the fact I would be standing before her safe and
sound. Climbing the ladder into
the tree canopy, I mulled over recent events. There might be a group of Daviian
Vermin working in the jungle, gathering vines and distilling Curare. I had no
idea where Ferde and Cahil had gone or where my friends had disappeared to. And
there was a Fire Warper on the loose who could possibly jump out of any
campfire in Sitia. My life in Ixia as the Commander’s food taster sounded like
a vacation in comparison. Why had I wanted to
leave Ixia? An order for my execution for being a magician had been one
compelling reason to escape to Sitia. That and wanting to meet my family, whom
I had no memories of until Moon Man unlocked them. Well, I’d met my parents and
the execution order had been revoked. The thought of returning to Valek and
Ixia tempted me. I reached the top of the
ladder and arrived into a small receiving room made of branches tied together.
Esau hadn’t waited. The Zaltana guard stationed there informed me my father
would meet me in my parents’ living quarters. Walking toward their
apartment, I marveled at the ingenuity and craftsmanship of the vast complex of
living areas built above the jungle floor. The Zaltanas were resourceful and
determined and stubborn. All traits I had been accused of possessing. I wondered if those
qualities would be enough to counter the Fire Warper. Did I have the experience
or magical knowledge to find Moon Man, recapture Ferde and stop the Vermin from
killing more people? The daunting and
overwhelming to-do list would not deter me from making the attempt or die
trying. But how many would be hurt or killed in the process because of me? 11I NEVER REACHED my
parents’ suite. My cousin Nutty intercepted me en route, relaying a message to
go to the common room. She scrunched up her face and tsked over my ripped and
stained clothes. “I have a change in my
pack,” I told her. “Let’s see then.” She
held out her long thin arms, waiting. Knowing it was useless
to argue with her, I opened my bag and showed her the other set of skirt/pants
and cotton top she had sewn for me. I thought a lifetime’s worth of events had
happened since then, but in reality it had only been two seasons. Nutty examined the
clothes with a dismayed purse to her full lips. “You’ll need some new ones.
I’ll make them for you.” With a slight nod of farewell, she hopped up into the
tree branches with the grace and speed of a valmur, disdaining the practical
rope bridge. “Oh, snake spit,” she
called from above. “I’m supposed to fetch Uncle Esau and Aunt Perl.” She
changed directions and disappeared through the trees. I reached the common
room. Oran, Violet, Chestnut and the two scouts stood together. My strong
relief over the absence of a fire in the central pit alarmed me. If I was
afraid of a simple hearth fire, what would I do when faced with the Fire Warper
again? I avoided thinking about that scenario and focused my attention on the
matter at hand. When he saw me, Stono
sat down. His face drained of color, and I worried he would faint. He muttered
a thank-you to the floor, evading my gaze. Oran and Violet continued to
question Chestnut on the necklace snakes. Chestnut stammered and
fidgeted. “I wanted to help.” “You didn’t have our
permission,” Oran said. “And now how many are dead?” “Six,” Chestnut said in
a quiet voice. “Good for you, Chessie,”
Stono said. “I wish you had killed them all. Pulled out their guts and
strangled them with it!” Stono’s eyes lit with murderous intensity. The elders rounded on
Stono. Shock mirrored on their faces. Violet recovered first.
“Stono, you’ve had a difficult time. Why don’t you go and get some rest,” she
ordered. He stood on trembling
legs and shuffled a few steps, but paused next to me. “I’ll kill the snake
that tried to eat you if you want,” he whispered in my ear. “Let me know what I
can kill for you.” I turned to protest, but
he moved away. “What did he say?” Oran asked. What, indeed? An offer
of revenge on a snake or something more disturbing. “He said he would like to
help me.” “Not without our
permission.” Oran puffed up his chest with importance. “You can’t just use our
clan members as your personal army. Taking Chestnut into an unknown, dangerous
situation that could have killed him was wrong.” I had had enough of Oran
Cinchona Zaltana. Stepping close to him, I said, “Could have, but didn’t. If we
had waited for your permission, you would have lost three clan members. And I
wouldn’t debate too long on how you’re going to search for a possible nest of
Vermin living in your jungle. If you wait too long, they’re liable to
multiply.” “What are you talking
about?” Violet asked. It was then that Esau
and Perl joined us. Having heard my warning, Mother touched her throat, and my
father’s grim expression deepened. “Father, could you
inform the elders about the potential threat? I have other business to attend
to,” I said. “Where are you going?”
Perl asked. “To find my friends.” I found Leif in our
parents’ quarters. He was sound asleep on the couch and it occurred to me that
I didn’t know if he had his own rooms within the Zaltana homestead. Esau had
knocked down the wall to Leif’s room to expand his work area. Unwilling to
bother my brother, I tiptoed past him and went up to my room. Soon the sun
would set and I wanted to fly with the bats. Lying down on my narrow
bed, I felt sleep pull at me. I resisted, thinking of Moon Man. He had helped
me and Leif in healing Stono. Perhaps the effort had exhausted him and rendered
him unable to respond to my search. As the light dimmed, I
drew magic from the power source and projected my mind into the jungle. Finding
the collective consciousness of the bats, I joined in their nightly hunt for
food. I floated from one bat
to another, sensing the space below and around. On the lookout for any fires or
signs of people, I coasted through the air, feeling the sun leave the sky. I
wondered how the bats could know the size and shapes of their surroundings
without seeing them. Was it a skill I could learn? My magic let me feel living
beings, but I couldn’t sense anything from the lifeless objects in my path. The bats invaded every
section of the Illiais Jungle. Nestled below the Daviian Plateau, the jungle
wasn’t large. Two days of hard walking would see a person from one end to the
other. The Illiais Market marked the western border of the jungle. A few bats
swooped close to the market campfires, but they avoided the gritty air and
noisy crowds of people. I pulled my awareness
back. Having found no physical signs of Moon Man or the others in the jungle, I
decided Leif and I would travel to the market tomorrow. The market was the
rendezvous location we had set back on the plateau. If Moon Man followed the
Vermin from the jungle, he would eventually look for us there. I hoped. When I awoke the next
morning, a group of people were in my parents’ living area, all engaged in
animated conversation. “It’s your turn. I
delivered a wagonload of pummelo fruit last time,” Nutty said to Chestnut. “See?”
She held up her right hand. “I still have the blisters.” “I’m not stupid. They’re
from staying up all night finishing the clothes you owe Fern,” Chestnut
retorted. “It’s your turn to go to the market.” “You can’t go collecting
every single Curare vine, Esau. It will take you seasons,” Perl said. “And what
about the Vermin? If they caught you again—” Perl’s hand flew to her throat as
if she tried to block the emotion welling from her heart. “I’m not worried about
that,” Esau said. “I’m worried about what they can do with the Curare!” “Curare can be countered
with Theobroma,” Leif said to Esau. “We just need to make sure everyone has
enough with them.” “Is not my turn,” Nutty
said. “Is too,” Chestnut
countered. “Yelena!” Nutty cried,
spotting me. “I’ve made another pair of skirt/pants for you.” She held a light
blue-and-yellow print. “Thanks,” I said. “You
don’t have to go to the market, Nutty. I’ll deliver the clothes for you. And
Leif, Theobroma is good at regaining movement, but it leaves you helpless against
a magical attack. Father, can you find a way to get the Theobroma to work
against Curare without the side effects? That would be more helpful than
tearing down every vine. Besides, I couldn’t find any signs the Vermin are
collecting vines right now, but I think sending out well-armed scouts to search
the jungle from time to time would be a good idea.” “Yelena’s here,” Leif
said. “Problems solved,” he teased. “I’ll have an easier
time with the Theobroma than convincing Oran and Violet to send out reconnaissance
teams,” Esau said. “They want to huddle in our homestead and hide!” “I’ll handle Oran and Violet,” Perl said. Her face had set in a
determined frown, which she then turned on me. “You’re leaving us already?” “We need to rendezvous
with our horses and our other team members,” I said. “Are they at the
market?” Leif asked with a hopeful note in his voice. “Too many people for me
to determine. In any case we need to look for signs of Ferde and Cahil.” They
could be anywhere by now and doing unspeakable things. I shuddered as the image
of Stono’s ruined stomach rose in my mind. “Not without breakfast.”
Perl hurried toward the kitchen. “I’ll go get the
dresses.” Nutty bounded away. “I’d better get my pack
ready.” Leif smiled. “Never a dull day with you, little sister.” “What do you need?” Esau
asked me. “I’m running out of
Theobroma and Curare.” He went into the lift to
ascend to the second floor. Chestnut looked around at the suddenly quiet room.
He fidgeted, avoiding my gaze and I realized he wanted to talk about something
other than whose turn it was to go to the market. “Now’s the time,” I
said. “Once everyone comes back…” “I can’t…” He moved his
hands as if he wanted to pull his thoughts from the air. “I’m having trouble
getting past…” Wrapping his arms around his body, Chestnut rocked with
frustration. “How can you be so calm? Standing there, making plans, barking out
orders. Six people have died. Stono came back from the dead and now he’s
different—” “Different? How?” “It’s probably nothing.
He’s had a shock, but he’s harsher somehow.” Chestnut shook his head. “That’s
not the point. Six people killed by necklace snakes. That’s the point.” I understood his
problem. “You’ve never lost anyone to a snake before?” “No one. I know it’s not
a terrible death. At least they’re dead before they get swallowed. I’ve always
been kind of curious…” He cringed with guilt. “Curious to see a snake
devour its prey and you feel responsible for not stopping the snakes?” “Yes.” The word hissed
out. “Think of what would
have happened if the snakes had released the Vermin.” “You and Stono would
have died.” “I’m not happy about the
death of six people either, but, considering the alternative, I can rationalize
it in my mind.” A shiver raced over my skin. As long as I didn’t think about it
too much. “You asked how I can be so calm. I don’t have time not to be. I would
like to grieve and worry and carry on, but that doesn’t get results.” “And results are
important. Right, Yelena?” Leif asked as he entered the room. “One of the foremost
things the First Magician taught me when I arrived at the Keep was to leave all
sentimentality behind. Roze believes she was given the gift of magic to use for
a purpose and she can’t let guilt and remorse keep her from achieving that
purpose.” Leif rubbed his chin as his face settled into a thoughtful
expression. “You’re a lot like her.” “I am not,” I said. “It was a compliment.
You’re both intelligent. You’re doers. Natural leaders.” I disagreed. I didn’t
conduct myself like Roze. She was a tyrant who thought she knew everything and
didn’t stop to consider other options or other people’s views. I wasn’t like
that. Was I? “Although she has a bad
temper,” Leif said. “She was wrong about Ferde and Cahil’s direction. She’s not
going to be happy about it.” “That I would agree
with,” I said. “Agree with what?” Esau
asked. His arms brimmed with containers. Nutty arrived with her
stack of clothes, then Perl returned with a tray full of fruit and tea. By the
time we ate, the morning hours were gone. “We better go. It’ll be
a hard push to get to the market before dark,” Leif said. “Yelena, you have to
come back and have a proper visit,” my mother instructed. “Perhaps when your
life settles down.” She thought for a moment, and added, “Perhaps you can make
some time to visit. I don’t see things settling down for you for a long while.” “Do you know this from
your magic?” I asked. “No, dear. From your
history.” A smile quirked her lips before Perl’s stern mother expression
returned long enough for her to lecture me on being careful. With our backpacks
loaded, Leif and I climbed down the ladder to the jungle floor. He set a quick
pace and I hurried after him. When we stopped for a short rest, I tossed my
heavy pack down and rubbed my sore back. Now I could sympathize with a pack
horse…. Kiki! “Leif, does this trail
stay wide until the market?” “As long as no trees
have fallen over recently. The Zaltanas keep this pretty clear. Why?” “The horses.” He smacked his forehead
with a hand. I reached out with my
mind and searched for Kiki’s thoughts. She hid with Garnet and
Rusalka in the forest west of the market. Late, she said in my
mind. Dirty. Hungry. Come meet us on the
jungle trail? We’ll get to the market faster. Groomed faster. She agreed. Leif and I
continued to hike for a while in silence. The insects’ droning grew louder as
the sunlight began to wane. “I keep forgetting you
can communicate with horses,” Leif said. “I think you might be the first one in
Sitian history.” “Are you sure?” “All the Keep’s students
had to learn about past magicians and their powers, but Master Bloodgood would
know for sure.” Bain Bloodgood, Second
Magician, was a walking, talking history book. My list of questions grew longer
each day. I had so much to learn about magic and history. The sheer amount
overwhelmed me at times, and reminded me how unprepared I was. And how did I end up
with these Soulfinder powers? Both my parents hadn’t enough power to be invited
to the Keep so I hadn’t inherited them. Sheer dumb luck? Leif interrupted my
thoughts. “Do you know anyone else who can talk to horses?” “The Stable Master has
said he knows the horses’ moods and intentions, but he doesn’t hear their words
in his mind per se.” And he had looked at me as if I had grown wings when I
mentioned it to him. “How about in Ixia?” I considered. When the
Commander had taken control of Ixia over sixteen years ago, he had ordered
Valek, his chief of security, to assassinate all the magicians. Then, whenever
an Ixian developed the ability to use magic—usually after puberty—Valek would
assassinate the person if they hadn’t already escaped to Sitia. No magicians in
Ixia, but my thoughts did linger on Porter, the Commander’s kennel master. He
had an uncanny knack with the dogs, and he hadn’t needed leashes or a whistle to
get them to obey him. “Perhaps one other,” I
said. “Though he would never admit to it—that would be a death sentence.” “Maybe we could help
smuggle him to Sitia.” “I don’t think he would
want to come.” “Why not?” The idea
shocked Leif. “I’ll explain later.” I
didn’t have the energy to educate Leif about the Commander’s politics. Raised
in Sitia, Leif believed Ixia equaled a horrible place to live. That with Ixia’s
strict Code of Behavior, uniform requirement and having to obtain permits to
marry or move to another house, the citizens had to be extremely unhappy. Ixia
wasn’t perfect, but there were benefits to living there. For me, Valek was one. I missed seeing him
every day, missed discussing poisons and fighting tactics and missed having a
soul mate who knew what I needed before I did. I sighed. Better to have an
immunity to magic like Valek than to be this feared Soulfinder. A Soulfinder,
and completely useless against a Fire Warper. The Commander’s views on
magic didn’t seem so extreme now. Magic was messy. And what the Vermin had done
to increase their powers remained more horrible than anything I had witnessed
in Ixia. “Leif, what about that
Fire Warper?” I asked. Since the incident in the jungle, I hadn’t had time to
discuss it with him. “Have you seen a magician step from a fire before?” “No. Roze Featherstone
can make huge fires that’ll consume whole buildings, but she’ll burn if she
gets too close to one. Since you’ve come home, I’ve been seeing all types of
strange magic. You bring out the best and the worst in people,” Leif tried to
joke. I failed to be amused.
“The Vermin are using old magical rituals. Do you know anything about them?” “The Sandseed Story
Weavers’ powers are legendary. They used to be called Efe Warriors. I had
thought the stories of these Warriors were exaggerated.” Leif paused for a
moment. “Until now. Two thousand years ago, well before the Sitian clans
united, the Efe Tribe dominated the others. Using blood magic, the Efes had no
rivals. The other clans would give them whatever they wanted. Food, gold or
sacrifices, hoping to placate them. A disagreement erupted between the Efe
rulers and a civil war started. The ensuing battle flattened the Daviian Mountains.” “Mountains?” “Now a plateau.” “Oh my.” “Right. After that a new
leader named Guyan took control of the tribe’s survivors. He declared he would
plant the seeds for a new tribe in the sands that fell when the mountains were
destroyed. That’s how they got the name Sandseed and their magicians were then
called Story Weavers.” The rumble of hooves
interrupted Leif’s tale. Kiki’s face was a welcome sight, although her blue
eyes looked tired and mud covered her copper-colored coat. Garnet and Rusalka
hadn’t fared any better. Leif and I fed and
watered the horses. I wanted to groom them and let them rest, but Leif insisted
we get to the market first. “Too many predators at
night,” Leif said. “The horses will attract every tree leopard in the jungle.” Market not far, Kiki
said. Jungle smells…odd. We mounted and galloped
toward the market. Being with us, the horses didn’t have to hide and we groomed
them near the Zaltana campfire behind the market buildings as the sun began to
set. Many clans had built permanent sites for their members to stay while
trading or purchasing goods. The Illiais Market did
not close until late into the evening hours. An array of torches was lit to
allow business to continue, although the commotion of customers bidding,
arguing and shopping quieted in the evenings. After the horses were
settled, I strolled quickly through the collection of bamboo buildings topped
with thatched roofs. Most of the owners had the bamboo shade walls down to
block the cold night breeze. When I had been here before, it had been the
beginning of the hot season, and the shades had been rolled up to help cool the
workers. Scanning the people at
the market, I searched for Moon Man. I stopped a few customers and asked if
anyone had seen my friends. One stand owner recalled spotting some men running
through the market a few days ago, but he couldn’t describe them. My imagination kicked in
and visions of Moon Man, Tauno and Marrok staked to the ground for the Kirakawa
ritual filled my mind. Hidden behind a null shield, I wouldn’t be able to find
them, and every minute we delayed was another minute for Cahil and Ferde. Focusing on the task at
hand, I breathed in the market’s smells to ease the tightness in my chest. The
exotic spices offered by the Greenblade Clan mixed with the smell of roasting
meat. My stomach growled with hunger. Before I could stop to eat, I delivered
the package of clothes to Fern. The small woman huffed with relief. “I thought Nutty
wouldn’t have them done in time,” she exclaimed from behind a table piled with
bolts of cloth. “I thought you sold
fabric,” I said. “I’m expanding my
business. Nutty’s getting quite the reputation.” “Is that good or bad?” I
asked. “Both. A few of the
Greenblade women have gotten tired of their plain green tunics and leggings and
wanted a more colorful wardrobe. They’ve been buying every single one of
Nutty’s shirts, dresses and skirt/pants. I supply the cloth and we split the
profits. However, the clan elders are not too happy about the break with
tradition.” As a forest-dwelling
clan, the Greenblades usually wore the colors of the forest. I glanced around
and, sure enough, spotted a few women wearing Nutty’s bright cotton creations.
I had assumed they were Zaltanas, but upon closer examination, I could see the
lighter maple coloring of the Greenblade’s skin. In Ixia, I knew which
Military District someone lived in by the color of their uniform. Here, it was
all a matter of knowing how each clan preferred to dress. Interesting. “Yelena, do you need
some new material?” Fern asked. She pulled out a bolt of fabric from under her
table. “I just finished this beautiful green pattern. See?” She held it up to
the torchlight. “Just a hint of gold woven through the fabric. Matches your
eyes perfectly.” I laughed. “You’re quite
the saleswoman. But Nutty just made me another outfit.” Undaunted, Fern found
another bolt. The rich gold color caught my attention as soon as she spread it
out. “This would be for the shirt.” She watched me for a moment. “Should I send
this to Nutty for you?” “You’re evil,” I said. She grinned. “I’m only
thinking about what’s best for my customers.” “And your cash box.” A predatory smile
flashed on her face. I paid her for the material and left before she could
convince me I needed another set. I bought some Avibian honey for the Stable
Master before buying some grilled beef to eat as I searched through the other
market stands. Items displayed for sale or trade included handcrafts, clothing,
fruit and baked goods. I stopped for a minute
to examine an intricate silver ring that held a black moonstone. Putting it
down, I dismissed the thought of purchasing the ring. Only a few coins remained
of the money I had earned as a Magician’s Aide. Besides, I already wore
a butterfly pendant and snake bracelet. Both had been carved and gifted to me
by Valek. I fingered the pendant on my chest, wondering about Valek. Was he in his carving
room, creating another animal statue? Perhaps he was discussing military
tactics with Ari and Janco or dueling with Maren. She had taught me how to
fight with a bow, and Maren’s own skills had improved. Perhaps she was with
Valek right now, working on some complicated project that required them to be
together every day. Maybe Valek would forget about me. Be content to have Maren
by his side. No. I forced myself to
ignore those thoughts. I had plenty to worry about without creating phantom
worries. Determined, I headed back to our campsite. Perhaps another magical
sweep of the area would reveal Moon Man and the others to me. Leif and I waited
another day for some sign of Moon Man. I prowled around the market, cursing under
my breath. Each minute we delayed reduced the possibility of recapturing Cahil
and Ferde. I scanned the forest with my magic, connecting with the woodland
creatures. The area remained serene. Undisturbed. That night we discussed
our next move. Sitting by the fire, I stared at the flames. My bow was within
reach, but I didn’t believe the weapon would do much damage against the Fire
Warper. “We should go back to
the Citadel,” Leif said. “That makes the most sense.” “What about the
Sandseeds? They left their clan unprotected in the plains. They might need
help, and we should tell them about Moon Man and Tauno.” “Tell them what? That we
lost them? I’d rather tell them Tauno is afraid of heights and Moon Man is
claustrophobic.” And I would rather have
them with us. Delaying the decision, I said, “Our direction of travel is the
same for either the Citadel or the plains. Tomorrow we’ll go north.” Leif agreed. He spread
his bedroll by the fire and lay down. Using Kiki’s saddle as a pillow, I put my
cloak on and tried to get comfortable on the cold ground next to Leif. “You should move closer
to the fire. You’ll freeze,” Leif said. “I’m fine.” He was quiet for a
while. “Perhaps Moon Man and the others are lost.” “Doubtful. If they were
lost in the jungle, I would have found them.” “Marrok’s afraid of
getting lost,” Leif said in a soft voice. “And you’re afraid of—” “Leif, go to sleep. We
have a long day tomorrow.” I rolled over, turning my back to him. I didn’t want
him to put a name to my fear. Naming it made it true. Cold and uncomfortable,
I tossed and turned, trying to sleep. Disturbing dreams of fire and death
invaded my mind. Flames would spark in a benevolent dream, here and there until
they multiplied and consumed the picturesque scene, burning the images into a
storm of black ash. I woke coughing on imaginary smoke, my body coated with
sweat. To avoid the nightmares,
I watched the moon rise above the forest’s trees. When Ferde had been on his
soul-stealing rampage, the Master Magicians and I theorized the timing of his
ritual murders were linked to the phases of the moon. We were wrong. He just
needed enough time to torture his victims into submitting their wills to him so
he could steal their souls when they died. The old Efe symbols and ritual he
used to collect their souls would have made him the most powerful magician in
Sitia if he been able to gather all twelve of them. Valek and I had stopped
him from absorbing Gelsi’s soul and completing the ritual, but now he was free
to try again. And Cahil helped him. How could he? I couldn’t really believe
Cahil would get involved after witnessing what Ferde did to those girls. But he
had assisted with Ferde’s escape from the Keep’s protective cells, and now
traveled with him. Was he that greedy for power? He could no longer claim the
Ixian throne. Did he want to rule Sitia instead? I studied the moon.
Waxing toward full, the bright disk lit the landscape. I wondered about the
moon’s power and why certain things like the Kirakawa ritual needed the moon’s
presence to work. I could feel the invisible layer of power blanketing the sky,
but I felt nothing from the moon. In a subtle flicker of
the light, Moon Man coalesced out of a blue shaft of moonlight as if he had
been summoned by my thoughts. He stood next to our fire without clothes or his
weapon. Are you a dream? I asked
him. Deep lines of exhaustion
etched his face, but he managed a weary smile and said, Perhaps I have always
been a dream. What do you think? I think I’m too tired to
discuss Story Weaver philosophy with you right now. And if you’re not real,
then, at least, make yourself useful and tell me where you really are! I am here. Moon Man
slumped to his knees. 12I JUMPED TO MY FEET and
ran to Moon Man’s prone form by the campfire. Wrapping my cloak around Moon
Man’s muscular shoulders, I shared energy with him. “Are you all right? What
happened? Where are the others?” I asked. “Everyone is fine. I
will explain later.” He pulled the edge of my cloak closer to his face. “Will you? Or will you
just spout some vague details in typical Story Weaver style?” He answered with a soft
snore. I suppressed the desire
to share more power with him and wake him. Sleep was the best way for Moon Man
to recover his strength after using magic. Unfortunately, I couldn’t sleep. I
grabbed an extra blanket from Leif’s saddlebags and spread it over Moon Man. My cloak didn’t seem adequate protection for him against the chilly night air.
Despite my reluctance, I added some logs and coaxed the fire into a warm blaze. As I stared at the dancing
flames, I wondered what other surprises waited for me. The answers would be
revealed in time, but my ability to deal with them remained uncertain. Even with the loud calls
of shoppers and stand owners from the bustling market, Moon Man didn’t wake
until the sun reached its apex. By the time the Story Weaver finished eating
the meal Leif had thoughtfully prepared for him, my impatience had built up
enough energy that I could probably scale a smooth tree without the aid of a
rope. “Tell us everything,” I
demanded before he could swallow his final bite. He smiled at my
agitation. Weariness still pulled at his features, but his eyes sparked with an
amused glint. “And don’t try any of
that cryptic Story Weaver mumbo jumbo or I’ll…” “What?” Moon Man asked. “I’ll hurt you. Bad. So
talk.” Moon Man glanced at
Leif. My brother shrugged.
“I’ve seen her swinging that stick around. Now, if you had your scimitar…” “Too risky,” Moon Man
said. He saw the rising fury in my eyes and wisely began telling us what had happened. “After you and Leif
distracted the Fire Warper, we chased the Vermin through the jungle. And would
have caught them if you had not needed my help.” Moon Man aimed a pointed stare
at me. “How is the scout?” “Alive and well,” I
said. “Back to his old self?” I hesitated, but I
wouldn’t let Moon Man change the subject. “He’s fine. Continue your story.” “Helping you drained all
my energy and I needed to rest for a while,” Moon Man said. “Marrok tracked the
Vermin to the Illiais Market and then north to the city of Booruby. It is a
thriving place and we lost the Vermin’s trail. Too many people.” He shuddered. The motion
reminded me of Leif’s claim that Moon Man was claustrophobic. The city was the
complete opposite of the wide open space of his home in the Avibian Plains.
Located at the northern tip of the Cowan Clan’s lands, Booruby’s eastern side
bordered the plains, and was too far for my magic to reach. “Where are the others?”
Leif asked. “We rented a room at one
of the inns. I left Tauno and Marrok there to hunt down any information about
the Daviians while I rejoined you.” Leif looked around the
campsite. “How, exactly, did you get here?” Moon Man grinned. “A
secret Story Weaver power.” “You used the
moonlight,” I said. He beamed his approval.
“I came through the shadow world. Moonlight reveals the world of shadows,
allowing access.” “Is that where you
showed me the story of my life?” I asked, remembering the dark plain that had
transformed into visions of my childhood. “Yes. It is a place
where I unravel story threads to help others learn from their past as they
weave their future.” “Is it a physical
place?” I had been there twice. The second time Moon Man had brought Leif and
me to untangle our knots of hostility and anger toward each other. Each time,
though, I had felt intangible, as if my body had turned into smoke. “It exists in the
shadows of our world.” “Can anyone with magical
powers get into the shadow world?” “So far, only Story
Weavers have the ability. But I am waiting to see if there is another who is
brave enough to claim that gift.” His eyes met mine, and I caught a glimpse of
shadows. I looked away. Breaking the silence,
Leif said, “However you arrived, you still need to work on your transportation
skills. Maybe next time you can bring some clothes along with you.” Leif and I bought Moon
Man a tan-colored tunic and pants, and we purchased supplies for the trip.
Packing the saddlebags, I readied the horses. Moon Man would ride Garnet until
we reached Booruby. We went north, taking a
well-used path through the forest. I scanned our surroundings with my magic,
but thought the odds of being ambushed remained low because of all the other
caravans and travelers crowding the trail. Leif also used his magic to smell
the intentions of the Vermin, but he couldn’t discern anything. Once we reached Booruby,
we would find the others and decide our next move. I brooded over the fact we
had lost the Vermin and worried about which direction Cahil and Ferde had gone.
Back to the plains or plateau? Or engaging in another scheme to gain power? Ferde had kidnapped Tula from her home in Booruby. His only victim found alive, Tula had been sent to the
Magician’s Keep. I healed her body and found her soul only to lose both to
Ferde. Guilt welled in my throat. His freedom ate at my heart. I tightened my grip on
the reins, causing Kiki to snort in agitation. Sorry. I relaxed. I was
thinking about Ferde and Cahil. Peppermint Man like
apple, Kiki said, referring to Cahil. Why do you say that? I
knew Kiki loved apples. He black apple. No one
wants. I saw an image of
rotting apples on the ground. Bad. But good come. Kiki showed how the
seeds inside grew roots and became a tree after the apple decayed. Are you
saying a good thing might come from Peppermint Man? Or if he dies, it would be
beneficial? Yes. Cryptic horse advice?
Well now I could die happy—I’d heard it all. Two days later, we
reached Booruby. Clusters of wooden and stone houses marked the outskirts of
the city. The forest thinned. And the clear air fogged to a haze of smoke, coal
dust and sawdust that hovered over the main street’s buildings. The thick air
assaulted us with the smells of garbage mixed with human waste. People bustled
along the walkways and wagons full of goods choked the roads. Stores and stands
had been wedged between factories and business offices. Moon Man’s alarmed face
showed his discomfort as we maneuvered our horses through the crowded streets.
He led us to the Three Ghosts Inn. The stone-faced building leaned its narrow
four-story height against its neighbor. Through a tight alley, we led the
horses to an empty stable just big enough to hold six horses. The stalls were clean
and had fresh straw and water. A stable boy soon joined us as we took off the
horses’ saddles. The quiet boy helped us groom and feed them. He shot me a shy
smile when I tipped him. We had passed a number
of inns on our way into the city. “Why this inn?” I asked Moon Man as we
carried our bags through the alley. “I liked the name.
Although…” He paused as if deep in thought. “Although?” I prompted. “I have not encountered
the three ghosts. Perhaps you will have better luck.” I laughed. “You don’t
really believe in ghosts?” Moon Man stopped and I
bumped into him. He turned around, revealing his shocked expression. “How can
you not? They are lost souls. You can help them find their way. Like you did
for Reyad.” I put a hand out to
steady myself. “Reyad was…” The man I had killed in Ixia. The reason I had been
awaiting execution before Valek offered me the food taster’s job. “How did
you—” “Story Weaver, remember?
I know all the threads that are woven into your life.” “But I thought his ghost
had been my imagination. A manifestation of my fears. Why haven’t I seen any
others? If I can help them, why aren’t they all around me?” “Perhaps they are and
you do not wish to see them.” “This is weird,” Leif
said. I agreed with him. My
skin crawled with goose bumps, imagining being surrounded by invisible ghosts. “I could teach—” “Let’s get inside.” I
cut off Moon Man’s offer. Of all the things I wished he would teach me, seeing
ghosts wasn’t high on my list. “Yes, let’s. I’m
hungry.” Leif patted his stomach. We entered into a common
area. Wooden tables and long benches scarred with hard use lined the slender
room. A fire crackled in the stone hearth, but the area was empty. “Dinner’s a few hours
off,” a woman said. She leaned from a doorway near the back wall. Spotting Moon
Man, she smiled and walked toward us. “Mr. Moon! I’m so glad you’re back. Your
friends left this morning, but I suspect they’ll be coming back for dinner. Mr.
Tauno loves my vegetable stew.” The woman’s steel-gray
hair was pulled back into a bun. Small wisps of hair framed her oval face. Her
fair skin caused me to wonder if she was a refugee from Ixia. When the Commander
had launched his campaign to take over Ixia, many Ixians fled to Sitia before
the Commander closed the border. The innkeeper scanned
Leif and me with bright intelligence in her sky-blue eyes. Her gaze lingered on
my hands before returning to Moon Man. “Will you be needing
another room?” she asked. “Yes. Mrs. Floranne,
this is Yelena and Leif.” She wiped her hands on
her apron before shaking our hands. “I’ll be showing you to your rooms, then.” We followed her up the
stairs. Stopping on the third floor, she led us down the slim hallway. She
opened the second door on the left. “This’ll be Miss
Yelena’s room. Will Mr. Leif be staying with you, Mr. Moon, or do you need
another room?” Sweat beaded Moon Man’s
face and he glanced around the tight hallway as if seeking a way out. “Leif can stay with me,”
I said, spotting two beds inside the tiny room. Disapproval radiated
from Mrs. Floranne’s stiff demeanor, but before she could comment I added,
“He’s my brother.” Her face softened and
she relaxed. “I’ll be ringing the bell when dinner’s ready. Don’t be late.” She
left us alone. Leif stifled a giggle.
“Interesting place you found here, Mr. Moon.” “If Leif had been my
lover instead of my brother, would she have let us stay together?” “I do not know,” Moon
Man said. “Perhaps the ghosts
dislike improper behavior,” Leif said, laughing. Moon Man went to his
room down the hall to check if Tauno or Marrok had left us a message. I mulled
over Leif’s comment as we put our few belongings on the beds. “Is it considered improper
if Valek and I…? You know.” “Yelena,” Leif said with
mock indignation. “Don’t tell me you and Valek—” “Just answer the
question.” “Some clans like the
Bloodgood Clan are very strict and require a couple to be married before living
together. Others, like the Zaltanas, prefer a couple to marry, but don’t get
upset if they’re not. Then there are the Sandseeds who don’t even believe in
marriage. They just do what they want.” He spread his arms wide. “With their
aversion to wearing clothes, I don’t understand why the Sandseed Clan isn’t
overrun with children.” “We are careful with our
seeds of life,” Moon Man said from the doorway. “I did not find a note. Do you
want to take a walk through the city? I need…” His gaze traveled around the
room. “It is better for me outside.” Leif licked his lips. “I
don’t know. I don’t want to miss dinner. That vegetable stew’ll be smelling
good.” “Do not worry. We will
hear the bell. The entire city knows when the Three Ghosts Inn is having
dinner.” We left the inn and
wandered through the streets. I used my magic at different locations to find a
sign of the Vermin, but there were just too many people around. Their thoughts
and emotions crashed against me, and I blocked them out to avoid being
overwhelmed. Leif, too, was inundated with smells. We searched the city and
listened for any snippets of information. A sparkle drew my gaze.
Rows and rows of glass animals were displayed inside a store window. The
beautiful jewel colors of the statues radiated as if a fire had been captured
within their cores. They reminded me of Tula. She had sculpted animals with
glass from her family’s factory. Had she created these animals? Was this her
family’s store? I peered through the
window but couldn’t see past the display. Should I go in and ask? Perhaps her
family wouldn’t want to see me again. Considering what had happened to Tula and her sister, Opal, I wouldn’t blame them for hating me. After all, the only reason
Opal had been kidnapped after Tula had died had been to exchange her life for mine.
At the time, I had thought Ferde held Opal, but it had been Alea Daviian,
seeking revenge for the death of her brother, Mogkan. Another man whose death I
had been part of. In Ixia, Mogkan had been
power-hungry. He had taken control of not only Commander Ambrose’s mind, but
the minds of thirty innocent people. He deserved to die, but Alea had failed to
see it my way, and now she was also dead. I sighed. I should stay far away from
Opal and her family. Death followed me. And
perhaps ghosts as well? Was Alea or Mogkan’s ghost haunting me? I held my hands
out and turned in a circle, spinning my arms. Nothing. Leif and Moon Man were
engaged in a debate half a block away. I stepped toward them. “Yelena!” a voice called
from behind. A woman carrying a small
crate hustled along the sidewalk. A white kerchief covered her hair, and, even
though soot smudged her face and hands, I recognized Opal’s bright smile and I
couldn’t resist giving her a quick hug. “What are you doing
here?” she asked. “I have some business.”
Before she could ask what kind, I hurried on. “Is this your family’s store?” I
pointed to the glass shop. “Oh no. Our factory is
on the east side of town, practically in the plains. We sell our glassware
through a bunch of stores in Booruby. You have to come visit us!” She twisted
her hands together. “That is, if you want to.” She averted her face. “I mean
after what I did…” Opal yanked her focus
from the ground and met mine with a sudden intensity. The shy, uncertain girl
who had come to the Keep transformed in front of my eyes. “Let me make it up to
you. You will come visit.” “You did nothing wrong,”
I said with conviction. “You have nothing to make up for.” “But I pricked you with
Curare!” “Alea forced you. And I
must admit, that was a pretty good trick.” I had thought once Opal was freed,
the danger was gone. A near fatal mistake. “But—” “You can’t let the past
ruin your future. Let’s call it even and start anew.” “Agreed. Can you come to
dinner this evening?” she asked. Then her mouth dropped in shock and she
stepped back. Moon Man loomed behind
me, blocking the sunlight. “You’ll not be missing
dinner,” Leif said, copying Mrs. Floranne’s lilt. Opal relaxed a bit when
she saw Leif. “You can come too. And…your friend?” I understood Opal’s
fear. At first glance, Moon Man resembled Ferde. But Opal had only gotten a
brief glimpse of Ferde through her sister’s memories so she could not really
compare the two. I introduced her to the Story Weaver. “I think I should wait
for Tauno and Marrok to return,” Moon Man said. “You and Leif go. I will see
you later tonight.” Moon Man raised his
eyebrows, giving me a signal. I opened my mind to him. Perhaps her family will
have some information about the Vermin. Ask them. Yes, sir, I replied. He flashed me a smile
before he left. Opal hurried into the store to finish her deliveries. While
Leif and I waited for her, I returned to examining the glass animal statues in
the window. Leif joined me. “Look at how they glow!”
he said. “Which one would you pick? The snake?” “No. I’ve had my fill of
snakes. I like the horse, but the eyes are the wrong color. They should be
blue.” Leif laughed. “You’re
biased. I’d buy the tree leopard. The detail is amazing. I wonder how the
artist is able to get the leopard’s green and yellow pattern just right.” “The pattern is inside.”
Opal exited the store. “There’s a thin layer of clear glass on the outside.” “Did Tula make these?” I
asked. Sadness welled in her
eyes. She blinked back tears. “No. Tula’s are too precious to sell.” “Opal, I’m—” “Don’t say it,” she
said. “Starting anew, remember?” “Yes.” “Good. Let’s go.” Opal
led the way. I worried the girl’s
parents wouldn’t be so forgiving, but they greeted us warmly. Their house and
glass factory had been built on the edge of the city, surrounded on three sides
by the Avibian Plains. The location explained why Ferde had chosen Tula. Keeping the kilns hot, Tula had been in the factory all night alone where no one
could witness her abduction. Opal guided us on a tour
of her family’s business and we met her remaining sister, Mara, and her younger
brother, Ahir. The promised meal consisted of beef stew served in a bowl made
of bread. “Less to wash,” Opal’s
mother, Vyncenza, said with a grin. Leif sat next to Mara
and flirted with her. He even joined her in the kitchen to help clean up. I
couldn’t blame him, the beautiful loose curls of her golden-brown hair hung
past her shoulders. Kindness radiated from big tawny eyes, and she listened to
Leif’s tales with rapt attention. While the others cleared
the table, Opal’s father, Jaymes, regaled me with stories about his business
and his family. “…she wasn’t paying
attention and set fire to her mother’s apron! It was another four seasons
before we would let Tula handle a punty iron again.” He laughed and launched
into another one. When he had run out of
anecdotes, I asked him about news from Booruby. “The Cowan elders are
always arguing about how many trees to cut down, and now they want to start
taxing the sand I import for my glassware.” He tsked over the prospect. “Rumors
about the other clans have always been good fodder for the gossips. This year’s
is about those Daviians. Everyone’s worried about them, but the magicians have Tula’s killer in jail and I’m sure the Sandseeds will take care of the rest. They always
do.” I agreed, but my mind
snagged on the fact that he still believed that Ferde was locked away. Not
good. Why hadn’t the Council informed the populace? Probably to avoid
frightening them. Ferde was still weak, and they had hoped to recapture him by
now. Should I tell Jaymes? He had two other daughters. The people should also
be told about the Vermin’s Kirakawa ritual. They could help find the Vermin and
keep their families protected. But would they panic and hinder our efforts
instead? It was a difficult
choice to make on my own and the benefits of having a Council to vote on
important issues became clearer to me. No one member could be held responsible
for a bad judgment. Delaying a decision, I
asked him if his children still worked alone at night. “No. No. I work the
entire night shift. We’ve learned our lesson and won’t be caught unaware
again.” “Good. Keep vigilant.
The Cowan Clan leaders are right to be worried about the Daviians.” Opal returned, giggling.
Water splotched her long skirt and she tucked a few stray strands of damp hair
back under her kerchief. “Water fight,” she said.
And before her father could scold, she added, “Mama started it!” He sighed but didn’t
appear to be too upset. Opal grabbed my hand, wanting to give me a tour of the
house. The room she shared with her sister resided on the second floor of the
stone house. The air smelled of honeysuckles. Hanging over the one empty bed
was Tula’s grief flag. The white silk banner had been part of her funeral
ceremony. The Sitians believed that once raised, the flag released Tula’s soul into the sky. Having freed Tula’s soul from Ferde, I knew the Sitian custom
just helped comfort the families. “Why is the flag hung
over her bed?” I asked. “It’s to keep her spirit
from returning to earth,” Opal answered. “All the things that she might want to
come back for are under the flag. She can’t see them there.” I looked under the
banner and spotted a small shelf filled with glass animals. The figurines were
lifelike and well-made but had not captured the inner fire like the ones I had
seen earlier. “Tula gifted a couple
statues and sold many others, but those she kept for herself. I tried to copy
her, but mine come out differently. I have only sold a few.” She shrugged. “You made the ones in
the store window. Didn’t you?” “Yes.” Again she made a
dismissive shrug. “The store owner is a kind woman. She knew I was coming today
and put them in the window. My animals are dull in comparison to Tula’s.” “Opal, they’re stunning.
How did you get them to glow?” She pressed her hands
over her heart as if she couldn’t believe what she heard. “You see the light?” “Of course. Doesn’t
everyone?” “No!” she cried. “Only I
see it—and now you!” She twirled with delight. “And Leif. He saw it
also.” “Really? How odd. No one
else in my family or my friends can see the inner light. They all think I’m
daft, but they humor me anyway.” “How do you make them?” She explained the
process of glassblowing to me. More detail than I needed, but I understood the
basics. “Usually you shape
animals from solid glass, but, when I try it, the animals resemble blobs. To
make a tumbler or vase, you have to blow an air bubble into the glass. I can’t
do that either. I turn purple trying to get a starter bubble but have never
accomplished it. However once I fail to make the bubble, I shape the piece so I
don’t waste the glass. That’s when I get results. Not only does my animal look
real, but a spark remains inside even when the piece has cooled.” I thought for a moment.
“But eventually the middle would cool. What keeps it glowing?” She threw her arms out
in a frustrated gesture. “I don’t know. I put my heart into these.” The answer popped into
my mind. “Magic.” “No. Master Jewelrose
has tested me. I didn’t have enough power to stay at the Keep.” I smiled. “She should
test you again.” Dax’s taunt about weird powers replayed in my mind. If Opal
had been born a Zaltana, the test would have been different. “You have enough
power to capture fire inside your statues.” “Why can’t anyone else
see it?” “Perhaps a person has to
have some magical ability to see the fire,” I theorized. “If that’s the case,
you need to sell these at the Citadel’s market where there are many magicians.” She pursed her lips in
thought. “I obviously don’t meet a lot of magicians. Can you take one of my
statues along and test your theory?” “On one condition.” “Anything!” “That you let me pay for
it so I can keep it.” “You don’t have—” I put my hand up,
stopping her. “You said anything.” She laughed. “Okay, but
I’ll charge you the wholesale price. I know just the piece to give you, too.
It’s in the factory.” Opal dashed down the
steps and flew out the door. The cold rush of night air reminded me that we
needed to get back to the inn. I thanked Opal’s parents for the meal. They told
me Leif had gone with Mara to the factory. I found Opal there. She
handed me a package. Wrapped with layers of cloth to protect the glass, the
fist-size parcel fit neatly in my hand. “Open it later,” she
said. “I had another one in mind for you, but this one…called. Crazy. I know.” “I’ve heard stranger
things. I’ll write you a letter when I get back to the Keep and let you know
how the experiment went.” I gently placed Opal’s package in my backpack, slung
the straps back over my shoulders then paid her for the statue. “Do you know
where Leif is?” I asked. She blushed. “I think
he’s sweet on Mara. They’re in the back in the mixing room. She’s supposed to
be measuring sand.” I wove my way through
the kilns, workbenches and barrels of supplies. The hot air baked into my skin.
Light gray smoke rose from the burning coals and flowed through the chimneys to
vent outside. Opal’s family used a special white coal mined from the Emerald Mountains to heat their kilns. Cleaner than the black variety, the white coals
burned hot enough to reach the two thousand degrees needed to melt the sand
ingredients. In the back room, a
table filled with mixing bowls lined the far wall. Leif and Mara leaned over a
deep bowl, but they were looking at each other instead of the concoction. The
cloth masks used to prevent them from breathing in the fine particles hung
around their necks. I paused before
interrupting them. Mara’s hands were coated with sand, and granules peppered
Leif’s hair. He looked younger and his face shone with delight. It was a side
of Leif I hadn’t seen before, and I wondered if he had someone he cared about
back at the Keep. I realized I knew nothing about certain parts of Leif’s life. Taking a few steps
backward, I moved from their sight. I called Leif’s name loud enough for them
to hear me over the noise of the kilns. He now stood away from Mara when I came
into view, the sand gone from his hair. “It’s getting late. We
need to get back.” Leif nodded but didn’t
move. I understood the hint and left. Outside the factory, a strong
breeze hustled the clouds overhead. Shafts of moonlight poured from the sky
between the breaks. When Leif joined me, we headed back to the inn. He was
quiet. “Do you want to talk
about it?” I asked. “No.” After several steps, he
asked, “Did you learn anything about the Vermin from Jaymes?” “The city is worried
about them, but there is no information on where they might be if they’re even
here at all.” I told him about Opal’s glass animals, and he seemed intrigued by
the magical element. “Did you tell Mara about
Ferde’s escape?” I asked. “No. I just told her to
be extremely careful.” We walked for a while in
silence. The air bit through my shirt and I wished I had my cloak. Booruby
resided on the edge of the temperate zone with warm afternoons followed by cold
nights. “I like her,” Leif said,
breaking the quiet. “I haven’t liked anyone before. Too busy and too worried
about you to care for another. I couldn’t keep you safe. I didn’t lift a finger
to help you. Finding you became more important than living my own life.” “Leif, you were eight
years old and would have been killed if you had tried to stop Mogkan from
kidnapping me. You did the right thing.” “Getting killed would
have been easier. No guilt. No worries. No fear. Caring for someone is terrible
and wonderful. I don’t know if I have the strength to do it for another. How do
you deal with it?” “I focus on the
wonderful parts and suffer through the terrible parts, knowing it will end
eventually.” “Did you like Valek as
soon as you saw him?” “No. In the beginning
our relationship was purely business.” The first time I had met Valek he had
offered me the choice of going to the noose or becoming the next food taster.
My family knew I had been the Commander’s food taster, but not why. Someday I
would tell them about Reyad’s torture. “When did your feelings
change?” That was a harder
question. “I guess the first time he saved my life.” I told Leif about the
Ixian fire festival and how Irys had hired four goons to kill me because my
uncontrolled magic could flame out and ruin the power source. “So the first time you
met Master Jewelrose, she tried to kill you? And you told me before Valek had
wanted to kill you twice. Gee, Yelena, you’re not a people person, are you?” “There were other
circumstances,” I said in my defense. “It all sounds too
complicated. I shouldn’t get involved with Mara.” “That would be taking
the easy road. Safe yet dull. Why do you like her?” “She smells like the
jungle on a perfect day. It’s a light whiff of the Ylang-Ylang flower combined
with the sweet aroma of living green and a touch of the nutty earthy essence.
It’s a scent you can wrap around yourself and feel at peace. Only those dry and
sunny days will produce that smell, and they are as rare as a solid-white
valmur.” Leif took a deep breath. “She has a soothing, contented soul.” “Sounds like she might
be worth the effort. There might be plenty of rainy days, but those perfect
ones will make all the memories of rain disappear.” “Is this from
experience?” “Yes.” We reached the Three Ghosts
Inn and entered the building. Moon Man and Tauno sat at one of the tables in
the common area. Customers filled the room. Tauno held a bloody
cloth to his temple and his split lower lip bled. “What happened?” I asked
when we joined our friends. “Where’s Marrok?” Tauno’s face was glum.
He glanced at Moon Man as if seeking the Story Weaver’s permission. “We found the Vermin,”
Tauno said. He winced. “Or I should say they found us. A group of five soldiers
with the Soulstealer and Cahil. They surrounded us, dragged us into a building
and threatened to kill us. Cahil drew Marrok away and they had a private
discussion. They laughed and left together, seeming the best of friends.” Tauno
put a hand to his ribs and cringed with pain. “The others descended on me and I
have no memory except waking in the empty building.” “When did this happen?”
I asked. “This morning.” “I am glad he is alive,
but I wonder why they did not kill him,” Moon Man said. Contemplating the
situation, I said, “Taking a captive through crowded streets would be
difficult. If they wait until nightfall to perform Kirakawa on him they risk
being discovered.” “So why not just kill
him?” Moon Man asked. “Because they want us to
know they have Marrok,” Leif said. “As a hostage?” Moon Man
asked. “No. Marrok left with
Cahil. They’re flaunting the fact that Marrok is now with them,” I said. “And
they know everything he knows. Including our present location.” 13“DO YOU THINK THEY WILL
attack us here?” Leif asked. I glanced at the fire
warming the inn’s common room. Would the Fire Warper risk being seen by the
other guests? “They could watch the
building and follow us, waiting until we get to a secluded spot to attack,”
Moon Man said. “That’s a happy
thought,” Leif muttered. I reached out to Kiki.
She dozed in the stable but roused at my light mental contact. If Vermin
skulked around the inn, she and the other horses would be upset. Smell? I asked. Night. Straw. Sweet hay,
she said. All good for now. Kiki help? Watch.
Listen. Smell for you. What if you get tired? Rusalka. Garnet. Take
turns. Good idea. I’ll come and
open the doors. Lavender Lady stay. Kiki
do. I smiled, remembering
how she had unlatched her stall door in the Keep’s stable when Goel had
attacked me. One of Cahil’s men who held a grudge, Goel hadn’t seen her.
Probably hadn’t known what hit him until he regained consciousness among the
broken boards of the pasture’s fence. “…Yelena? Hello?” Leif
poked my arm. “I’m here.” “What are we going to
do?” Leif asked me. “It’s too late to go anywhere
else. Kiki and the horses will watch the outside of the building and alert me
if anyone approaches.” “Ooh, guard horses. How
quaint.” Leif pointed to the hearth. “What if Mr. Fire Warper decides to jump
out of the fire? I don’t think Mrs. Floranne will be serving him a bowl of her
stew.” “Can we douse the fire?”
I asked. “No,” Leif said. “The
inn will get too cold and Mrs. Floranne won’t have hot coals for breakfast.” “Leif, do you always
think with your stomach?” I asked. “Is there any other
way?” I sighed. “We’ll post a
watch inside. Moon Man, how many entrances to this building?” “Two. The main one
leading to the street, and one in the back through the kitchen.” “How about upstairs? Is
there another staircase in the kitchen?” “Yes, but we can secure
the door into our hallway.” “Good. We’ll each take a
two-hour watch. I need to rest after I heal Tauno’s injuries so I won’t take
the first shift. Moon Man can start, followed by Leif, me and Tauno.” We left Moon Man in the
common room. I helped Tauno to his room. Stiff and sore, he moved with care.
When he was comfortable on the bed, I pulled a string of power and examined the
damage. Aside from two broken ribs, his other wounds were minor. Staring at his
injuries until they transferred to me, I hunched over with the pain and then
pushed it away. Tauno squeezed my hand
in thanks before falling asleep. I trudged to my bed, not as exhausted as I had
been in the past. Perhaps my healing skills improved with practice. Or had I
grown used to relying on my magic? “Yelena, wake up.” Leif
shook my shoulder. I peered at him through
heavy eyes. He placed the lantern on the table. “You’re the one who set
the schedule. Come on.” He pulled the blanket off me. “Most commanders don’t
take a turn guarding the troops. They get a good night’s sleep so they can make
the right decisions in the morning.” I sat on the edge of the
bed, rubbing my eyes. “I’m not a commander and we’re not a troop.” “I disagree. You’ve been
leading the way. You’re the one who knows what you’re doing.” “I—” Leif put his fingers on
my lips. “Don’t say it. I like—no—need to believe that you know what you’re
doing. Makes it so much easier to follow your instructions, especially when I’m
acting as bait for a fifty-foot-long snake.” “Fine. I have things well
in hand. I don’t need much sleep because I have all the steps we need to take
already planned out. Happy now?” “Yes.” Leif stretched
out on his bed. I picked up the lantern.
“Sweet dreams.” “They will be now.” The hallway of the inn
was dark and quiet. I checked the door leading to the kitchen stairs. It
remained locked tight. Good. Descending into the common area, I thought about
Leif’s comments. I might be the one making the decisions, but I didn’t believe
I had enough knowledge to be a commander. Gut instinct still propelled my
actions. Valek had taught me
about strategy and clandestine operations, and my Ixian friends, Ari and Janco,
had taught me to fight. Late-night sessions with Janco were the reason I could
pick locks. However, my magical training with Irys had been interrupted by
Ferde’s quest for power. There could be a magical
way to find Ferde and counter a Fire Warper, but since I hadn’t read all those
books about magic and history, and I hadn’t explored my powers to find their
limits, he was the test I hadn’t studied for, the quiz I was bound to fail. Out
of my depth. The empty common room
echoed with my footsteps. I made a circuit of the area to check for intruders
before I set the lantern down and went outside to visit the horses. The cold air
stabbed through my cloak. Kiki stood in the alley
next to the inn. Her dark coat blended with the shadows, but the white blaze
down her face reflected the moonlight. Smells? I asked,
reaching up to scratch behind her ears. Fresh. No bad. Any trouble? She snorted with
amusement. Two men. Woman. She replayed the memory
of two men robbing a woman. They had been so preoccupied with searching her
packages they failed to notice Kiki’s quiet approach. Quiet, because Kiki, like
all the Sanseed horses, refused to wear metal horseshoes. Kiki had spun and used
her back legs with expert precision. The men landed half a block away, and the
woman, after staring wide-eyed at Kiki, took off in the opposite direction. I
wondered why the lady had been out so late. She’ll probably spread
rumors about being rescued by a ghost horse, I said to Kiki. Maybe they’ll
change the inn’s name to Four Ghosts. I like ghosts. Quiet. You see ghosts? Yes. Where? Here. There. Places. Here? I looked around.
The empty street seemed deserted. I don’t see any. You will. She nuzzled my
cloak, sniffing the pockets. I like peppermints, too. I gave her the mints.
Care to elaborate on the ghost issue? No. She retreated down the
alley and I returned to the inn. The lantern’s flame flickered as I made
another sweep of the kitchen and rooms upstairs before settling down near the
hearth. Embers glowed within the remains of the fire. Suppressing my
apprehension, I added a few logs to coax the coals into a small fire to heat
water for tea. Such a diminutive blaze shouldn’t be big enough for the Fire
Warper. Perhaps the size of the
fire equaled the size of the Fire Warper. The image of a foot-tall Fire Warper
leaping from the hearth caused me to laugh, but knowing he needed only one
flame to start a fire ruined my good humor. Searching my pack for
tea leaves, I found Opal’s package. Curious to see which glass animal had
called to her, I unwrapped the thick cloth. A charcoal-gray bat with green eyes
came to life in my hands. I almost dropped the piece in surprise, but even with
its wings outstretched the palm-size creature didn’t take flight. Opal’s
magic—not life—glowed from the core of the bat. Closer examination revealed
flecks of silver along the bat’s body and wings. An invigorating tingle
swept up my arm. I mulled over the benefits of being a creature of the night.
Could I locate Marrok or Cahil now while the city slept? Drawing power, I
projected my mind and encountered a confusing array of dream images. Once again
too many people for me to sort through. I pulled back. The water bubbled. With
reluctance, I returned the statue to my pack and found the tea. Over my
steaming cup, I watched the miniature fire. I considered making an attempt to
contact Bain Bloodgood. The Second Magician might have some advice on how I
could find one soul among so many. The Citadel was three
days away by horseback. Too far for me to project in normal circumstances.
Desperation increased my distance, but then I had no control of direction.
Also, Bain would be asleep, his mental defenses impenetrable. I decided to wait
until the morning to try. The desire to sleep
dragged at my body. I made several rounds of the room just to stay awake. When
seated, my attention lingered on the fire’s dancing flames. They pulsed in a
rhythm that matched my heartbeat. The flames’ movements appeared choreographed,
as if they tried to communicate something to me. Something important. I knelt near the fire.
Fingers of orange and yellow beckoned. Come, they invited. Join with us.
Embrace the fire. I inched closer. Waves
of heat caressed my face. Come. We need to tell
you… What? I leaned in.
Flames crackled, sap hissed and boiled and the harsh scent of burning hair
billowed. “Yelena!” Moon Man’s voice
drenched me with cold reason. I scurried away from the hearth, stopping when I
reached the far side of the room. Chills raced over my skin and I shivered. “Thanks,” I said to him. “I thought something was
not right.” Moon Man descended the rest of the way down the stairs. “I woke
feeling as if the threads of my blanket had ignited.” “It’s a good thing you
did.” “What happened?” “I’m not sure.” I
wrapped my cloak tighter. “I thought I saw souls in the fire.” “Trapped?” I barked out a laugh. If
I had said that to anyone else, they would have believed I was a raving
lunatic. Moon Man wanted details. Details I couldn’t provide. “I think they wanted me
to join them.” He frowned and stared at
the hearth. “You should not be left alone with a fire. I will finish Tauno’s
shift.” “Finish?” I glanced out
the window. The curtain of darkness had thinned. I had lost track of the time,
and failed to wake Tauno for his turn. Not a good sign. “Go get some sleep. We
will need to make plans when you wake.” The deafening peal of
Mrs. Floranne’s bell jarred me from sleep. Leif sat on the edge of his bed with
his head between his hands, blocking out the noise. With silence came relief
and he dropped his arms. “She’ll be ringing that
again if we don’t get down to breakfast soon,” Leif said. All the motivation I
needed. I kicked off my blanket and followed Leif from the room. We joined Moon
Man and Tauno in the common area. The crowded inn buzzed with conversation.
Mrs. Floranne poured tea while her staff served breakfast. The smell of sweet
syrup wafted through the air. The good night’s sleep
reflected in Tauno’s face. The swelling was gone and the bruises faded from
bright red to a light purple smudge. He moved without wincing in pain. We ate our breakfast of
honey, eggs and bread and discussed our next move. “We should search the
city,” Leif said. “Quarter by quarter until we either find them or determine
they’re not here.” “It would take a long
time.” Moon Man spooned a glob of eggs onto a slice of bread. “They are gone,” Tauno
said. I stopped eating. “How
do you know?” “They mentioned leaving
Booruby.” “Why didn’t you tell us
last night?” I stabbed my eggs with my fork. “I was distracted by the
pain and did not remember the comment until now.” “Would it have made a
difference?” Leif asked. I thought it over. Tauno
had been in bad shape. But with no fatal injuries, I could have left him here
and…what? Scanned the surrounding forest with my magic? I didn’t know which
direction they had gone and they had almost a full day of travel. “Probably not,” I
sighed. “Tauno, do you remember anything else? Did they say where they were
going?” “The need to hurry was
all I sensed. Perhaps that is why I was not killed. They did not have enough
time.” “The best strategy would
have been to keep us in the dark about Marrok, wondering if he is dead or alive
and what he told them.” I sipped my tea. “However, Cahil likes to feel superior
and probably believes letting us know Marrok has betrayed us would make us
doubt our instincts and slow us down.” Cahil had tried that
tactic with me before. When he had thought I was a spy from Ixia, he had
ambushed me in the forest. Then, he wanted me to believe Leif set me up to
demoralize me. It hadn’t worked. And it wouldn’t work now. If anything, I was more
determined to find them. Even though we had lost their trail. My appetite gone,
I pushed my plate away. “What’s next?” Leif
asked. The door to the common
room banged open. Marrok stood in the threshold with a bloody sword in his
hand. The four of us jumped to
our feet. Breakfast forgotten, we pulled our weapons as the conversation in the
inn’s common room dwindled into a deadly silence. “Come on.” Marrok
gestured from the doorway with his sword. “Let’s go before they catch up.” “Who?” I asked. “Cahil and
his…his…friends.” Marrok spit the words out. “I escaped.” Horror bleached his
face, and blood dripped from a cut on his throat. “I’ve lost them, but they
know we’re here.” “How many?” I demanded. Marrok straightened.
“Seven.” “Armed?” “Swords, scimitars and
Curare.” “How soon?” Marrok glanced over his
shoulder and froze. He dropped his sword. It clattered on the stone floor. A
big hand shoved him, pushing him to the ground. Behind Marrok, Cahil,
Ferde and five Vermin streamed into the common room. 14WITH THEIR WEAPONS
pointed toward us the Vermin and Cahil fanned out in front of the door. Two
Vermin had scimitars, two had swords and one held a blowpipe to his lips. “Everyone just stay
calm,” Cahil ordered. His long broadsword made an impressive threat. The people
in the common room stayed in their seats. Mostly merchants and salesmen, there
wasn’t a soldier among them. Marrok remained on the
floor. A Vermin stood over him with the tip of his scimitar pointed at Marrok’s
throat. I glanced at Tauno. “You
said they were gone.” His face had paled and,
although he held his weapon, he hadn’t nocked an arrow. Moon Man eyed the
Vermin as if judging the distance between their necks and his scimitar. Leif’s
machete glinted in the sunlight from the open doorway. “Change of plans,” Cahil
said. Cahil had let his blond
hair grow past his shoulders and it was unbound. Besides that, he remained the
same. Same gray traveling clothes, same black riding boots, same washed-out
blue eyes and same hate-filled expression on his bearded face. “My friend wanted to
exchange Marrok for Yelena.” Cahil inclined his head to Ferde. I noted his use of the
word friend. How could he call that creature his friend? The Soulstealer’s plain
homespun tunic and pants hid most of the red tattoos covering his body. With a
scimitar in one hand and a blowpipe in another, he looked at me with cold
calculation. Despite his lean and powerful build, I sensed his magic remained
weak. Yet a bite of fear nipped my stomach. “I hope you have a few
more Warpers with you,” I said to Cahil. “The Soulstealer is no condition to
fight three magicians.” “I may have failed in my
power quest,” Ferde said. “However, I now serve another who has learned blood
magic.” The sound of roaring
flames reached me before the heat. A quick look over my shoulder confirmed the
blaze in the hearth had grown. Terror boiled in my throat, prompting me to act
before the Fire Warper appeared. Pulling power, I sent a
thread to Moon Man. Take out the man with the blowpipe. I’ll take Ferde. He
agreed. Leif, I said, attack the man over Marrok then keep Cahil busy. When? Leif asked. “Now.” I shouted and
projected my awareness into Ferde’s mind, bypassing his mental defenses and
seizing control of his body. It was a self-defense move I had learned when Goel
had captured me. Chained and left with no recourse except using my magic, I had
sent my soul into Goel’s body. Once Ferde realized I
had invaded, he concentrated all his energy on ejecting me. I ignored his
efforts. He threatened to kill me the same way he had murdered his other
victims. Memories stabbed; sounds
of their screams pounded; the smell of rancid blood pierced and visions of
mutilations assaulted. His black desires of power and dominance through torture
and rape revolted me. To stop him, I harvested
his soul and wrung it, exposing his deep fears and the events that had caused
his addiction to power. The favorite uncle who had tied him down and sodomized
him. The older sister who had tormented him. The father who had belittled him.
The mother he had trusted and confided in. The mother who had sent him back to
live with his uncle as punishment for lying. A Story Weaver may have
helped Ferde untie the knotted strands of his life, but I wrenched them apart,
broke the threads. He became the helpless victim again. I examined his memory
for every bit of detail, looking for information about the Daviian Vermin. When
I finished, I peered through his eyes. My body lay on the
ground, comatose. Moon Man fought a Vermin. They maneuvered around a headless
body. Cahil hacked at Leif, whose machete was no match against Cahil’s longer
sword. Leif would soon be forced to surrender. Tauno stood in the same spot as
if rooted to the floor. Marrok had regained his feet and sparred with one of
the Vermin near another body. The people in the inn had organized a bucket brigade
to dump water on the fire. Even though my time with
Ferde felt like a lifetime, only seconds had passed. I raised the blowpipe in
the Soulstealer’s hand and aimed. First Cahil. Reloading, I shot each Vermin
with a Curare-laced dart, ending the fight. Water wasn’t going to
stop the Fire Warper, but with his cohorts neutralized, he conceded the fight.
“Next time, my little bat.” The fire died with a hiss and puff of oily smoke. I returned to my body.
My limbs felt as if they weighed a thousand pounds each. Leif helped me to
stand on weak legs. Mrs. Floranne came over.
She clutched her apron between her hands and worried at the fabric. “What
should we be doing?” “Send someone to fetch
the city guards. We’ll need help transporting the prisoners to the Citadel,” I
said. She sent the stable lad. “Have they all been hit
with Curare?” Leif pointed to the prone figures. I looked at Ferde. He
had collapsed in a heap on the floor. “All but one. I’ve examined his soul, and
he won’t be giving us any more trouble.” “For how long?” “Forever.” “Do you think that was
wise?” Moon Man asked. His scimitar dripped with blood and gore, and
lacerations crisscrossed his chest. “You could have achieved the same result
without damaging his mind.” “I—” Leif jumped to my
defense. “Hold on, Mr. Let’s-exterminate-all-the-Vermin Man. Given the chance
you would have decapitated him. Besides, he deserved it. And it doesn’t matter
anyway; Roze would have done the same thing to him once he arrived at the
Citadel. Yelena just saved time.” Small darts of fear
pricked my heart. Leif’s words repeated in my mind. Roze would have done the
same. He was right. Numbness spread throughout my body. I hadn’t even stopped
to consider the implications before acting. Don’t get in my way; I’m
the all-powerful Soulfinder. Disgust coursed through me. History books hadn’t
been kind to Soulfinders. The vision of Flame Me being burned at the stake rose
in my mind. Perhaps the Councilors and Roze were right to fear me. After what I
had just done to Ferde, I feared I might turn into a power-hungry despot. “We need to leave as
soon as possible,” Moon Man said. We had assembled in the
inn’s common room again. The city guards had taken Cahil and the others into
custody yesterday. We had spent the day explaining to the city officials about
Cahil’s group; an afternoon’s worth of discussion to convince them to send the
prisoners to the Council. Leif and Marrok would accompany the city guards to
the Citadel this morning. I intended to go with Moon Man and Tauno to the Sandseed
homeland in the Avibian Plains. “You’re worried about
your clan,” I said. “Yes. Also I think we
need to learn more about the Kirakawa, the Fire Warper and your abilities
before we have another run-in with the Vermin.” “But your clan has
forgotten the details. How are you going to learn more?” Leif asked. “We can consult Gede. He
is another Story Weaver, but he is also a descendant of Guyan and may have more
information.” Moon Man stole my ginger muffin and ate it. Although I was curious
to know more about how Guyan had reunited the Sandseeds after their civil war
with the Efe Warriors, Moon Man’s comments reminded me I needed to try to
contact Irys and let her know what had happened. We finished breakfast
and made arrangements to leave. Moon Man and Tauno would get the horses ready
while Leif and I tried to communicate with Irys. We returned to our room.
I lay on my bed. “Do you think you can
reach her from this distance?” Leif asked. “I hope to, but I may
need a boost of energy.” Leif sat on the edge of
my bed. Closing my eyes, I drew power to me and projected my awareness toward
the Magician’s Keep in the Citadel. I bypassed the chaotic jumble of minds in
the city and reached for the wide-open fields marking the eastern border of the
Greenblade Clan’s lands. The few livestock I encountered hunched against the
damp wind. Pushing past the barren
farmland, I aimed for the white marble walls of the Citadel. But my mind
stretched thin as if it had turned to taffy. Leif’s warm hand encompassed mine
and a surge of strength pushed my awareness further, but I couldn’t reach those
walls. The effort left me drained. Leif gave my hand a
squeeze before he stood. He searched through his pack and before I could ask,
he handed me a yellow leaf rolled like a scroll. “Eat it,” he said.
“It’ll give you energy.” I sniffed. The leaf
smelled like spearmint and rosemary. An odd combination. As I crunched the
leaf, the bitter mint taste dominated and it shredded like paper in my mouth.
“Yuck. What is it?” “A baka leaf. One of Father’s
discoveries.” After a while, I felt
better. We packed our bags and joined Moon Man and Tauno in the stables. The
four of us mounted. Leif and Marrok rode together on Rusalka and headed toward
the city’s garrison. Marrok would borrow one of the guard’s horses for the trip
to the Citadel. The rest of us went east
through Booruby’s crowded streets. Tauno shared Kiki’s saddle with me, and Moon
Man rode Garnet. When we reached the
Avibian Plains, the horses broke into their gust-of-wind gait. We traveled until
the sun set then halted to rest. Our stopping point was a bleak section of the
plains. A few stalks of grass clung to the sand, and no trees or firewood were
in sight. Tauno reconnoitered the area as soon as he dismounted. Moon Man and I tended
the horses. Once they were fed, watered and rubbed down, Moon Man removed the
oil nuts Leif had given to him. One of my father’s finds, the oil nuts would
burn long enough to heat water for stew. The night air smelled damp, hinting at
rain. After arranging the fist-size
lumps into a circle, he lit the nuts on fire by striking two stones together to
make a spark. I guessed Story Weaver powers didn’t include lighting fires.
Interesting. Tauno returned with a
couple rabbits he had shot with his bow and arrow. He skinned the animals and
added the meat to the stew. After dinner I asked
Moon Man about Guyan. “What happened between the Efe rulers?” “Just over two thousand
years ago, the Efe Tribe was a peaceful nomadic people, following the cattle
and the weather.” Moon Man reclined against Garnet’s saddle, warming to his
tale. “Before becoming an official member of the tribe, the young people would
make a year-long pilgrimage and bring back a new tale for the tribe. It is said
that Hersh was gone many years, and, when he returned, he brought back
knowledge of blood magic. “At first he taught a
few Efe magicians, called Warriors, how to boost their powers. Little rites
requiring a drop of their own blood. The extra power would dissipate when the
task was completed. Then Hersh showed them how to mix their blood with ink and
inject it into their skin. Now the power did not dissipate and they became
stronger Warriors. Soon they discovered using another’s blood was even more
potent. And heart’s blood, taken from the chambers of the heart was incredibly
empowering.” Moon Man shifted his
weight and stared into the black sky. “The problem with using blood magic is it
becomes addictive. Even though the Efe Warriors were powerful, they wanted
still more. They did not kill their own clan members, but sought victims from
neighboring clans. No longer content to follow the cattle and forage for food,
they stole what they needed from others. “This abuse continued
for a long time. And would have continued if an Efe named Guyan had not stopped
the Warriors. He kept his magic pure. Sickened by the horrors he witnessed,
Guyan organized a resistance. The details of the battle are lost to time, but
the amount of magic pulled from the power blanket was enough to knock over the Daviian Mountains and shred the blanket of power. Guyan organized what was left of the
clan, and established the role of Story Weavers, who helped mend the people and
the power.” Moon Man yawned. I compared his story to
what I had learned about Sitian history. “Can you really mend the power source?
I read a history where a magician had bunched the power around himself, and it
took two hundred years for it to smooth out.” “Guyan was the first
Weaver,” Tauno said. He hadn’t moved a muscle during Moon Man’s story. “Guyan’s
incredible powers could mend the power source, a skill not seen in another
since.” Moon Man agreed. “The
blanket is not perfect. There are holes, tears and thin patches. There might
come a point in time where it will be worn away and magic will be a story of
the past.” A loud pop sounded from
the campfire. I jumped. The last of Leif’s oil nuts sputtered and died, leaving
the three of us in darkness. Tauno offered to take the first watch as Moon Man
and I readied for bed. I lay awake shivering in
my cloak, thinking about the power source. Finding out about those holes called
Voids had been a nasty surprise. Alea Daviian had dragged me into an area
without power to torture and kill me. Being unable to access my magic, I had
felt quite helpless. The fact I had been tied to a cart had reinforced my
complete lack of control. Alea erred by not searching me for weapons, and I had
used my switchblade to escape. Alea had also wanted to
collect my blood and I wondered if she’d planned to perform the Kirakawa ritual
on me. I supposed I wouldn’t ever know. I couldn’t ask a dead woman. Or could
I? An image of invisible spirits hovering over me filled my mind and I felt as
if a layer of ice coated my skin. The next morning we ate
a cold breakfast of jerked beef and cheese. Moon Man estimated we would reach
the Sandseeds’ main camp by late afternoon. “I tried to reach the
elders,” Moon Man said. “But there is a strong barrier of protective magic
tenting the encampment. Either my people managed to fight off the Vermin and
this new shield is a safeguard against another attack, or the Vermin have taken
control and are defending themselves.” “Let’s hope for the
first one,” I said. We mounted and rode for
most of the day, stopping only once to rest the horses. Before we reached the
point where we would be visible to the Sandseeds’ camp, we halted. Tauno would
scout the camp and report back. Taking off his bow and
arrows, Tauno doused himself and his clothes with water then rolled in the
sandy soil. Granules clung to his skin. He blended in so well with the
surroundings, he soon vanished from our sight. I paced and fretted
while Moon Man appeared serene. “Worrying can not change
anything,” he said to my unspoken question. “I would rather conserve energy for
when we can do something.” “You’re right, of
course, but on occasion logic does not win against emotions.” He shrugged. I resisted
thinking worrisome thoughts and focused instead on what I could do. Smells? I asked Kiki. Sweet. Home, she
replied. Itchy. Clumps of mud clung to
her copper coat. I rummaged in my pack until I found the currycomb. I was still
combing Kiki when Tauno returned. “The camp is secure. If
we leave now we can get there before dark,” Tauno reported. As we prepared to go, he
told us what he had seen. “Everything looked normal. Yanna washed clothes and
Jeyon skinned a hare. I crept closer and saw the elders arguing over the fire.
The children at their lessons. The youths practicing with their wooden swords.
Many heads drying in the sun.” “Heads?” I asked. “Our enemies,” Moon Man
replied in a matter-of-fact tone as if decorating with decapitated heads was a
normal occurrence. “It is a good sign,”
Tauno said. “It means we have won the battle.” Yet Tauno didn’t look
happy. “Did you talk to anyone?” I asked. “Yes. Jeyon signaled to
me everything was fine. I did not want to waste the daylight finding out the
details.” He peered at the sky. “A hot meal by a warm fire will be most
welcome.” I agreed. Tauno joined
me on Kiki’s back, and Moon Man mounted Garnet. In high spirits we joked and
raced to the Sandseeds’ camp. The gray twilight waned
as the white tents of the camp became visible. Many Sandseeds had gathered near
the fire. A few stirred the contents of large cooking pots, and, by the heady
aroma, I guessed venison stew bubbled inside. Yum. Others waved to us as we
approached. We slowed the horses. The air shimmered with
the rising heat. I scanned the area with my magic, but felt only the strong
protection Moon Man had mentioned. The magic didn’t feel like an illusion, but
my experience was limited. When we crossed the
magical barrier, I braced myself. Even Tauno gripped my waist tighter. But the
scene didn’t change. The Sandseeds stayed the same. Three men and two women
came over to us as we stopped the horses while the rest resumed their evening’s
work. The women’s faces
appeared to be strained with either worry or grief. There must have been
Sandseed casualties. The Sandseed men grabbed the horses’ bridles. An odd thing
to do, considering they had trained the horses to keep still. Kiki reared. I
held her mane as she jerked away from the Sandseeds’ grasp. Bad smell, she said. Firelight flashed on
steel. I turned in time to see a mass of well-armed Daviian Vermin erupting
from the tents. 15TAUNO’S BOWSTRING
TWANGED and I yelled, “Go! Go! Go!” Kiki was free, but two Sandseeds held tight
to Garnet’s bridle. A quick glance to the side revealed ten feet separated us
from the fastest Vermin. I pulled my staff from
my pack as Kiki turned. She used her rear legs to keep the Vermin occupied
while I brought my bow down on the temple of a Sandseed holding Garnet. A pang
of regret touched my heart as the man crumpled to the ground. He had probably
been forced to ambush us. But I didn’t let the feelings stop me from attacking
the second man clutching Garnet. “Go! Go! Go!” I yelled
again. Even with Moon Man’s
scimitar, Tauno’s arrows and my bow, the Vermin outnumbered us. It was only a
matter of time before they would overrun us. In a flurry of hooves and steel
and shouts, the horses headed away from the Sandseed camp, breaking into their
gust-of-wind gait. We had ridden through
most of the night to get as far away from the Vermin as possible. The horses
slowed. Heads down, they panted. Their coats gleamed with sweat. Only a couple
dark hours remained. Dismounting, we removed their saddles. While I walked the
horses to cool them down, Moon Man and Tauno searched for wood and game. No one said a word. The
shock of the attack had yet to wear off and the vivid memory of it played over
and over in my mind. The ramifications alone were too awful to consider right
now. We ate another rabbit
stew in silence. I thought about our next move. “The elders…” Moon Man’s
voice seemed loud in the thick night air. “Are still alive,” Tauno
said. “For now.” “Would they kill them?”
A shudder gripped my body at the thought of all those drying skulls. “The trap was sprung.
They have no need for them,” Moon Man replied then seemed to reconsider his
words. “They might keep them as slaves. The Vermin are lazy when it comes to
domestic tasks.” “And they’re just busy
beavers when it comes to ritual killings and gaining power,” I said. “Lucky
us.” The scene once again flashed in my mind. “Do you think some of your people
escaped?” “Perhaps. They would
have left the plains, though.” Moon Man considered. “The Sandseeds no longer
control the protective magic over the Avibian Plains. To stay within its
borders would be too dangerous for them. Right now, the Vermin are using the
protection to keep their presence a secret, but now that we have fled, I
believe they will use it to find us. Perhaps to attack us with magic.” “Then we shouldn’t
linger long. Is there any way to know if they find us?” “We can create a barrier
to alert us to an attack and maybe deflect an initial foray.” “We should saddle the
horses in case we need to make a quick exit.” I stood. “That would be prudent.”
Moon Man helped me with the horses. Kiki snorted in
annoyance when I tightened her straps. Tired, she said. Don’t
need. Smell good. For now. If the smells
turn bad, we can leave faster. I fed her some peppermints and scratched behind
her large ears. She sighed and her eyes drifted shut. After the horses were
ready, the three of us sat in a circle around the fire. “Maybe we should douse
the flames.” Worried that the Fire Warper would sense me through the blaze, I
hadn’t used my magic near a fire. Moon Man dumped water
onto it. Puffs of gray smoke rose into the air. “Yelena, I want you to
pull threads of magic and I will do the rest,” Moon Man instructed. Concentrating, I
gathered strands of power. Moon Man plucked the strands from me and weaved them
into a net around us. Tauno’s pinched and sullen expression reflected his
discomfort. As the only one without magic, he didn’t have the ability to see
the protection building around us. When Moon Man finished,
I disconnected from the power source, feeling drained of energy. The net pulsed
with magic even though we no longer fueled it. I wondered why it still worked.
In all my past efforts, the power dissipated as soon as I stopped using magic.
Except for my mental connections with Kiki and Irys, every time I wanted to
heal or project I had to consciously draw from the power source. Yet the
Sandseeds had their protection, and there were other lingering spells. An image of the knife in
Valek’s suite came to mind. When Valek had assassinated the King of Ixia, the
King cursed him, vowing his blood would stain Valek’s hands forever. Since
magic doesn’t work on Valek, the curse transferred to the knife instead. The
King’s blood still clung to the blade and remained as wet and bright as the day
the King had been killed. I asked Moon Man how the
protective net stayed active. “Mostly we channel the
magic through us. But there are times when you can loop the power back to the
source. It can be very difficult to do, and, by having you draw the power, I
could save my energy for knitting it together and redirecting it back to the
source. Large-scale protection like the one covering the Avibian Plains and the
Sandseeds…” A hitch of emotion
stopped his words. He closed his eyes and swallowed his grief before he
continued. “Huge magical loops require an immense effort by many magicians, but
can be effective for a long time. The protection we just created will last for
a few hours before dissipating. Enough time to give the horses a chance to
rest.” “And then what?” I
asked, but he looked at me. Leif’s comments about my role as commander
flittered through my mind. I answered my own question. “We leave the plains.
Head toward the Citadel and let the Council know what’s been going on with the
Vermin.” “Hopefully they will
already know. The Sandseed survivors would have gone to the Citadel.” Moon Man
scowled. “If there were any.” Waiting for the horses
to regain some of their strength proved to be difficult. Our protective net
flashed whenever the Vermin’s magic scanned the area. So far the net hid us
from the Vermin, but each encounter weakened the fibers. The desire to flee and
the need to sleep battled within me. I wanted to stay awake in case the Vermin
attacked, but I dozed off and on until the sky brightened with the rising sun. The few hours before
dawn had been enough time for the horses. We mounted and headed northwest,
riding hard. During our rest breaks, Moon Man searched for any sign the
Vermin’s magic had found us. I projected my awareness to learn if they
physically pursued us. In our haste, we left a physical trail even my untrained
eyes could follow. A couple hours short of
the Avibian border, we stopped for a longer rest. Moon Man proclaimed the
Vermin had lost us, and I couldn’t sense anyone nearby. Since we had been
traveling together for fifteen days, we automatically attended our chosen
tasks, even with the Daviian threat hanging over our heads. By the time I had
finished rubbing down the horses and seeing to their needs, I smelled rabbit
stew cooking on the fire. Tauno sat next to the
pot. His shoulders hunched as if a great weight pressed down on him, and his
attention remained fixed on the ground. He hadn’t uttered more than a few words
since yesterday. Perhaps he felt guilty and responsible for leading us into an
ambush. I debated discussing it with him, but considered he might be more
comfortable talking to Moon Man. I wondered if Moon Man was his Story Weaver.
Every Sandseed had a Story Weaver to guide and advise them throughout their
lives. I glanced around,
realizing Moon Man hadn’t returned from collecting firewood even though a pile
of branches rested near the cook fire. “Tauno, where’s Moon
Man?” I asked. Tauno didn’t even lift
his head when he said, “He was called to the shadow world.” “Called? Does that mean
another Story Weaver survived the Vermin attack?” “You will have to ask
him.” “When will he be back?” Tauno ignored the rest
of my questions. Frustrated, I circled the area, searching for Moon Man, and
found his clothes in a heap on the ground. I moved to return to the fire and
bumped into him. I jerked back in
surprise. Moon Man seized my upper arms to keep me from falling. “Where have you been?” I
asked. He peered at me with an
alarming intensity. Blue fire flecked his brown eyes. I tried to move, but he
wouldn’t let go. “They are dead,” he said
with a flat voice. “Story Weavers and Sandseeds gone. Their souls haunt the
shadow world.” His grip on my arms tightened.
“You’re hurt—” “You can help them.” “But I don’t—” “Selfish girl. You would
rather lose your abilities than use them. And that is what will happen. You
will become a slave to another.” His words slapped me in
the face. “But I’ve been using them all along.” “Anyone can heal. You,
though, hide from your real power and others suffer for it.” Stung and hurt, I tried
to break loose, but his hold wouldn’t release. In order not to injure him, I
projected into Moon Man’s mind. Thick ropes of gray power surrounded him. The
shadow world still held his mind. My efforts to cut the ties failed. “The shadow world
calls.” Moon Man began to fade.
My body became translucent. He planned to take me with him to a place where I
feared I couldn’t access my magic. Reaching into my pocket, I pulled my
switchblade and triggered the blade. I slashed him across his stomach. Moon Man
shuddered and let go. He collapsed to the ground, curling into a ball on his
side. I looked at Moon Man’s
still form. The gray power had vanished, but I wasn’t sure of his mental state.
Perhaps the shock and grief had been too much for him. Difficult to believe. He
had been a calm and steady presence all along. I knelt next to him. The
blood from his wound soaked his shirt. Drawing power, I focused on his stomach.
The cut pulsed with a red light and a line of pain formed on my own stomach. I
huddled on the ground, concentrating on the injury. My magic repaired the
damage. When I finished, Moon
Man grasped my hand. I tried to pull free, but he squeezed. My body jerked as
the image of headless bodies slammed into my mind. They crowded close,
enveloping me with the reek of dead flesh as they demanded revenge. Another
jerk and the scene of a massacre flooded my senses. The burning stench of body
fluids and death stung my nose as blood soaked into the sand. Mutilated bodies
were strewn in a haphazard, irreverent manner and left for the vultures to
find. Moon Man sat, and I
tried to break his hold. His gaze met mine. “Is that what you saw in
the shadow world?” I asked. “Yes.” Horror filled his
eyes as the gruesome images replayed in his mind. “Give the memories to
me.” I felt his reluctance. “I will not forget them.” “Will you help them?” “Can’t you?” “I can only help the
living.” “Are you going to tell
me how or spout some cryptic bullshit?” “You do not want to
learn. You have refused to see what is all around you.” “You didn’t answer my
question.” Pain creased his face
and the light in his eyes dulled. He would be unable to function with the
dreadful knowledge of how his people suffered. “Give them to me. I’ll
try to help them, but not right now.” I mentally added
soothing-the-dead-Sandseeds to the end of my long list of things to do. After I
dealt with the Fire Warper, which should be a breeze. While I was lying to
myself, I included flying and turning stones into gold to my list. Might as
well think big. Moon Man released the
emotional turmoil of his visions. He wouldn’t forget the images, but they would
no longer strangle him. I gathered his grief and guilt and anguish to my soul.
So much carnage and blood. All to boost the Vermin’s power. So many dead. Too
many. How to soothe those victims? Stopping the Vermin from increasing their
strength might work. What if they tried again? Perhaps destroying the power blanket
to keep everyone from using magic would work. A drastic and desperate measure
that might not even be possible. Letting go of my hand,
Moon Man stood. “What you said about my
future. Is it true?” I asked. “Yes. You will become a
slave to another.” The discussion over, Moon Man returned to the campfire. We ate the stew in
silence. Packing up, we mounted and spurred the horses toward the Avibian
border. When we reached the road located between the plains and the fields of
the Greenblade Clan’s lands, we turned north toward the Citadel and slowed the
horses to a walk. At this late hour, the road was empty. Being out of the plains
gave us at least an illusion of safety, but I wanted to ride a little farther
before we stopped for the night. The next three days
dragged. With hardly a word spoken between the three of us, an awkward hush
resulted as we traveled to the Citadel. Moon Man’s comment about my future
repeated in my mind, grating on my nerves like a high-pitched squeal. I wanted
to know who would force me to be a slave and when, but I knew Moon Man would
reply with a cryptic remark and I wouldn’t be smart enough to figure it out.
The air turned cold and damp as we went farther north, and one night sleet
pelted us, making our ride miserable. Seeing the welcome sight
of the white marble walls of the city on the third day, I spurred Kiki into a
gallop. Gone from the Keep for eighteen days, I missed Irys, my old mentor who
answered my questions with a refreshing directness, and my friends at the
Magician’s Keep. After crossing the south
entrance gate of the outer wall, we walked the horses through the streets of
the Citadel. Puddles of icy muck peppered the walkways. Citizens hurried
through the intermittent rain, and the grayness cast a mournful facade over the
expanse of marble buildings. The smell of wet wool clung to the air. We aimed
for the Council Hall, which was located with the other government buildings in
the southeast quadrant of the Citadel. Home? Kiki looked with
longing at the four towers of the Keep. Soon, I said. Rest here
for now. A stable for the Councilors had been erected behind the building. At
least you’ll be out of the rain. Once Kiki and Garnet were settled, we entered
the hall. A guard informed us a
Council meeting had just finished and we should go in before the Councilors
left for the day. Entering the Great Hall, I spotted Irys talking to Bain
Bloodgood, Second Magician. Groups of Councilors and aides formed small knots
and the noise of their discussions filled the room. By the harsh tones and
strident voices, I sensed the discussion hadn’t gone well and an undercurrent
of fear trembled against my skin. Moon Man and Tauno went
directly to their Councilman, Harun Sandseed. I hung back, not wanting to
interfere with the Sandseeds. Irys hurried toward me. She wore her stern Fourth
Magician expression. She was worried. I scanned the clumps of Councilors with
more care and I discovered the reason for her concern. Cahil stood with Roze
Featherstone and another Councilor. He laughed and talked as if he belonged
there. 16I MOVED TO CONFRONT
Cahil. He should be in the dungeon for aiding and abetting a murderer, not
standing in the middle of the Great Hall having a conversation with Roze. My
alarm increased when I saw a few Vermin inside the Hall. Irys had other plans.
She grabbed my arm and pulled me aside. “Now is not the time,”
she said, appealing to me. “What is going on?” I
demanded. Irys glanced around the
room. A few Councilors stood close enough to overhear us, so she switched to
our mental communication. Cahil claims he’s been
on an undercover mission this whole time, she said. He says that he didn’t free
Ferde. Why would anyone believe
that? I asked. Because Roze
corroborated his story. A lightning strike of
shock ripped through my body. I hoped I misunderstood her. But her grim
expression didn’t change. It gets worse, she said.
Cahil says he caught Marrok rescuing Ferde and, after interrogating him, Cahil
discovered Ferde was on his way to rendezvous with others. Cahil followed the
Soulstealer to discover what they plotted. That’s ridiculous. We
know Cahil beat Marrok to find out about his birth parents. It’s Cahil’s word
against Marrok’s at this point because there is no evidence to say who freed
Ferde. Especially since Ferde can’t be questioned. Irys frowned. We’ll talk
about your actions later, but whatever you learned from Ferde’s mind can’t be
used as evidence. Why not? Because you were
emotionally involved with the Soulstealer and your impartiality is suspect. I
know—she went on, sensing my protest—it isn’t right, but when the Council
discovered what you had done to Ferde, it confirmed their fears about you being
a Soulfinder and validated Roze’s warnings. I sighed. It had
confirmed my fears, too. Where’s Ferde now? In the Citadel’s jail,
waiting for the Council to decide what to do with him. Although I think
executing him would be a kindness. Her censure hurt and
guilt welled. I forced my thoughts away from Ferde and concentrated on Cahil.
There had to be a way to show the Council the truth about his involvement.
Where’s Marrok? What has he said? Marrok is being held for
questioning. He claims he didn’t free Ferde. He had no motive. But Cahil says
Marrok wanted to frame him for the escape so Marrok could lead Cahil’s men. And
also that Marrok lied to him, and Cahil really has royal blood. My mind spun. Cahil had
an answer for everything. So why was Cahil traveling with Ferde? He says it was part of
the undercover mission. Once he caught up with Ferde, he convinced Ferde he wanted
to be a part of their plans. While he traveled with the Daviians, Cahil says he
recruited them to switch sides. She gestured to the Vermin in the room. Did he mention the
Vermin using blood magic and the Fire Warper? No. He didn’t, but Leif
tried. Leif attempted to discredit Cahil and many of the Councilors thought he
exaggerated about the Daviians. Unfortunately, Leif’s reputation for seeing
doom and gloom in everything worked against him. Did Cahil say what the
Vermin plan to do? Half of me didn’t want to hear Irys’s response. I steeled
myself. According to Cahil, the
Daviians’ leaders are in league with the Commander of Ixia. Together they plan
to assassinate the Council and Master Magicians and, in the ensuing chaos, the
Daviians will offer to help Sitia battle the Ixians. But there won’t really be
a war and the Daviians will eventually turn Sitian’s government into a
dictatorship. Exactly what the Council
feared since the Commander took over Ixia, and, combined with the resultant bad
feelings from the Ixian Ambassador’s visit, the Councilors were primed for
Cahil’s lies. So now it seemed Roze was right to warn the Council about the
Commander. And I had no evidence to prove them wrong. What about my training?
I asked. I didn’t think Irys
could look any more upset, but she managed to deepen her scowl. The Council has
given Roze permission to “assess” your involvement in these events and to
determine what risk you pose to Sitia. I’m sure that would be
impartial. Do I have any say in this? No. But the other
Masters will be there as witnesses. All except me. My objectivity is considered
compromised by our friendship. Moon Man and Tauno
finished their conversation with Harun. They came toward us. Did you hear about the
Sandseed massacre? I asked Irys. Yes. Horrible news, and
it gave Cahil more proof of the Daviian threat. The Council is preparing the
Sitian army for war. I didn’t even have to
ask. Irys saw the question in my eyes. War against the Daviians
and against Ixia. So much for my job as
Liaison. War between Sitia and Ixia was the one thing I had hoped to avoid.
There had to be more going on with the Daviian Vermin, though. I knew the
Commander would never team up with them. They used blood magic, and he wouldn’t
condone the use of any magic. Besides, he could attack Sitia without the
Vermin’s help. Again, I had no proof. Moon Man and Tauno
joined us. “There are about a dozen
Sandseed survivors,” Moon Man said. “They came to the Citadel and are staying
here for now. Only one Story Weaver besides me survived. It is Gede, and he is
the one we need to talk to about the Fire Warper.” Irys said, “Who—” Moon Man kept talking.
“You said Master Bloodgood has a few books about the Efe, right?” “Yes,” I said. “We should examine them.
Gede and I will come to the Keep tomorrow morning.” Moon Man turned and walked
away. I watched his back,
feeling uneasy. His whole attitude toward me had changed since he had tried to
drag me into the shadow world. He acted as if he had given up on me. “That was rather
abrupt,” Irys said. “He’s been through a
lot.” “And so have you. Tell
me about this Fire Warper. Leif had only sketchy details.” I reported all our
adventures to her as we left the Council Hall and headed toward the Keep. The next morning we
assembled in Bain Bloodgood’s study. Occupying the entire second floor of his
tower, Bain’s office was ringed with bookcases. They had been built around the
long thin windows and every shelf overflowed with texts. A desk, a few wooden
chairs and a ratty armchair looking as old as Bain resided in the center of the
room. The sharp tang of ink permeated the air. Ink stained the desk’s top and
Bain’s fingers. And the only space on the floor without a pile of books was a
foot-wide path from the door to the desk. The tension in the room
pressed on my skin. Moon Man had folded his large frame into one of the chairs.
He appeared uncomfortable and he glanced with longing outside. I shared his
discomfort. The room felt crowded and tight even for me. Bain sat behind his
desk, with Dax Greenblade standing next to him. Dax was Bain’s apprentice and
he had the unique talent of being able to read ancient languages. His help in
finding Ferde and rescuing Gelsi had been vital. Irys stared at the other
Sandseed Story Weaver with ill-concealed dislike. Gede had arrived with Moon
Man and he had pushed his way into the room as if he belonged there. He carried
his bulk with authority and appeared to be taller than he was. It wasn’t until
he stood next to Irys that his true height was revealed. He matched Irys’s five
feet eight inches. “Those books belong to
me,” Gede said. Silence met his
statement. Dax glanced at me. Incredulity flashed in his bottle-green eyes. “My ancestor labored to
banish all the knowledge about the blood magic, yet there they sit—” he
gestured to the two open books on Bain’s desk “—for anyone to pick up and
read.” Irys said, “I doubt
anyone but Master Bloodgood and Dax can read or understand the language—” Gede cut her off. “It is
all you need. One person to read it, to get ideas and to experiment with the
knowledge. Blood magic is like no other—once you start you can not stop.” “It appears the Vermin
have discovered the information without these books,” I said. “How do you know?” Gede
asked. He peered at Dax with open suspicion. “Perhaps someone has been feeding
them information.” I stepped in front of
Gede before Dax could defend himself. “Not from here. Besides, having these
books might prove to be an advantage. Your ancestor Guyan defeated the Efe and
perhaps the books contain information about how to counter the Vermin’s blood
magic and to defeat the Fire Warper.” “All the more reason to
give them to me,” Gede said. “The Sandseeds will deduce a way to oppose the
Daviians. After all, they are our problem.” “Not anymore. They’ve
gone beyond your problem,” Bain said. “We will keep the texts here. You’re
welcome to study them with us.” But Gede wouldn’t back
down on his claim and Bain refused to give in. Eventually Gede rose to leave.
He paused before me and scanned me with cold calculation in his dark eyes. “Did you know Guyan was
a Soulfinder?” Gede asked me. Surprised, I said, “No.
I thought he was the first Story Weaver.” “He was both. You know
nothing about Soulfinders.” He glared at Moon Man. “Your education is pathetic.
I can teach you how to be a true Soulfinder.” My heart jumped in my
chest. The prospect of learning more about Soulfinders both thrilled and
terrified me. Gede must have seen the
indecision on my face. “You do not need these books to defeat the Fire Warper.” Too good to be true, I
knew there had to be a catch. “I suppose you’ll guide me with some cryptic
nonsense.” “Bah!” Again Gede shot
Moon Man an annoyed look. “There is no time for that. Interested?” Logic warred with
emotion. “Yes.” Emotion won. “Good. I am staying in
the Citadel’s guest quarters. Come at twilight. The moon should be up by then.”
Gede swept out of the room, with Moon Man trailing behind him. Irys raised one slender
eyebrow at me. “I don’t—” “Think it’s the best
decision.” I finished for her. “Think I should rush into the situation and hope
for the best.” She smoothed out the
sleeves of her tunic, giving me a wry look. “No. I don’t trust him.” I lingered outside
Roze’s tower, debating. This meeting with her, Bain and Zitora could be a trap.
She could either trick me into confessing to conspiring against Sitia, or it
could be my chance to redeem myself. Nice to have choices. Bain opened the door and
said, “Come in, child. It is cold outside.” Decision made, I
followed Bain into Roze’s home. A huge fire crackled and popped, spitting out
sparks, which would have burned the threadbare carpet if Roze hadn’t doused the
errant embers with her magic. With the memory of her fire attack seared in my
mind, I chose a hard wood chair as far from the hearth and from her as
possible. Spartan and bare, the
room lacked the cozy comfort of Irys’s living area and the scholarly smell of
Bain’s study. Zitora, Third Magician, perched on the edge of her seat, another
straight-backed chair without cushions. She kept her gaze on her hands. They
were laced together in her lap. Bain occupied the only comfortable seat.
Overstuffed and worn thin, the chair’s fabric was close to tearing, and by the
annoyed frown on Roze’s face whenever she glanced at Bain, I guessed he had
taken her favorite spot. “Let’s get this over
with,” I said into the awkward silence. “Nervous?” Roze asked. “No. I have a meeting in
an hour and I need to wash my hair.” Roze drew a breath. “Ladies, please. This is
difficult enough as it is,” Bain said. “Put your differences aside and let us
assess the situation.” Roze kept her comment to
herself. Impressive. She gave Bain a stiff nod. He smoothed the wrinkles in his
robe before continuing. “Yelena, you have shredded Ferde’s soul.” “I—” “No commenting until I
am finished.” The stern tone in Bain’s
voice raised the hair on my arms. He was the second most powerful magician in
the room. “Yes, sir.” Satisfied, Bain resumed
his lecture. “Your rash actions have set off a ripple of discontent within the
Council. First you acted without their permission. Second, your ability to
shred a soul alarmed the Councilors, including me. You have lost their trust,
and therefore the information you uncovered through Ferde is invalid.” I tried to meet Zitora’s
gaze, but she averted her face. “You are hereby ordered
to stay out of Sitian affairs while we deal with this new Daviian threat. Roze
has agreed to let you work with Gede to discover the extent of your powers and
we will reassess how you can aid our efforts in the future.” Bain gestured for
me to comment. Protests pushed in my
throat, but I swallowed them down as I wrestled my thoughts into a logical
response. This meeting was an ambush. They didn’t want to question me, just
dictate to me. “What about Cahil? You
can’t believe him?” I appealed to Bain. “There is no proof he
lied. First Magician supports him.” “He’s always been
selfish,” Roze said. “He wants only one thing. To aid the Daviians against
Sitia runs counter to his desire. He needs our help to launch his campaign to
claim Ixia. A country in the midst of a civil war wouldn’t be able to aid him
at all.” Roze’s reasonable logic
worried me more than her anger. “How about the Fire Warper?” A bright fireball
erupted from the fire, and hovered above us. I squinted into the harsh light.
The heat of the flames fanned my face. Roze curled her fingers into a fist and
the fire ball disappeared. Opening her hand, she gestured and snuffed out the
hearth fire, casting us into cold semi-darkness. “I’m First Magician for
a reason, Yelena. My command of fire is my best ability. You need not fear the
Fire Warper. I’ll deal with him.” Flames ignited. Once again heat and light
emanated from the hearth. I couldn’t suppress my
skepticism. “Do you really think I
would let the Daviians and this Fire Warper take control of Sitia? They
wouldn’t take proper care of my country. No. I will do all I can to keep them
from power, including protecting you from the Fire Warper.” Now she was outright
scaring me. “You want me dead.” “True. You’re a threat
to Sitia, but there is no proof. I can’t obtain the Council’s support to have
you executed. But once I have evidence, you’re mine.” This was more like the
Roze I knew and hated. We glared at each other. Bain cleared his throat.
“Child, by listening to the Council and working with Gede Sandseed you will
regain the Council’s trust.” Learning about my powers
was what I had desired all along. Ferde was no longer a threat and the Council
knew about the Daviians. If they wished to believe Cahil, why should I care?
The Commander’s army would prevail against Cahil. I had sought to avoid a war,
but I held no sway within the Council. Why couldn’t I be selfish for once and
stay out of politics while I explored my powers? I agreed. But the slight
rush of relief failed to ease the pang of doubt. Moon Man’s comment about
becoming a slave to another echoed in my mind. I returned to my rooms
in Irys’s Keep tower. She had given me three of the ten floors to use. I
trudged up the steps, anxious, worried and frustrated. Roze’s boast she could
handle the Fire Warper had better be true. Bain’s Efe books described power
symbols and blood rituals, but he had discovered nothing to counter them. And
there was no mention of a Fire Warper. Dax had translated the
bulk of the books, but a few chapters remained. He planned to spend the
afternoon working on them. My worry also stemmed from a comment Dax had made
about Gelsi. Bain’s other apprentice, Gelsi, had been Ferde’s last victim, but
I stopped him in time and revived her body and returned Gelsi’s soul. When I had inquired
about her, Dax’s vague response caused me to question him further. “To tell the truth,” Dax
had replied, “she’s different than before.” “Different how?” I had
asked. “She’s harsher.
Unhappy.” He moved his arms in a gesture of futility. “She no longer enjoys
life. She’s more preoccupied with death. It’s hard to explain. Master Bloodgood
is working with her. We hope it’s a condition she can work through and not—”
Dax shrugged “—permanent. Maybe you can talk to her?” I promised to visit her.
Thinking back, I had returned two people’s souls to bodies that had been dead.
Gelsi and Stono. And both came back changed. Were their altered personalities
due to something I did when I held their souls? My anxiety grew over what I
might discover about my Soulfinder abilities with Gede. Uneasiness soured my
stomach, and I remembered the attack Roze had sent me where Flame Me made a
soulless army. While it didn’t apply to Gelsi and Stono, I recalled Stono’s
offer to kill for me. With those morbid
thoughts, I reached my rooms. Even though I had three levels, I only possessed
enough furniture to occupy one. An armoire, a desk, a single bed and night
table looked lonely in the round room. I would need to do some shopping when I
had the time. Right now finding souls took priority over finding curtains. Then
I could be Yelena, the all-powerful Curtainfinder. Able to decorate a room in
one hour. I laughed out loud. “What’s so funny?” a
heart-melting voice asked from behind me. Valek leaned in the doorway,
his arms crossed over his chest as if he visited me every day. Dressed as one
of the Keep’s servants, he wore a gray tunic and pants. “I was thinking about
curtains.” I moved toward him. “Curtains are funny?” “In comparison to all my
other thoughts, yes, curtains can be amusing. But you, sir, are the best thing
that’s happened to me all day, all week and, now that I think about it, all
season.” Two steps and I was wrapped in his arms. “That’s the best welcome
I’ve had all day.” I could only imagine what
he had been up to. His ability to get into any building undetected made him the
most feared man in Sitia. And his immunity to magic terrified the Master
Magicians. He was Commander Ambrose’s best weapon against them. “Do I want to know why
you’re here?” I asked. “No.” I sighed. “Should I know
why you’re here?” “Yes. But not now.” He
leaned over and his lips met mine, and it no longer mattered why. The late-afternoon sun
woke me and reminded me about my meeting with Gede. I nudged Valek awake. We
huddled under the blankets against the icy air. Valek moved to get up.
“I’ll make a fire—” “No!” I grabbed his arm,
stopping him. He peered at me with
concern. I marveled at the rich sapphire color of his eyes and how they
contrasted with his pale skin. “You’ll need to reapply
your skin-darkening makeup,” I said, brushing a black strand of hair away from
his face. He held my hand. “Nice
try, but you are going to tell me why you don’t want a fire.” “Only if you tell me why
you’re here.” I countered. “Agreed.” I filled him in on the
series of events with Cahil, Ferde and the Fire Warper. “It’s ridiculous to
think the Commander is working with these Vermin.” Valek looked thoughtful. “So
the Wannabe King has chosen to ignore the truth about his birth. You got to
admit his ability to dupe the entire Council is impressive.” “Not the entire Council.
Irys doesn’t believe Cahil and I’m sure there are others.” I waved my hand in a
shooing motion. “Doesn’t matter. It’s not my concern. I’ve been told to be a
good little student and mind my own business.” Valek snorted. “Like you
would listen to them.” “I agreed.” He laughed long and
hard. “You. Not. Get involved.” Valek paused to catch his breath. “You’ve been
in the midst of trouble ever since you became the Commander’s food taster,
love. You would never walk away.” I waited until he wiped
the tears from his cheeks. “This is different. Then I didn’t have a choice.” “Oh? And you have a
choice now?” “Yes. I’ll let the
Council deal with these Vermin and I’ll stay out of trouble.” “But you know they can’t
counter them.” “They don’t want my
help.” Valek sobered and a hard
edge glinted in his gaze. “What happens when the Vermin win?” “I’ll stay with you in
Ixia.” “What about your
parents? Leif? Moon Man? Irys? Do they come with you? And what happens when
these Warpers with their incredible blood magic decide to follow you to Ixia?
What choice will you have then?” He studied my face. “You can’t let your fear
of the Fire Warper stop you from—” Annoyed, I snapped. “The
Council has stopped me. They’re the ones who are against me.” Besides, I didn’t
want to think about my family—they were all grown people able to look after
themselves. Then why did guilt tug at my heart and doubt squeeze my chest? “You just said there’re
a few Councilors on your side. Once the Council hears Marrok’s evidence
tonight, they’ll believe you about the Wannabe King.” “How did you know about
Marrok?” Irys had just told me this morning. I had insisted on attending
Marrok’s questioning, but she said the session was closed, for Councilors only. Amusement returned to
Valek’s face. “Servants. Their information network is far superior to a corps
of trained spies.” In an offhand way, he added, “I’ll tell you about the
session later tonight.” “You rat! It’s a closed
meeting. Only you would try to pull it off.” “You know me, love.” “I know. You crave a
challenge and you’re cocky.” He grinned. “I wouldn’t
call it cocky. A certain amount of self-confidence is needed, especially for my
line of work.” He turned serious. “And for yours.” I ignored the
implication. “Speaking of work, we made a deal. Why are you here?” He stretched his arms
over his head and yawned, pretending to consider my question. “Valek,” I warned,
poking him in the ribs. “Tell me.” “The Commander sent me.” “Why?” “To assassinate the
Sitian Council.” 17I GAPED AT VALEK.
Assassinating the Council would help the Vermin and support Cahil’s claims.
“You’re not—” “No. It’s the wrong
thing to do right now. The Commander based his decision on the state of Sitian
affairs before these Vermin showed up. He allowed me a degree of flexibility on
this mission. We need to find out what’s going on. The Council meeting tonight
might reveal crucial information.” “We?” “Yes. We.” I sighed. I was
disobeying direct orders from the Master Magicians and the Council again,
getting involved with Sitian affairs. Would I ever agree with their decisions
or was I deep down an Ixian just pretending to be impartial? Perhaps my session
with Gede would be useful. I needed guidance as well as information. Valek and I agreed to
meet back in my room later tonight. He left. Apprehension swirled
around me like a thick fog as I dressed and walked to the Citadel’s guest
quarters. The small clouds in the sky darkened as the light faded. The streets
hummed with people finishing up their tasks for the day. Lamplighters began
lighting the vast network of street lanterns. The main thoroughfares would be
lit, but the back alleys would remain dark. My concern grew as I
passed a number of Vermin sauntering along the streets as if they owned the
place. I avoided their gazes and wondered how the Council could be so swayed by
Cahil’s words. Perhaps a Warper had influenced them with magic, making them
more agreeable. The Citadel’s guest
quarters were located in a building behind the Council Hall and next to the
stables. The two-story structure housed many apartments and I peered through
the gloom, trying to determine which one Gede occupied. A shadow moved next to
an entrance. Moon Man stepped from a pool of darkness. “This way,” he said. No emotion showed on his
face. Gone was his sense of mischievousness and the spark of amusement in his
eyes. I missed them. “Moon Man, I—” “You must not keep Gede
waiting,” he said in a flat voice. “Your Story Weaver is ready for you.” He ushered me inside,
closing and locking the door behind us. Heat pressed against my skin as if I
stood in an oven. A roaring fire blazed in the hearth, illuminating the living
area. All the furniture had been pushed against the walls. Gede sat cross-legged
on a mat in front of the fire. A few Sandseeds sat in the cleared space in the
center of the room. “Come. Sit.” Gede
pointed to a mat in front of him. I hesitated. “You are the Soulfinder.
You should not be afraid of fire. Sit or learn nothing.” Removing my cloak and
pack, I placed them by the entrance. I longed to pull my bow from its holder
but ignored the desire. Instead, I joined Gede on the floor. Sweat ran down his
round face. His skin appeared black in the firelight. A trick of the light revealed
an intricate tattoo design connecting the scars on his bare arms. But when I
blinked, the design was gone. “As a Soulfinder you can
examine a soul, twist it, hold it and return it. You can send your soul to
others. And you can project your soul to the other worlds, and return without
any harm being done to your body,” Gede instructed. “The other worlds?” “The fire world, the sky
and the shadow world. You know about the shadow world from Moon Man. Moonlight
is the gateway to the shadow world. The sky is the final resting place of our
essence. The fire world is what some call the underworld. What it is supposed
to be under, I have no idea. But that is where the Fire Warper lives. And where
you must go.” “Why? Why must it be
me?” Gede’s disappointment
was evident by the sagging of his shoulders. “You are the Soulfinder. The Fire
Warper’s soul is there.” The heat from the room
baked into my body. My shirt clung to my back. “How do I get there?” “Through the fire.” When I didn’t say
anything, Gede continued. “Only you can go in and leave without being harmed.
The Warpers have been feeding this creature with souls from the Kirakawa
ritual. His strength grows.” The flames in the fire
pulsed with an urgency. They swelled to man-size. I looked at Gede in alarm,
but he appeared serene. “He waits for you. Go to
him,” Gede said. I stood. “No. I’m not
ready. I don’t even know how to fight him. With magic?” Gede sneered with
disdain. “You have no idea, do you? All the better.” Confused, I glanced
between Gede and the fire, expecting the Fire Warper to step from the
conflagration. “He comes for you. If
you will not go on your own, then I will provide an incentive.” He snapped his
fingers. “Moon Man, show your pupil what she needs to do.” Moon Man strode toward
the blaze. The flames reached out to him. He extended his hands and the fingers
of fire wrapped around his arms. “No,” I yelled. “Get
back.” I grabbed Moon Man’s shoulders and pulled to no avail. The tendrils of fire
advanced and crawled over my hands. A burning excitement tingled and souls
writhed in agony within the depths of the blaze. Caught between worlds.
Hundreds of them. They dragged us toward them. My first instinct had
been to resist, but their need for freedom, for relief clawed at my body. I
needed to help them. Leaning with Moon Man, I pushed forward. The fire burned
on my skin, but the pain stayed bearable and a cooling relief lurked on the
other side. If I could just get through. A hand tugged on my
shoulders. I tried to shake the person off. “It’s okay. They need me.” An arm from outside the
fire world circled my neck and squeezed. My hands still clutched Moon Man’s
shoulders, trapped in the fire world. “No. Stop. I must…” The souls ceased their
pleading and flinched. “Wait.” The word wheezed from my lips as I strained for
air. But they hid and cowered. “I’ve come to help—” “But who will help you,
my little bat?” the Fire Warper asked. I lost my grip on the
Story Weaver. Without the breath to speak, I projected, Do something! into Moon
Man’s mind. I can not. I have no
power here. The fire world blurred
into a blob of orange and yellow. I plucked at the arm around my neck, but my
hands weighed a hundred pounds. The blob transformed into black. I woke. Lying on my
back, I squinted and blinked until my eyes adjusted to the darkness. The cold
air moved like silk over my hot body. My head throbbed and the skin on my hands
and arms sizzled with pain. I drew a thread of magic and used it to soothe my
head and heal the blisters. “How about helping me,”
Leif said. He held out his arms. They had been scorched. Leif sat next to me. We
were in an alley in the Citadel. Concentrating, I pulled power and healed his
burns. My energy sapped, I leaned back against a wall as a wave of dizziness
made my head spin. “What happened?” My
voice croaked as pain ringed my neck. “I had business in the
Citadel tonight and thought I’d wait for you by the guest quarters. Out of
nowhere Valek appeared.” Leif paused, but when I failed to explain, he
continued. “He muttered a comment about a Council meeting and asked where you
were. By the firelight blazing through the windows, it wasn’t hard to figure
out. Valek picked the lock and we peeked in time to see you and Moon Man hug
the fire.” He wiped soot from his
face with a sleeve. “Valek attacked the Sandseeds inside and yelled for me to
get you. Gede screamed for me to leave you alone, that you need to learn.
Valek’s scarier than Gede, so I listened to him, but I couldn’t pull you away
from the fire. I choked off your air until you passed out. Carried you out
here.” I touched my neck. “Did
you do the same for Moon Man?” “He was too far in. I
couldn’t reach him.” Leif’s voice cracked with anguish. “Does the Fire Warper
have him?” “I don’t know. It was
strange. I’m not certain what just happened.” My brain felt overcooked and
logic stuck to the sides of my skull like a burnt crust. I needed another
opinion. “Where’s Valek?” “Disappeared. But he
left your cloak and pack. And orders.” Leif smiled ruefully. “We are to leave
the Citadel as soon as possible.” “Did he say why?” “No. Just to meet him
about two miles south of the Citadel.” I stood, wrapped my
cloak around me and shouldered my pack. My legs protested the weight. “Let’s
get our horses and supplies from the Keep.” Leif shook his head. “He
said not to return to the Keep for any reason.” I mulled over the
implications. Valek had been in the closed Council session where they
questioned Marrok. Evidence must have been gleaned, but obviously not in our
favor. So much for my promise to visit Gelsi. We fled the Citadel and
camped in a farm field west of the main road. With no supplies, and me refusing
to let Leif light a fire, a miserable night loomed. We huddled in the dark. Leif muttered over
Valek’s reason for sending us here. I cursed my own stupidity; I didn’t have to
wait for Valek. I could contact Irys myself. I asked Leif to keep
watch. “Better than freezing to
death,” he said. Lying on the hard
ground, I projected my thoughts. Irys’s tower sparked with life. And instead of
finding the Master Magician sleeping, she was bent over a handful of books in
her study. Because of the bond we shared, her thoughts were open to me. Irys, I said in her
mind. Yelena! Thank fate! Are
you okay? I’m fine. Where are you? I don’t know if I should
answer. What happened at the Council session? A long pause. Marrok
confessed. To what? He didn’t do
anything. To freeing Ferde and
conspiring against Sitia. Stunned, my mind blanked
for a moment. What…what was his motive? Just like Cahil said.
Marrok wanted to get Cahil arrested and be in charge of Cahil’s men. But… Go on, I urged. There’s a new wrinkle.
Marrok conspired to team up with Ferde and the Daviians to provoke a war with
Ixia. Why is that new? We
already know the Daviians want war. The new part is Marrok
named accomplices. Another pause. You and Leif. My body numbed.
Unbelievable. Someone must have forced Marrok to confess. It’s all a lie. Did
you feel any magic being used? How can the Council swallow that? The thoughts
tumbled one after another. Unless you have some
proof otherwise, the Council has signed an arrest warrant for you and Leif.
They wish to capture you so you can be safely executed. I almost laughed at the
words safely and executed said together. The whole situation was ridiculous. I’m not supposed to be
telling you this either. I could be incarcerated in the Keep’s dungeon if the
Council finds out. Bain and I are already being watched for disagreeing with
them. They’ve gone quite mad. That’s putting it
mildly. What are you going to
do? Irys asked. There has to be a reason
the Council has gone mad. Discovering the reason should be next. Guess I really
was going to stick my nose in Sitia’s business. Nothing like having a warrant
for your execution to get a girl motivated. But all the clans will
be alerted to your arrest warrant, and there’s already talk of a reward.
There’s no safe place for you in Sitia. I’ll figure something
out, and I think it’s best if I don’t contact you again for a while. You’re
already under suspicion. I don’t want to compromise you any further. Good point. Be very
careful, Yelena. I’ll try. But you know
me. Yes, I do. So I’ll say
it again. Be very careful. I pulled my awareness
back, breaking our connection. Exhaustion dragged at my body and I would have
drifted to sleep if Leif hadn’t bumped my arm. “Oh, no you don’t,
little sister. You were gone a long time. Tell me what’s happening.” I filled Leif in on the
details and managed to shock him into a rare silence. “So what do we do now?”
Leif finally whispered. “We wait for Valek.” Valek arrived near dawn.
He rode Kiki and had Rusalka in tow. The saddlebags bulged with supplies.
Fatigue lined his face. He peered at me. “You
know?” “Yes.” Valek dismounted. “Good.
Saves time. The Citadel and Keep are crawling with soldiers looking for you.” “How did you get the
horses out then? A secret spy maneuver?” Leif asked. “No. A distraction at
the Keep’s gate, and I bribed the guards at the Citadel’s south entrance.” Leif groaned. “Now
they’ll know where we are.” “I want them to think
you went south. But you should get as far away from here as possible.” “And go where?” Leif
asked. “Ixia.” “Why would we do that?”
Leif’s jaw set into a stubborn line. Danger flashed in
Valek’s eyes, but he bit back a sarcastic reply. “Things are happening too fast
right now. We need to regroup and plan. We need reinforcements.” Valek made sense. Ixia
was the only place where we would be safe. “We should go now,” I
said. “I’ll meet you at the
Commander’s castle.” Valek handed me Kiki’s reins. She nudged my arm, but I
ignored her. “You’re not coming with us?” “No. I still have a few
of my corps inside the Citadel. They need to be informed about what’s
happening. I’ll join you at the castle afterward.” Before he could go, I
pulled him aside. We embraced. “Stay safe,” I ordered. He smiled. “I’m not the
one getting pulled into fires, love.” “How did you know I was
in trouble?” “After I heard the
Council agree to your execution, I had an odd notion the Council was the least
of your worries.” “Thank you for saving
me.” “You keep things
interesting, love. It would be boring without you.” “Is that all I am to
you? An amusement?” “If only it was that
simple.” “I guess I’m no longer
retired.” I managed a tired smile. Valek kissed me goodbye.
“Take a roundabout route to Ixia. The borders north of the Citadel will
probably be watched.” “Yes, sir.” Valek left and the air
turned cold. I shivered. Kiki nipped at my sleeve and I opened my mind to her. I stay with Lavender
Lady. Keep warm. I’m glad you’re here, I
said. I checked my pockets for a treat. No luck. Ghost put peppermints in
bag. I laughed. Kiki always
knew where to find the mints. I marveled that Valek had taken the time to
include treats in his packing. The horses’ name for him was perfect, though. He
appeared and disappeared as if he were a true ghost. “Which way?” Leif asked. Good question. Valek
said to go around. The best direction would be to head northwest through the
fields of the Stormdance Clan’s lands. Then head north toward Ixia, skirting
the Featherstone lands surrounding the Citadel. I outlined my plan to Leif. “Lead on.” Leif’s
resignation tainted his voice. “I’ve never been to Ixia.” Throughout the day, our
passage through the fields hadn’t drawn any notice, but we still felt exposed
by the daylight. Leif and I decided to do the bulk of our traveling during the
night. After a short break for dinner, we rode through the dark hours. Between
galloping, walking and resting, the horses made progress toward our goal. We found an apple
orchard as the sun dawned. Kiki sniffed around the neat rows of trees, but they
had been picked clean of apples. Nothing grew in this area during the cold
season. Deciding to camp within the shelter of the orchard, we found a site
hidden from the few surrounding farmsteads. “Have we crossed into
Stormdance lands?” I asked Leif as I pulled Kiki’s saddle off her back. “Not yet. See that
ridge?” He pointed to the northwest. “Yes.” “That’s their border.
Stormdance lands are mostly shale. They have a few farms in the eastern portion
of their territory, but the west side is just sheets of shale on top of rock.
The storms blown in from the Jade Sea have carved fantastic sculptures along
their coast, but no one lives there. They only go to the coast to dance.” Leif
sat down and assembled sticks for a fire. I plopped next to him.
Saddle sore and drained of energy, I delayed grooming the horses. “Why do they
dance?” “It’s how they harness
the power from the storms. They capture the storm’s force in glass orbs. It’s a
dangerous dance, but the risk is worth it. If they’re successful, they protect
our land. Instead of being lashed with gale-force winds and soaked with heavy
rains, Sitia receives a mild rain. The added benefit is the Stormdancers can
use those orbs to fuel their factories.” I gestured for more
information. “Haven’t you paid
attention in class?” “My lessons kept getting
interrupted by mundane things like chasing after a Soulstealer. I’ll try harder
in the future to ignore such events.” “Boy, you’re grumpy when
you’re tired.” Leif started a small fire and poured water into his cooking pot.
“This container was made by the Stormdance Clan. They smelt ore to manufacture
different metal items, including Sitian coins. They also produce parchment and
make ink from indigo plants they grow on their eastern farms.” I mulled over Leif’s
lecture. Buying goods at the market, I hadn’t stopped to consider who might
have made them. In Ixia, every Military District had a particular product or
service contributing to the Territory which could be used for barter and trade.
It appeared Sitia worked the same way, although the Stormdancers were a new
twist. I wondered if they could harness the power of the blizzards blowing down
from the northern ice pack. Life in MD-1, MD-2 and MD-3 turned into a struggle
for survival during the cold season. Would Commander Ambrose
consider lifting his ban on magicians to alleviate the storms? He had grown up
in MD-3, working in the diamond mines so he was no stranger to the
incapacitating snowstorms. Even Valek, who had lived in MD-1, had seen his
father’s leather business destroyed by the heavy snow. I thought about the
chain of events that had started with the collapse of Valek’s father’s roof. He
didn’t have enough money to replace his equipment, feed his family and pay
taxes to the King. When Valek’s father asked the soldiers, who had come to
collect the taxes, for an extension, they had killed three of his four sons.
That act sent Valek on a mission of revenge against a King who allowed his
soldiers to murder innocent children. Becoming the best assassin in Ixia, Valek
eventually joined forces with Ambrose. Together they had defeated the King and
gained control of Ixia. If the roof hadn’t
collapsed, I wondered if the King would still be in power or if Ambrose would
have found another assassin to help him. Would I even be here? I shied away from those
thoughts and focused on our present situation. Leif and I needed to guard our
small camp. He manned the first shift while I tried to sleep. The fire had been doused
as soon as our meal was cooked. The smoke drifted on the breeze. Dreams swirled
in my mind like sparks rising from a hot fire. The dizzying images slowed for a
moment, and each time I glimpsed a horror. Stono’s twisted stomach transformed
into a necklace snake. Blood rained in the Illiais Jungle. Severed heads
floated over the sands of the plains. And fire danced on my skin. The hot prick
of each flame both seared and excited me. I jerked awake. My skin
tingled. Afraid to go back to sleep, I sent Leif to bed. Uneasy sleep came in
fits during the next two days. We kept out of sight, used small fires to cook
meals before we extinguished the flames, and shivered on the cold, hard ground.
On the third day, we crossed into the Krystal Clan’s lands and turned north for
the Ixian border. Located directly west of
the Featherstone Clan and the Citadel, the rolling terrain of the Krystals’
land was dotted with clumps of pine trees. Quarries stretched between the
wooded areas. The Krystal Clan mined marble for buildings and exported the
high-quality sand needed by the glassmakers in Booruby, leaving behind deep
pits gouged into the ground. We avoided the bustle of
activity around the quarries and journeyed through the pine forests. Another
day of travel would get us to the Ixian border. Our approach to the boundary
needed to be considered with care. Sitian soldiers could be waiting to ambush
us. And if we managed to get through, I would need to choose the right words
when addressing the Ixian guards. Or risk being arrested by them. In the end, all the
planning, all the time and energy Leif and I had spent finding the perfect spot
to cross the border without alerting the Sitians was for naught. Just as we
made our way into the hundred-foot-wide swatch of cleared land that was the
official neutral zone between Ixia and Sitia, two riders on horseback bolted
from the pine forest and into the borderland. Two things happened that
made the riders’ presence go from bad timing to a deadly coincidence. Their
horses headed straight toward us, and a whole squad of Sitian solders erupted
from the woods in armed pursuit. 18ONLY ONE OPTION
REMAINED. We spurred our horses toward the border, hoping the Ixian guards
would listen to our story before killing us. The unwelcome riders drew up
beside us as we entered Ixia’s Snake Forest. They kept pace as we penetrated
deep within the forest before stopping. As expected, the Sitian
soldiers hadn’t followed us into Ixia. “Stay where you are,” a
voice ordered from the woods. “You are surrounded.” I knew the Ixians would
be quick to find us. Just not this quick. I had chosen midmorning to cross into
Ixia to avoid the changing of the guards. At this time, there was only one team
of soldiers on duty. “Drop your weapons and
dismount,” the unseen guard said. Topaz. Garnet, Kiki
said. She whinnied a greeting. Cahil’s horse? I pulled
my bow and rounded on the riders, ignoring the orders from the guards. Two men
sat on Topaz and Moon Man rode Garnet. “What? How?” With shaking hands, one
of the riders on Topaz pulled back his hood, revealing his pale face before
collapsing. Tauno held him tight. “Marrok! What—” An arrow
struck a tree next to me. “Drop your weapons and
dismount. Or the next arrow goes into her heart!” the Ixian shouted. I tossed my bow to the
ground and gestured to the others to follow. Tauno slid off Topaz, lowered
Marrok down, then removed his bow and arrows. Moon Man frowned but released his
scimitar before getting off Garnet. Leif tossed his machete next to my staff. “Step away from the
weapons and raise your hands.” We did as instructed. I
made sure to step closer to Marrok. An arrow had pierced his side. The ring of Ixian
soldiers closed in. I counted four men and two women. Armed with crossbows and
swords, they advanced on us. “Give me one good reason
why I shouldn’t send you back to the squad of southerners?” asked an Ixian
captain. His uniform was mostly
black except for a row of yellow diamond shapes down his sleeves and pant legs.
We had crossed into Ixia’s MD-7. “Because it wouldn’t be
diplomatic to turn away a Sitian delegation,” I said. The captain laughed.
“Delegations come with honor guards not fleeing guards. Want to tell me another
one?” “I’m Liaison Yelena
Zaltana. I’m here to speak with the Commander even though my visit is not
sanctioned by the Sitian Council.” “Yelena? The ex-food
taster who saved the Commander?” the captain asked. “Yes.” “But you have magic. Why
would you want to come back to Ixia? I could kill you now and be considered a
hero.” “I see your reputation
has preceded you,” Leif said, grinning. I hoped his good humor was relief over
seeing Moon Man alive and well and not over the death threat to me. I frowned at him. Leif
didn’t understand just how precarious a situation we were in. The captain’s
boast had merit. I was quite sure the rumors about the order for my execution
had traveled throughout Ixia, while the fact that the Commander had ripped up
those orders when I agreed to be a Liaison probably had not. Especially since
everyone in Sitia and Ixia believed the Commander had stayed behind in Ixia
when the Ixian delegation visited Sitia a couple months ago. The Commander had
been disguised as Ambassador Signe, and she had no authority to cancel an
execution order. Because of the edict
that magicians were not allowed in Ixia unless invited, and any Ixians
discovered with magical powers were put to death, I had one volatile situation
on my hands. While killing us
wouldn’t be easy, the captain had what amounted to standing orders to execute
us on the spot. If he succeeded, though, he would have to face Valek. I shied
away from that line of thought. Instead, I said, “The
Commander has appointed me as a Liaison with the Council. I am a neutral third
party so I would not come with an honor guard of Sitians. I come with friends.
Those guards had been chasing him.” I gestured to Marrok’s prone form. “I need
to discuss something important with the Commander right away.” The captain’s crossbow
wavered. He appeared to be considering my answer. I pulled a thread of magic and
skimmed his mind, touching only on his surface thoughts and emotions. His ambition warred with
his intelligence. Tired of guarding the border, the captain wanted a promotion
and reassignment. Killing these southern magicians would give him enough recognition
to become a major. But what if Yelena told the truth? The Commander wouldn’t be
happy to have his Liaison killed. Still, bringing a magician close to the
Commander would be dangerous. What if Yelena lied and planned to assassinate
him? I nudged his thoughts to
trust us and to believe that if he led us to his commanding officer, he would
be doing a commendable deed. “You will accompany me
and my squad,” the captain said. “We will confiscate your weapons and horses,
and you will obey all orders. Any trouble or signs of revolt and you will be
incapacitated.” He signaled for a few of his soldiers to approach us. “Search
them. What about him?” I looked at Marrok. “Let
me attend to his wounds, Captain…” “Nytik.” Again the
captain signaled to one of his soldiers. “Lieutenant, search him for weapons.” After the lieutenant
secured Marrok’s sword, he gave me permission to examine him. The arrow had
pierced Marrok’s right side, missing his ribs. There wasn’t much blood and the
arrow hadn’t gone deep. Why was Marrok unconscious? Accessing my magic, I
scanned the rest of his body. He had been beaten. Two ribs and his collarbone
were broken. A mass of bruises covered his body and his jawbone was cracked. “Leif, I’m going to need
some help.” Healing the extensive damage in Marrok’s body would exhaust me and
I needed to reserve some energy in case Captain Nytik changed his mind. “A poultice?” Leif knelt
next to me. “No. His story threads
are frayed.” Moon Man placed his large hand on Marrok’s forehead. I glared at Moon Man. “Stay away from him. Leif, let’s deal with the physical injuries first.” Moon Man retreated. Leif
and I drew power from the source. With my brother’s help, I assumed his
injuries and repaired them. When Marrok woke, Leif gave him water and a
sustaining tonic to revive him. I questioned him on what
had happened and why he was here, but Marrok just stared at me with a wild,
unconnected look in his eyes. Worried about his mental state, I projected my
awareness into his thoughts. A cacophony of images
flooded his mind. Memories and emotions and secret thoughts were exposed,
unlocked and left to run amok, as if someone had taken a library full of books
and torn and scattered them all around the room. The sheer amount of disarray
overwhelmed Marrok. He could no longer bring two thoughts together to form a
coherent sentence. And there in the middle
of the mess, gleefully shredding what remained of Marrok’s mind, was Roze
Featherstone, First Magician. She turned to me. There
you are. I knew I’d find you in here if I looked hard enough. Now I can
discover where you’ve been hiding. She advanced, but I held
my position. I’m not a memory, Roze. You won’t be able to extract anything from
me. I wouldn’t be so sure.
Too much confidence can be a weakness. You tried twice before
and failed. I’m feeling pretty certain about my prediction. Why did you destroy
Marrok’s mind? She glanced around at
the chaos. He’s a criminal. And you shouldn’t be so shocked. It’s no different
than when you destroyed the Soulstealer’s mind. I ignored the jab.
Marrok isn’t a criminal and you know it. Did you force him to make a false
confession? He was honest, unlike
you. You’ve been lying to us and to yourself, thinking you can be a benefit to
Sitia. Now the Council knows the danger and I have permission to eliminate the
threat you pose. Again I failed to be
impressed with her boast. How did Marrok and the others find us? Roze smiled. You’ll have
to figure that out on your own. Are you trying to tell
me I have a spy in my midst? Dishonest people tend to
find each other, Yelena. It’s the price you pay for associating with the
criminal element. Frankly, I was surprised the Council hadn’t given me
permission to neutralize you before. After all, how can they trust the heart
mate of the most feared man in Sitia? Think about it. How could you be a
Liaison when it’s obvious where your loyalties lie? First sign of trouble and
you’re running for home. I will tell you one thing. You won’t be safe in Ixia. I didn’t say anything,
but she laughed. I have found what I needed. Good luck trying to put the pieces
of Marrok’s mind back together. She faded from his
consciousness. Standing in the middle of the destruction she had left behind, I
knew restoring order would be an impossible task. I returned to my body. There
was nothing I could do. Roze had the Council’s
support against me. If I hadn’t known any better, the web of lies Cahil spun
made complete sense. Roze even made sense. If she was as dedicated to Sitia as
she claimed, then her efforts to discredit me were valid. Why trust me? I’m a
Soulfinder, the one type of magician with an evil history. It would take a
major effort and physical evidence to counter Cahil now. “Moon Man, how did you
find us?” I asked. “Logic. I knew you would
go to Ixia and I knew you would not cross the Avibian Plains in order to go
around Featherstone lands. So that left west. Tauno found your trail in the
Krystal lands.” It was too much of a
coincidence. “But Leif saw you disappear into the fire. And what about Marrok
and the horses? How did you get them?” He had help and must have been sent by
Cahil or Roze. Moon Man worked for them now. “Gede pulled me from the
fire. Marrok had been dumped in the infirmary and left unguarded. The horses
came when we needed them.” It still sounded too
easy. “Why did Gede insist I go into the fire?” “You will have to ask
him. He is your Story Weaver now. I can not guide you.” His tone held sadness. “Why did you go into the
fire, Moon Man?” Leif asked. “Gede is the only
surviving leader of my clan. I follow his orders.” “Even when your life’s
at stake?” “Yes. Loyalty to one’s
clan comes before personal safety.” “Like being bait for a
necklace snake?” Leif gazed at me. “Exactly,” Moon Man
said. “Can your man walk?”
Captain Nytik asked. He had been standing nearby, watching us with distaste
creasing his forehead. “We need to get moving.” Marrok couldn’t walk,
but he could ride. Kiki and Topaz’s heads were together. I connected to Topaz,
and asked, Go home? Miss Peppermint Man? No. Stay. Why? Topaz had been with
Cahil for a long time. Bad smell. Blood. I turned to the captain.
“He’ll sit on his horse.” With the lieutenant in
the lead, Moon Man, Leif, Tauno and I followed. The captain and his remaining
soldiers formed a rear guard. We traveled north through the Snake Forest. On a map, the forest resembled a thin rope of green that undulated along the
entire east-west border from the Jade Sea to the Emerald Mountains. After a
half day of travel, we arrived at a guard station and barracks. Another round of explanations
had to be endured before we could care for the horses and eat lunch. We sat in
the middle of the guard house’s dining area surrounded by fifty suspicious
soldiers who shot us hard glances between bites of food. Moon Man guided Marrok
with a gentle patience. Basic skills like eating and caring for himself would
all have to be relearned. During our cold meal of
venison jerky and bread, I explained to my companions about Ixia’s uniform
system. “Everyone who lives in Ixia must wear a uniform. The standard colors
for the shirts, pants and skirts are black and white, but each Military
District has its own color. We’re in MD-7, which is governed by General
Rasmussen, who reports to the Commander. Rasmussen’s color is yellow and you’ll
see a line of yellow diamond shapes somewhere on the uniforms.” I gestured to
the guards around us. Their uniforms matched the captain’s, but the rank
insignia on their collars were different. “A cook’s uniform is all white with
diamonds printed side by side across the shirt. The color of the diamonds tells
you which district the cook works in. Red is the Commander’s color.” “Who’s that?” Leif
pointed to woman heading our way. She wore all black, but had two red diamonds
stitched onto her collar. Her blond hair was pulled into a tidy bun. She held
two bows in her hands. “She’s an adviser to the
Commander.” I stood and grinned. She tossed me my bow. I
caught it. The noise in the room ceased the instant it hit my hand. “Okay, Puker, let’s see
if you’ve been practicing,” she said with an exultant yet predatory glint in
her eyes. “Adviser Maren, didn’t
your mother teach you it’s not nice to call people names?” I hefted my bow.
“Especially not armed people.” She waved away my
comment. “We’ll deal with the niceties later. Stuck in this backwoods, I
haven’t had a decent bow fight in a long time. Come on!” She beckoned me to
follow as she threaded her way through the dining room. “Should we be worried?”
Leif asked. “She taught me all her
tricks, but I’ve learned a few new ones since our last fight. This should
be…interesting.” “Play nice,” Leif said. I navigated through the
quiet room. It erupted with sound as soon as I left. A mass of soldiers
followed me outside. Maren stretched her
muscles before picking up her bow. Tall and lean, she made a formidable
opponent. She swung her six-foot staff with deft hands. At a slight
disadvantage, my bow measured only five feet. I removed my cloak and rubbed my
hands along the smooth wood of my weapon, setting my mind into the zone of
concentration I used when fighting. Not quite magical in origin, this mental
state kept my mind open to my opponent’s intentions. As soon as I was ready
she attacked with two quick strikes toward my ribs. I blocked both, countering
with a strike to her arms. The fight began in earnest. The rhythmic crack of
our weapons filled the air. I ducked a temple strike and thrust the end of my
bow staff toward her stomach. She stepped back and attempted to trip me with
her bow. I jumped and did a front kick in midair, hitting her shoulder. Maren
retreated a few steps before coming at me with a series of jabs. “Did you get tired of
losing to Janco all the time and request a transfer?” I asked, knocking her bow
aside and executing a flurry of temple strikes. Maren had been a captain in the
Commander’s Special Forces, along with my friends Ari and Janco. “I was promoted,” she
said. She met my assault and feinted to the right. Sensing her intentions,
I ignored the feint and stopped the blow to my head just in time. “Promoted to
adviser? Sounds shady. Bribe anyone I know?” “Once I beat Valek, I
could choose any job in Ixia.” I froze for a moment in
surprise and she hit my upper arm, knocking me over. I rolled, avoiding her
jabs, but she pressed her advantage. Two moves later, she sat on my chest and
pressed her bow to my neck. The crowd of soldiers cheered. “Concede?” “Yes.” She grinned and pulled
me to my feet. “Rematch?” “Give me a minute.” I
brushed the dirt from my clothes. “What’s with the skirt?” “It’s not a skirt. See?”
Pulling the fabric apart, I revealed the pants. She snorted with
amusement. “We need to get you back into uniform, Yelena.” Her use of my proper
name meant that I had at least impressed her with my fighting skills. Which
reminded me of her comment that had thrown me off guard. “What’s all this about
you beating Valek? You’re adequate with a bow, but, come on, Valek?” Valek had issued a
challenge to everyone in Ixia. Beat him in a fight with the weapon of your
choice and win the right to become his second in command. Many soldiers had
tried and failed to win the right. “Adequate?” She laughed.
“I guess when I beat you again, you’ll up it to decent.” “That’s if you beat me,
and you haven’t answered my question.” “I had help. Happy now?
Valek never said we had to beat him one on one. Three of us got together and we
won the right to pick any position in Ixia. I chose to become an adviser for
the Commander. I’m in MD-7 on a temporary assignment to deal with some—” she
glanced at the soldiers “—issues.” Three against one was
still good odds for Valek. I wondered who the other two were, and the answer
came to me. “Please don’t tell me Ari and Janco were your partners.” Her chagrined expression
confirmed my guess. “Janco was insufferably
smug before. There’ll be no living with him,” I said. “Valek’s challenge has
been modified. Since Janco and Ari have been promoted to Valek’s seconds, if
other soldiers want to claim the second positions they must beat Ari and Janco,
but no more than six can attack at one time. Valek’s seconds should be able to
handle three each. If a soldier wishes to fight Valek alone, he must beat one
of us to have the chance.” “Having Janco in charge
when Valek’s away is a scary state of affairs.” “Not as scary as when
you’re begging for mercy.” Maren swung her bow. I blocked and countered.
Soon we were engaged in another brisk fight. But this time I stayed focused. I
swept her feet out from under her and stepped on her bow before she could roll
away. I won the match and received a few cheers from my brother, who had joined
the audience. Moon Man and the others stood apart. He watched me with no
expression on his face. “Tie breaker?” Maren
didn’t wait for an answer. Round three began. We fought until we
reached an impasse. Leif’s voice interrupted
us before we started another match. “As much as I enjoy watching my sister get
beaten, we really need to talk to the Commander. You’re wasting time.” Maren studied Leif with
a dubious expression. “I don’t see a family resemblance.” I introduced my brother
to Maren. “Although I hate to admit it, Leif’s right. We need to go.” Maren shook her head.
“General Rasmussen wants to talk with you first. These soldiers have orders to
keep you here until he gives you permission to leave.” “But I’ve explained—” “Everything but exactly
what you need to discuss with the Commander.” “That’s classified.” “That’s what I was
afraid of.” Maren leaned on her bow. “The general has become…cautious in his
advancing years. He won’t let you leave unless you tell him the reason you came
to Ixia.” From her choice of
words, I could tell there was more to the story. She worked for the Commander
but was helping the general, and probably reporting every bit of information to
Valek. “We’ll talk to the
general then,” I agreed. “Great. I’ll schedule an
audience with him tomorrow.” “Tomorrow? We have
pressing business.” “I’m sorry. The general
retires early. He’ll see no one tonight.” Leif opened his mouth to
protest. I touched his arm, stopping him. Maren and I had dueled the afternoon
away, and I suspected she had a good reason for it. “All right. We’ll wait
until tomorrow. How long will it take us to get to the manor? Perhaps it would
be best to leave tonight?” “No. It would be best to
leave in the morning. It’s a half-day’s ride.” Maren led us to a brick cottage
with a stable nearby. “You can stay in our guest quarters. This location is a
popular spot for travelers from MD-6 to stop.” The castle complex was
located in the southern end of MD-6. Two-and-a-half days’ ride directly north
of Sitia’s Citadel. I found it interesting the two centers of political power
remained physically close while their governing styles were worlds apart. We entered the cottage.
Although the furnishings in the main room were sparse, it looked comfortable
enough. Guards stationed themselves outside, but one lieutenant followed us in. “Beds! They have beds
with feather mattresses,” Leif called from a bedroom. “There is wood in the
back, and you can dine with the soldiers for your evening meal. I’ll let the
general know when you’re arriving.” Maren left with the Lieutenant close on her
heels, but two guards remained positioned by the front door. A quick peek out the
side and back windows revealed the presence of more guards. We were surrounded.
I thought about Maren’s comments. A few of the things she said didn’t add up. I
wondered what she planned to do. All I knew were my plans, and they didn’t
include visiting the general. I joined my traveling
companions in the bedroom. Moon Man sat next to Marrok, who lay on his back,
staring at the ceiling. Tauno perched on the edge of a chair. Leif had stretched out
across one of the beds. A sigh of contentment escaped his lips. “I haven’t
slept in a bed since…since…I can’t even remember!” “Don’t get too
comfortable,” I said. He groaned. “Now what?” I put a finger over my
lips then pointed to my forehead. Too many ears around, I said in his mind. What’s going on? he
asked. We are not going to
waste time with the general, Moon Man said. I scowled at him in
surprise, forgetting that he could link his mind to ours. Since you have chosen
Gede as your guide, I had to channel through Leif. I ignored Leif’s
confusion. Unchannel then. This is a private conversation. Moon Man remained quiet
for a while. I will withdraw. Care to tell me what
that was about? Leif asked. I filled him in on my
conversation with Roze. Moon Man’s a spy. No way. You can’t
believe that. Are you saying Roze is
lying? No. I’m saying maybe
you’re overreacting. Moon Man admitted Gede is his boss. Their clan was
decimated by the Vermin so Gede and Roze want the same thing. Gede probably
sent Moon Man to keep an eye on you. And that’s different
than spying how? He’s probably here to
protect you. To keep you safe until your name can be cleared. It would be nice just to
ask him, but I’m sure he has a vague non-answer already prepared. That’s harsh, Yelena. He
has witnessed the massacre of his clan. Although, I do wish for the old Moon
Man back, Leif said. I’ll take his teasing, cryptic advice and mysterious
arrivals over his somber demeanor any day. My brother put another
pillow under his head. Looks like we’ll be in Ixia for a while. Leif Liana Ixia
has a nice ring to it. If they don’t execute me for being a magician, perhaps I
can find a job at an Ixian apothecary. Do they have uniforms for an
apothecarist? We’re going back to
Sitia. To certain death? No
thank you. Perhaps the Commander will need one of my tisanes? We need to talk to the
Commander and rendezvous with Valek. I hoped. Surrounded by guards.
Remember? That’s right. We’re outnumbered.
It’s a shame we don’t have magic to help us. A mage could put the guards to
sleep. Or better yet we could use Curare. Too bad I don’t have any blowpipes in
my backpack. Sarcasm is an ugly
trait, little sister. You should avoid it. And you give up too
easy. And trust too easy, but I wouldn’t say it to him. I blame the feather
mattress. It has sucked all my motivation. If there is a comfortable bed in my
apartment above my apothecary shop, I will be quite content living in Ixia. Leif. I warned. All right. All right.
I’ll make you a few blowpipes just in case we can’t put everyone to sleep. He
grumbled to himself as he rolled out of bed and went over to his pack. I debated what I should
tell Tauno and Moon Man. As long as we didn’t have a fire, I could warn them
about my plans. And I wanted them with me so I could keep an eye on them. “We should go to bed
early tonight,” I said to them. “To rest for tomorrow.” They appeared to
understand my hint. Once the Ixian soldiers had gone to bed, we would make our
escape. I planned to be at the
Commander’s castle before the MD-7 guards realized we had gone. Approaching the
main gate of the castle complex without an Ixian guide would create instant
suspicion, but that was a problem I would deal with when it arose. After having dinner with
the soldiers, I eyed our new set of guards with care, trying to size them up. I
knew Tauno and Moon Man wouldn’t pass for Ixian, so either Leif or I would have
to wear a uniform and pose as a soldier until we reached the Commander.
Ideally, I should disguise myself, but at five feet four inches tall, I doubted
I would find a uniform that fit. Not bothering to build a
fire, we retired early. I slept for a few hours. The luxury of being in an
actual bed made it difficult to rouse. But I forced myself to get up and woke
the others, gesturing for quiet. Leif didn’t have the
skills to put our guards to sleep, but he could complement my energy. I held
his hand and projected my awareness to the circle of soldiers. Three men and
one woman stood watch. Reaching farther, I connected to the horses in the
stable. Ready? I asked Kiki. Yes. The two stable lads
slept on bales of hay, content to have horses in their stables. To them the
musky smell of horse, manure and straw equaled a feather bed. I swept the barracks
with my mind, seeking trouble. At two hours past midnight, the garrison was
calm. Since I couldn’t put the entire garrison into a deep sleep, I hoped we
were far enough away not to wake them. I returned to the sleeping lads and sent
them into a heavy slumber. The guards who ringed
our quarters proved resistant to my mental suggestion. Their Ixian training
fought my magic and I feared I would have to resort to using the Curare. Before
I broke the connection, one of the guards jerked in surprise as a sharp point
jabbed his neck. His vision spun as the drug entered his blood. I pulled away
before the man passed out. Leif released my hand. “Time to go,” I said,
moving fast. We had help and my heart soared. One person always knew when I needed
him. I threw open the door, expecting Valek, but found Maren instead. She
dragged one of the guards into the guest quarters, and was soon followed by
three others who each carried in a prone form, dumping them onto the floor. Her companions wore MD-7
uniforms. “Guess we had the same
idea. My men will pose as your guards while we head toward the castle,” she
explained. “Will they be out long?”
I poked one of the men on the floor with the toe of my boot. “A good six hours. I
used Valek’s sleeping potion on them.” She smiled with a mischievous glint in
her gray eyes. “Adviser Maren, you
aren’t doing a little moonlighting with Valek’s corps now, are you?” I tsked
with mock concern. “How did you know when to strike?” Maren gave me an odd
look. “When the horses left the stable, I thought you might be ready to go.” “Are you coming with us?
Can you ride?” “Yes. I have a horse
nearby. I need to return to the general’s manor house before you’re discovered
missing. I’ll take you to MD-6’s border and introduce you to the soldiers at
the way station there. They will take you to the Commander’s castle. Your
weapons are outside. Let’s go.” Leif, Moon Man, Tauno
and I carried our saddles until we were far enough away to risk the noise. Moon
Man and Marrok rode on Topaz. Marrok still couldn’t speak, but he mounted when
Moon Man asked him to. Maren proved to be an
adept rider and we covered the distance to MD-6 in record time. Before she
alerted the way-station guards, I asked her, “What will happen when General
Rasmussen finds out we escaped?” “Once you’re with the
Commander, he can’t admit to trying to delay you, because he’ll have to answer
why. He’ll probably have his people keep the whole incident quiet. Valek will
most likely let him believe he got away with it. Until Valek needs something
from him.” Another predatory grin spread on her face. Our transfer to MD-6 and
into the hands of General Hazel’s soldiers proceeded with quick efficiency. The
new guide wore a captain’s uniform with blue diamonds instead of Captain Nytik’s
yellow. In fact, the whole trip
to the Commander’s castle went smoothly. Admitted into his complex without any
trouble, I should have savored those few quiet hours. Because after we met with
Commander Ambrose, nothing went right. 19AFTER OUR ARRIVAL at the
castle complex, we waited in the outer courtyard. We received many curious
glances from the castle’s denizens, and I knew the servants would soon be
gossiping and laying bets about who we were and why we had come. They probably
didn’t recognize me without my food taster’s uniform on. Grooms from the stable
appeared to take the horses. I wanted to stay with Kiki, but we were instructed
to enter the castle to await a meeting with the Commander. My companions exclaimed
over the odd-shaped structure. With its multiple levels of unusual geometric
shapes, the castle resembled a child’s toy. Balanced on the rectangular base,
the other floors of the castle were a combination of squares, triangles and
even cylinders built on top of one another in a haphazard fashion. On some
levels all three shapes could be found. The windows of the building also
reflected the architect’s fondness for geometry, including octagons and ovals. It had been a year since
I last saw the castle. Once part of my everyday routine, I had grown used to
its strange style. Now, the sight of the structure jolted me and unease
fluttered through my body. The four towers at the
corners gave the viewer some sense of symmetry. They rose a few stories higher
than the main building and colored glass decorated their windows. I paused. The
Magician’s Keep also had four towers in the corners and I wondered about the
similarity. A servant led us to an
austere waiting room with minimal comforts. Served refreshments, I
automatically tested the drink for poisons, surprising Leif when I gargled the
juice. He had been staring at the blank walls, probably wondering where all the
legendary paintings and gilded mirrors had gone to. I assumed the Commander had
destroyed all the treasures from the King’s era, but, remembering a comment
Cahil had made to me about the amount of money needed to support Ixia, I
wondered if Commander Ambrose had traded them for services instead. “Did you live here?”
Leif asked. I nodded. “For two
years.” One of them in the dungeon. Not many people in Sitia knew about Reyad.
I preferred to keep the details of that time to myself. However, most Ixians
were aware I killed Reyad. “Where did you stay?” “I had a room in Valek’s
suite.” Leif shot me an
incredulous look. “Boy, you worked fast.” “And you assume too
much.” One day I would tell Leif and my parents about my ordeal, but not today. Leif grew thoughtful.
Tauno napped in one of the wooden chairs. I marveled at how the Sandseed could
wedge himself into a small space and still look comfortable. During our time
together, he had adapted to being within walls. Moon Man, on the other
hand, fidgeted in his chair. I couldn’t determine if his discomfort grew from
being in a confined space or from my hostility. He claimed I had a new Story
Weaver. It was an easy way for him to avoid telling me the truth. Knowing we were headed
toward Ixia, Cahil must have planned Marrok’s escape. The Sitian guards who
chased them were probably part of the ruse, too. I longed to pace the
room. The wait stretched as long as a necklace snake. There was nothing to
avert me from my list of worries. Valek remained near the top. Where was he? By
this time, he should be back in Ixia. Thoughts circled in my mind. To distract
myself, I sat in one of the hard chairs near the only window. Outside, a
portion of the barracks and practice yard where the Commander’s soldiers lived
and trained was visible, reminding me of Ari and Janco, my soldier friends who,
according to Maren, were now Valek’s seconds in command. I stood, desiring
action. Perhaps I should just go to the Commander’s office. I knew how to get
there, and I hated this unsettled sensation sloshing in the pit of my stomach.
Why was I so on edge? Understanding crashed
through me and I needed to sit down again. Inside these walls I had always been
a prisoner. Either by the bars of the dungeon or by the belief I had ingested a
poison called Butterfly’s Dust, knowing I couldn’t get far without the daily
antidote keeping me alive. And all the logic in the world couldn’t convince my
body I was free. Finally, an adviser
arrived to lead us though the main corridors of the castle. Leif gasped in
surprise when we entered the main hall. Greeted by the sight of the silk and
gold tapestries hanging in tatters, I sympathized with my brother’s reaction.
Black paint stained the once famous quilts that had symbolized each province
during the King’s era. They now represented the takeover. The old provinces had
been torn apart and borders redrawn into eight neat Military Districts. Commander Ambrose’s
disdain for opulence, excess and greed was evident in every part of the stone
building. Stripped of the trappings of royalty, the castle had been robbed of
its soul, and reassigned as a basic utilitarian structure. The transformation of
the throne room was another example of his disregard. Instead of lavish
decorations and thick carpets, the room buzzed with the activity of numerous
advisers and military officers from every Military District in Ixia, with no
sign of a dais or throne in sight. With desks wedged in tight together, getting
the five of us through the room turned into an exercise in agility as we
threaded our way toward the back. The Commander’s office
matched the rest of the castle. Stark, neat and organized, the room lacked
personality but reflected its occupant perfectly. Wearing a tailored black
uniform with real diamonds glittering from his collar, Commander Ambrose stood
when we entered. I studied his clean-shaven face as I introduced him to my
companions, detecting only a faint resemblance to Ambassador Signe. As if they
were truly cousins instead of the same person. The power of his gaze,
though, remained the same. My heart flipped in my chest when he focused his
gold-colored eyes on me. “This is an unexpected
visit, Liaison Yelena. I trust you have a good reason for bypassing standard
protocol,” he said, raising a single slender eyebrow. “An excellent reason,
sir. I believe Sitia will try to mount an offensive against you.” The Commander glanced at
my companions as he considered my words. More gray had infiltrated his black
hair, which had been cropped so short it looked as if Kiki had grazed on it. Walking to his office’s
door, the Commander called to one of his men. “Adviser Reydon, please
escort our guests to the dining hall for lunch and then to the guest suite.” He
turned to the others. “The Liaison will dine with me and meet up with you
later.” Leif looked to me for
guidance. I opened my mind to him. Do you want us to stay?
he asked. I don’t think you have a
choice. He isn’t my Commander. I
don’t have to listen to him. A childish, stubborn
remark. Perhaps Leif felt left out. Be a good guest and do as he says. I’ll let
you know what happens. You sure you don’t need
backup? This guy creeps me out. Leif, I warned. He left the office with
obvious reluctance, shooting me an annoyed frown before following the adviser. When the room emptied,
the Commander gestured for me to sit in the chair in front of his desk.
Unnerved, I perched on the edge. He served me a cup of
tea before settling behind his desk. I sipped the drink with care, testing for
poisons. In command of a powerful military and with eight ambitious generals to
oversee, the Commander needed a food taster on his staff. “Why have you come?” he
asked. “I told you. Sitia plans—” He stopped me with a
dismissive wave. “You know that’s old news. Why are you really here?” “To ask you to delay a
first strike.” “Why?” I paused, gathering my
thoughts. Only logic would persuade the Commander. “The Sitian Council has had
a dramatic change of opinion from wanting to trade and communicate with you to
being terrified of you.” “Yes. They’re very
unstable.” “But not that unstable.
They’re being influenced.” “With magic?” The
Commander said the word as if it pained him. General Brazell and Mogkan—my
kidnappers—had used magic and Theobroma on him to gain control of his mind
despite his ban on magicians. Though his firm censure softened, the Commander
still viewed magicians as untrustworthy. Consenting to let me act as Liaison
for Ixia had been his first and only concession. Valek had theorized the
Commander feared magicians, but I believed it had more to do with what the
Commander referred to as his mutation. Born with a female body, he believed his
soul was a man’s and he worried a magician would expose him. But from my
interaction with him when he had been disguised as the female Ambassador Signe,
I had sensed the presence of two souls within his body. Standing in front of
him, I suppressed the desire to project into his mind, avoiding even a surface
sweep. It would be a serious breach of protocol. Besides, it felt wrong. “Magic could be a
factor, but there could be another reason or even a person influencing them. At
this point I don’t know, but I want to find out. If you kill them all, you might
not solve the problem and those who replace them will be worse,” I said. “Sounds rather vague.
Perhaps you have more information on this?” The Commander flourished a scroll
then handed it to me. I unrolled the
parchment. Each word I read increased my concern and outrage. “And if you notice—” he
leaned over and tapped the bottom “—it’s signed by all the Councilors, but it’s
lacking two Master Magicians’ signatures. Curious.” Curious wouldn’t be the
word I would use. Disastrous sounded more fitting. I worried about Irys and
Bain. If the Council tried to coerce their signatures, what had happened to
them by refusing? I focused on the paper in my hand. Fretting wouldn’t help
Irys and Bain. In short, the letter
warned the Commander about my renegade status and suggested my treasonous
companions and I be killed on sight. Probably the reason Roze had been
confident I wouldn’t be safe in Ixia. “They seek to undermine
your credibility all the while planning to attack me. Do they think I’m a
simpleton?” He relaxed back in his chair and sighed. “Explain to me exactly
what’s going on.” “If I knew exactly, then
I wouldn’t have sounded so vague.” My turn to sigh. I wiped a hand over my
face, thinking how best to tell the Commander about Cahil. Did I mention the
Fire Warper or not? I had no idea what role he played in all this. Exactly the
problem. So I explained about
Ferde’s escape with Cahil’s help and how Cahil had turned it all around to
implicate Marrok, Leif and me. “Sounds like
assassinating the Council would be a good deed for Sitia,” the Commander said. “That would give Cahil
and his cohorts evidence they were right to suspect you. Sitia would rally
behind them in support. Valek agrees with me. He hasn’t targeted the Council
yet. He’s on his way here.” If the Commander was
surprised, he didn’t show it. “So you already delayed my preemptive strike. Yet
you have no proof.” “None. That’s why I
wanted you to wait before launching another attack. We need more information.
Valek and I—” The office door opened.
Star came into the room, carrying a tray of food. The Commander’s food taster
froze in shock when she recognized me. My own pulse skipped when I saw my old
uniform being worn by her. And not just any woman, but the former Captain Star,
who had been the leader of a successful black market and racketeering ring
before Valek uncovered her operation. Star stared daggers at
me. Her goon’s unsuccessful attempt on my life had led to her capture. Already
warned about Valek’s setup, Star could have disappeared into her own underground
network. Instead, she had let petty vengeance rule her and now she tasted food
for the Commander. “At least you survived
the training,” I said to her. She looked away. The
long red curls of her hair had been tied into a sloppy knot, and her prominent
nose led the way as she walked. Putting the tray onto the Commander’s desk, she
performed a fast taste and left. Even though two lunches had been set on the
tray, she tested only the one. I eyed my food. Star
seemed surprised at my presence, but that could have been an act. She could
still be nursing her desire for revenge. The Commander handed me a plate. Not
to appear rude, I took a tentative bite of the meat pie, chewing slowly and
rolling the food around my tongue. The beef was flavored with rosemary and
ginger and lacked poisons. At least, I couldn’t taste the poisons I remembered.
I lost my appetite when I remembered Moon Man’s comment about learning by doing
and how easy it was to forget dictated information. We talked about minor
things while eating. When I complimented his new chef on the lemon-wedge
dessert, he told me Sammy now held the position. “Rand’s fetch boy?” I
asked. He was thirteen years old. “He worked with Rand for
four years and it became evident only he knew all the ingredients in Rand’s secret recipes.” “But he’s so young.” The
kitchen during meal times had been a cacophony of ordered chaos guided by Rand’s firm hand. “I gave him a week to
prove he could do it. He’s still there.” I had forgotten age
didn’t matter to the Commander. He could have forced Sammy to divulge the
recipes, but he respected ability over experience or gender. My young friend,
Fisk the beggar boy turned entrepreneur, would have flourished in Ixia. When we finished lunch,
the Commander moved the tray aside and repositioned his snow cat statue. Glints
of silver sparked from the black stone. The single piece of decoration in the
room, the cat was one of Valek’s carvings. Killing a snow cat was considered
impossible. The citizens of Ixia avoided the lethal creatures living on the
northern ice pack. The cat’s preternatural ability to escape death made it
feared. Commander Ambrose was
the only person to successfully hunt and kill one, and in doing so, he proved
to himself that despite his mutation he could infiltrate a man’s world just as
he had lived among the snow cat’s world. He believed his female body had just
been a disguise for his soul. Only the Commander and I knew about his hunt and
dual personalities. He had sworn me to secrecy when I had rescued him from Mogkan’s
mind control. “Before Star came in
with lunch you mentioned getting more information about the Sitian Council. Now
that you’re a wanted criminal, how do you plan to achieve that?” the Commander
asked. “I had hoped to
infiltrate the Citadel and talk to one of the Councilors. But I fear the Master
Magician’s magic would discover me, so now I want to borrow Valek and a few of
his men. They could assist us in contacting the Councilor.” “Which one?” “Bavol Cacao Zaltana, my
clan’s Councilman. He has been my strongest supporter and if you see by his
signature…” I picked the Sitian letter up and pointed to his name. “He didn’t
include his family name, Cacao, in his signature, so it’s not an official
inscription. I believe it’s a message to me that he can be approached.” The Commander stared
across the room as if considering my words. After a while, he brought his
attention back to me. “You want me to risk my chief of security to help you
gain information. All the while I’m to do nothing and hope the Sitians don’t
attack before you discover what’s going on?” “Yes.” Although, the way
the Commander said it made the situation sound terrible. There was no sense
sugarcoating it. And the last thing I wanted was to put Valek or anyone else at
risk. But it had to be done. The Commander rested his
chin on his folded hands. “The information isn’t worth the risk. I could wait
to see what develops with the Council and then decide how to handle it.” “But—” A warning flashed in his
eyes. “Yelena, why would you care what happens to the Council? They have turned
their backs on you. You can’t go back to Sitia. You would provide the most help
here with me as my adviser.” An unexpected offer. I
considered. “What about my companions?” “Magicians?” A small
crease of distaste pinched his forehead. “Two.” “They could be part of
your staff if you want. But they can not use their magic against any Ixians
without my permission.” “What about my magic?
Would you place the same restrictions on me?” The Commander’s gaze
didn’t waver. “No. I trust you.” I froze for a moment in
shock. His trust was an honor, and, considering the recent reaction from the
Sitian Council about me, the temptation to become his adviser warred with my
emotions. It would probably be easier to stay and help defeat Cahil from this
side of the border. “Don’t answer right
away. Talk to your companions. I should have news from Valek soon. We’ll meet
again then. In the meantime, do you need anything?” I thought about our
dwindling supplies. If we left, we would need more provisions. “Could you
exchange Sitian coins for Ixian?” I rummaged in my pack, placing various loose
objects on his desk to get them out of my way. “Give them to Adviser
Watts. You remember my accountant?” “Yes.” The covering on
Opal’s bat had come undone and was all over the bottom of my pack. I removed
the glass animal and freed it from the wrapping. The Commander gasped. His focus was riveted on
the statue in my hand; his fingers poised as if to snatch the bat. “May I see?” he asked. “Sure.” With a snap of motion,
he plucked the statue from my palm. He spun the bat, examining it from every
possible angle. “Who made this?” “My friend, Opal. She’s
a glass artist in Sitia.” “It glows like there is
molten fire on the inside. How did she make it?” Trying to comprehend his
words, I stared. He saw the inner glow. Impossible. Only magicians could see
the light. The Commander had
magical powers. 20THE GLASS BAT GLOWED for
the Commander. I had theorized only magicians could see the inner light. But I
could be wrong. Maybe I hadn’t tested the bat on enough people. If the
Commander had magical power, his magic would have raged uncontrolled and flamed
out by now, killing him. The Masters in Sitia would have felt him long ago.
Irys would have sensed it when she stood next to him. Shaking those ridiculous
thoughts out of my mind, I answered the Commander’s questions about
glassmaking. “But what causes it to
glow?” I knew if I said magic,
he would drop it as if burned. Instead, I told him the internal workings were a
family secret. He passed the glass bat
to me. “Extraordinary. Next time you see your friend, please ask her to make
one for me.” I found the coins I had
been searching for, and repacked my bag. Only when I had slung my pack onto my
shoulders did I realize I forgot to rewrap the bat. The Commander picked up
the coins, walked to his office door and opened it. Summoning Adviser Watts, he
asked him to exchange my money and to show me to the guest area. Dismissed, I followed Watts into the throne room, holding the bat in my hand. The adviser noticed the creature
when handing me the Ixian coins. “Sitian art?” he asked. I nodded. “Not a bad likeness, but
rather dull. I thought the Sitians had more imagination than that.” I mulled over the
Commander and Adviser Watts’s comments as I followed Watts through the castle.
Still unable to bend my mind around the Commander’s ability to see the glow, I
had to postpone further ruminations when I entered the guest suite. Leif peppered me with a
million questions the moment I stepped through the door. The guest quarters
were rather lavish by Ixian standards. The main room contained a comfortable
sofa and soft chairs as well as a number of desks and tables. A faint odor of
disinfectant scented the air. Four bedrooms branched off from the living area,
two on each side. Sunlight streamed in through the circle of windows in the
back wall, warming the empty room. I stopped Leif’s
questions with a look. “Where are the others?” He pointed to the second
door on the right. “They’re all resting. Moon Man and Marrok are in the big
room next to Tauno’s.” Double doors marked the
entrance to Moon Man’s room. “Which one is mine?” “Second door on the
left, next to me.” I went into my room.
Leif trailed along like a lost puppy. A simple layout of a bed, armoire, desk
and night table all made of oak decorated the small interior. The bedding
looked fresh and inviting. I stroked the soft quilt. The air smelled of pine.
The lack of dust made me remember Valek’s housekeeper, Margg. She had plagued
my existence when I first became the food taster, refusing to clean my room and
writing nasty messages in the dust. I hoped I wouldn’t run into her during this
trip. Leif’s questions began
again, and I filled him in on what had happened in the Commander’s office, neglecting
to mention his ability to see the bat’s glow. I wasn’t convinced that the
Commander had magic, and certainly wouldn’t try to persuade Leif or anyone
else. “Black and red really
aren’t my colors. Which Military District has green? Maybe I can open my shop
there,” Leif said. Leif’s joke wasn’t as
funny now. “MD-5 is green and black. General Brazell used to govern the
district, but now he’s in the Commander’s dungeon.” I wonder who was promoted. “What are we going to do
next?” “I don’t know.” Leif pretended to be
shocked. “But you’re our fearless leader. You have it all planned out. Right?” I shrugged. “I’m going
to take a long hot bath. How’s that?” “Sounds good. Can I
come?” “As long as you promise
not to spend all day in there.” I gathered some clean clothes. “Why would I?” “You thought the feather
mattress was a luxury. Wait until you see the Commander’s baths.” The hot water soaked my
aches away. Leif joined me in the
corridor with a contented smile on his face. “I won’t have any trouble adjusting
to life in Ixia. Those pools and the overhead duct, pouring water…amazing. Does
every town have a similar bathhouse?” “No. Only the
Commander’s castle has such luxury. It’s a holdover from the King’s regime. The
Commander usually disdains the extravagance, yet it remains.” During my soak, I had
thought long and hard about our situation and the Commander’s offer. The
temptation to stay tried to overpower my logic, but I knew we needed to return
to Sitia. The Sandseed clan had already been destroyed by the Vermin, and Cahil
and the Fire Warper remained a problem. How I would deal with
them continued to be a mystery. Not being able to trust Moon Man, Tauno or
Marrok, left Valek, Leif and me against the Daviians, the Fire Warper, Cahil
and his army. And what would happen if
I revealed Cahil’s involvement with the Vermin? The Council trusted him. I
would need to convince them of his deceit. I would need hard evidence to gain
their trust. Evidence I lacked. In fact, the more I
thought about the whole situation, the less confident I felt about my ability
to find a solution. When Leif and I returned
to the guest suite, Moon Man and Tauno waited for us in the living room. “How’s Marrok?” I asked Moon Man. “Better.” “Can he talk?” “Not yet.” “Soon?” “Perhaps.” I stared at him. He
answered in typical Story Weaver fashion. Refraining from shaking information
out of him, I asked, “Have you learned anything while working with Marrok?” “I have seen bits and
pieces. Marrok’s feelings of betrayal are making it difficult for me to get
through to him. He does not trust me.” Moon Man’s eyes met mine and I could see
his unspoken words. “Trust has to go both
ways.” “It is not a lack of
trust which causes me to keep my silence. It is a lack of acceptance on your
part.” “And you’re afraid of
what you might discover once you accept your role in all this, aren’t you?”
Leif asked me. A knock at the door
saved me from having to reply to Leif’s question. One of the housekeeping maids
handed me a message from the Commander. We were invited to dine with him in his
war room. “You don’t have an
answer for me. Do you have an answer for the Commander? Are you going to stay
and be his adviser?” Leif asked when the maid left. “Actually Leif, I don’t
have any answers. I’ve no idea what I’m doing or going to do.” I went into my
room and shut the door. The Commander’s war room
was located in one of the four towers of the castle. With long stained-glass
windows reflecting the lantern light, the circular chamber reminded me of the
inside of a kaleidoscope. Our conversation
followed mundane topics while we ate spiced chicken and vegetable soup. Leif
wolfed his food with obvious relish, but I took my time, sampling all the
dishes with care. A few guards stood near the Commander. Star hovered close by,
ready to taste the Commander’s food whenever a new course was served. Moon Man
and Tauno remained quiet during dinner. We discussed the new
general in MD-5. Colonel Ute from MD-3 had been promoted and transferred. The
Commander thought it best an officer from outside the district be in charge. In
other words, a loyal person who had not been tainted by General Brazell’s
attempt to become the new leader of Ixia. When the subject turned
to General Kitvivan’s worry over the upcoming blizzard season, I told the Commander
about the Stormdance Clan and how they handled the storms from the sea. “Magicians could harness
the power of the blizzard,” I said, “saving the people in MD-1 from the killing
winds. Then you could use the power for General Dinno’s sawmills in MD-8.”
Dinno used the wind to fuel his mills, and calm days hurt production. “No. The matter of
magicians and magic in Ixia will not be discussed,” the Commander said. His stern tone had once
intimidated me, but not this time. “You want me to be your adviser, yet you
won’t consider using magic for the good of your people. I’m a magician. How can
I be an effective adviser to you?” “You can advise me on
how to counter the magicians in Sitia. I’m not interested in what magic can do
for Ixia.” He made a cutting motion with his hand. End of discussion. I wouldn’t let the
subject drop. “What happens when one of your generals becomes ill or injured
and I can save their life with my magic?” “You don’t. If they die,
I’ll promote another colonel.” I considered his answer with
mixed feelings. I knew his firm style of governing was inflexible. The Code of
Behavior’s strict list of proper Ixian conduct left no room for debate.
However, I hoped once he saw the benefits of magic to his people, he might
relax his views. As if reading my mind,
the Commander said, “Magic corrupts. I’ve seen it before with the King’s
magicians. They start out wanting to help and performing great deeds, but soon
the power consumes them and they hunger for more despite the cost. Consider
what has occurred to Moon Man’s clan. Frankly, I’m surprised something like
that hasn’t happened sooner.” “My clan will
repopulate,” Moon Man said. “I have no doubt.” “And I have no doubt if
these Vermin of Sitia are conquered, it’s only a matter of time before another
magician wishes to take over the current government. The talent to control
another’s mind and body is intoxicating and addicting. Better to ban magic and
eliminate magicians altogether.” I wondered if the
Commander’s views would change if he knew he might possess the skill to access
magic. My thoughts returned to Opal’s bat and his ability to see the glow,
mulling over the implications. “Better to kill people
the old-fashioned way,” Leif said, his voice indignant. “You’re saying that
taking over a government with poisons, knives and swords is much better than
using magic. Frankly, I see no difference.” “Magic forces a person
to do things they don’t want to. It controls their will.” The Commander leaned
forward; his eyes lit with an intense passion. Leif quailed under the
Commander’s scrutiny, but he continued with his debate. “And your Code of
Behavior doesn’t force people to do things they don’t want? Everyone in Ixia
wants to wear uniforms? They want to obtain permission to marry or move to
another district?” “Small inconveniences to
live in an area where there is no hunger and no corruption. To know exactly
where your place is in society and what is expected from you. Being rewarded
for your abilities and efforts instead of getting privileges because of who you
were born to or what gender you are.” “But the reward for
having magical abilities is death,” Leif said. “I’m sure the families of those
potential magicians don’t feel the loss of their loved one as inconvenient. Why
not send them to Sitia instead?” “Send them so they could
be used against me?” The Commander’s voice reflected his incredulity. “That
would be poor military strategy.” Leif remained quiet. “No government is
perfect,” the Commander said, relaxing back into his chair. “The loss of a few
personal freedoms has been embraced by most of Ixia, especially those who
suffered under the King’s corruption. However, I know the younger generation is
feeling restless and I will have to address that issue fairly soon.” He stared
at Leif as if contemplating the future. “Yelena, I see your intelligence is a
family trait. I hope you both decide to stay.” A determined line formed
along my brother’s jaw. Leif could be stubborn and perhaps he viewed changing
the Commander’s mind about magicians as a challenge. A messenger arrived and
handed a scroll to the Commander. After reading the message, he stood. “Please
enjoy the rest of your dinner. I have some matters to attend to.” He left,
taking his guards and Star with him. Before Star followed
him, she flashed me a calculating look. The Commander’s opinions
about magic and magicians replayed in my mind as we returned to the guest
suite. Although I agreed with Leif that Ixians with magical powers should not
be killed, I also felt magic corrupted. Even Roze, the most powerful magician
in Sitia, had been affected. To fear my potential as a Soulfinder was one
thing, to support Cahil was another. When we arrived at our
quarters, I pulled Leif into my room. “What’s the matter?” he
asked. “I want to contact Irys.
See what’s going on in the Citadel.” “What I want to know is
what’s going on with you?” “What do you mean?” “Since crossing the
border, you have changed, treating Moon Man like a traitor and not trusting
anyone. If you decide to stay as the Commander’s adviser, you’ll be a traitor
to Sitia. What happened to Liaison Yelena? The neutral third party?” “To be a Liaison, I need
to have support of both parties. Are you going to help me contact Irys or
lecture me?” Leif grumbled and pouted
but agreed to share his energy. I lay on the bed and drew power, projecting my
awareness south to the Keep. Bypassing the busy thoughts of the Citadel’s
inhabitants, I searched the campus for Irys. I couldn’t find her within her
tower, but I sensed a faint echo as if the scent of her soul remained behind
after she had left the room. Odd. I moved on to the Keep’s
other towers, hoping Irys was visiting with another Master. Zitora’s thoughts
were walled off from intruders. Bain’s tower had that same odd feeling as
Irys’s, and the cold barrier of Roze’s mind slammed into me. I bounced off and
retreated, but an icy wind sucked me back toward her. This time her barrier was
down, and cold fingers clamped around my awareness, pulling me into her mind. Searching for someone?
Roze asked. I refused to answer. You make it so easy,
Yelena. Roze laughed. I knew you would contact Irys. You won’t be able to talk
to her, I’m afraid. The Council decided Masters Irys and Bain were engaged in
treasonous activities. They’re currently in the Keep’s cells. 21HOW DID YOU MANAGE to
frame two Master Magicians, Roze? I said, suppressing my shock and outrage. They refused to sign the
letter to the Commander, and they have been stalwart defenders of you and your
brother. She said the word brother with heated contempt. They doubted Cahil’s
word. Cahil, who single-handedly increased the strength of our army with
Daviian Warriors. Those Warriors are not
there to help you. They’re there to use you. I’m not going to take
advice from you. Roze tightened her grip on my consciousness. A simpleton who’s
about to lose her mind. She peeled the layers of
my consciousness away with a knife made of ice. Cold stabbed deep into the core
of my thoughts, attempting to expose what I kept hidden. Thinking of becoming an
adviser to the Commander, what a laugh. After I’m done with you, you won’t be
able to advise a baby on how to suck its thumb. Unable to pull away, I
panicked. Leif’s energy poured into me, but I still couldn’t break free. Flayed
by her arctic magic, I remained helpless. Valek was in Sitia to
assassinate the Council. Hmm…most interesting, she said. Desperate and knowing I
couldn’t sever her hold, I reached closer to her, searching for a part of her I
could control. Her soul. I tugged at the ghostlike force, smelling its rotten
stench, and feeling it fray as if her soul was splitting into multiple
personalities. Roze jolted in horror
and expelled me from her grip. As I escaped, her words reached me. Try to rescue Irys and
Bain. Come to the Citadel. We’re ready for you. Roze yanked a defensive wall
between us, breaking our link. I returned to my body,
feeling exhausted and weak. Leif loomed over me.
“What happened? I lost you.” “I got caught by Roze…”
My thoughts returned to what she had said about Irys and Bain. “And?” “And, I broke free
before she could dissect all my thoughts.” “What did she find out?” I told him she knew
about the Commander’s offer and about Valek being in Sitia. He creased his thick
eyebrows as he considered. “Knowing about Valek could be a good thing. The Council
can take measures to protect themselves in case Valek comes back.” “If Roze warns them.
Their deaths may be exactly what she wants.” “No. Roze wants what is
best for Sitia. She’s a strong-willed person and many Councilors are swayed by
her arguments, but I don’t believe she would use murder or magic to get her
way.” I shook my head. After
the attack, I knew she would resort to both to get what she wants. “You were
her student. Of course you still hold charitable thoughts for her.” “I know her better than
you.” Leif’s voice huffed with anger. “I’ve worked for her and with her for
nine years. Her methods can be harsh, but her concern is always for Sitia. She
has always supported Cahil’s desire to become King of Ixia. In her mind, your
Soulfinder abilities are a threat to Sitia. And I’m starting to agree with
her.” Leif stormed from the room. I wondered what had
really upset Leif. In my opinion, Roze was a murderer. She didn’t kill the
body, but she destroyed minds without any remorse. Look at Marrok. But then
again I had done the same thing with Ferde. At least, I admitted to being a
killer. Was I any better? No. My mind sorted through
all the information from Roze. Rescuing Irys and Bain became a priority. I
needed eyes and ears inside the Citadel’s walls, and a way to get messages
inside the Keep. All without being seen or without risking anyone else. Magic
was no longer an option. If I projected my awareness near the Keep, Roze would
catch me again. Mundane methods remained my only recourse. A plan formed, making my
heart buzz with the possibilities. If I hadn’t been so drained of energy, I
would have started preparations that night. Instead, I mapped out the steps I
needed to take to return to Sitia. I hovered at the
entrance to Dilana’s workroom. The Commander’s seamstress sat in a pool of
early-morning sunlight, humming to herself as her deft fingers repaired a pair
of pants. Her soft curls glowed like fresh honey. I hesitated, not wanting to
disturb her. My need for information,
though, spurred me into the room. She glanced up in surprise and my heart
stopped. I braced myself for her reaction, guessing hate and anger ranked at
the top of her list. “Yelena!” She jumped to
her feet. “I heard you were back.” She pulled me into a warm hug then released me
for inspection. “You’re still too thin. And what’s this you’re wearing? The
material is far too light for Ixia’s weather. Let me get you some proper
clothes and something to eat. I have a fresh loaf of cinnamon bread.” She moved
away. “Dilana, wait.” I grabbed
her arm. “I ate breakfast and I’m not cold. Sit down. I want to talk to you.” Her baby doll’s beauty
hadn’t dimmed with time or grief, but I could see a touch of sadness in her
eyes despite her smile. “It’s so good to see you
again.” She rubbed a hand along my arm. “Look at how tan your skin is! Tell me
what you’ve been doing in Sitia besides sunning yourself.” I laughed at the fantasy
of me lounging in the sun, but sobered. She wanted to avoid the subject. Avoid
the reason I thought she might hate me. But I couldn’t go on without saying
anything. “Dilana, I’m sorry about Rand.” She waved the comment
away. “No need. The big oaf got himself mixed up with Star and her nefarious
deeds. Not your fault.” “But he wasn’t her
target. I was and—” “He saved you. The dumb
ox died a hero.” She blinked back tears threatening to spill over her long
eyelashes. “It’s a good thing we didn’t get married or I’d be a widow. No one
wants to be a widow at twenty-five.” She took a deep breath. “Let me get you a
slice of bread.” Dilana left before I
could stop her. When she returned with a plate, she had regained her composure.
I asked her about the latest gossip. “Can you believe Ari and
Janco are working with Valek? They were in here last month trying on their new
uniforms and preening in front of the mirrors.” “Do you know where they
are?” I asked. “Some mission with
Valek. I had to make a sneak suit for each of them. I used up all my black
fabric to cover Ari’s muscles. Can you imagine that big lunk sneaking around?” I couldn’t. Ari didn’t
strike me as the assassin type. He was more of a one-on-one fighter. Same with
Janco. He wouldn’t feel right killing someone without a fair fight. So why were
they with Valek? Dilana continued to
chat. When the subject returned to uniforms, I asked her about getting an
adviser’s uniform. “The Commander has asked me to stay and I feel like I stand
out in these Sitian clothes.” Not an outright lie, yet a pang of guilt twinged
in my chest. “Even though coral is a
beautiful color on you, you’ll be warmer in a uniform.” Dilana bustled over to
her piles of clothes. She picked out a black shirt and pants. Handing them to
me, she shooed me behind the changing screen. “Try them on.” I fingered the two red
diamonds stitched on the shirt’s collar. The last time I had stood here, I had
been exchanging my red prison gown for the food taster’s uniform. When I pulled
my shirt off, I saw my snake bracelet. Round and round, it hugged my arm. I
suppressed the sudden laughter bubbling in my throat. I’ve come full circle,
but this time I put on an adviser’s uniform. It fit better than my food taster
uniform, molding to my body like a second skin. The Commander wanted me to help
him, while the Council wanted me dead. About a year ago, the opposite had been
true. This time I allowed the hollow snort of laughter to escape my lips. “Something wrong?”
Dilana asked. I stepped out. “The
pants are a little big.” She grabbed the
waistband and pinched the material together, marking it with chalk. “I’ll have
these fixed by lunch.” I changed, thanked her
and headed out to visit Kiki and the horses. The Commander’s stables were
located next to the kennels. The animals shared a training ring and there was a
pasture for the horses along the castle’s walls. Kiki dozed in her immaculate
stall. I checked on the other horses. Their coats gleamed in the sunlight. They
seemed content and well cared for. I complimented the stable boys and girls,
who nodded and resumed their work. Their demeanor reminded me of adults and I
wondered if they had any fun. On my way back to the
castle, I spotted Porter, the Commander’s Kennel Master. His dogs never wore
leashes and their obedience to him was uncanny. I paused and watched him work
with a litter of puppies. He had hidden treats in the training yard and taught
the pups how to find them. Being puppies, they frequently forgot what they were
supposed to do, but once Porter caught the attention of a dog, he touched its
nose and said, “Go find.” Energized with its
mission, the puppy scented the air and made a beeline for a treat. Impressive.
Porter noticed me watching and gave me a curt nod. He had been good friends
with Rand, and I recalled a conversation I had had with Rand about Porter. Rand hadn’t believed the
rumors about Porter’s magical connection with the dogs. Since there was no
proof, Rand stayed true to their friendship when everyone else avoided contact
with the Kennel Master. As long as Porter continued to be useful and did not
draw attention to himself, his job for the Commander was secure. I wondered about the
magic, though. If he had magic and could use it without getting caught, then
there might be others in Ixia doing the same thing. Porter had worked for the
King many years before the Commander’s takeover, giving him plenty of time to learn
how to use and hide his power. Perhaps communicating with the dogs was all he
could do. One way to find out. I
pulled a thread of power and made a mental connection with one of the puppies.
Her energy and enthusiasm jumped from one smell to another. When I tried to
communicate with her, she either ignored me or didn’t hear me. Her nose filled
with the scent of soft laced with a sharp hint of squish, and she dug into the
ground seeking a worm. When a voice of warmth and caring called, she left her
task and ran toward Porter. He gave all the puppies
a rawhide stick to chew and filled the row of bowls with water. I moved my
awareness to him, sensing his surface thoughts. They were focused on the tasks
for the day, yet uneasiness lingered. Why was she here? What does she want? To help Ixia, I said in
his mind. He jerked as if bitten
in the leg and glared at me. You hear me, don’t you?
The rumors are true. He strode toward me. I
checked the empty yard. Although I knew how to defend myself, his tall muscular
frame reminded me that, despite the gray hair, Porter remained a formidable
opponent. He stopped mere inches from me. “You’re here to help
Ixia?” Porter growled. If he had hackles they would have been raised. “You can
help by leaving us alone.” He didn’t mean him and
the dogs. I caught a brief image of other Ixians. “There must be something
I can do?” “Like you did for Rand? No, thank you. All you’ll do is get us killed.” He turned away, but his words, or
enslaved, reached me. A cold splash of fear
drenched me. Was there someone in Ixia using magicians against their will? Why
was I surprised? Magic and corruption went hand in hand. Would it corrupt me as
well? I’d been using my magic without stopping to think about the consequences.
Connecting with Porter could get him killed, and I did it just to satisfy my
own curiosity. If I was so blasй about using magic now, how would I view it in
the future? Would I crave it like an addiction? I began to think it would be
better not to use magic at all. Before I could return to
the castle, I heard Kiki’s whinny. I hurried back to the stables, but Kiki had
already opened the door and met me in the walkway. Foot hurt, she said. She followed me to the
training yard and bent her front right hoof back for me to inspect the underside.
A rock was lodged in her frog. When did this happen? Night. Didn’t hurt then. Out in the sunlight, she
didn’t appear to be as well groomed as I had thought. She snorted. Lavender
Lady take care. You wouldn’t stand for
the stable boy? Too rough. Wait for you.
You’re spoiled rotten. I left Kiki in the yard,
and fetched my pick and brushes. She lifted her leg and I
dislodged the stone then pulled the shedding blade through her copper hair.
After a while, I removed my cloak. When I finished, clumps of horse hair clung
to my sweaty clothes. You’re beautiful and I
need a bath, I said to her. Pasture or stall? Stall. Nap time. And what about your
snooze before I groomed you? Pre-nap. Ah, the life of a horse.
I made sure her bucket held fresh water. On my way out, I bumped into Porter. “You’re good with that
horse,” he said. I waited, sensing he had
more to say. “Maybe you can help us.”
He scanned the area. A few lads worked nearby. He lowered his voice. “There’s a
meeting tonight in Castletown. Forty-three Peach Lane rear door. Come during
dinner. Don’t let anyone know where you’re going.” 22HE STRODE AWAY. TONIGHT
I had planned to be on my way to Sitia. A visit to Porter would delay me, but
it seemed too important to ignore. After my jaunt to the
stables, I arrived back at the doors of the guest suite at the same time as a
messenger. The Commander wanted us to meet him in the war room this afternoon.
Inside, Tauno paced the living area like a trapped animal, prowling next to the
windows. “Why don’t you go
outside?” I suggested to him. “The soldiers run laps around the castle complex
for exercise. You can join them if you want.” He stopped in surprise.
“I can leave this room without being escorted by an adviser?” “The advisers are a
courtesy provided by the Commander to help you find your way around the castle.
If you go out on your own, you’ll get some suspicious looks, but as long as you
stick to common areas, no one will bother you. Just make sure you’re back for
the meeting.” I told them about the message. Moon Man sat next to
Marrok on the couch. Marrok stared at us with an intense expression as if he
tried to decipher our conversation. “Interesting how you see
the advisers as a courtesy, while Tauno sees them as guards,” Moon Man said. I ignored the Story
Weaver’s comment and gave Tauno directions to find his way outside. Even with
my assurances, he still pulled the door open as if he expected to be accosted. “Has Marrok said
anything yet?” I asked. “No, but he is
understanding more and more. Unlike you.” I scowled. “What is that
supposed to mean?” Moon Man refused to
answer. My plan to leave my companions in Ixia so I could travel faster through
Sitia became more appealing as time went on. The Commander would keep an eye on
them and I wouldn’t have to worry about being betrayed. I looked around the
room. “Where’s Leif?” “In his room,” Moon Man
said. Judging by the
monosyllable response through Leif’s door, I guessed he was still upset with
me. I told him about the meeting then retired to my room. A quiet group followed
me to the Commander’s war room. Tauno had returned, seeming more settled since
he had burned off some of his energy. Moon Man’s calm demeanor returned, and
Leif frowned at the world at large and me in particular. My brother knew how to
pout. The Commander had a
surprise waiting for us. Valek, Ari and Janco sat around the circular table. My
emotions flipped to joy at seeing them. “Valek was just
informing me on the state of affairs in Sitia,” the Commander said. “Continue.” “I found the situation
to be rather ah…unique.” Valek leaned back in his chair. He scanned my
companions with a thoughtful purse of his lips. The sharp features of his
angular face would soften only when he smiled. “Unique is putting it
mildly,” Janco said. He rubbed the scar where the bottom half of his right ear
used to be. A sure sign of his worry. “Try alarming,” Ari
added. Panic began to simmer
under my heart. Ari tended to counter Janco’s exaggerations with cool logic.
His steadying presence helped keep Janco in check. Opposite in appearance,
Janco’s wiry build reflected his quick wit and lightning-fast fighting style,
while Ari’s strength could outmuscle most others. “Alarming would work,”
Valek agreed. “Taking out the Council wouldn’t result in better leaders. In
fact, it would have inflamed the citizens to all-out war. And they have some
new players who could potentially tip the battle in their favor.” “Players? Try creepy
men. Scary magicians. Evil demons.” Janco shuddered. Valek shot Janco a
warning look. “I need to obtain more information before I can assess the true
nature of the threat and determine the best way to counter it.” “Why have you returned?”
the Commander asked. Another glance from
Valek, but this time he aimed it at me. “I require more help. Things were
getting a little too hot even for me.” So much for my plans to
travel to Sitia alone. The room fell quiet as
Commander Ambrose considered. “What do you need?” “A few more men, Yelena
and her brother.” I had suspected Valek
would want me. By Leif’s grunt of shock, I knew his surprise matched my own
when hearing his name. “She hasn’t agreed to be
an adviser yet so I can’t order her to assist you,” the Commander said. “Then I will have to
ask.” Valek looked at us. “Yes,” I said the same
time Leif said no. “I’m a Sitian, remember?
I can’t aid Ixia in overthrowing Sitia,” Leif said. “I don’t want to take
control of Sitia,” the Commander said. “I just don’t want them to invade us and
I will take preventative measures to stop them.” “By helping us, you will
also help your country,” Valek said. “We can do it on our
own. We don’t need you or Yelena.” Leif turned to me. “You could never have
been a true Liaison, little sister. Ever since we’ve been in Ixia, you have
revealed your true loyalties.” Outraged, I asked, “Is
that what you believe?” “Look at the evidence.
At the first sign of trouble, you run for Ixia. We could have returned to the
Citadel, and explained everything to the Council.” His accusations stabbed
me as if he held a knife. “The Council will not
believe us. I told you what Irys said.” “But what if you lied?
You know I don’t have the power of mental communication on my own. You don’t
trust us so why should we trust you?” First the Council had
turned on me and now my brother. “Believe what you want, then. Valek, can we do
without him?” “We can.” The Commander stared at
Valek. “You will tell me your plans before you disappear again.” “Yes, sir.” “Good. You’re all
dismissed.” The Commander stood. “What about us?” Leif
gestured to Moon Man and Tauno. “Can we return to Sitia?” “Consider yourselves a
guest of Ixia until this unfortunate incident is resolved,” Valek said. “What if we no longer
wish to be guests?” Moon Man asked. “Then you will be our
first prisoners of war and your accommodations will not be so luxurious. It’s
your choice.” The Commander left. Leif glared at me and I
wanted to laugh. His current reaction mirrored the first encounter I had had
with him after fourteen years of being apart. Another full circle. I felt
dizzy. Perhaps this was a sign I should stay in this spot to avoid having to
exert time and effort to go around again. Valek turned to Ari and
made a slight movement with his hand. Ari nodded and stood;
his blond curls bounced with the motion. “We will be happy to escort you to
your quarters.” A gamut of emotions
flowed over my former companions’ faces as they followed Ari from the room.
Leif barely contained his fury, Tauno looked worried and Moon Man appeared
thoughtful. Janco brought up the
rear of the procession. He flashed me an inviting smirk. “Training yard, four
o’clock.” “You need more lessons?” “You wish.” My smile faded when the
door closed. Valek remained on the far side of the table, his face serious. I
felt awkward and uncertain. “Is it that bad?” I
asked. “It’s a situation I’ve
never encountered before. I’m worried.” “About Ixia?” “About you, love.” “Me?” “I’ve always been amazed
at how you can draw unwanted attention and ire from powerful people. This time,
though, you managed to get a whole country upset. If I was the Commander, I
would wait out the political strife in Sitia and then offer you to the victors
in trade for Ixia being left alone.” “Good thing you’re not
the Commander.” “Yes. And we should
leave Ixia before the Commander figures it out. What were you planning?” I tried to look
innocent. “Me? You’re the one with the plan.” “And the adviser uniform
you had Dilana size for you? You weren’t thinking of sneaking off to Sitia
without me, were you?” Another betrayal. “Did
she tell you?” “I had ripped a hole in
my favorite pants. When I dropped them off, she asked me to deliver your
uniform and gifted me with a leer. I would guess the servants were already
betting how soon one of them would spot us together.” He sighed. “If only
intelligence information worked through my corps as efficiently as gossip
flowed through the servants, then my problems would be minimal.” In one fluid motion,
Valek stood. He walked over to me, his smooth stride graceful as a panther.
Powerful energy coiled in his body. He leaned on my chair’s arms, bringing his
face inches from mine. His black hair hung to his shoulders; his expression was
lethal. “I’ll ask you again. Your plans include me, correct?” I slumped deeper into my
chair. “Yelena?” His voice
warned. “You said you had never
encountered this situation before. It’s an unknown. I don’t want to risk…” “What?” “Risk losing you. With
your immunity I can’t heal you!” “I’m willing to take the
chance.” “But I’m not willing to
let you.” “Sorry, love, that’s not
your decision. It’s mine.” I grumbled. Events had
spiraled out of my control. Again. I just spun in circles and never gained any
ground. “Okay, I promise not to
go to Sitia without you.” Which didn’t include my meeting tonight with Porter. “Thank you.” Valek
brushed his lips on my cheek. A tingle sizzled up my spine. “What about your plan?”
I tried to stay on topic, but I lost my motivation once Valek’s musky smell
enveloped me. “This is my plan.” He moved closer and
kissed me. Warmth spread throughout my body. The panic clutching my throat
eased. I pushed away my worries and focused on Valek, wrapping my arms around
him. But the feel of his muscles through his shirt wasn’t enough. I yanked at
it, wanting to touch his skin, wanting to wear his skin. He pulled away,
straightening. “In the war room, love? What if someone comes in?” I stood and removed his
shirt. “Then they’ll have a good story to tell.” “Good?” He adopted the
pretense of being offended. “Prove me wrong.” His eyes lit with the
challenge. Valek and I ended up
underneath the war room’s round table. Lying together, I felt safe for the
first time in weeks. We discussed the events in Sitia. “I could hardly move
within the Citadel,” Valek said. “The air was so thick with magic I felt like I
swam in syrup.” “But you weren’t detected.” Valek’s immunity to
magic remained a powerful weapon. Without it, I couldn’t have defeated Ferde. “No. Although it was
only a matter of time. With that many—what do you call them?—Warpers, my
presence would have eventually caused a noticeable dead zone.” I considered how fast
things had changed in the Citadel. Twenty-two days ago Moon Man had speculated
the Daviians had eight Warpers, but once he realized they were performing
Kirakawa we knew the actual number of Warpers could be much higher, depending
on how many victims they had used. And how far along in the ritual they were.
Plus only a victim with magical powers could make a Warper. If they had been
preparing for this offensive for a while, then who were the victims? They
wouldn’t have used clan members and the Sandseed Clan would have noticed if a
couple of their Story Weavers went missing. So would the other clans. Unable to
deduce an answer, I put the question to Valek. “They’re probably
targeting the homeless. Who would miss a few beggars in a big city? No one.” “What about the need for
magicians?” “The first year after a
magician reaches adolescence is a difficult and vulnerable year. Half the
people don’t even realize they can access the power source, and the other half
don’t have a clue how to use it. The Warpers could be hunting the streets,
looking for someone in that precarious situation.” My conviction to stop
using it became stronger the more I learned about magic and how others
exploited it. Valek and I mapped our
return to Sitia and planned how to contact Bavol Zaltana. “I’ll leave Ari and
Janco here. They won’t be happy, but security around the Citadel is too tight
and we’re better off just going ourselves. Two of my corps have already been
caught inside.” Valek sat up with reluctance. “I have some business to attend
to. I’ll meet you in my suite later tonight and we can finalize our time
schedule. I’ll have your belongings delivered there.” I should retrieve my
pack, but realized I had no desire to see Leif or the others. But I remembered
something. “Why did you want Leif to come with us?” He shook his head. “You
wouldn’t have agreed anyway.” “To what?” “To letting Leif get
caught and using your mental connection to him to find out what’s going on in
the Keep. But now you’re mad at him—” “No. He would be killed.
I’m not that angry with him.” Besides, if I used my magic anywhere near the
Citadel, all the preparation in the world wouldn’t be able to help me. “She’s quick and fast,
but she can’t get past,” Janco sang as he blocked my rib strikes. “You need to work on
your rhymes. Either that, or I’m getting better.” I faked a temple strike and
swept his feet out from under him. Before I could press my advantage, he rolled
away and regained his feet. “You hesitated,” Ari
said from the sidelines. “Too busy talking.” I renewed my attack and
Janco countered with ease. We fought in the soldier’s training yard, which had
been filled with the sounds of practice until Janco and I started this match.
We had attracted quite a crowd. “Can’t talk and fight.
So much for being polite.” Janco spun his bow. His weapon blurred. I backed up and blocked
the flurry of hits, keeping pace with his attack until he changed the rhythm. I
missed a connection. The air exploded out of my lungs as Janco landed a solid blow
to my solar plexus. I bent over, coughing and gasping for breath. “Funny,” Janco said. He
smoothed his goatee with a hand. “You’re usually not this easy to beat. Have I
succeeded in hiding my thoughts?” Once I regained my
composure and straightened, he smiled sweetly at me. The last time we had
fought in Sitia, he had found out about my zone of concentration, a semimagical
state allowing me to notice my opponent’s intentions when I sparred with them.
This time I had tried to fight him without setting my mind into that zone. “No. You’re still
self-centered and overly cocky,” I said. “They’re fighting
words.” “Do you need more time
to rest? Now you’re management, you probably need to expend extra energy moving
that paunch.” He swept his bow toward
my legs in response and we engaged in another match. I lost again, but kept
challenging him until we were both sweat soaked and exhausted. “Your fighting improved
as the matches went on,” Ari said. “But it wasn’t your best.” He looked at me
as if waiting for an explanation. I shrugged. “I was
trying something different.” “It’s not working.
Better go back to your old style.” “I like her new style.”
Janco piped in. “It’s good for my ego.” Ari frowned and crossed
his massive arms over his chest. “Life or death, Ari, and
I’d go back to using all my tricks. Don’t worry.” He seemed mollified, and
I hadn’t lied. When push came to shove, I knew I would fall back on using my
magic. Another problem. Magic made me lazy and when I encountered a bad
situation, I reached for it without thought. I needed to improve my other
skills, because magic wouldn’t help me against the Fire Warper. I changed the subject
and asked my friends about their new jobs. Janco regaled me with the story of
their battle against Valek. Every time Ari shook his head, I knew Janco had
exaggerated a detail. “What is it like being
second in command of Ixia’s intelligence network?” I asked. “I don’t like all this
sneaking around,” Ari said. “There’s a lot more going on in Ixia than I
thought. And there’s so much to do. Valek is the king of delegating.” “I’m getting to use my
lock-picking skills.” Janco grinned. Pure mischievousness danced in his eyes.
“And the information we’ve discovered. Did you know General Dinno has—” “Janco,” Ari warned. “We
enjoy the work. It’s just not what we had expected.” “Nothing is,” I said. My bones ached with
fatigue. I waved goodbye to Ari and Janco and headed toward the baths. Before
joining my friends in the training yard, I had retrieved my pack and stashed it
in the changing room. After a long soak, I dried and dressed in my adviser’s
uniform in preparation for the meeting with Porter. I rationalized I would draw
less attention wearing a uniform than my Sitian clothes. I cut a hole in the
pant’s pocket and strapped my switchblade to my right thigh. Not wanting to
show up armed with my bow, I felt it prudent to have a knife on me just in
case. Braiding my hair into one long braid, I let it hang between my shoulder
blades. Although my stomach
grumbled with hunger, Porter had instructed me to come during dinner. His
timing made sense, as most of the castle’s inhabitants would be busy either
serving dinner or eating it. And Castletown should be relatively quiet. I stopped beside the
pasture on my way out, checking to see if anyone followed me. A few servants
hustled between buildings, but no one paid me any attention. The cold hung in
the air as if waiting for a breeze. I fed Kiki and the other horses some
apples. Smells? I asked Kiki. Big snow. When? Half moon. Three days. Valek and I
would need to leave sooner than planned. Kiki come? Of course, and Garnet,
too. She sighed with
contentment as I scratched behind her ears. When I felt certain no one watched
me, I headed toward the south gate. I joined in with a group of town residents
returning home for dinner. With my Ixian wool cloak covering my adviser’s
uniform, I blended right in. My group hurried over the grass field surrounding
the walls. The Commander had ordered all buildings within a quarter mile of the
castle be destroyed when he had gained power. He also renamed Jewels-town,
named in honor of the former Queen Jewel to the rather unoriginal Castletown. Once we reached the edge
of town, the group dispersed as the others headed for their homes. The symmetry
of the town with its neat rows of wooden buildings conflicted with the
asymmetrical style of the castle complex. The logical array of businesses
interspersed among residences made navigating the town easier. Each district
had a name matching the merchandise sold there. Peach Alley would be located in
the Garden District. A few townspeople
bustled about, all intent on some errand. I walked as if I had a purpose so I
didn’t attract unwanted attention from the town’s guards, who watched the
streets. The colors of the
buildings thinned toward gray as the sun set. My perceptions shifted, and I
felt as if I had entered into a colorless shadow world. The buildings
transformed into a watery representation of a town populated with ghosts. I stumbled over some
unseen curb and snapped back to the real world. Dismissing the strange spell, I
rationalized hunger as the culprit. I picked up my pace, determined to find the
right address before the lamplighters came out. Peach Lane seemed devoid of
life, and only when I went around to the back alley did I see signs of
habitation. A glow of firelight came
from number forty-three. Keeping to the shadows, I approached the back door. I
pulled a thread of magic and scanned the area. Inside the house I felt Porter
waiting with two young girls. They were nervous about being found, but I didn’t
sense any duplicity. I paused as the
realization of how much I depended on my magic dawned on me. Not only with
searching for attackers, but with Kiki, too. Could I completely stop using my
magic? It would be much harder than I thought. The door opened right
after my light tap, as if Porter had been hovering near it. He pulled me into
the room and closed it behind me. “Did anyone see you?” he
asked. “No.” I looked around
the room. Small and tidy, the sitting area had a couch, a chair and three dogs
getting nervous attention from the girls. The girls perched on the edge of the
couch with their backs straight. They wore students’ uniforms, which consisted
of a simple jumper made of red linen. White-faced, their gazes jumped between
Porter and me. “You said I could help
you?” I asked. “We’re taking a big
chance trusting you.” Porter picked up a half-chewed roll of rawhide from the
floor. He clutched the dog’s treat in his hands as he stared at me. “You must
promise not to tell Valek or anyone else about all this.” “I can’t promise until I
hear what ‘all this’ is.” The rawhide popped and
cracked in Porter’s hands. He glanced at the girls and sighed. His wide
shoulders drooped with the release of his tension, and he gestured to the empty
chair. “Have a seat. This is going to take a while.” As soon as I sat down,
one of the dogs came over and put his head in my lap. Peering at me from
between his gray shaggy hairs, he pleaded for attention. I stroked his smooth
head and scratched behind his ears. The dog’s tail thumped on the floor. The
smell of wet dog and wood smoke mixed into a stuffy odor. Porter tapped the roll
on his leg as he talked. “I’ve set up a network of people throughout Ixia to
help me in smuggling children out of the country.” I leaned forward in
alarm, thinking about Mogkan’s kidnapping ring and how he had taken children
from Sitia to Ixia to abuse them for his own purposes. “Children?” “They seem like children
to me.” Porter gave the two girls a grandfatherly smile. “Adolescents who have
just discovered their magical powers.” He pointed to the couch. “Young people
like Liv and Kieran. I’ve been helping them to escape to Sitia before their
powers are known to others. But I believe something has gone wrong.” “What?” I prompted when
Porter appeared to be lost in his own thoughts. “I was in MD-7 last
month. General Rasmussen has a nice wolfhound I wanted to breed with my bitch.
While there, one of my contacts who works in the general’s stables told me the
last person I sent through the network never arrived. And two others he had
sent on never made it to the border contact. They have all disappeared.” My stomach twisted
around my heart. “Do you think Valek has killed them?” “I don’t know and I
can’t risk asking around. If my network has been compromised then I won’t be
able to send Liv and Kieran. Eventually they’ll get reported.” I hadn’t thought it
possible, but the girls’ faces turned whiter. Considering Porter’s story, I
said, “Tell me how your network operates.” “I have four contacts
from here to the border. A few people know about my underground efforts and
they’ll send their son or daughter to me as an apprentice. The Commander gives
me complete management of his kennel and no one pays too much attention to my students.
They come and go as part of their animal husbandry training. It’s risky, being
this close to Valek, but then I usually know where he is and can send my
charges when he’s gone on business.” Porter paced. “It’s too risky to have a
guide with them, so I instruct the person how to find the first contact and
then he sends them on until they get to the border contact, who takes them into
Sitia. They have transfer papers with them if they’re stopped by the guards. If
they had gotten caught, I would have been arrested by now.” His erratic
movements showed his frustration. “How can I help?” He stopped. “I wanted
you to go along with Liv, and maybe find out what’s happening to my charges.
With that adviser’s uniform you can go anywhere in Ixia without permission.” “No. Too dangerous for
Liv. The best thing to do would be for me to disguise myself as a student and
go through your network alone.” Porter’s eyebrows spiked
up in surprise. “You would do that for us?” “Yes. Unfortunately
though, it will have to wait.” The ability to connect
with the power source began at the onset of puberty. A person typically had a
year before anyone else noticed and reported them, and another three to four
years to learn how to harness their power. A fledgling magician’s power, when
uncontrolled, could flame out and warp the blanket of power that covers the
world, causing trouble for magicians everywhere. And the stronger the magician,
the bigger the flameout. One-trick power similar to Opal’s ability to capture
magic in molten glass tended to be unconscious and didn’t require formal
training. “How long do the girls
have?” I asked. “A year at most for Liv.
Kieran is younger so she could last up to two years, but I’d rather they both
be gone as soon as possible. I can hide them here if we’re desperate. I’ve had
some refugees who didn’t have time to work in the kennel,” Porter said. “Give me a couple
months. Sitia’s not the best place to be sending anyone right now. Once I
settle another matter, I’ll come back and help you. For now, I can teach the
girls how to tame their powers enough so they don’t give themselves away.” Relief shone on Liv and
Kieran’s young faces. I worked with them for the next hour. Irys would be proud
over how much I remembered from her guidance. A finger of dread stabbed my guts
with the thought of Irys. I hoped she was still alive. After my session, the
girls left Porter’s together while I waited for them to be well away before I
left. The need to begin my journey back to Sitia pressed on my mind as I
worried about Irys and Bain locked in the Keep’s cells. I made a quick sweep of
the area outside Porter’s door with my magic. The activity around the houses
seemed muted as everyone finished their daily tasks. No one lurked in the
alley. With a wave goodbye, I
exited Porter’s. I stood outside and let my eyes adjust to the darkness. When
the shadows grew less black, I strode toward the street. About halfway there I
felt a presence behind me. I spun, grabbing for my switchblade. Something
jabbed me in the neck and I saw Star lower a thin pipe. I yanked the dart out of
my throat. “How?” “Some great magician you
are,” Star said. “Missing my own tiny talent.” My world spun and I
stumbled. Star caught me, but I had no energy to fight her off. “What?” She cradled me in her arms.
“Valek’s goo-goo juice. Relax, Yelena. Star’s going to take good care of you.” My last coherent thought
focused on how her sinister expression didn’t match her soothing words. 23THE WORLD STIRRED. MY
thoughts scattered and failed to connect. Warm hands guided me. Whenever the
hands pulled away, the ground swelled and I tumbled off my feet. I thought about the lack
of fear for only a moment before the air spun around my head. Lying down felt
best. I sensed movement and smelled horses. Inside my chicken crate,
I wondered what I was supposed to be doing. Important things? My mind chased
the thought until the sunlight lit the dust motes. I studied the flecks
floating above me. The flecks transformed into daggers. I wanted to knock them
away. My hands stayed glued to my back. A leather strap lodged in my teeth. The
problem disappeared with the sun. Time ebbed and flowed.
My crate opened. It closed. Faces peered. Mouths talked. Words chimed in my
ears. Some like eat, drink and sleep I understood. Others resembled a baby’s
babble. Goo-goo. Goo-goo. A prick on my arm or neck or back. The air filled
with colors. My crate bobbed on an invisible sea. A small lucid part of me
wanted action. Freedom. Majority ruled and I let the world slide by me content
in my crate. My crate. My crate. I giggled. The fire woke me. A
finger of flame poked. I jerked away, no longer inside my crate. My thoughts
congealed into a coherent whole. The air became invisible, revealing my
surroundings. I braced for another prick. When none came I focused. The booted
feet of a couple guards stood near me. I lay on my side in front of a campfire.
Darkness pressed against the firelight, and my hands were tied behind my back. Actual conversation
reached my ears. The baby babble was gone. But for how long? I coaxed my mind
to think, but my thoughts remained sluggish. A man’s voice. “Should
not do this,” he said. “She should stay under until we reach our destination.
Jal is the only one strong enough to counter her power.” A familiar voice said,
“I made a promise to her. I want her to know who has her, and what we plan to
do to her.” Footsteps approached and
I tried to put a name to the familiar voice. My mind churned as if mired in
river mud. “Take the gag off,”
Familiar Voice said from behind me. One of the guards
removed the leather strap. A mixture of pain and relief flowed into my cracked
lips. I licked them, tasting blood. Other aches and cramps woke. Only the sight
of a pair of black riding boots covered with dust could distract me from my medley
of aches. My gaze followed the
boots up to jodhpurs that disappeared under a gray riding cloak. I squinted in
the firelight, hoping the person in front of me was an illusion. The cocky smirk caused
my heart to stutter. And when he kicked me in the ribs, I knew all hopes for a
pleasant reunion were gone. I coughed and wheezed as the pain shot through my
body. “That’s for hitting me
with Curare!” He kicked me again. “And that’s just because I can.” His words sounded thin
and distant, reaching me through my efforts to reclaim my breath. He loomed
over me. When the sharp pain dulled to a loud throb, I struggled to a sitting
position. I glanced around. Four guards stood a few feet away and I counted
three Daviian Vermin nearby, but I couldn’t tell if they were Warpers or not. “Cahil,” I said between
gasps. “You’re still…scared. Of me.” He laughed. The
washed-out blue of his eyes sparked with amusement. “Yelena, you’re the one
who should be scared.” He crouched down. We were face-to-face. He
held a dart between us. A drop of clear liquid hung from the end. Fear coiled
in my stomach as I smelled the sweet odor. Curare. I tried not to let my terror
show on my face. “I allowed you this
brief moment of lucidity. Listen closely. Remember what I said to you the last
time we were together?” “When you wanted to
exchange me for Marrok?” “No. When I promised to
find a person who could defeat you and Valek. I’ve met with success. In fact,
you have already had an encounter with my champion.” “Ferde?” I played the
simpleton to prolong the conversation, hoping my slow mind would produce a plan
for escape. “Act the fool, but I
know better. My champion makes you sweat with fear and desire. The Fire Warper
has been called to this world with one mission. To capture you. And you’re powerless
against him.” Pure satisfaction shone on Cahil’s face. “I will deliver you to
Jal and the Fire Warper. Jal will perform the Kirakawa ritual’s binding
ceremony on you, taking your powers as the Fire Warper claims your soul.” My mind buzzed with the
need to stop him yet produced nothing intelligent. I couldn’t even connect with
the power source. “And what do you get, Cahil?” “I get to witness your
death and watch your heart mate suffer before he meets the same end.” “But Jal gains power. Do
you really believe Jal will let you rule? And what about the Fire Warper? Do
you think he’ll be content to go back after his task is complete?” “He has come asking for
you. Once he has you, he’ll go back. Then Jal rules Sitia, and I rule Ixia.” I saw a faint trace of
uncertainty in Cahil’s eyes. My mind pulled free from the mire of the goo-goo
juice and I made a connection. “Before you said you called him. Now you say he
has come. Which one is it?” “It doesn’t matter.” “Yes it does. If you
called him, you have control over him.” He shrugged. “Jal will
deal with him. As long as I have Ixia. I don’t care.” “You should care. The
need for power is addicting. Ask your Daviian friends about the history of the
Sandseed Clan and the Daviian Mountains. Then you’ll realize Jal won’t be
content with just ruling Sitia. Once your usefulness is gone, you will be too.” “You’re just trying to
trick me. I know better than to listen to you.” He tried to stab the
dart into my throat. I fell back and pulled power as Cahil pinned me with his
weight. With no time to think, I focused the magic on my neck as he jabbed the
dart into my skin. Closing my eyes, I treated the area as I would an injury. In
my mind’s eye, I saw the Curare as a pulsing red light, spreading through my
throat. I used power to push the liquid back through the tiny hole in my skin.
It trickled down the side of my neck. My gaze met Cahil’s when
I opened my eyes. He stared at me with a mixture of triumph and hatred. Hoping he hadn’t seen
the drug run out, I said, “Pay close attention, Cahil. You’ll see the truth.” I
acted as if I had been paralyzed, unfocusing my eyes and letting my body go
slack. He grunted and stood.
“I’ve seen the truth. That’s why I want you dead.” The Vermin joined him
next to the fire, and I watched them from the corner of my eye. “I felt magic. Brief.
Did she use her power on you?” one of the Vermin asked Cahil. “No. I got her in time.” They discussed their
plans for leaving in the morning. When the others moved to
set up camp, Cahil said, “I should kill her now.” Alarmed replies told him
it would be imprudent. For the first time ever, I agreed with the Vermin. “Jal needs her and we do
not wish to infuriate the Fire Warper,” another said. “Why should I care about
infuriating the Fire Warper?” Cahil asked. “I’m in charge. He should answer to
me. He should worry about infuriating me, especially after the fiasco in the
jungle.” Soothing words were
muttered. “Put her back in the
box,” Cahil finally said. “Secure it, just in case we encounter trouble.” Two of the Vermin lifted
me. I concentrated on being a dead weight. My hands were tied and I couldn’t
use magic without alerting them. I knew one of the three was a Warper but was
unsure about the other two. At this point I needed more information. I decided
to wait for a better opportunity and hoped I would get one. The Vermin climbed onto
a cart, dropped me into a crate and shut the lid. In the darkness the sound of
metal latches being closed grated on my skin. I bit down on a cry of dismay
when the snap of three locks sounded. The coffin-shaped crate seemed to press
into me, and I drew in a couple of calming breaths. My gaze found the small
slit between the boards, allowing air to come in. And light. The faint flicker
of firelight seeped through the cracks. I wiggled into a more
comfortable position. My mind raced over my limited options. Magic remained my
only weapon. The desire to project my awareness and scan my surroundings pulled
at me, but I knew if they discovered I wasn’t drugged, all possibility of escape
would be gone. Would the Warper feel my power while he slept? Could I put the
Vermin and Cahil into a deep sleep? I would still be locked in a box, but I
could call someone to break me out. Who? Only a fellow
magician could hear my mental call, and I had no idea where I was. If I was
lucky enough to find a local citizen, perhaps I could discover my location. Unable to plan a course
of action, I marveled over my ability to push the drug out of my body. Had I
known I possessed that skill, I wouldn’t be in this situation. And my problems
with Curare, sleeping potion and goo-goo juice were solved. Although it was
hard to celebrate when locked in a box. Ever since I went to
Sitia, all I wanted was to learn about magic, to discover the extent of my
powers and be reacquainted with my family. Events conspired against me and I
had hardly had time to catch my breath, let alone spend time exploring my
magic. Pushing the Curare out
of my body was a new wrinkle. My abilities only affected living things, since
my magic didn’t move the drug; it must have made the muscles in my body do the
work. Desperation and raw
instinct had gotten me this far. I hoped it would carry me through, and as much
as I disliked using it, magic was unavoidable. If I was lucky enough to survive
this, I planned to retire as a Soulfinder and limit my magic to only
communicating with Kiki. I wondered if she knew I’d been taken. Did Valek know?
And what about Star’s role in all this? Too many questions
without answers swirled in my mind. Eventually, my thoughts bounced back to the
need to do something soon, because I sensed being delivered to the Fire Warper
would be the ultimate end. “Let’s get moving. If we
push, we can reach the Avibian border by sundown.” Cahil’s voice woke me
from a light doze. A few disorienting seconds passed before I remembered my
predicament and his words sank in. Shock followed understanding. We were in
Sitia. I must have been under the influence of the goo-goo juice for days.
Where was Valek? So much for my promise not to go to Sitia without him. “Should we check on
her?” a voice with an Ixian accent asked. “No. She’s under Curare
now. She can’t do anything besides breathe until the potion wears off,” Cahil
answered. “Finish feeding the girls. We’ll let the juice wear off before we
prepare them for the ritual.” The girls? I peered
through one of the slits in my crate. Another crate lay beside mine. My stomach
turned to ice. How many and could I help them? I suppressed a hollow laugh.
Here I was trying to save others while locked in a box. Two lids slammed then
the crate lurched forward. The sound of trotting horses added to the rumble of
the wagon. We were on our way. My body went through a
gamut of emotions as the day passed. Sometimes terrified, sometimes hopeful and
sometimes bored, I even listed an inventory of woes. Thirsty, hungry, aching
ribs, numb hands, sore muscles and a burning cramp between my shoulder blades.
With the noise of our travel masking my movements, I attempted to alleviate
some of my misery. I squirmed and wiggled until I managed to squeeze my body
and legs through my arms. The benefits of keeping limber and being small became
apparent as I succeeded in bringing my tied hands to the front of my body. I
almost groaned aloud when cool relief spread over my back. Having my hands in front
allowed me to explore. I patted my right thigh, checking for my switchblade. No
luck. Even the holder had been removed. I stared at the knots on the leather
straps binding my hands and pulled at them with my teeth. I untied a few before
the wagon stopped, but I decided to keep working, risking discovery. “We’ll camp here,” Cahil
said. “When you’re done setting up, let the girls out. They should be lucid by
now and you can get them ready for the Kirakawa tomorrow.” “What about the
Soulfinder?” one of the Vermin asked. “Drakke will give her
another dose tonight. Too much Curare could stop her heart,” Cahil replied. I listened to the sounds
of the men in the camp as I continued to gnaw and pull at my bindings. The
smell of roasting meat stole into my crate. My stomach grumbled with alarming
loudness. After a while, two crates were opened and two scared voices asked
questions. By the brief flash of a red jumper through the slits in my box, I
guessed the girls were the students from Ixia. Liv and Kieran. My heart went
out to them. Again I wondered how the
Vermin and Cahil had managed to smuggle us all out of Ixia. Perhaps the Vermin
had posed as traders taking a wagonload of goods across the border. I caught glimpses of the
camp. A tent had been erected and I counted four guards and three Vermin. Some
of the guards I recognized as Cahil’s men, while two looked unfamiliar. All
were armed with swords or scimitars. I searched for some sign of my backpack.
The limited view hindered me, although I guessed my pack would be found with
Cahil. The daylight faded, and
I renewed my efforts on the leather strips around my wrists. Each shrill scream
from one of the girls spurred me on. I ignored the pain, the smell of fear and
the metallic taste of blood as I yanked at the knots. Cahil had mentioned a
ritual tomorrow. Tonight would be my only chance to escape. The last knot proved
impossible to untie, but my spit had soaked the leather enough to give a little
when I moved. I pulled my hand through the last loop, scraping off a layer of
skin in the process. Panting with relief, I relaxed and waited for my crate to
open. My plan was simple, with
as much chance for failure as for success. Time moved at a glacial pace. Years
crept by. When the rasp and click of the lock finally sounded, I laced my hands
behind my back and froze. A soft yellow glow of
firelight reflected off the Vermin who opened my crate. He lifted the lid up
with one hand and reached toward me with the other. He held a tiny dart between
his finger and thumb. I moved. Grabbing his hand in
both of mine, I yanked him toward me, unbalancing him. He grunted with
surprise. His weight came forward. I bent his hand back and shoved the dart
into the Vermin’s shoulder. Letting go of his hand, I covered his mouth to
stifle his yell. Mere seconds later the
Curare paralyzed his muscles. The lid rested on his back and his body leaned on
my chest. Knowing I probably had seconds before someone discovered us, I pulled
the rest of him inside my box. An awkward, difficult maneuver to do while
trying to keep the lid from slamming down. Once the Vermin joined
me, I wriggled from under his body and lifted the lid to peek out. The guards
remained by the fire, but the other two Vermin were out of sight. The two girls
had been stripped and tied down by the fire. Bloody cuts lined their arms and
legs. There was nothing I could do for them right now. One problem at a time. I slid down to the end
of my crate and considered my options. Try to sneak out of the box and slip
into the night or just shove the lid up and make a run for it? What I really needed was
a distraction, but that involved magic. By the time they figured out the magic
came from me, I would be gone. I hoped. A flicker of black above
the campfire gave me an idea. Pulling a strand of power as thin as a spider’s
silk, I projected my mind toward the bat. He flew through the hot,
insect-filled air rising from the flames. I tapped into the collective
consciousness of his fellow bats and sent them all an image. An image of
insects covering the men below. Large juicy crawling things. Easy picking for a
mass of hungry bats. Black shapes swooped
down from the sky. The guards yelled and swung their arms around. Cahil and the
Warper exited the tent to investigate. The Warper yelled about magic, but his
words were cut off as the bats attacked. I pushed the lid wide
and hopped out. After a quick glance to make sure no one had noticed me, I
stepped off the wagon and bolted for the darkness, keeping the wagon between me
and the campfire. I encountered the third
Vermin who had been tending the horses. Prepared for my approach, he had pulled
his scimitar. With a gesture of his weapon magic slammed through my mental
defenses and my body froze. Another Warper. I cursed as he called for his
companions. Then I realized he didn’t have control of my mind. I projected to
the two horses. Tired, sore and
unsettled by the smell of blood, the horses welcomed my contact. I appealed to
them for help. Bad men want to hurt me,
I said in their minds. Kick? Please. The one horse backed up.
With a blur of motion, the Warper went flying. As soon as the man’s head
slammed into the ground, he lost consciousness, releasing his magical hold on
me. Thank you. I ran. Kick others? Sounds of pursuit drew
closer. The bats had lost their insect image when I switched my efforts to the
horses. If you can, I said,
increasing my speed. Shouts of surprise reached my ears. I glanced over my
shoulder. Four figures still chased me. The terrain remained flat and featureless,
as if part of the Avibian Plains. A black bulge in the distance looked
promising. Perhaps it was a cluster of trees. The men gained on me. My
hopes to reach cover faded with every step. I pulled power and
planned to baffle my pursuers’ minds, betting my life on the pure conjecture
that I possessed the ability to project confusing images into four minds in
rapid succession. A figure on horseback
approached from the left, aiming for me. I caught a glint of moonlight off a
sword. My options dwindled to either bewildering the men or stopping the horse. My chances of success
went from doubtful to none when a cold sting pricked my back. 24I DIVED TO THE GROUND,
rolling into a ball. The power I had drawn to confuse my pursuers I now applied
to the area turning numb on my back. In my mind, I saw the Curare spreading
through my muscles, seeking my bloodstream. I swept at it, using my magic like
a broom and guiding the substance to the hole. A warm wetness spread on my
shirt. The effort left me weak,
and I debated the merits of pretending to be paralyzed. The ground vibrated
with the drumming of hooves. The animal cut between the guards and me. An
unexpected sound of steel hitting steel rang in the cool night air. I crouched. The horse made a quick
turn and came back. Recognition shot through me. I knew that gait. I jumped to
my feet. “Yelena!” Valek threw me
my bow. I caught it in midair.
Kiki spun and Valek slid off her back. The rapid clash of blades followed as
Valek engaged four men in a sword fight. I hurried to join him before the
remaining Vermin and Cahil caught up. Four against one was pushing it for
Valek. He would be outnumbered against six. With the occasional kick
from Kiki, Valek and I fought side by side. Cahil and the Warper hung back. I strengthened
my mental defenses, sensing the Warper would try a magical attack. Once Valek cut a guard’s
arm in half, we pressed our advantage. As the man fell to the ground yelling
with pain, Cahil ordered the remaining men to disengage. They stepped back.
Valek shot me a questioning look. “The girls are still at
the camp,” I said. He nodded and we stalked
the retreating men. The Warper threw his
arms up and yelled, “Inflame.” Power pressed on my
skin. With a whoosh of hot air, the guard on the ground burst into flames.
Valek and I jumped away. The man screamed and writhed. He stilled as the
intense heat consumed him. Acrid puffs of charred flesh reached us, and I
covered my nose. “Come! Find your soul
mate!” The Warper’s voice cut through the roaring fire. A man’s form coalesced
from the pulsing flames. “What’s going on?” Valek
asked. “Let’s go.” I scrambled
onto Kiki’s back, Valek right behind me. Kiki took off. “What about the girls?” Guilt stabbed my heart.
“Later.” I let Kiki decide our
direction. Eventually we came to a farmhouse, modest in size and surrounded by
precise flower beds. Kiki stopped at the stable and Valek slid off. Where are we? I asked
Kiki. Ghost’s house. Good hay.
Nice lad. I eyed the wooden
structure with sudden distrust. Ghosts are here? Kiki snorted and nudged
Valek. Ghost. Moon Man had explained
to me Valek’s immunity to magic made him appear as a ghost to magical
creatures. I looked at him. “Summer
home? Isn’t it a little dangerous?” He smiled. “Safe house
for my corps. A base of operations.” “How convenient.” The stable was empty.
Valek helped me remove Kiki’s saddle and groom her, delaying the inevitable
conversation. I sagged with fatigue,
but needed to know what he had been doing while I was in my box. “How did you
find me? And your timing was impeccable as always.” Valek pulled me into his
arms. I molded to him, seeking warmth and comfort. My body shook with a delayed
reaction. The horror of the Warper setting his own man on fire replayed in my
mind. “You’re welcome, love. I
had wanted to sneak in and unlock you tonight, but you had other plans. I
should have been more prepared, but when I saw him poke you last night, I
thought for sure you would be out of it.” He pulled me away. “Let’s go inside.
I need a drink.” The interior of the
farmhouse lacked the homey warmth of its exterior. Spartan and utilitarian,
Valek’s operatives obviously didn’t entertain guests here. Valek lit a few
lanterns, but I refused to let him build a fire. We huddled together on the
couch, sipping brandy. “General Kitvivan’s
white brandy?” I asked. “You remembered!” Valek
seemed surprised. “There are tastes and
smells that call certain memories. White brandy reminds me of the Commander’s
brandy meeting.” “Ah, yes. And after
having to taste all those brandies for the Commander, you drunkenly tried to
seduce me.” “And you refused.” I
couldn’t pinpoint a specific time or event when Valek’s feelings for me had
changed. He had shocked me with his declaration of love in Brazell’s dungeon. “I wanted to accept. But
I didn’t know if your desire was from your heart or from the brandy. You might
have regretted it later.” The image of Valek
wearing his dress uniform recreated the desire to seduce him again, but we had
much to discuss. “Enough small talk. Tell
me everything,” I ordered. He sighed. “You’re not
going to like it.” “Compared to what I’ve
just been through these last—what? Three days? I don’t even know. It can’t be
that bad.” “I knew you were
swimming in some very dangerous waters,” he said, “but I hadn’t known they
extended so deep.” “Valek, get to the
point.” He fidgeted. Fear
brushed my heart. Something horrible had happened. I had never seen him fidget
before. He stood and started prowling the room. His liquid movements were
soundless. “Five days ago you were
taken—” “Five days!” So much
could have happened in that time. My thoughts went to Irys and Bain. They could
be dead. Valek put up his hand to
forestall my questions. “Let me finish first. You were kidnapped by Star, and
the reason she was able to smuggle you so far south, was because…I let her.” He
paused to let his words sink in. I stared at him in
astonishment. “You set me up?” “Yes and no.” “You need to do better
than that.” “I knew Star would want
to exact some type of revenge on you. She has kept in contact with the
underground network, and I allowed her because then I could learn who the new
players were. With the Code of Behavior, there will always be a black market
for illegal goods and forged papers. I like to keep tabs on the network to make
sure things don’t go too far, like when Star hired assassins to ruin the Sitian
trade treaty. And when—” “Get to the point.” “Star knew you would be
at Porter’s safe house—” “Porter set me up?” “I don’t think so. Are
you going to let me tell you or not?” He put his hands on his hips in
annoyance. I gestured for him to go
on. “I’ve known about
Porter’s rescue operation for a couple years and have allowed it to continue.
However, recently, his charges have been disappearing and I’ve been wondering
why. But that wasn’t the reason I watched the house. I had followed Star and
three of her men there, and was shocked to see you walk blindly into her trap.
Didn’t you even see her?” “She used a subtle kind
of magic.” “I haven’t felt her, and
I’ve been working with her for a while.” I thought back to the
night I had been captured. The only odd event had been when my perception had
altered for a moment before returning to normal. Perhaps she had affected my
vision somehow. “You didn’t pick up on my magic, either. And it flared out of
control a couple times within the castle.” “I will keep it in
mind,” Valek said with an icy tone. “Star’s motives for ambushing you, I
understood. The surprise arrived when she and her friends also targeted the
girls. I needed to know where they were taking you.” I mulled over his
explanation. “You could have helped me that night, but instead decided to
wait?” “A calculated risk. I
wanted to discover the extent of her operation and why she kidnapped the girls.
I had no idea you would end up across the border and in the Wannabe King’s
hands.” Valek knelt in front of
me, and would have taken my hands in his had I not kept my arms crossed. Anger
simmered deep within me. I had lost five days. Five days for the Fire Warper to
grow stronger. “This wouldn’t have
happened at all if you told me about your meeting with Porter,” he said. “A calculated risk. Like
it or not, I’m a magician, and if there’s a way to help my colleagues I’m going
to try. I wasn’t going to tell the Commander’s magician killer about it.”
Still, a small, guilt-inducing thought about killing magicians being preferable
to using them to increase the Fire Warper’s power pulsed in my mind. Valek sank back onto his
heels. His expression hardened into his metal mask. “Magician killer? Is that
what you think of me?” “That is one of your
duties for the Commander. I know how you operate. You like to stalk your prey
before you pounce. Allowing Porter’s network to continue is part of your modus
operandi.” His expression turned
flat and emotionless; my anger had ruled my tongue. My fury, though, remained. I changed the subject.
“How did Star get us into Sitia?” As if reporting to the
Commander, Valek said, “Put you into crates, stacked boxes of goods on top, and
dressed as traders. They had the proper papers. The border guards did a cursory
check and off you went.” He paused as extreme irritation flashed through his
eyes. “The border guards will be taken to task and retrained.” Valek stood. “I was
going to suggest we get a few hours’ sleep and try to rescue those girls. But
since I’m the magician killer, I guess I won’t concern myself about their
fate.” He left the room. 25THE LIFE DRAINED from
the room after Valek’s departure. I blamed fatigue for my harsh words, but knew
it was wrong. I had lost control of events the moment we crossed into Ixia. But
the real truth was I had never had control. From the instant the Fire Warper
stepped from the fire in the jungle, I’d been ruled by fear. Which had kept me
alive, so far, but it had certainly made a mess of things. Valek was just the
latest in a long list. I sighed. There was a
good reason for the fear. The Fire Warper’s power surpassed my own, and I
didn’t think a bucket of water would douse him. Curling up on the couch, I made
plans to free those girls. I couldn’t counter the Warper, but at least I could
try to stop the Vermin from gaining more power. But what about the next
shipment of young magicians from Ixia? From what Valek told me, I guessed Star
had tapped into Porter’s network, kidnapping his charges and selling those
adolescents for the Vermin to use in the Kirakawa ritual. After a few hours of
restless sleep, I went to the stables. Kiki dozed in her stall, but she woke to
my call. Do you have enough
energy for a trip? I asked. Yes. Where? Back to where you found
me. Bad smell. Yes, but I need to go
back and pick up their scent. They’ve probably moved into the plains by now. We go fast. That’s what I’m counting
on. Not bothering to saddle her, I hopped onto her back. All I had was my bow.
I glanced at the farmhouse. If I had apologized to Valek, he would have come
with me, but I wasn’t ready to admit I needed to apologize. At least he would
be safe for tonight. We were soon near the
border of the Avibian Plains. Evidence of the Vermin’s campsite littered the
ground, and from the number of items left behind, it appeared Cahil had left in
a hurry. Only a few hours of darkness remained. Kiki, which way? I
asked. She headed south, and I
let her choose her speed. She trotted until we reached the plains, then broke
into her gust-of-wind gait. The air sped past my ears as the ground blurred.
She didn’t maintain the pace for long, slowing when the smell of wood smoke and
horses strengthened. The Vermin’s magic
waited on the plains. Unlike the Sandseeds’ net of protection, the Daviians
preferred to lay traps, which would spring on the unsuspecting victim. Kiki
sensed these hot spots and avoided them. A faint glow of
firelight shone through Kiki’s eyes. We stopped and I was considering my next
move when Kiki reared and danced to the side. The sizzling odor of blood burned
in Kiki’s nose. She would have bolted, but I steadied her with a soothing hand
while my mind turned numb with shock. They hadn’t waited for
the next moon. Guilt slammed into me. I hunched over Kiki’s back, rocking with
anger and frustration. Girls hurt? Kiki asked. Yes. Go. Stop. What? But she didn’t
wait. She galloped toward the camp. Kiki! Help. Fix. She ran
through the camp. Rearing and jumping as if crazed with fear. Her sudden arrival
surprised everyone. The guards scattered and dodged her flailing hooves and my
bow. Kiki knocked down Cahil’s tent, kicked the wagon over and sent the horses
running. I froze in horror when I
spotted the two Warpers stooped over the still forms of Liv and Kieran. Blood
coated the Warpers’ arms up to their elbows. They each cradled a fist-size lump
of meat in their hands, lovingly stroking the object. I gasped with
recognition. They each held a human heart. Liv and Kieran’s hearts. Kiki knocked me to my senses
when she dumped me onto the ground. I gained my feet, ready for an attack, but
the Warpers remained engrossed in their ritual. Help, Kiki ordered as
she made another loop of the camp. I glanced at the fire.
No Fire Warper yet. I mentally kicked myself for even worrying about him, and
drew a thick strand of power. The Vermin defensive magic tried to clamp down on
my connection, but I had pulled such a fat rope it failed to cut even a thread. I launched my awareness
at the Warpers. A fog of magic surrounded them. Instinctively, I knew in order
for them to consume and maintain the power, they had to milk the blood from the
hearts and inject it into their skin. The Kirakawa ritual had
its own power and I couldn’t interfere with the Warpers. Their black lust for
magic sickened me and for a moment my vision filled with blood. But a movement from the
corner of my eye caught my attention. Liv’s ghost stood next to her dead body
and she gestured to me, thumping her heart with a fist. I squinted at the
apparition. Her ghost or her soul? When I understood her motions, I cursed
myself for my stupidity. I couldn’t affect the
ritual, but there was one thing only I could do. Concentrating on the girls’
hearts, I reached for their souls. The ritual had trapped them within its
chambers. I inhaled their essence, leaving behind dead flesh. The Warpers
wouldn’t gain any power tonight. Kiki slowed near me. I
grabbed her mane and hauled myself onto her back. Within two strides she moved
into her special gait. When we reached the edge
of the plains, I asked Kiki to stop so I could release the girls’ souls. The
sun began to rise, casting long shadows on the ground. I wished I had known the
girls better so I could make Sitian grief flags for them. The occasion called
for the fanfare of raising their flags to memorialize the girls’ short lives. Without silk or a
flagpole, I settled for expressing my deep regret for not saving them. They
felt content and relieved to be free. But what else could they say while I held
their souls? A vile thought occurred
to me. I wondered if my powers were enhanced while they remained with me. Could
I counter the Fire Warper if I increased my strength? Shuddering in revulsion
for just thinking about it, I released their souls to the sky. They rushed from
me. A lingering tingle of joy vibrated inside me before my body sagged with
fatigue. I arrived at Valek’s
safe house without any memories of the trip. Kiki headed for the stable and I
summoned enough energy to give her a good rubdown. The stack of hay bales
outside her stall appeared to be too inviting for me to pass. I lay down on top
of them and fell asleep. An army of flaming
soldiers chased me. My legs refused to run any faster as the burning men
advanced. Leif rushed to my aid but, as soon as he drew near me, he burst into
flames. Only Valek remained. He stood amid the conflagration, untouched by the
searing heat. A block of ice, he seemed indifferent to my plight. “Sorry, love.” He
shrugged. “Can’t help you.” “Why?” “You won’t let me.” The fire soldiers closed
in until a circle of fire surrounded me. Tongues of flames licked at my clothes
then grabbed the fabric. “Yelena!” Bright yellow and orange
danced along my cloak. Their movements held my attention in a bizarre
fascination as they consumed my clothes. “Yelena!” Cold water splashed on
me, followed by a drenching deluge. Steam hissed. I yelled and woke, choking on
the water. Valek stood next to me. He held an empty bucket. “What?” I sat up. My
clothes and hair were soaking wet. “What was that for?” “You were having a
nightmare.” “And shaking me awake
seemed too tame?” He was still angry. Valek didn’t answer.
Instead, he pulled me to my feet and pointed to the figure-shaped scorch mark
on the topmost hay bale. The place where I had slept. “You were too hot to
touch,” he said in a deadpan. I shivered. If Valek
hadn’t been here, what would have happened? “I take it your rescue
attempt last night has angered some powerful people? I saw you and Kiki create
chaos in the camp, ruining my plans yet again. What else did you do?” Valek hadn’t gone to
bed. He had left to help the girls. Kiki and I could have gone with him.
Together we might have reached the camp in time to save Liv and Kieran. Guilt
balled in my chest, souring my mood. I hadn’t managed to do anything right. I
didn’t find Cahil and Ferde in time. The Sandseed Clan was gone. Irys and Bain
were locked up. I had upset my friends and my brother. And Valek. He stared at me with his
flat expression, giving nothing away. An invisible wall grew between us. Mine
or his? I told him about the girls’ souls and how I had removed the power from
the ritual. “I should have let you
kill Cahil,” I said. If the change in subject
surprised him, he didn’t allow it to show on his face. “Why?” “It would have prevented
all this.” “I think not. Cahil’s
involvement is recent. These Vermin are prepared. They’ve been planning this
move for a while. Cahil wants you dead and wants his throne. I believe the
whole Kirakawa ritual sickens him.” “He helped with the
kidnapping.” “Because he wanted you.
He wasn’t at the camp last night. He’s probably heading to the Citadel.” “How do you know?” Valek gave me a tight,
joyless smile. “When you stormed the camp, I stole into the tent, intending to
put the Wannabe King out of my misery. I had a few seconds to determine he was
gone before the tent collapsed on me.” I suppressed a chuckle.
From the annoyed frown, I knew Valek wouldn’t appreciate it. “But I found that.” He
gestured to the floor. My backpack rested against Kiki’s stall door. A happy cry escaped my
lips and I knelt down to check the contents. Before I dug into the pack, I
looked up to thank Valek, but he was gone. I considered finding him to explain,
but I wasn’t ready to breach the wall surrounding me. Inside my little cocoon, I
could pretend the Fire Warper’s threat to the people I loved didn’t exist. My pack still held my
switchblade, my Sitian clothes, my lock picks, vials of Curare, lumps of
Theobroma, jerky, tea and Opal’s glass bat. The glow from the statue seemed
brighter. The intricate swirls of
liquid fire drew my gaze. I marveled at Opal’s talent. The whirlpool of light
in the core of the bat transformed into a snake. The roar of a kiln beat at my
ears. Hands wielded a pair of metal tweezers to shape the thin glass body
before it cooled. The thoughts of the glassmaker reached me. Opal’s thoughts. She dripped water on a
groove in the glass near the end of the pole. The snake cracked off. Using
thick mittens, she picked up the piece and put it into another oven to cool slowly.
This one was not as hot as the first. Opal, can you hear me? I
asked. No response. When my awareness
returned to the bat in my hand, I knew I had reached Booruby with my mind
without expending a lot of energy. Booruby! A six-day ride south of here. I hadn’t
been able to reach Bain from Booruby and I had been closer. What would happen
if Irys held the snake? Would we be able to communicate over vast distances
without sapping our strength? My mind raced with the implications. The cold air intruded on
my excitement. My wet hair felt icy in the breeze, and I remembered Kiki
mentioning snow. We were north of the Avibian Plains, but I had no idea if the
farmhouse resided in the Moon Clan’s lands or Featherstone’s. Either way, by
the time the storm reached us, it would turn to rain and sleet. And by looking
at the gray wall of clouds advancing from the west, it wouldn’t be long before
the storm hit. I shouldered my pack and
went inside. Valek had lit a small fire in the living room. His soft tread
padded on the floor above me. Probably planning to sleep after being up all
night. Hesitating on the
threshold of the room, I debated. My cloak was soaked. I needed the fire to dry
it and I wanted to warm myself. In the end, I changed
into Sitian clothes, hung my cloak by the hearth and filled a pot for tea. I
heated the water, but avoided looking directly into the fire. Feeling uneasy, I
chewed a piece of jerky and drank the tea as far away from the flames as I
could get. Unable to stay in the room any longer, I wanted to run upstairs to
Valek. Instead, I grabbed a blanket off the couch and ran to the stables,
joining Kiki. She snorted in amusement
when I made a bed of straw in her stall. I filled two buckets with water and
put them next to me. If I start to smoke,
pour these on me, I said to her. I don’t want to set fire to the barn. Soon after I laid down,
an odd melody of sleet drummed on the slate roof. The whistle of wind through
the rafters augmented the beat. Lulled to sleep by the storm’s music, I slept
without dreams. The arrival of a strange
horse woke me and Kiki the next morning. At least I hoped the weak storm light
meant the beginning and not the end of the day. Valek led in a black
horse with white socks. With its long legs and sleek body, the animal was built
like a racehorse. Pulling a thread of power, I linked my mind with the new
arrival. He felt uncomfortable in
this new barn. Strange smells. Strange horse. He missed his stall and friends. Smells here are good, I
said in his mind. You’ll make new friends. What’s your name? Onyx. I introduced him to
Kiki. Valek tied Onyx to a
hitch. “We need to leave for the Citadel.” He saddled Onyx. “This weather is
good cover.” My heart twisted with
pain. He had gotten his own horse so he didn’t have to sit with me on Kiki.
“How far?” “Two days. I have
another safe house about a mile north of the Citadel. We can set up operations
there.” We worked in complete
and utter silence. The next two days felt
more like ten. With the nasty weather, Valek’s cold shoulder and my anxiety to
hurry, I would have preferred spending the time in the Commander’s dungeon. Our arrival at the safe
house seemed a relief until the necessity of planning our actions made our
strained relationship almost unbearable. I remained stubborn, believing the
distance between us would make it easier for me to make life-threatening
decisions. After we settled into
the cottage, I headed for the Citadel. The weather again promised rain, lending
a bleakness to the landscape. Bare trees and brown hills seemed muted and
barren of life. I knew if I swept the area with my magic, I would feel the
small stirrings of creatures, waiting for the warmth. But the risk of using
magic this close to the Keep was too high. Disguised as a
Featherstone clanswoman, I wore a long-sleeved linen dress underneath a plain
sand-colored cloak. Although I left my bow behind, I had access to my
switchblade. My hair was pulled into a stylish knot favored by the
Featherstones and held in place by my lock picks. Valek had styled my
hair. He worked in a cold and efficient manner, making it easier for me not to
grasp his hands and pull him close. His deft fingers twisted the strands of my
hair expertly, and a strange vision of fire melting his arms to stumps rose in
my mind. I banished the image and
put my hood over my head. The north gate of the Citadel wasn’t as busy as I had
hoped. In fact, once inside, only a few people walked the streets. They hunched
over their packages and stared at the ground. The weather could be a factor,
but the rain had ceased. The streets should be teeming with citizens hurrying
to the market before the next squall. Even the beggars were
few and far between. Most of them wore expressions of worry as they glanced
around, and none approached me. The Citadel’s white marble
walls looked dingy and dull. The green veins resembled streaks of dirt and the
whole town felt as if a layer of grime coated it. The grunge had built up in
the cracks, and soaked into the foundations. The shine was gone from the town.
And it wasn’t due to the weather. I missed a step when the
first Daviian Vermin came into my sight. But soon they were everywhere.
Hunching over, I mimicked the citizens’ posture, searching for an alley or side
street free of Vermin. Blood throbbed in my ears. The Vermin’s gazes burned
into my soul. When I entered a shortcut to the market, my legs wobbled with
relief. But I kept out of view until I had studied the center square, watching
the people scurrying around the market’s stands. The sense of fear even diluted
the usual heady smell of spices and roasting meat. The concentration of
citizens meant more Vermin. I waited until I spotted my target and then joined
the shoppers. When I drew beside a young boy of ten, I had to suppress a smile
as I listened to him barter with the stand owner. “Four coppers, take it
or leave it,” Fisk said, sounding like an adult. “I can’t feed my family
for that!” the owner countered. “Since you’re my friend, I’ll take seven
coppers.” “Belladoora is selling
them for four.” “But look at this quality.
Hand embroidered by my own wife. Look at the detail!” He held up the fabric. “Five, and not a copper
more.” “Six, and that’s final.” “Good day, sir.” Fisk
walked away. “Wait,” the stand owner
called. “Five then. But you’re stealing the bread out of my children’s mouths.”
He grumbled some more while wrapping the fabric in paper, but he smiled when
the boy paid him the money. I followed Fisk to his
client. The woman paid him six coppers and he handed her the package. “Excuse me, boy,” I
said. “I’m in need of your services.” “What can I do for you?”
he asked. Then his eyes flew wide with shock before worry touched them. He
glanced around with small furtive movements. “Follow me.” He led me to a tight
alley and into a dark dwelling. I stood in the blackness while Fisk lit a few
lanterns. Thick curtains hung over the windows and only a few chairs decorated
the barren room. “This is where we meet,”
Fisk said. “We?” He smiled. “The Helpers
Guild members. We plan our day, divide up the money, and exchange gossip about
our clients.” “That’s wonderful.”
Pride at what Fisk had accomplished filled my heart. The grubby beggar boy I
had met on my first Citadel visit had transformed into a productive member of
his family. Fisk’s own pride showed
in his light brown eyes. “It’s all because of you, my first client!” Instead of begging for
money, now Fisk and the other beggar children helped shoppers find good deals,
carried packages and would do just about anything for a small fee. His grin dropped from
his face. “Lovely Yelena, you shouldn’t be here. There’s a reward for your
capture.” “How much?” “Five golds!” “Is that all? I thought
it would be more like ten or fifteen,” I teased. “Five is a lot of money.
So much I wouldn’t trust my own cousin not to turn you in. It’s dangerous for
you here. For everyone.” “What’s been going on?” “These new Daviian Clan
members. They have taken over. At first it was just a couple of them, but now
the streets are filled. Ugly rumors about their involvement with the Sandseed
genocide has everyone frightened. People living in the Citadel have been
questioned, and certain beggars have disappeared. Whispers about how the
Council members have lost control have spread, yet they are preparing for a
war.” Fisk shook his head. He
had wisdom beyond his years. I mourned the loss of his childhood. Being a child
of beggars had robbed him of fun, wonder and the ability to make mistakes
without fatal consequences. “How about the Keep?” I
asked. “Locked down. No one
enters or leaves except under the Daviians’ armed escort.” The state of affairs was
worse than I had anticipated. “I need you to get a message to one of the
Councilors for me.” “Which one?” “My kinsman, Bavol
Zaltana. But I don’t want you to write anything down. It must be a verbal
message. Can you do it?” Fisk frowned,
considering. “It will be difficult. The Councilors all have an escort while out
in the Citadel, but perhaps I could set up a distraction…” He rubbed his hands
along his arms as he contemplated the task. “I can try. No promises. If it gets
too hot, I’m out of there. And it’s—” “Going to cost me. And
you must not repeat the message to anyone.” “Agreed.” We shook hands on the
deal. I told Fisk my message. He left to recruit a couple helpers. I returned
to the market to purchase a few items and to eat, killing time without
appearing to be. My gaze kept returning
to the Keep’s towers. Located within the Citadel’s marble walls, the Magician’s
Keep occupied the northeastern section. Unable to suppress my desire to see the
pink-pillared entrance gates, my path led to the Keep. Instead of appearing
warm and inviting, the cold stone seemed impenetrable and daunting. I longed to
make contact with my friends and colleagues inside. Where were Dax and Gelsi?
Had they been allowed to continue their studies? I felt blind and cut off,
frustrated and lost. As if I had been exiled and would never see them again. Daviian guards stood
next to the Keep’s guards. Feeling too exposed, I returned to Fisk’s meeting
room to await the boy’s return. Time crept along in mind-numbing increments. A
small tan spider built its elaborate web in the corner of the room. To help the
spider, I hunted for an insect to place on the sticky strands. Fisk arrived as I stood
on a chair, attempting to nab a moth. He puffed out his chest and declared the
mission a success. “Councilor Zaltana said he would meet with you tonight in
his home.” Fisk deflated a bit with his next remark. “He warned his residence
is guarded by a Warper. What’s a Warper?” “A Daviian magician.” I
considered the complication. “What time?” “Anytime, but if you’re
out on the streets after midnight, the guards will arrest you. I would suggest
after the evening meal. There is usually a flurry of activity as the shops
close and everyone heads home.” Fisk sighed. “It used to be a good time to beg.
People would feel guilty passing by a child without a home when they had a warm
comfortable bed waiting for them.” “Used to be, Fisk.
That’s in the past. I bet you have a nice home, now.” His posture
straightened. “The best! Which reminds me. You had better leave before my
helpers come back. We meet in the morning and again in the late afternoon.” I paid Fisk, thanking
him for the help. “If you ever get caught, don’t hesitate to tell them about
me. I don’t want you to be hurt because of me.” Fisk gave me a confused
frown. “But you could be taken and killed by the Daviians.” “Better me than you.” “No. Things are bad and
getting worse. If you’re killed, I have a horrible feeling life wouldn’t be
worth living.” Fisk’s dire comments
followed me as I traveled through the Citadel. Keeping to the back alleys, I
hid behind buildings until the streets filled with residents hurrying home,
just as Fisk had predicted. I joined the flow, blending in as the sky grew dark
and the lamplighters began their evening chore. When I passed Bavol’s dwelling,
I slowed long enough to determine his house was empty. I made another loop
around the street to make sure, then slipped behind the building. Using my
picks, I unlocked the back door and startled a woman. “Oh my!” She dropped a
rake. It clattered on the edge of the stone heath, and the fire she had been
stirring to life dimmed. “I didn’t mean to
startle you,” I said, thinking fast. “I have an urgent appointment with
Councilman Zaltana.” “I don’t remember him
telling me about a guest. And certainly no guest would come creeping in the
back door!” She swept up the iron rake and hefted it in her big hands. She wore
a type of loose tunic the Zaltanas preferred, but it was hard to see in the
semidarkness. I chanced it. “We just
set the meeting today. It’s regarding clan business.” “Oh my.” She bent and
raked at the coals. When a flame ignited, she used it to light a lantern. She
peered at me through the glow. “Goodness, child. Come in then. Shut the door.
This is all highly unusual, but I don’t know why I’m surprised. These are
unusual times.” The woman bustled and
fussed about the kitchen, claiming the Councilman would soon be home and would
want his supper. I helped her by lighting the lanterns in the dining room and
living room. Bavol’s home was decorated with jungle art and valmur statues. A
pang of homesickness struck me. When I heard someone at
the front door, I hid in the kitchen. “His guard dog doesn’t
come in the house,” the woman said. “The Councilman won’t allow it. The day
that dog is allowed in will be the end of the Sitian Council.” But would the Warper use
his magic to scan the interior? Would I feel the power? I hovered by the back
door just in case. The woman said, “Call me
Petal, child,” and invited me to join them for supper. She shooed away any
protests about my limited time. “Nonsense, child. Let me tell the Councilman
you’re here.” “Ah, Petal,” I said,
stopping her. “Perhaps it would be best if you just asked him to come in here?
Dogs have very acute hearing.” She tapped a finger to
her forehead and then pointed to me before leaving. Bavol came into the kitchen
with Petal on his heels. He greeted me with a tired smile. “Smart to come before
me,” he said in a soft voice. He rubbed at the dark smudges under his eyes.
Worry lines etched his face and he stood as if he strained under a heavy
weight. “If you’re discovered…” He sank down to perch on an edge of a stool.
“You can’t stay long. If they hear or see anything out of the ordinary, the Warper
will barge in and I will tell him everything.” His matter-of-fact
statement about his response to the Warper sent a ripple of fear through my
body. What were the Warpers doing to gain information and cooperation? “I’ll be quick then. Why
did the Council allow the Daviians to come?” Alarm flashed on Bavol’s
face and he clamped his hands together in his lap. “Petal, could you please get
me a glass of whiskey?” She eyed him with
annoyance. Even though she stirred her stew pot on the other side of the kitchen,
she had been leaning toward us, trying to listen to our conversation. With a huff of
indignation, Petal left the kitchen. Bavol closed his eyes
for a moment and grimaced. But when he focused on me, his old confident self
returned. “We should have let them
die,” he said. 26“LET WHO DIE?” I ASKED,
but Bavol ignored me. “At first the Daviians
required minor things from us to keep them alive. A vote one way or another.
The requests became more frequent and alarming. Visitors grew in numbers and
the next thing we knew we had agreed to everything.” “Keep who alive?” “We made a mistake, but
you’re here now. Perhaps it’s not too late.” “Bavol, I don’t—” “The Daviians have our
children.” I stared at him for a
moment in stunned silence. “How?” Bavol shrugged. “Does it
matter how? Our families live with our clans most of the year. We’re not home
to protect them.” “Who do they have?” “My daughter,
Jenniqilla. She disappeared from the Illiais Market. I’ve been instructed not
to tell anyone. But from the other Councilors’ faces I knew the Daviians had
gotten to everyone. Eventually, we talked about it amongst ourselves. All the
Councilors with children had one taken. For the others, the Daviians kidnapped
Councilor Greenblade’s husband, and Councilor Stormdance’s wife.” “Where are they keeping
them?” “If I knew I wouldn’t be
here talking to you,” he snapped. “Sorry.” I considered
the implications. Petal returned with two glasses of whiskey and handed one to
me. She went back to stirring her pots. “When?” I asked, thinking
about Valek’s comment that the Vermin had been planning this before Cahil had
gotten involved. “Fourteen days ago,”
Bavol whispered. I thought back. Fourteen
days seemed like fourteen years when I sifted through everything that had
happened. The Vermin had grabbed the Councilors’ families right after I fled
the Citadel. It wasn’t Roze influencing the Council after all. “Do the Master Magicians
know?” “Master Bloodgood and
Master Jewelrose suspected when we wrote the letter to the Commander. Master Featherstone
interpreted their refusal as an act of treason. And the Daviians forced us to
agree with her and sign their arrest warrant and help incarcerate them in the
Keep. They cooperated,” Bavol added when he saw my concern. “It’s a shame
Master Cowan is still too young to exert much influence on Master
Featherstone.” “Do you think Roze is
working with the Daviians?” “No. She would be
horrified to know they are making the decisions. We are voting with her, so she
is content and the Daviians are offering her support in her campaign against
the Commander.” “Couldn’t she learn of
your dilemma from your thoughts?” Bavol’s gaze snapped to
me. “That would be a serious breach of the Magician’s Ethical Code. Master
Featherstone would never resort to invading our private thoughts.” I had a difficult time
believing in Roze’s high moral standards, but I possessed no evidence to the
contrary. “Should I set an extra
place for dinner?” Petal asked. Bavol and I both shook
our heads no. His anxious expression reminded me I needed to leave soon. She
tsked and carried a stack of plates from the kitchen. Finding and rescuing the
Council’s family members became a priority. There was one way I could discover
where they were being held, but I would have to use magic. “Bavol, I may be able to
find your daughter through you. But I can’t do it in the Citadel. Is there any
chance you can leave?” “No. My guard is with me
always.” “Could you slip out the
back door?” “I have to make contact
with my guard every hour. It is the only way he will give me any privacy.” “What about when you’re
sleeping?” “He sits in the living
room. Petal doesn’t know about it, since she retires so early and sleeps like a
log. I haven’t been able to sleep since Jenniqilla’s capture. I’m up before the
sun and can send him back outside.” “It will have to be
during the night, then. I’ll make arrangements. Just don’t be surprised if you
have company in your bedroom tomorrow evening. And leave the back window open.” “That’s Petal’s room,”
he said. “Perhaps you can make
sure she remains asleep?” He sighed. “I long for
the simpler days. Never again will I complain about Councilor Sandseed’s
stubbornness or Councilor Jewelrose’s petty problems.” “Dinner’s ready,” Petal
called. “You should go,” he
said. “Do you know any way I
could get into the Keep?” “The emergency tunnel.
But I don’t know if it has collapsed or been sealed up. The magicians dug it
when they first constructed their Keep, during the clan wars long ago. I hadn’t
known it existed until recently. Second Magician mentioned it to me a few days
before they arrested him and Fourth Magician.” “Are Bain and Irys still
being held in the Keep’s cells?” “As far as I know.” “Did Bain tell you where
the tunnel is located?” “He said something about
the east side of the Keep, and about how it was big enough for a horse.” Bavol
stood. “We have lingered too long. I expect to hear from you again. Stay safe.”
He went into the dining room. I waited a moment, then
opened the back door. Peeking out, I scanned the dark alley. It appeared to be
deserted, but without my magic, I couldn’t be sure. I risked it and left
Bavol’s. The Citadel’s quiet streets alarmed me. Only a few people walked on
the roads, and most of them were Vermin. Even the taverns remained dark and
desolate. My chances of getting
through the north gate undetected didn’t seem likely. I considered going to one
of the inns, but the Vermin could have people there watching for strangers. The
longer I stayed on the street increased the danger of being caught. In desperation, I found
a house with an outside staircase reaching the ground of a narrow alley.
Climbing up to the top of the steps without making too much noise, I stood on
the handrail and reached for the edge of the roof. I discovered a problem with
marble buildings as I tried to use the wall to push myself onto the roof. My
foot slipped and I just managed to regain my balance and avoid plummeting four
stories to the ground. In the end, I employed
my acrobatic training and made a leap of faith onto the roof. Good thing these
same marble walls were thick enough to mask the sound of my thud. I lay on the flat roof,
gasping, glad Valek hadn’t been here to see my awkward ascent. His ability to
scale the Commander’s castle walls was now more impressive. I wondered if he would
be worried when I failed to come back. Perhaps it was for the best that I had
stayed too long with Bavol. Multiple trips through the gate would arouse
suspicion. The night air turned
cold. I huddled in my cloak and slept. Dreams of fire haunted me. No matter
where I ran to or where I hid, the flames always found me. Always. I woke sweat soaked in
the morning light, achy and feverish. The prospect of climbing down from the
roof unseen and finding Fisk was as appealing as taking a cold bath. At least
descending proved easier than ascending the roof. I made it down the stairs and
into the alley without incident. Although the thumping in my head failed to
stop. Bleary-eyed and tired, I
searched for Fisk at the market. Remembering his meeting room, I hid nearby and
waited for him. The group of children
who left the building caused me to smile. So intent on their day’s work, they
moved with purpose and carried themselves with a businesslike air. After they
disappeared from sight, Fisk appeared beside me. “Did something happen?”
he asked. “Nothing bad. I have
another job for you.” I told him what I needed and he thought he could help me.
“I don’t want anyone to get into trouble, though.” “Don’t worry, you picked
a good night.” “Why is it good?” “It’s Midseason’s Night.
We celebrate the midpoint of the cold season. Gives everyone something to look
forward to.” Fisk grinned. “Doesn’t Ixia have something similar?” “Yes. They hold an
annual Ice Festival. People display their handcrafts and get together to
exchange ideas. I just hadn’t realized we were this far into the season.” “The celebration’s bound
to be quieter this year, but there should be enough activity to hide ours.”
This time Fisk’s smile held a hint of mischievousness, reminding me of Janco. I’d bet Janco had been
pure trouble as a kid. At least I hadn’t upset him and Ari before leaving Ixia.
Then again, since I hadn’t brought them along, they could be annoyed with me,
too. We made plans for the
evening and Fisk told me of a place where I could stay to wait for the night.
After he left, I walked over to the Council Hall. I made a loop around it while
trying not to appear as if I held any special interest in the square structure.
The activity on the wide steps leading to the first floor was busy. The Councilors’
offices, the great hall, record room, library and Citadel’s jail all resided
inside. My interest lay in the record room. Information from all the clans had
been stored there, and I wanted to find any mention about the magician’s
emergency tunnel within the records. Or perhaps the library would have some
reference to the Keep’s layout? Bain’s private stash of
books most likely contained the information I needed. The irony of my situation
was not lost on me. The Second Magician had told Bavol about the tunnel’s
existence because he knew Bavol would be the first person I would contact. What
Bavol had thought was an interesting tidbit of information turned out to be a
message for me. The lack of details
remained a problem. East side of the Keep and big enough for a horse didn’t
give me much to go on. The flow of people in
and out of the Council Hall stayed steady. However, a few Vermin hung about and
I decided not to risk my life for research. When I headed back
toward the market, a strange feeling touched my back as if a thousand little
spiders crawled up my spine in unison. Turning a corner, I glanced to the side.
A male Daviian walked a small distance behind me. He wore red pantaloons and a
brown hooded short cape. When I rounded another corner, he remained on my tail. His scimitar glinted in
the sunlight. I entered the market. Pausing at a vegetable stand, I hoped the
Vermin would pass me, but he leaned on a lamppost. Small darts of panic began
to pierce my heart. If the Daviian was a Warper, I wouldn’t be able to lose
him. Joining with a group of
women, I stayed with them as they shopped. The man kept pace with us. I needed
a distraction and fast. One of the women in the
group paid for a beaded necklace. She had been rather loud and full of opinions
as we went from stand to stand, and she made her annoyance over my unwanted
presence clear to me. When the stand owner
handed her the wrapped package, I leaned over and whispered to her, “He sold
that very same necklace to my friend for two silvers last week.” The woman had just paid
four silvers. As predicted, she loudly demanded the same price and the confused
seller tried to reason with her. The ensuing argument drew a considerable crowd
and I squeezed between them, hoping to lose the Daviian. No luck. He caught sight
of me and followed. A few shoppers temporarily blocked his way, and I ducked
under one of the market stands. Not the best decision,
but I had run out of options. I hunched under the table. A purple cloth had
been draped over it and the material hung to the ground. A few bolts of fabric
and a box of buttons had been stored underneath. I wondered when it would
be safe to leave. Popping up just as the Vermin walked by wouldn’t be ideal, so
I squirmed into a more comfortable position to wait. The purple fabric pulled
aside. I froze. A man’s face peered
through the opening. “Your friend’s gone. It’s safe to come out.” He backed away when I
started to move. “Thanks,” I said, brushing the dirt off my cloak. “Attracting their
attention is never a good thing,” the man said. His round face held a serious
expression. “People tend to disappear around here. Especially those with five
golds on their head.” I calmed my furious
heartbeat. The stand owner knew I hid under his table and he hadn’t reported
me. At least not yet. Perhaps he wished to strike a bargain? Something like six
golds to keep quiet. “Don’t worry. You’re a
friend to Fisk and his guild. And just the fact the Daviians would be willing
to pay five golds for your capture means you, of all people, scare them. I hope
for the sake of my family the reason you scare them is because you can do
something to bring our normal lives back.” “I scare them,” I
agreed, thinking about the Sitian Council and how terrified they had been over
me being a Soulfinder. “But I don’t know if I can restore your old way of life.
I’m only one person.” “You have Fisk’s help.” “Until my money runs
out.” “True. That little
scamp, forcing me to make an honest living!” The man paused and considered.
“Aren’t there any others to help you?” “Would you help me?” He blinked in surprise.
“How?” “Not all these Vermin
are Warpers. They carry scimitars and spears, but look around you—they are
outnumbered.” “But their Warpers have
powerful magic.” “You don’t have any
magicians? No one has escaped from the Keep? No one has come from the other
clans?” His eyes lit with
understanding. “But they’re scattered around the Citadel. They hide in fear.” “A concerned citizen
needs to convince them to act despite their fear, to organize them and, when
the time is right, to lead them.” “You can do that. You’re
the Soulfinder.” I shook my head. “My
presence would jeopardize the efforts. I’m needed elsewhere. If you’re
determined, you will find the right person.” The man smoothed out the
fabric on his table. He appeared deep in thought. “Merchants come and go from
the Citadel all the time…caravans of goods…” “Just be very careful.”
I started to walk away. “Wait. How will we know
when the time is right?” “I have a bad feeling
that you won’t be able to miss it.” After the day settled
into night, I met up with Fisk and his uncle. People walked the streets in good
humor despite their Vermin watchers and the late hour. While Fisk went to
prepare for later, I led his uncle onto the roof. Once we ascended, we
traveled over the roofs of the Citadel to Bavol’s dwelling. If they weren’t out
celebrating, the other residents had already gone to bed. I pulled the rope
Fisk had bought for me from my pack, and secured it around the chimney before
tossing the end over the side. The glow from the
lamplights didn’t reach the back alley, so I hoped Bavol had remembered to open
the back window. Clutching the rope, I shimmied down the side of the house and
was relieved to find the window open. I climbed into Petal’s room with the utmost
care. Inside the room, I stilled and listened to her breathing, steady with the
occasional snore. I yanked on the rope, then held it stable while Uncle slid
down. He joined me in the room with a thump. We both froze until Petal resumed
her even breathing. Bavol, awake and ready,
waited for us in his room. Uncle slipped into bed, pulling the blankets up to
his neck and the Councilor came with me to the back window. Living in the
jungle canopy all his life, Bavol had no trouble ascending the rope. I followed. Traveling over the
rooftops proved to be ideal. Eventually, we climbed down to the ground. When we
came within sight of the north gate, we found a place to hide. No traffic. I
worried, and the longer the gate remained empty the greater my fear. As I tried to decide if
we should risk crossing through, a group of obviously inebriated men and women
approached. With loud voices, a few of the group decided they wanted to go
outside the Citadel, and a discussion ensued, leading to a fight. When the guards became
entangled in the brawl, Bavol and I slipped through the gate unnoticed. Once
out of sight of the guardhouse, we ran. Our time was limited. We reached Valek’s
cottage and I hoped we would be far enough away from the Citadel and the
Warpers. Kiki whinnied in her
stall and I opened my mind to her. Lavender Lady safe, she
said with contentment. Ghost upset. I’ll talk later. No time
right now. I hustled Bavol into the cottage. Valek sat on the couch, his
expression set into cold fury. I ignored his anger. He of
all people should know the nature of this operation lent itself to unforeseen
circumstances. However, I knew why Bavol’s face blanched when he spotted Valek
on the couch. “You set me up,” he
said, taking a step back. “Relax, Bavol. If Valek
was going to assassinate the Council, you would be dead by now. He’s helping
me.” Valek snorted. “I am?
Funny how I forgot. Or is it because someone forgot about me?” Sarcasm spiked
each word. Again, I ignored his
fury and filled him in on what Bavol had told me. His face lost some of his ire
as he considered the new information. “Bavol, sit down. Close
your eyes. Think of your daughter,” I ordered. When he settled on the
couch, I reached for power. Touching the source caused a sudden rush of relief.
I hadn’t used magic in two days and reconnecting felt like being wrapped tight
in my mother’s arms. I projected my awareness
to Bavol. His loving thoughts dwelled on his little girl. She appeared to be
around eight years old. Strands of gold streaked her long brown hair and a
spattering of freckles dotted her warm maple-colored cheeks. A beautiful child,
she twirled with delight after being presented with a piece of sap candy. Through Bavol, I reached
toward Jenniqilla. Within the memory, her happiness over the candy matched her
joy over spending time with her father. I pushed past the memory and tried to
find the girl. She missed her father
with a painful desperation. Cold and hungry, she wanted her father and mother
more than food or heat. She rocked back and forth, trying to soothe the child
in her arms. The two-year-old boy’s crying had set off a chain reaction among
the children in the room. A woman paced with a year-old baby girl and the man
tried to cajole another two-year-old. The gloomy light in the
wooden room came from small cracks between the gray boards. The area contained
no furniture and only two slop pots had been placed behind a ripped screen.
From the harsh acidic smell, the pots hadn’t been emptied in a while. A coating
of grime clung to Jenniqilla’s skin and she promised herself she would never
fuss at her mother about bathing again. An icy chill seeped into her legs and
back from the dirt floor. Jenniqilla, I said in
her mind. Where are you? She glanced around,
wondering if someone had called her name. Seeing no one, she continued to sing
to Leevi. I’m your cousin, Yelena.
I need to know where you are so I can help you and the others. She remembered how her
second cousin was taken long ago, but had returned. If she got away, than I
can, too, she thought. Jenniqilla was too young
to access the power source. She couldn’t communicate with me directly, but she
felt the intentions of my power. She remembered her kidnapping. Somehow, she
had lost sight of her mother at the market. As she wandered around, searching for
Mama a man dressed in the loose tunic of the Sandseed clan picked her up.
Before she could yell, he clamped a sweet-smelling rag over her mouth and nose. Jenniqilla woke inside a
box and cried for Mama. A man banged on the wood and threatened to kill her if
she didn’t shut up. She felt movement and when the box stopped and opened, the
same Sandseed man pulled her out and brought her to an old dilapidated barn
smelling of rot. Within the barn was another structure. This one smelled like
sawed wood and had shiny locks on the door. When they shoved her
through the door, dark shapes moved in the corners. Distraught and confused,
she cried. A woman materialized from one of those black forms and took
Jenniqilla into her arms. After she had quieted, the woman, Gale Stormdance,
explained to her why they all were there. Ask Gale where you are,
I encouraged Jenniqilla. But Gale wasn’t sure. “I
think somewhere in Bloodgood’s lands,” she said. Her face grew thoughtful, and
I projected myself toward her and encountered a magical defensive barrier. She stared at Jenniqilla
in shock but lowered her defenses tentatively. I’m here to help, I said
to Gale, explaining who I was and how I had found her. Thank goodness, she
said. I’ve been hoping a Keep magician would look for us. Why did it take so
long? I updated her on what I
knew, then asked her again about her whereabouts. I only had a brief
glimpse. I sensed her frustration. Visualize the area
around the barn for me. Forest-covered hills
loomed behind the barn and a large stone farmhouse was located to the right.
Something odd had caught her eye on the left. A glint of sunlight off a
crimson-colored pond. The shape, though, had been stranger than the color. Her
mind sifted through all the panic and fear of being hauled out of a crate and
taken inside to find the required image. A diamond, she
exclaimed. The pond is shaped like a diamond. It was a start. I
thanked her for her help and promised to find them. I pulled away from Gale,
away from Jenniqilla and back to Bavol. A thin filament looped around my mind
as I returned to Bavol. As if another power had caught me in a parasitic
embrace. Through Bavol’s confused
mind, I returned to my body. Valek had disappeared and the smell of smoke
burned my nose. I rushed to the window. The stable was on fire. 27“KIKI!” I SCREAMED,
running. The image of her trapped in her stall and engulfed by flames filled my
vision. A voice yelled my name. A black horse stood in
the pasture. A Daviian Warper coaxed
the blaze higher. Brighter. Hotter. It didn’t matter. The parasite in my mind
had gained control. I ran straight into the
stable, diving into the fire. The heat burned my face
and seared the inside of my nose. Flames danced with delight on my cloak,
eating the fibers in gleeful disregard. The soles of my boots melted. The smoke
robbed air from my lungs. My throat closed. Hot knives of pain
stabbed into my skin. Layers burned off in sheets of torment. The sound of
boiling blood sizzled in my ears. Pleasure followed pain
and the colors of my world turned from white-hot and blinding yellow into
bloodred and ice-black. I marveled at my
surroundings. Lit with a soft gray light, the flat world extended for miles in
every direction. With reluctance, I glanced at my body, expecting to see a
burnt corpse, but was surprised to find no damage. A weightless feeling
tingled, and my arms and legs were slightly transparent. A ghost perhaps? Was I
in the shadow world? Then where were the others? All the Sandseeds who waited
for me. Perhaps they had been a figment of Moon Man’s imagination. A soft laugh sounded
beside me. “You don’t see them
because you have chosen not to see them,” a voice said. A voice I feared more
than anything. The Fire Warper stood next to me. He had lost his cloak of
flames and appeared as an ordinary man. Broad shouldered with short dark hair,
he stood as tall as Moon Man. His skin gleamed as if carved from coal. He raised his arm to me.
“Go ahead, touch it. It’s not hard.” I hesitated. “You read
my mind?” He laughed again. “No. I
read the question in your eyes. Despite your fear, you’re curious. An admirable
trait.” The Fire Warper stroked
my arm with his fingertips. I jerked away. “So afraid of being
burned. I knew I needed a big fire to attract my little bat. It wasn’t that
bad, was it?” “Bad enough.” Caught
here with him, my fear turned to resignation. He seemed delighted with
my response. Gesturing around, he said, “So what do you think of my fire world?
Rather dull?” “Yes. I thought it would
be…” I scanned the featureless plain, with black ground and crimson sky. “Hotter? Filled with
burning souls? That you would be welcomed by your old tormentor, Reyad, for an
eternity of rape and torture?” “Filled with souls,” I
agreed. Drawn into the fire before, I had seen others. “That’s because you were
with Moon Man. He has chosen to see those unfortunate souls. They’ve all lived
colorful stories of life. You block them from your mind. Unwilling to see and
unwilling for Moon Man to show you.” “I saw them in the
shadow world, and relieved him of those painful images,” I protested. “Really? Do they haunt
your dreams? Are you working with Moon Man to soothe them?” He paused and, when
I didn’t answer, he smiled. “Of course not! You have locked them away just like
you have pushed Moon Man and your brother out of your life. Soon Valek will
follow.” “At least they’ll be
safe.” “No one is safe.” Tired of his wordplay, I
asked him what he wanted. The amusement dropped
from his face in an instant. “The sky.” I stared at him. “I rule the fire world.
I now have control over the shadow world, thanks to those Daviian magicians.
And even though the shadow world is a borderland between fire and sky, I still
can’t access the sky.” “Why?” “Because once I rule the
sky, I can return to the living world.” Horror rolled through
me. “What’s in the sky?” “The source of all
magic.” I didn’t quite
understand. All magicians had access to the power source. Would he block others
from using it? “You know so little of
magic,” he said. His expression was incredulous. I peered at him. His
face had changed from smooth to covered with burn scars. His skin rippled as if
melting. “Why do you need me?” “You’re the only one who
can get me into the sky.” “And why would I do
that?” “Because this is what
I’ll do to your family and friends.” He touched my arm.
Burning pain seared up my shoulder and encompassed my head. My eyes turned hot
and dry. The other occupants of the fire world became visible through a
shimmering veil of heat. Souls writhed in pain,
dancing as if flames clinging to a log. Twisting and contorting, their misery
pulsed off them in waves. The force of their emotions slammed into me. I
stepped back into the Fire Warper’s embrace. He pointed to the
different souls. “A few belong here, like Hetoo and Makko. Others were sent by
the Daviians to feed me. Increased my power so much I can travel into the
shadow world and steal more souls.” He dragged me through the sea of suffering.
“Your brother would add nicely to my collection. His magic is strong. Moon Man.” He savored the Story Weaver’s name. “Would bring me a cooling blue power.
Combined, your mother and father would give me a boost. But I’ll let them all
live if you help me.” “If I help you, you’ll
be able to rule the living world, so how does that save them?” “I’ll show them special
favor.” I knew they wouldn’t
agree. Yet spending eternal life in complete misery wasn’t an attractive
alternative. The Fire Warper released
me. The souls faded from sight and the dull plain reappeared. “Much better, isn’t it?”
he asked. “Yes.” “This could be your
eternity. It’s not very interesting, but it is safe. However…” I leaned forward. “You could live in the
sky. It’s peaceful and filled with contentment and joy.” “Until you join them.” “I only need to use them
for a while. Once I’ve returned to the living, I will let you preside over
their happiness.” An appealing prospect,
except he had changed his story and I knew then I couldn’t trust anything he
said or promised. Being dead hadn’t released me from my responsibilities at
all. Perhaps if I went into the sky, I could tap into the power source and stop
him. “What would I have to
do?” I asked. “You need to find a soul
on its way to the sky and follow it.” “What about you?” “I’ll be with you.” I looked at him in
confusion. “When you go to the sky,
you’ll be able to explore all aspects of magic. But to get there, you need to
draw a soul to you. You know how to do that. Once you have the soul, step into
the fire. Come to me and together we will go to the sky,” he explained. “But I’m dead already.
Why can’t I take one of the souls that doesn’t belong here?” He shook his head. “You
must come under your own volition. You’re not dead. I pulled you from the
flames before they could consume your body. Besides, all these souls belong
here. They don’t deserve to be in the sky.” Another contradiction. I
didn’t know what to believe. And his motives were unclear, so I asked him, “Why
do you want to go back to the living world?” His burned face creased
with anger. Fire erupted on his shoulders. “He sent me here to spend an
eternity in misery. But his descendant released me, fed me power in exchange
for knowledge and obedience. My master is strong, but not that strong. I have
exceeded my savior’s power. Now I want to regain my life that had been stolen
from me.” “Who sent you here?” “An Efe traitor named
Guyan. Now do we have an agreement? If not, then you will remain here.” He
shrugged as if my decision didn’t concern him too much. Guyan’s name was
familiar to me. He was Gede’s ancestor. So my new Story Weaver was in league
with the Fire Warper. Perhaps Gede was also their leader Jal. I would have to
remember that tidbit the next time I had a lesson scheduled with Gede. I choked
out a laugh. At this point, there would be no future sessions for me. I scanned the flat plain,
peering into the red-tinged light. A gray shape swooped from the air. It dived
and danced over a figure. I moved closer. The shape was a bat. But there
weren’t any insects or sources of heat to warrant its actions. Yet it picked
and yanked at the figure. Another torture on the poor soul? “What do you see,
Yelena?” the Fire Warper asked. “Your future?” “Perhaps.” I turned
away. “Will you come back?” “Yes.” He held out his hand. I
grasped it. My world melted in a blaze of heat and cooled just as quickly in a
swirl of ash and smoke. I lay among the ruins of the stable. Charred beams
rested in crooked angles, twisted pieces of blackened metal littered the floor,
and the scorched smell of burnt leather hung in the air. I stumbled from the
still-warm pile of wood. Singed holes peppered my clothes and soot streaked my
skin. My cloak was gone. The hair on my arms had been burned away. I reached
for my head, stopping when I encountered half-burnt stubble instead of hair. My ruined boots crunched
on the remains of the stable and shuffled through ash-filled puddles as I
walked out, seeking Kiki. No response to either my mental or physical calls. A loud bang sounded
behind me and I turned to see Valek standing in the doorway of the cottage. I laughed at his expression
of complete and utter surprise. Then my legs turned to liquid as I realized
what I would really lose when I kept my promise to the Fire Warper. My efforts
were so focused on trying to protect him—protect everyone—I hadn’t considered
the cost of keeping them safe. I fell. He was beside me in an
instant. Caressing my face with a feather-light touch, he looked uncertain. “Are you real?” he
asked. “Or just some cruel joke?” “I’m real. A real
simpleton, Valek. I should never have said…I should never have done…” I drew in
a deep breath. “Forgive me, please?” “Would you promise never
to do it again?” he asked. “Sorry, I can’t.” “Then you certainly are
real. A real pain in the ass, but that’s who I fell in love with.” He pulled me
close. I clung to him with my ear
pressed against his chest. The beat of his heart, steady and solid, comforted
me. His soul, nestled within its chambers, was unreachable with my magic, but
he had given it to me freely. “Why were you so
determined to push me away, love?” “Fear.” “You’ve faced fear
before. What’s different?” Good question. The
answer horrified me. All this time I believed I wanted to protect my friends
and family from the Fire Warper. “I’m afraid of my magic.” The words tumbled
from my mouth, breaking through the invisible barrier I had built between us.
“If I harvested enough souls, I know I would possess ample power to defeat all
the Warpers, including the Fire Warper. That’s tempting. Tempting enough to
want to protect you from me.” Valek pulled back and
tilted my head so he could meet my gaze. “But all you need to do is ask. We
wouldn’t hesitate to give you our souls to defeat the Warpers.” “No. There has to be
another way.” “And that would be…?” “When I figure it out,
you’ll be the first to know.” Before he could comment, I added, “You never
answered me. Am I forgiven?” He sighed dramatically.
“You’re forgiven. Now come inside, you reek of smoke.” Valek helped me to my
feet. I swayed on unsteady legs for a moment. “Where’s Kiki?” “Once you disappeared
into the stable, she ran off and hasn’t come back.” I wanted to find her and
reassure her, but my body lacked the energy. We walked to the
cottage. The bright light of midday burned in the sky. I could no longer think
of the sky without remembering my deal with the Fire Warper. Unease wrapped
around chest. “Where’s Bavol?” I asked
to distract myself. “The Daviian Warper
captured him while I tried to douse the fire. Will they kill him?” “No. They need him and
all the Councilors for a while to keep up the pretense that the Council and
Master Magicians are in charge.” “How long will it last?” “Not very.” “Will they come after us
here?” The Fire Warper had
gotten what he wanted. “No. But we need to retake control.” “We, love? I thought you
could handle this by yourself.” Dealing with the Fire
Warper was my task, but, for the rest, I required assistance. “I was wrong.” Valek heated water and
filled the cast-iron tub. He removed my pile of burnt clothes. By the time I
finished bathing, he had brought me a clean outfit. “What’s this?” He held
Opal’s glass bat. I told him about my
visit with Opal. “As a fellow artist, what do you think of the construction?” Valek examined the
statue, turning it this way and that. “It’s an accurate reproduction. The
coloring matches one of the smaller jungle bat species. It’s sticky with magic.
I feel it, but can’t see it. Can you?” “The inside glows as if
molten fire has been captured by ice.” “That would be something
to see, then.” Thinking about what the
Fire Warper had done to show me his world, I touched Valek’s shoulder and
opened myself to him, letting him see the bat through me. “Ahh…spectacular. Can
everyone see this?” “Only magicians.” And
the Commander, I thought. “Good. That lays that
debate to rest. I am not a magician.” “Then what are you? You’re
not a regular person either.” Valek pretended to be
mortified. “Come on,” I said. “Your
skills as a fighter have an almost magical air. Your ability to move without
sound and blend in with shadows and people seem extraordinary. You can
communicate with me over vast distances, but I can’t contact you.” “An anti-magician?” “I suppose, but I’d bet
Bain could find it in one of his books.” I told Valek about the tunnel and
about the Councilors’ families, describing the pond to him. He considered. “That sounds
like Diamond Lake in the Jewelrose lands. It’s near the Bloodgood border. The
Jewelrose Clan had built a series of lakes that resemble shapes of jewels and
the water reflects the colors.” “Why red?” “Because the Jewelrose
Clan is famous for cutting rubies into diamond shapes. The Commander even has a
six-carat ruby on a ring, but he had stopped wearing it after the takeover. I
wonder…” Again, Valek’s gaze grew distant. “What?” He looked at me as if
deciding whether to tell me something important. “Have you shown your bat to
the Commander?” “Yes.” “And?” I hesitated. I had
promised the Commander to keep what he called “his mutation” a secret. Would
telling Valek about the bat break that confidence? “I know about the Commander,
love. How could you believe that I spent the last twenty-one years with him and
not know?” “I…” “After all.” Valek made
a scary face. “I am the anti-magician!” I laughed. “Why didn’t
you tell me?” “For the same reason you
didn’t.” He wrapped my bat and placed it back into my pack. “The Commander saw the
glow. I think his body contains two souls, but I have no idea how or why it’s
magical. And if he does have magic, why didn’t he flame out after puberty?” “Two? Ambrose’s mother
died during his birth and there was some confusion. The midwife insisted a boy
had been born, but later his father held a baby girl. They searched for
evidence of a second child but found nothing. They chalked it up to the midwife
being upset about losing her patient. Ambrose used to blame this invisible twin
whenever he was in trouble, which from his stories was quite often. His family
indulged him when he began wearing boy’s clothes and calling himself Ambrose.
It seemed mild in comparison to a few of his other antics.” “Was his mother a
magician?” “She was considered to
be a healer, but I don’t know if she healed with magic or with mundane
remedies.” Valek drained the tub
while I attempted to do something with my ruined hair. Some sections remained
long, while others had been burnt to stubble. “Let me, love.” Valek
removed the brush from my hands. He rummaged around the bath area until he
found his razor. “Sorry, nothing else will work.” “How did you get so good
with hair?” “Spent a season working
undercover as Queen Jewel’s personal groomer. She had beautiful, thick hair.” “Wait, I thought all the
Queen’s servants had to be women.” “Good thing no one
thought to look up my skirt.” Valek grinned with impish delight as he cut my
hair. Large chunks floated to the ground. I stared at them, trying to convince
myself losing my hair didn’t matter. Especially not when I considered I
wouldn’t need it in the fire world. After he finished, Valek
said, “This will help with your disguise.” “My disguise?” “Everyone’s looking for
you. If I disguise you as a man, you’ll be much harder to find. Although…” He
studied my face. “I’ll use a little makeup. Being a man won’t draw unwanted
attention unless they notice you don’t have any eyebrows.” I touched the ridge
above my eyes with my fingertips, feeling smooth skin. I wondered if they would
grow back. Again, I dismissed the notion. It wouldn’t matter in the end. “What should we do
first? Try to find the tunnel to the Keep, if it even exists. Or go and rescue
the Councilors’ families?” I asked. “We should—” Valek
sniffed the air as if he smelled a dangerous scent. “Someone’s coming.” 28HE SIGNALED ME TO WAIT
and left without a sound. I grabbed my switchblade and crept through the living
room. A murmur of voices filtered in from the kitchen. The door flew open as
soon as I reached it. I brandished my knife at the hulking figure in the
doorway. “What happened to your
hair?” Ari demanded. “Are you all right?” Janco followed him in.
“Look what happens when you sneak off without us!” “I’d hardly call being
captured and taken to Sitia inside a box sneaking off,” I said. Janco cocked his head
this way and that. “Aha! You look just like a prickle bush in MD-4. If we
buried you up to your neck, we could—” “Janco.” Ari growled. “If you gentlemen are
finished, I’d like to know why you disobeyed my orders,” Valek said. Janco smiled one of his
predatory grins as if he had anticipated this question and already composed an
answer. “We did not disobey any of your orders. You said to keep an eye on
Yelena’s brother, the scary-looking big guy and the others. So we did.” Valek crossed his arms
and waited. “But you didn’t specify
what we should do if our charges came to Sitia,” Ari said. “How could they possibly
escape the castle and get through the borders?” The expression on Valek’s face
showed his extreme annoyance. Glee lit Janco’s eyes.
“That’s a very good question. Ari, please tell our industrious leader how the
Sitians escaped.” Ari shot his partner a
nasty look, which didn’t affect Janco’s mood in the least. “They had some
help,” Ari said. Again, Valek said
nothing. Ari began to fidget, and
I covered my mouth to keep from laughing. The big man resembled a ten-year-old
boy who knew he was about to get into a lot of trouble. “We helped them.” “We?” Janco asked. “I did.” Ari sounded
miserable. “Happy now?” “Yes.” Janco rubbed his
hands together. “This is going to be good. Go on, Ari. Tell him why—although, I
think they magiked him.” He waggled his fingers. “They didn’t use magic.
They used common sense and logic.” Valek raised an eyebrow. “There’re strange things
going on here,” Ari said. “If we don’t put it right, then it’ll spread like a
disease and kill us all.” “Who told you this?” I
asked. “Moon Man.” “Where are they now?”
Valek asked. “Camped about a mile
north of here,” Ari said. The drumming of horses
reached us before Valek could comment. Through the window, I saw Kiki followed
by Topaz, Garnet and Rusalka. “How did they find us?”
Icy daggers hung from Valek’s voice. Janco seemed surprised.
“They didn’t know where we were going. I told them to wait for us.” “Isn’t it frustrating
when no one obeys your orders?” Valek asked. We went outside. Tauno
rode on Kiki and she came straight to me. She bumped my chest with her nose. I
opened my mind to her. Don’t go into fire
again, she said. I didn’t reply. Instead,
I scratched behind her ears as Tauno slid off her back. He greeted me with a
cold look and returned to the others. Leif, Moon Man and Marrok lingered near
their horses while they talked to Ari and Janco. From Leif’s various
frowns and Tauno’s scorn, I knew they remained angry with me. I couldn’t blame
them—I had acted badly. Liveliness lit Marrok’s face and I hoped Moon Man had
been able to weave his mind back into a coherent whole. Everyone went inside,
but I stayed behind, taking care of the horses as best as I could with
half-burnt brushes and scorched hay. Part of the pasture’s fence had caught
fire and collapsed. I stared at the gap, knowing the well-bred Sandseed horses
didn’t need a fence and Onyx and Topaz would stay with them. However, I attempted
to fix the broken section. And kept at it while the sun set and the night air
turned frosty. Kept working even when the horses decided it was too cold in the
open and left the pasture to find warmth under a copse of trees nearby. Valek arrived. I pounded
on a post with a heavy rock. He halted my swing and removed the rock from my
hand. “Come inside, love. We
have plans to discuss.” Reluctance pulled at my
feet as if I walked through thick, sticky mud. The living-room
conversation died the moment I entered. Moon Man looked at me with sadness in
his eyes and I wondered if he knew about my deal with the Fire Warper or if he
was disappointed by my actions. A fire had been lit. I
sat down next to it, warming my frozen and bleeding fingers, no longer afraid of
the flames. The trapped souls within the fire twisted. Their pain and presence
were clear and I wondered how I had been able to ignore them before. I averted my gaze.
Everyone stared at me. Ari and Janco had gained their feet and held their
bodies as if ready to spring into action. “Did I pass your test?”
I asked. “By not diving into the flames.” “That’s not it,” Janco
said. “You have a rather ugly bat clinging to your arm.” Sure enough, a hand-size
bat peered at me from my upper left arm. His eyes glowed with intelligence; his
claws dug into my sleeve. I offered a perch and he transferred his weight to
the edge of my right hand. Carrying him outside, my efforts to release him
failed. He didn’t want to leave. Settling on my shoulder, he seemed content so
I returned inside. No one commented on my
new friend. In fact, Leif regarded the bat with an intensely thoughtful
expression. The others waited. A
moment passed until I realized they waited for me to begin. To make the
decisions. To set events into motion. Even after leaving them as prisoners of
the Commander, they still looked to me. And this time, instead of backing down
and pushing them away, I accepted the responsibility. Accepted the fact that
they might be hurt or killed, and understood my life would be given in exchange
for keeping the Fire Warper from returning. “Leif,” I said. He jumped as if bitten. “I want you and Moon Man
to get into the Council Hall’s library and find everything you can about a
tunnel into the Keep.” I explained Bain’s comments. “Moon Man can disguise
himself as a Vermin and hopefully you won’t be caught. Do not use magic at all
from now on. It will only draw them to you.” Moon Man and Leif
nodded. “Marrok?” “Yes, sir.” “Are you able to fight?” “Ready, willing and
able, sir.” I paused, swallowing a
sudden knot in my throat. By their determined expressions, I knew they were all
willing. At least Valek’s smug smile was better than hearing him say, I told
you so. “Good. Marrok and Tauno
will accompany Valek and me. We’ll go south to rescue the hostages.” Ari cleared his throat
as if he wanted to protest. “I haven’t forgotten
about you two. I need you to go into the Citadel and help organize the
resistance.” “Resistance?” Valek
asked. “I hadn’t heard.” “I put an idea into a
merchant’s head, and, I think if Ari and Janco disguised themselves as traders,
they could move about the Citadel. Ari will have to dye his hair. Oh, and find
a boy named Fisk. Tell him you’re my friend and he’ll help you make contacts.” “And when and where, Oh
mighty Yelena, do we resist?” Janco asked. “At the Keep’s gates. As
for when, I don’t know, but something will happen and you’ll know.” Janco and Ari exchanged
a look. “Gotta love the confidence,” Janco said. “And when do we start,
love?” “Everyone get a good night’s
sleep and we’ll begin preparations in the morning. We’ll leave early. Do you
have enough disguises for four of us or do we need to get supplies? Money?” Valek smiled. “You mean
raid some laundry lines? Steal a couple purses? No. My safe houses are well
stocked with all types of items.” Leif was the only one to
be alarmed by his statement. The room erupted with
the noise of multiple conversations. Plans were made and actions decided.
Tauno’s unhappiness at being separated from Moon Man became apparent. He asked
why we wanted him. I explained about needing a good scout. “What about Marrok?” he
asked. “We need him just in
case they’ve moved the captives. He can track them to the new location.” Also I
wanted to talk to Marrok and find out why he had accused Leif and me of helping
Ferde escape. The next morning, my
group saddled the horses. Since we wouldn’t be crossing the Avibian Plains,
Valek rode Onyx, Tauno sat on Garnet and Marrok rode Topaz. Valek had used his
skills to transform us into members of the Krystal Clan. We wore the light gray
tunics and dark woolen leggings that the clan preferred, which matched the
short hooded capes and black knee-high boots. Before we left, Leif
handed me a bunch of his herbs. “Since you can’t use your magic, you might want
to have them. There are directions on how to use each one inside the packet.” “Leif, I’m—” “I know. Truthfully, I
didn’t like the distrustful and mean person you became in Ixia. The fire
brought my real sister back. So be careful, as I’d like to keep her around for
a while.” “You take care, too.
Don’t get caught. I wouldn’t want to tell Mother about it. She wouldn’t be
pleased.” Leif looked at Ari and
Janco. They fought over who would drive the wagon and who would guard. “Do they
always argue?” I laughed. “It’s part of
their appeal.” Leif sighed. “I’m amazed
we made it to Sitia without being discovered.” He paused and considered. “I
think I’m actually going to miss them.” “I always do.” We set a time and place
for everyone to rendezvous, knowing the cottage would no longer be safe. I said
goodbye to Leif and the others and we headed west, hoping to reach the Krystal
Clan’s border by nightfall. We would follow the border south to the Stormdance
lands. Then cross through Stormdance and Bloodgood before reaching Jewelrose’s
border. Should anyone stop us on
the road, we concocted a cover story. We were delivering samples of quartz to
the Jewelrose Clan. Irys’s clan cut and polished gems and stones of all types.
They designed and produced almost all the jewelry in Sitia. Disguised as a man, I
used the name Ellion, and asked everyone to call me by that name. The day turned warm in
the bright sunshine and we set a quick pace. Valek hoped the temperate weather
would draw people onto the roads. “Why?” Tauno asked. “Then we will be one of
many instead of the only ones,” Valek explained. They rode together and talked
about how best to find the barn that held the Councilors’ family members. Kiki stayed beside
Topaz. She had missed his company and I wondered if Cahil mourned the loss of
his horse. They had been together since Cahil was young. My eyes rested on
Garnet. I cringed when I imagined facing the Stable Master’s wrath. Garnet had
been with us so long and I had lost the Avibian honey I had bought to appease
the Stable Master. He would make me clean tack and scrub stalls for weeks. I
snorted with amusement. I had found one positive thing about spending eternity
with the Fire Warper: no mucking out. And no bat. My new
friend hung from the edge of my hood. His weight rested comfortably in the
small of my back. He seemed content to sleep away the daylight hours with me. Marrok remained quiet
throughout the day, but I wanted to know what had happened to him at the
Citadel. “Cahil tricked me,” he
said when I asked. “I fell for his lies about remaining with Ferde to discover
the extent of the Daviians’ operations. Applauded his plan to lure Ferde back
to the Citadel. Commiserated over your ill-timed interference. He convinced me
to confess and name you and Leif as accomplices. It would help him persuade the
Council to attack Ixia. He promised…” Marrok paused, rubbing a hand along his
right cheek. “After I confessed, he turned on me. A mistake I paid for…” He
shuddered. “Am still paying for.” “Betrayals are brutal,”
I agreed. Marrok looked at me in
surprise. “Don’t you think leaving us in Ixia was a betrayal?” “No. That wasn’t my
intention. I wanted to protect you and was honest with all of you from the
start. I just wasn’t honest with myself. A mistake.” “You’re still paying
for?” Marrok smiled. The gesture smoothed out the lines of worry and time on
his rugged face, erasing years from his age. “Yes. It’s the problem
with mistakes, they tend to linger. But once we’re done with the Vermin and
Cahil, I will have paid for all my mistakes. In full.” Marrok gave me a
questioning glance, but I didn’t want to elaborate. Instead, I asked, “Do you
remember your rescue from the Citadel?” He grinned ruefully.
“Sorry, no. At the time, I was in no condition to think. Moon Man is a wonder.
I owe him my life.” He glanced around then lowered his voice. “Being here
without him, I feel…fragile. And that’s hard for an old soldier to admit.” We rode the rest of the
way in silence. Around midnight we set up camp. Funny how we automatically
attended to the chores without discussion. Tauno hunted for rabbits and I cared
for the horses. Valek searched for firewood and Marrok prepared the meal. “I’m used to soldiers’
rations on the road, so don’t expect this to taste like Leif’s,” Marrok said as
he dished out his version of rabbit stew. The stew tasted a little
bland but filled our stomachs. After dinner, we arranged our sleeping mats and
set a watch schedule. I shared a blanket with Valek, wanting to be near him. I
clutched him tight. “What’s the matter,
love,” he whispered in my ear. “You’re rarely this quiet.” “Just worried about the
Councilors’ families.” “I think we have things
well in hand. Between my sleeping potion for the guards, your Curare for the
Warpers and the element of surprise, we should rescue them in no time.” “But what if one of the
captives is sick? Or dying? If I use my magic, I risk letting the Vermin know
where I am and what I’ve been doing.” “Then you’ll have to
decide what is more important—one person’s life or the success of the mission
for Sitia’s future. It’s pointless to worry. Instead, use your energy to decide
how you would react to each contingency you can imagine. It’s more prudent to
prepare for all possibilities than fret.” He was right.
Eventually, I slept. Shadows haunted my
sleep. They roamed the shadow world, lost and afraid. Whenever the bright heat
would appear, they hid and waited for the hot hunter to dissipate. Each time,
the hunter captured more of them in his net of fire. They didn’t understand why
he came and they knew nothing about the bridge to the sky. They clung to this
world, desiring revenge and justice. The shadows needed a guide to convince
them to let go and to show them the way. “Ellion…Ellion…Yelena!
Wake up.” I pushed the arm away,
wanting to roll over. “Tired,” I mumbled. “Yes, we all are. But
it’s your turn,” Valek said. I blinked. My eyelids
would not stay open. “There’s a pot of tea on
the fire.” When I failed to move, Valek pushed me off the mat and curled in my
place under the covers. “Ahh. Still warm.” “You’re evil,” I said,
but he feigned sleep. We had been on the road
for the past four days, riding every minute we could to turn a seven-day
journey into five days. And since Tauno had left before dinner to scout the
area ahead, we had one less to guard the camp. My bat swooped over the
rising heat of the fire. He’d been staying with me during the day and hunting
food at night. I longed to fly with him, soaring over the ground. Tauno returned the next
morning to report no signs of activity along our path to the Jewelrose border.
“There is a good site to camp about two miles south of the border,” he said. “I
will join you there.” He left. I wondered what had kept
him awake. Unlike Tauno, I had had a few hours’ sleep last night. Perhaps I
shouldn’t complain anymore. We packed and followed
Tauno’s trail. Another uneventful day and we found the camp location without
any problems. Tauno reappeared with dinner hanging from his belt. “I discovered the
location of the barn,” he said, while butchering the rabbits. “It is four miles
west of here in a little hollow.” Valek quizzed him for
the details. “We’ll have to strike in the dark,” he said. “We’ll go after
midnight, leave the horses in the trees and then attack.” Tauno agreed. He cubed
the meat and dropped it into the pot. “I will sleep, then.” While Marrok stirred the
stew, Valek prepped the reed pipes and I saddled the horses. Garnet sighed when
I cinched his straps tight. “It’s not far,” I said
aloud. “Then you can rest.” I joined Marrok and
Valek where they sat by the fire. They ate their stew and I filled a bowl for
me. The broth tasted better; there was a hint of spice. “This is good,” I said
to Marrok. “I think you’re getting the hang of it. What did you add?” “A new ingredient. Can
you tell what it is?” When I sampled another
spoonful, I rolled the liquid around my mouth before swallowing. The aftertaste
reminded me of Rand’s favorite cookie recipe. “Ginger?” Valek dropped his stew.
He jumped to his feet but stumbled. A look of horror creased his forehead.
“Butter root!” “Poison?” “No.” He sank to his
knees. “Sleeping draft.” 29VALEK COLLAPSED ONTO the
ground. But just before he closed his eyes, he winked at me. I glanced around.
Marrok hunched over his bowl, appearing to be asleep. A bone-deep fatigue
spread throughout my body, but I remained awake. Perhaps I hadn’t swallowed
enough butter root. Not wanting to be caught
“aware,” I pulled my switchblade and hid the weapon in the palm of my hand with
my thumb resting on the button. Slumping over, I let my upper body fall to the
side. The stew spilled off my lap and onto the ground, soaking into my pants.
Great. I feigned sleep. My
muscles stiffened and the cold seeped into my skin. Trying not to shiver, I
strained to hear any noise to give me a hint of what was going on. The horses whinnied in
alarm and I opened my mind to Kiki for the first time in days, hoping the tiny
use of my magic wouldn’t alert anyone. Bad smell, she said.
Quiet Man tied reins. Quiet Man? She huffed and showed me
an image of Tauno. Why would he do that? Ask Garnet. Where did you go today,
Garnet? I asked. See people. Smell fear. I cut off the connection
when voices approached. “So easy! All the talk
about the Soulfinder and the Ghost Warrior and look at them! Sleeping like babies,”
a male voice said. “Trust is a powerful
ally. Right, Tauno?” a female voice asked. She had the same lilt as a Sandseed. Was Tauno in league with
them? Or had they captured him today and forced him to help them? “Yes. And trust is
blind. No one suspected me even after the ambush in the plains.” He laughed.
“Trust is for stupid people. Even the Sandseed Elders had no idea. My ability
to find the Daviian camps amazed them.” They chuckled, enjoying
themselves. Anger seethed in my blood. Tauno could trust I would make him
regret his actions. As they decided what to
do, I counted four distinct voices. Two men and one woman plus the traitor
Tauno. They planned to use Marrok to appease the Council, and bring me to their
leader, Jal. “Kill the Ghost Warrior,”
one of the Vermin ordered. “Make sure you cut his throat and collect his blood.
It will be just revenge for Alea and her brother.” I waited. Arms wrapped
around my chest and another set around my ankles. They lifted me off the
ground. “Now!” Valek yelled. I triggered my
switchblade and yanked my knees toward my chest, pulling the surprised Vermin
holding my feet into my knife. Hot blood gushed onto my hands. I wrenched the
blade out of his stomach before the other Vermin dropped me onto the ground. I
scrambled to my feet as he pulled his scimitar. Switchblade against
scimitar. Bad odds. And I had used the Curare on my weapon on the first man.
This wouldn’t be a long fight. I glanced at Valek. He fought Tauno and the
woman. His sword against their spears. Better odds. I hoped I could last long
enough for Valek to help me. “Drop your weapon,” the
Vermin ordered me. When I didn’t obey, the
man swung and I dodged to the side. He lunged. I backed away. He swiped at my
neck. I ducked. He hacked and I danced. Winded with the effort,
the Vermin said, “You will not be harmed if you surrender.” After another attack, I
realized what he was doing. “You’re not allowed to kill me,” I said. “Jal wants
me alive so he can feed me to his pet Fire Warper!” My smugness infuriated
him. He increased the pace of his swings. Bad decision. “I can still hurt you.
Bleed you. Torture you.” His blade sliced through
my cape. I stepped back as blood welled from the slash along my arm. Really bad
decision. He advanced. I retreated. His scimitar found more open areas and soon
my arms and legs were crisscrossed with bleeding cuts. I felt light-headed and
my feet moved with an unusual slowness. My energy drained at an alarming rate. My bat appeared. He flew
at the Vermin, diving and pulling his hair. The Vermin flailed his arms, giving
me an opening, but my switchblade felt so heavy and my body reacted too slowly.
The Vermin must be a strong Warper. He had weakened my mental defenses without
my notice. The Warper stared at the
bat and the poor creature crashed to the ground. “Is that all you have?”
he asked. “What about your great soul magic? I think the Fire Warper will be
disappointed.” He shrugged. “Orders are orders.” He swung his weapon. My
arms moved, but couldn’t block the hilt of his scimitar from striking my
temple. My vision blurred as I
crumpled to the ground. The world spun. I rolled away from the Warper. When I
reached Kiki’s hooves, I let the blackness claim me. A hammer pounded on the
side of my skull. Wake up, it pounded. Open your eyes. More hammering. I
refused. The next time, a dull throb intruded on my oblivion. Come on, it
pulsed. Open your eyes. Please. I woke, feeling like a
cutting board. My arms and legs burned with pain and my head hurt. Valek
hunched over me, pouring water on my cuts, inflaming them. “Ow! Stop that,” I said. “Finally,” he said. But
he didn’t stop. He dabbed at them, cleaning the lacerations, and sat back on
his heels. “That’ll have to do for now. Come on. We need to go.” When I failed to move,
he pulled me into a sitting position. A wave of nausea swelled. “Here.” He thrust red
leaves into my hands. “I found them in your saddlebags. The note said to eat
them for head pain.” I chewed one. My stomach
settled, but my sight remained blurry. I peered into the semidarkness, assuming
the fuzzy white blob in the sky meant the moon had risen. Had I slept all day?
Valek’s words finally sank in. “Go where?” I asked. Valek yanked me to my
feet. “We need to find the barn.” My thoughts still moved
as if coated with sap. “Barn?” Valek shook the rest of
the canteen’s water onto my shorn head. A jolt went through me when the cold
breeze hit my wet skull. “When the Vermin don’t
come back with us, the others will know something has happened and will either
kill their hostages or move to another location.” Valek ennunciated each word
as if speaking to a simpleton. “Here.” He handed me a set of clothes. “Hurry.” I changed. The carnage
around our campsite made me sick and I sucked on another red leaf. Valek had
killed the woman and Tauno. Traitor! Marrok remained where he had fallen
asleep. And the Warper lay on his side. His head looked misshapen, as if kicked
by a horse. Kiki? I asked. Bad man. No one hurt
Lavender Lady. Thanks. Peppermints? When we’re done. And
apples, too! I wore my coral-colored
shirt and matching skirt/pants. They reflected the moonlight. No hope for me to
blend in. Valek dressed in the Warper’s clothes and he applied makeup to match
the Warper’s skin tone. Fear twirled up my spine as I figured out what he
planned. At least, I wasn’t going to be bait for a necklace snake. This time. We untied the other
horses. The smell of blood made them skittish, and they were happy to leave
despite being tired. Valek and I rode Kiki and Onyx while leading the others.
We traveled the four miles to the barn in silence. Approaching the edge of the
woods with care, I strained to see a sign of the Vermin hideout. An eerie red
glow shimmered above Diamond Lake. The small structure looked deserted, but
after a moment, the figures guarding the doors became visible. “Which horse?” I asked. “Onyx. Kiki is too
well-known.” I dismounted and told
the horses to stay in the woods until I called. “Take off your cape,”
Valek said. “Lie in front of me.” He took his foot from the stirrup. I pulled myself up and
lay across the saddle. He handed me my switchblade. The weapon had been cleaned
and the blade was retracted. “It’s been primed with
Curare.” Valek grabbed the reins with his left hand and held a scimitar in his
right. “Pretend to be unconscious,”
he ordered as he clicked at Onyx. We entered the open
area, hopefully appearing as the Warper coming back with his prize. Feigning to be a dead
weight, I bounced on Onyx’s saddle. The motion made me nauseous. A whoop of joy
cut through the air as we neared. I prepared for Valek’s signal. “Where are the others?”
a male voice asked. “They’re coming,” Valek
said in a rough tone. “Finally! We have her!”
another man said as he tugged my legs. “Help me.” Valek slid off on the
opposite side of the saddle, keeping Onyx between him and the Vermin. Another person joined in
pulling me off. “We’ll keep her asleep until she reaches Jal. Get the wagon,
you’ll leave tonight,” the man ordered. He cradled me in his arms. “Where is Jal?” Valek
asked. The man froze and I
risked a peek. The tip of Valek’s scimitar touched the Vermin’s neck. Although
armed with his own scimitar and a spear strapped to his back, the Vermin’s
hands held me. “At the Magician’s Keep.
Go ahead and find Jal. Just make sure to take her with you.” The man tossed me
at Valek and yelled for help. At that close distance,
even Valek couldn’t dodge out of the way. I hit him in the chest. We tumbled to
the ground, but I kept going until I cleared his body. Jumping to my feet, I
spun in time to see Valek rolling away to avoid being sliced by the Vermin’s
blade. Four more Vermin with
weapons drawn ran toward us. I triggered my
switchblade and threw it at the Vermin attacking Valek. He grunted when the
blade nicked his shoulder, but he didn’t stop. However, the Curare on my blade
spread throughout his body and paralyzed his muscles. I grabbed the man’s
spear. Valek regained his feet and his weapon. A mere second later, the
others reached us. Events blurred into one
long fight. I used the spear’s length to my advantage, keeping the scimitars
from reaching me. After a fake to the midsection, I swept my opponent’s feet
out from under him. I didn’t hesitate to plunge the tip of the spear into his
neck. His soul rose from his body and hovered above it. Should I help his soul? Before I could decide,
another man approached. But he stopped and I felt strands of magic tug at my
spear. A Warper who could move objects. The spear flew from my grasp, turned
and pointed straight at me. “Jal wants me alive.” I
reminded him. He advanced. “Why not
use your power to stop me? Afraid the Fire Warper will tell Jal what you’re
doing?” “Give the man a prize.
Your intellect is truly amazing.” The spear’s tip came
closer and poked me in the hollow of my throat. “Surrender or I’ll skewer her,”
the Warper called to Valek. Valek disengaged, his
gaze questioning. “He won’t do it,” I said
to Valek. “You are right. How
about surrender or I will set the barn on fire?” The Warper pointed to the
building. “Do you want to be responsible for the deaths of ten children?” 30“NO! DON’T,” I YELLED.
“Let the children go and I’ll come with you.” “I know you will,” the
Warper said. “I am more concerned about the Ghost Warrior.” He looked at Valek.
“Put your weapon down.” Valek placed his
scimitar on the ground, but as he straightened, he flicked his hand twice. A
small dart pricked the Warper’s neck. The man jerked in surprise. “Move,” Valek ordered. I twisted, avoiding the
spear’s thrust, but I wasn’t fast enough to stop the sharp edge from cutting a
gash across my neck. A line of stinging pain registered in my mind. It was
forgotten as soon as I saw the Warper turn. Fire erupted under the barn’s door.
He collapsed beside his colleague, finally overcome by Valek’s sleeping potion. Smoke reached my nose,
igniting memories of dread and fear. “Valek, go!” I waved him
on and whistled for the horses. They came and I raced
toward the barn. Kiki help! I said. Valek had gotten the
burning door opened, but flames crept toward the roof. Topaz and Onyx shied away
from the acrid smoke, but Kiki and Garnet braved the heat. “Tell them to move to
the left side,” I yelled to Valek over the roar. He sprinted through the
opening and I led Kiki and Garnet to the right side. I waited for two horrible
seconds then banged on the barn’s wall. Kiki. Garnet. Kick. I
dived to the side. The animals aimed their back hooves and punched a hole in
the wall with their powerful legs. When the opening was big
enough for the adults, I stopped the horses. Pulling a few splintered boards
clear, I looked inside and called to the captives. Even with the bright
firelight, the room was obscured by smoke. But a person grabbed my hand. I
pulled coughing children through the hole, counting them as they came out. The smoke thickened and
the inferno advanced. When Councilor
Greenblade’s husband crawled out with a small child clinging to his back and a
baby clutched to his chest, my count totaled ten children and one adult. “Where’s Gale?” I asked. Hacking with the effort
to expel the smoke from his lungs, he pointed through the opening. “Collapsed.”
He wheezed for air. “Couldn’t take…them all.” I moved to go in, but he
pulled me back. “Roof.” He coughed. We shooed the children
away from the barn mere moments before the roof buckled with a shower of sparks
and an explosion of sound. I counted children
again. Ten. One adult. No Gale. No Valek. He was still in the barn! Horror and anguish
twisted around my throat and shredded my heart. I bolted toward the blazing
building. The heat rolled off the structure, pushing me back. Roof beams had
fallen on top of the Vermin. The flames lapped at their bodies and sucked their
souls into the inferno. A porthole into the fire
world opened in front of me. I could have grabbed one of the Vermin’s souls and
returned to the Fire Warper. But I wasn’t ready. I had a few more things to
accomplish and a few goodbyes to make before I embraced the fire. Then I would crave the
fire. Living in this world without Valek held no appeal for me. The blaze raged all
night. By morning it settled into a large smoldering heap. Still too hot for me
to search among the ruins for some sign of Valek or Gale. Instead, I led the
children over to Diamond Lake to get cleaned up and tried to ignore the grief
burning inside me. Councilor Greenblade’s
husband, Kell, helped feed the children and tend their wounds. Kiki and Garnet
drank from the lake, and I washed the soot from their coats. The water was
clear. The red color came from the bottom of the lake as if someone had painted
the rocks and gravel. Perhaps they had. After all, it was a man-made lake. When everyone’s needs
were met, we headed back to the campsite. We found Marrok engaged in the grim
task of burying bodies. “Guess I slept through
the battle,” he said. “Did we win?” He inclined his head to Tauno. “Or lose?” “Both,” I said. My
anguish over Valek threatened to push from my throat. I bit down hard on my
lip, tasting blood. “Care to explain?” I filled him in on what
had happened. He accepted Tauno’s betrayal with a cynical snort and a wry twist
of the lips that reflected his black thoughts about trust. After I finished, he
said, “At least your little friend is all right.” “Friend?” He pointed to a nearby
tree. “I thought he was dead, but when I went to pick him up he flew off.
Scared the heck out of me.” I went over. My bat hung
upside down on a low branch. The creature opened an eye halfway then closed it
again, contented. Somehow I had created an emotional link with the bat that was
similar to my link with Kiki. Contemplation about my
affinity for animals would have to wait, though. More pressing matters needed
to be addressed—finding Valek’s body, for one. But I said, “We have to find a
safe place for the Councilors’ family members.” Bavol Zaltana’s
daughter, Jenniqilla, pulled at my cape. “I want to go home,” she said.
Although happy to be free, sadness touched her eyes and weariness lined her
young face. I crouched down next to
her. “I know, but I need you to pretend you’re still a hostage for just a
little while longer. It’s really important. Can you help us out?” Determination filled her
eyes, reminding me of Fisk. I assigned all the older children small jobs, and
they moved about with a renewed sense of purpose. “What about me?” Kell
Greenblade asked. The Greenblade lands
were east of Bloodgood’s. “Do you know anyplace where we can hide all of you?” He gazed off into the
distance. Tall and wiry, he resembled my friend, Dax, another member of his
clan. I hoped Dax and Gelsi were all right, and the thought of them being the
next victims of the Kirakawa ritual made me restless to get moving. Kell sensed my mood. His
attention focused on me. “My sister has a farm outside of Booruby that could
hold all of us.” “In the Cowan Clan’s
lands?” “Yes.” He tsked. “She
married a flatlander, but he’s a good man and will help us.” I looked at the ragtag
group of children. Booruby was farther east than I had wanted to travel and it
would be a slow trip. Kiki nickered at me. Get
wagon, she said. The wagon was burned in
the fire. I felt her huff of
impatience. Horses run off. Take wagon. Where are they? Stuck. Come. Kiki
flicked her tail. Marrok came with me. We
mounted Kiki and she went southwest through a small wood. What about Onyx and
Topaz? I asked her. I felt her sorrow. Can’t
smell. We reached the wagon.
When the fire had erupted, the panicked horses had bolted through the woods
until the cart wedged between two trees. The animals had calmed, but their
raised heads and alert ears meant they felt unsafe. The wagon had been
filled with empty coffin-shaped crates, but we found a toolbox underneath the
floor. Getting the wagon free was difficult and time-consuming. While fixing the broken
wheel, Marrok lost his patience and shooed me away. “You’re rushing and making
it worse. Go take a walk, Yelena. This is a one-person job anyway.” When I hesitated, he
added, “Go look for him or you won’t find peace. And we won’t either.” Being busy had been
good. Walking through the quiet forest, there was nothing to distract me from
my flaming thoughts. No respite from the wrenching pain deep inside me. It felt
as if I had swallowed a red-hot coal. The barn’s ashy remains
drifted in the air. Only a few beams at the edge of the structure retained
their shape. Everything else had been reduced to gray and white cinders. Smoke
curled from a few hot spots, but otherwise a pine-scented breeze blew the acrid
fumes away. The crunch of my boots
on the residue echoed a lonely and final sound in my ears. All hope disappeared
when I found Valek’s knives. Blackened and misshapen, the blades were
half-melted. I collapsed to my hands and knees and sobbed, turning the ash
under me into slurry. Gasping, ribs aching and throat raw, I tried to expel the
smoldering sadness within, only stopping when all moisture was gone from my
body. I sat back on my heels and wiped my face, smearing soot and tears. Once my breathing
returned to normal, I scooped up a handful of the ash near Valek’s weapons and
let the wind scatter them. Soon, love. I’ll join you soon. The knowledge of our
reunion in the other world was my only comfort. Eventually I returned to
Marrok. He had fixed the wheel. After looking at my face, he squeezed my
shoulder. I had washed off the dirt, but I knew my eyes were red and puffy from
crying. Marrok steered the
wagon, but finding a road around the wood used up our remaining daylight. By the time we returned
to the camp, Kell had settled the children next to the fire. I wanted to wake
everyone and get moving, but Kell convinced me the children would be upset by
being roused and hidden in those crates at night. After recalling my own
horrible experience with the boxes, I agreed. If Valek hadn’t shot the
Warper, I would have been shoved inside one of those crates. The Councilors’
families would still be hostages, but Valek and Gale would still be alive. I stared at the sleeping
children. Jenniqilla had a protective arm over Leevi and the baby curled next
to him, sucking on his thumb even while asleep. In that state, they embodied
innocence and peace and joy and love. Valek had known the risk when he went
into the barn and he hadn’t hesitated. I would have done the same. Eleven
living beings for one unselfish act. Pretty good odds. Even with the wagon, the
trip to Booruby lasted four days. Four days of worry, frustration, hunger,
sleepless nights and noise. By the time we arrived, I had a new appreciation
for parents, and was as glad to see Kell’s sister as she was to see us. She
wrapped Kell in a tight embrace for many heartbeats. I bit my lip and turned
away. My empty arms ached. Located about two miles
south of Booruby, the farmstead appeared to be isolated from its neighbors, but
her husband was quick to usher us inside. The children were fed their first hot
meal in weeks. Marrok and I made plans to return to the rendezvous location to
join the others. I kept my mind focused on action; otherwise, I knew I would
surrender to the grief consuming me from the inside out. We would risk crossing
through the western edge of the Avibian Plains. Garnet and Kiki’s gust-of-wind
gait would make up for the time lost traveling to Booruby. Before leaving, Kell
asked me, “How will I know when it’s safe for the children to return home?” I considered. “If
everything works out, you will receive a message.” “And if it doesn’t work
out?” Emotion choked his words,
reminding me that his wife was one of the Councilors. If I failed, she would be
among the first of many casualties. “If you don’t hear
anything after fourteen days, that means the Daviians are in charge. Send the
children to their homes and hope.” “Hope for what?” “Hope a person in the
future will be strong enough to rebel against the Daviian Vermin. And win.” Kell looked doubtful.
“We have four Master Magicians and a Soulfinder, yet they still managed to take
control.” “It has happened before.
One person can bring peace to Sitia.” I didn’t add that the
man had leveled the Daviian Mountains in the process. But it did lead me to
wonder if the Sandseeds’ legendary warrior had had help. My mind reviewed Moon
Man’s story about the origins of the Sandseed Clan and I remembered the
warrior’s name was Guyan. Guyan had imprisoned the Fire Warper, and his
descendant, Gede, had freed him. A complete circle. Marrok and I said
goodbye to Kell and the children. We traveled northwest, planning to skirt
Booruby on our way to the plains. My little bat hung from Kiki’s mane and
didn’t appear to be bothered by the jostling motion. Our plans changed when I
spotted Opal’s family’s glass factory in the distance and I had a sudden idea. Before I could fully
explore my intentions, we stopped outside their gate. Marrok accepted our
detour without concern. “Should I wait here?” he
asked. “Yes. I won’t be long.”
I left Kiki with him. As I approached the door
to their house, Opal came out of the factory. She hesitated, but drew nearer,
eyeing Marrok and me with suspicion. “Can I help you, sir?”
she asked me. I had forgotten all
about my hair. At least I knew my disguise worked. I smiled for the first time
in days. She squinted at me.
“Yelena?” Then she glanced around in concern. “Come inside! There’s a price on
your head!” She ushered me into the house. “Thank goodness you’re
okay.” Opal squeezed me in a quick hug. “What happened to your hair?” “It’s a long long story.
Is your family around?” “No. They went into
town. Father received a shipment of sand that was full of rocks so he went to
complain and Mother—” “Opal, I need more of
your glass animals.” “Really? Did you sell
the bat?” “No. However, I
discovered I can use your animals to communicate with other magicians far away
without using my own magic. I’d like to buy as many as I can.” “Wow! I never knew.” “How many do you have?” “Six. They’re in the
factory.” She set a quick pace as
we crossed the yard and entered the factory. The heat from the kilns sucked all
the moisture from my mouth. I followed her through the thick air and roar of
the fires. Lined up on a table by the back wall were half a dozen glass
animals. They all glowed with an inner fire. Opal wrapped the animals
and I counted out coins. Another idea flashed in my mind when she handed me the
package. “Can you show me how you
make these?” I asked. “It takes a lot of
practice to learn.” I shook my head. “I just
want to watch you make one.” She agreed. Picking up a
five-foot-long hollow steel pipe, she opened the small door to the kiln. Bright
orange light and intense heat emanated from the doorway, but, undaunted, she
dipped the end of the pipe into a large ceramic pot inside the kiln that was
filled with molten glass. Turning the pipe, she gathered a taffylike slug and
pulled it out, closing the door with her hip. The slug pulsed with a red-hot
light as if alive. “You have to keep the
blowpipe spinning or the glass will sag,” Opal said over the noise. She rolled
the slug over a metal table to move the glass off the end of the pipe and
shaped it so the pipe looked as if it had a clear ball attached to its end. Her motions quick, Opal
then rested the pipe on the edge of the table and blew into the other end.
Magic brushed my arm as her cheeks puffed. The glass on the opposite end didn’t
inflate with air. Instead, a thread of magic was trapped within its core. “It’s supposed to
expand, but mine never does,” she said as she went back to the kiln and
gathered another slug overtop the first. She took the pipe to a bench designed
to hold it and other metal tools needed to shape the glass. Buckets of water
sat within easy reach. Opal grabbed a pair of
steel tweezers and pinched and squeezed the slug with her right hand while
rolling the pipe with her left hand the whole time. “You have to move quickly
because it cools fast.” Within seconds the ball
transformed into a cat sitting on its back legs. She stood and put the cat back
into the kiln, but this time she just spun the pipe above the pot. “You have to
keep plenty of heat in the glass or you can’t work with it.” Sitting back on her
bench, Opal exchanged her tweezers for another set. These were bigger and as
long as her forearm. “Jacks, a great all-purpose tool. I’m putting in a jack
line so I can crack the piece off the pipe.” When the groove was to
her liking, she took the tweezers in hand again and dipped them into the bucket
of water. She dribbled a few drops into the jack line. “You have to be careful
not to get water onto your piece. So you move from the pipe down.” The glass
hissed and a spiderweb of cracks spread over the glass on the pipe. She carried the pipe to
another oven close to the kilns. Shelves of trays had been stacked inside and
Opal banged the end of the tweezers on her pipe. The cat fell onto the tray.
She closed the door. “If the glass cools too
fast, it’ll crack. This is an annealing oven.” Opal pointed to the tracks
underneath the oven. “To slowly cool the piece, the oven is pulled away from
the kiln over the next twelve hours.” “Why do you blow into
the pipe if the glass doesn’t expand for you?” I asked. “It’s a step I have to
do.” She made a vague motion with her arms as if casting about for the right
words. “When Mara does it, she makes beautiful vases and bottles. Mine always
ends up looking like an animal and if I don’t blow into the pipe it doesn’t
look like anything at all.” She cleaned up her work
area, taking the tools from the water and drying them before replacing them.
The bench needed to be ready for the next project, and working with glass
didn’t give you time to search for tools. “I love creating things.
There’s nothing like it,” she said, more to herself than to me. “Working the
glass. Turning fire into ice.” I thanked Opal for her
demonstration and rejoined Marrok. He leaned against Garnet. “I think your definition
of ‘won’t be long’ doesn’t match mine,” he said by way of a greeting. “Did you
encounter another change in plans?” “Yes. You might as well
get used to them.” “Yes, sir!” He grinned. “Sarcasm? You’ve been
hanging around with Leif too long. What happened to the tough old soldier who
mindlessly follows orders?” His demeanor sobered.
“He lost his mind. And when he found it again, his priorities had all been
rearranged.” “For the better?” “Only time will tell.” We mounted and headed to
the western edge of the Avibian Plains. Once in the plains, Kiki and Garnet
broke into their gust-of-wind gaits and flowed over many miles. We camped
outside the plains at night. I hoped our passage wouldn’t attract any unwanted
attention. My thoughts lingered on Opal’s glassmaking skills. Better than
giving in to the deep despair that threatened to overwhelm me whenever I
thought of Valek. Our journey to the
rendezvous location lasted three days. During that time, Marrok had spotted
signs of a large army that had crossed from the Avibian Plains and turned north
toward the Citadel. At night, the glow of many fires lit the distant sky and
wood smoke tainted the air. We had agreed to meet
Moon Man and the others in Owl’s Hill, a small town within the Featherstone
lands. According to Leif, the Cloverleaf Inn’s owner could be trusted not to
report us. “He owes me one,” had been Leif’s explanation. Owl’s Hill was located
on a small rise about three miles northeast of the Citadel. The four towers of
the Magician’s Keep were visible from the road into town. A bright orange
radiance shone from within the Keep’s walls. The Fire Warper’s home fire? Still disguised as
Krystal Clan traders, Marrok and I entered the town. Situated near the main
crossroads, the Cloverleaf Inn’s common room bustled with activity, but the
stable was only half full. The stable lad suggested we arrive early for dinner
as the inn was a popular stop for caravans. “One less night of road
rations,” the boy said as he helped me rub down Kiki. “And the merchants prefer
camping near here instead of overnighting in the Citadel.” “Why is that?” I asked. “The rumors have been
wild, so I don’t know what to believe. But the merchants who do come back say
everyone is afraid of these new Daviians and they say the Daviians have
convinced the Council to prepare for a war.” “With Ixia?” “Don’t know. They’ve
drafted every able-bodied person. Benn said the Daviians are in league with
Ixia, and once a person’s drafted they hypnotize him. They plan to use them in
the army to turn Sitia into another Ixian Military District. MD-9!” The boy regaled me with
even wilder speculation. I knew the Commander wasn’t in league with the
Daviians, but the possibility of using the Sitian army against Sitia sounded
like a Vermin tactic. When we finished with
the horses, I entered the inn. Marrok had already paid for two rooms for the
night. “We’re running out of
money,” he said. “Are the others here?” I
asked. “Ari and Janco are in
the dining room. Leif and Moon Man haven’t arrived yet.” That worried me. It had
been thirteen days since we had left to rescue the hostages. Plenty of time for
them to discover anything about the Keep’s emergency tunnel. In the back corner of
the inn’s common room, Ari and Janco held court. Drinking from tankards of ale,
they were surrounded by a group of merchants. Serious expressions gripped all
their faces and they peered at us with suspicion. Marrok and I picked a
table on the far side of the room. Eventually, the knot of people disbanded and
Ari and Janco joined us. Ari had dyed his hair black and both of them had
darkened their skin. “Janco, do I see
freckles?” I asked, failing to suppress a snicker. “Don’t laugh. It’s this
southern sun. It’s the middle of the cold season and it’s sunny! Bah.” He
looked at me. “Although, I’d rather have freckles than be bald!” I put my hand to my
hair. “It’s growing.” “Enough,” Ari said, and
the mood around our table immediately dampened. “Were you successful?” The question stabbed
into me as if his words were flaming daggers. I struggled to collect my
thoughts; to shoo my emotions away from the black, burning grief that refused
to die down. Marrok saw my inability to answer and he told them about Tauno,
the rescue and about Valek. To see my pain and shock reflected in my friends’ eyes
became unbearable. I excused myself and went outside. Taking deep breaths of
the cool night air, I wandered through the town. A few people walked along the
dirt streets, carrying lanterns. I felt a tug on my cape as my bat landed on my
arm. He stared at me with a sense of purpose in his eyes then flew off to the
left. He returned, swooping around my head and again flew to the left. Getting
the hint, I followed him until we reached a dilapidated building. The bat settled on the
roof as if waiting. I pulled the warped door open with trepidation, but the
interior held a collection of discarded barrels and broken wagon wheels. When I
turned to leave, I stepped on a wooden ball. A child’s toy. I picked it up and
examined it. My bat wanted me to find or see something in here. I squashed my growing
frustration and concentrated on using my other senses. Closing my eyes, I
inhaled. The musty smell of decay dominated, but I detected a faint whiff of
lemons. I followed the clean and pure scent—not easy as I tripped and banged my
shins on the clutter—until I stood in the back corner. There a tingle danced on
my skin, raising the hair on my arms. Instinctively I whispered, “Reveal
yourself,” and opened my eyes. Gray light bloomed
before me and transformed into a young boy. He sat on one of the barrels. A ghost. A lost soul. “Where is my mother?” he
asked with a thin, tentative voice. “She was sick, too. She went away and never
came back even when I cried for her.” I moved closer to the
boy. The light from him illuminated the room. The rusted remains of a bed frame
and other items indicated the area had been used as the child’s bedroom long
ago. My bat fluttered in and
circled above the boy’s head. I waved it away and muttered, “Yes, yes, I know.
I get it.” With a squeal sounding
like an exasperated finally, he flew out. I asked the child
questions about his mother and family. Just as I suspected, they had lived and
died here many years ago. “I know where they are,”
I said. “I can take you to them.” The boy smiled. When I
held out my hand, he grabbed it. I gathered him to me, inhaling his soul before
sending it to the sky. The true job of a
Soulfinder. Not to save souls and
return them to their bodies, but to guide them to where they belonged. My true
purposed flared to life finally. Stono and Gelsi should have both been released
to the sky. Their personalities changed because they were unhappy at being
denied peace. Death was not the end.
And I knew Valek waited for me, but he wouldn’t want to see me until I finished
finding all the lost and misplaced souls and sent them to their proper
destinations. There hadn’t been a
Soulfinder in over a hundred and twenty-five years. Why wasn’t Sitia filled
with lost souls? Perhaps they were rare. Renewed determination to
find a way to defeat the Fire Warper spread throughout my body. I left the
building and stopped. Five souls hovered in different locations along the
street. The leathery flap of wings announced my bat’s arrival. He settled on my
shoulder. “Did you call them?” I
asked the bat. “Or did I?” I guess I should have been more specific when I
called to the boy. Either that, or now I’d learned a trick I couldn’t shut off. I gathered and released
souls as I headed back to the Cloverleaf Inn. Most went to the sky. One dripped
with hate and when he sank into the ground, I worried I might have increased
the Fire Warper’s powers. Before I could enter the
inn, the clatter of hooves sounded behind me. I spun in time to see Leif stop
Rusalka. His panic reached me before his words. “Moon Man,” he gasped.
“Moon Man’s been captured!” 31BACK IN THE INN’S common
room, the five of us sorted through all the details we had. Moon Man had been
captured that afternoon. “We found no references
to the tunnel in the Council Hall’s library,” Leif said. “We were meeting with
an old magician who was hiding from the Vermin. Another had told us he had
information on the construction of the Keep, but when we talked to the magician
he only had vague details. He knew how to create a null shield and he taught me
how to make one. I shouldn’t have tried it. The magic called the Warpers and we
were attacked as we left his house.” “How did you get away?”
Janco asked. Leif threw his hands up.
“One minute we’re surrounded by Vermins, the next a group of brawling merchants
and screaming children practically rolled over everyone. It was mass confusion.
A man grabbed my hand and pulled me out. I hid until dark. One of the children
from the Helping Guild told me Moon Man hadn’t escaped.” “The Vermin will know
we’re here,” Ari said. “We need to leave now. There’s a caravan camping about
two miles north of here. We can stay with them.” “Which way is the
caravan going?” I asked Ari. “They have a delivery in
the Citadel tomorrow, and then they’re going south to the Greenblade lands.
Why?” “Oh no!” Leif said.
“She’s got that look in her eyes. What are you scheming, little sister?” “We have to get inside
the Keep.” “Impossible. There’s a
bubble of protective magic around it. We couldn’t find the entrance to the
tunnel. A few Warpers have gained master-level power. You’re powerful, but
nowhere near their level. You’ll be caught in an instant.” Leif crossed his
arms as if his statement ended the discussion. “That’s a great idea,” I
said. “What? I ignored Leif’s
confusion. “Ari, how ready are the people in the Citadel to revolt?” “They’re organized, have
some weapons and a few magicians. What I would really like to do is run a few
training sessions, but that’s not going to happen. They’re as ready as they’re
going to get.” “Would the caravan be
willing to lend us one of their wagons?” I asked. “Something could be
arranged.” Comprehension dawned in
Janco’s face. “If we get you inside, can we keep the five golds?” “Only if you get us back
out again,” I said. “I don’t like the odds,”
Janco said. He brightened. “Gotta love the underdog, though.” “There are no odds. It’s
suicide,” Leif said. “Look at it this way,
Leif. It’ll put an end to our arguing,” I said. “How?” “We die, you’re right.
You don’t die, I’m right.” “I feel so much better
now.” Janco tsked. “Sarcasm is
detrimental to the team spirit.” Ari frowned at me.
“Don’t you mean, we don’t die, Yelena?” I didn’t answer. Valek
waited on the other side. My reward. We packed our supplies
and headed out. The merchants of the caravan agreed to include us in their
group and we spent most of the night preparing our wagon. When we finished with
the cart’s alterations, we stood around it, discussing the plan for the next
day. “Marrok, you’ll ride
Garnet. Janco can take Kiki, and Ari, you’ll drive the wagon. No matter what
happens, Ari, make sure we get to the Keep’s gate,” I ordered. “Yes, sir.” “What about me and you?”
Leif asked. I grimaced. “We’re the
cargo.” The last thing I wanted to do was get inside one of those crates again,
but there was no other way. “Ari is going to use me to get us inside. He’ll
demand his five golds for bringing me to the Vermin.” “I never thought I’d
miss my days as necklace snake bait,” Leif said. “What happens once we’re
inside?” Ari asked. “That will be the signal
for the Citadel’s citizens to riot, which should keep a bunch of the Vermin and
Warpers busy.” “But what about all
those powerful Warpers?” Leif asked. “Can you make a null
shield?” He hesitated. “Yes.” “When the riot starts,
all the magicians will come to the Keep’s gate and help you build and maintain
a null shield,” I said. “But it won’t last
long.” “I just need a little
time.” “Time for what?” “To get to the Fire
Warper.” Leif stared at me. “You
can fight him?” “No.” “Tell me again why this
isn’t a suicide mission.” “I think I can stop him
and keep him in the fire world. And in doing so, I think I might be able to
pull some of the Warpers’ powers from them. If Bain and Irys are still alive,
and if you round up as many magicians as you can, then you should be able to
counter the Warpers.” “That’s a lot of ‘ifs’
and ‘thinks,’” Janco said. “And there’s no ‘when,’”
Ari said. “When?” Leif asked. “When she returns.
There’s a when, isn’t there, Yelena?” Ari asked. “The only way to keep
him in the fire world is if I stay, too.” The words tasted like ash in my
mouth. Thinking about an event was completely different than stating it aloud.
Once said, it was final. But Valek would be there and I would find him. No
“if,” “think” or “when” about it. “There has to be another
way,” Leif said. “You always manage to produce ingenious plots.” “Not this time.” Everyone remained quiet. I was about to suggest
we all get a little sleep when Leif asked, “What if we can’t counter the
Warpers?” “Then you’d better have
a person who’s unaffected by magic on your side,” a voice said from beyond the
wagon. We all looked at one
another. The same question perched on everyone’s lips. A ghost voice? “Although this time I
would appreciate it if you didn’t leave me behind.” Valek stepped into view. He
appeared to be solid. His angular face held annoyed amusement. The faint
moonlight glinted off his bald head. He wore the brown tunic and pants of a
Bloodgood clansman. Disbelief followed
surprise; I reached out to touch him. He pulled me close and my world filled
with the sight, smell and feel of Valek. Seconds, minutes, days,
seasons could have passed and I wouldn’t have noticed or cared. I clung to him
as if my feet dangled over a precipice. His heart beat in my ear. His blood
flowed in my veins. I molded my body to his solid flesh, wanting to fuse with
him and let nothing—not even air—come between us. Relief and joy frolicked
in my heart, extinguishing the smoldering grief until I remembered my promise
to the Fire Warper. Blazing sadness ignited,
flooding my senses. My reward for babysitting the Fire Warper would have to
wait. Better to have him here. I gathered my resolve
and calmed myself. The others moved away, leaving Valek and me alone. His lips
found mine. Our souls twined. The gaping emptiness inside me filled. He pulled away,
breathless. “Easy, love.” His panting turned into a coughing fit. “How did you survive the
fire?” I asked. “The roof collapsed and you didn’t…” “Two things happened at
once. At least, I think they did.” He gave me an ironic smile. “I was carrying
Gale when the roof fell. The force of it sent us through the floor and into a
small root cellar.” Valek rubbed his ribs and grimaced. “You’re hurt and I can’t
heal you!” A nasty gash snaked along the side of his skull. “Just bruised.” He ran a
hand gently over his head. “A beam knocked me out and I would have probably
died from the smoke and heat, but Gale kept us in a pocket of cool air. She had
been hit by a piece of the barn’s wall when it shattered. But she came to and used
her magic. She conjured a cushion of air around us to keep the burning debris
from filling our hole.” “Why didn’t I see you
the next morning? Why didn’t you call out?” “The roof had tented
around us, and there was nothing you could do to help until the fire died.” His
hand went to his ribs again. “I didn’t have enough air to yell and Gale needed
all her strength to keep us alive.” “Why couldn’t she blow
the fire out? Or save the children?” “Her powers are limited.
It’s all part of her weather dancing thing.” He gestured past the wagon. “You
can ask her. I’ve brought her along.” When he saw my questioning look, he
added, “We’re going to need all the help we can get.” I looked on the other
side of the wagon. Gale held Onyx’s and Topaz’s reins. Kiki had already found
them and nuzzled Topaz. Garnet stood nearby. Gale’s unease about being
surrounded by horses was reflected in the queasy look on her face. “Did you learn anything
else?” I asked Valek. “Yes. Finding clothes
when you’re half naked is harder than you think. And scared horses can travel
pretty far in the wrong direction before you find them.” He studied the group
of horses. “Onyx and Topaz are fast, but there’s nothing like a Sandseed horse
when you’re in a hurry. And despite your detour to Booruby, love, I had a hard
time catching up.” “You could have found a
way to tell me you were all right. I’ve spent the last week in utter misery.” “Now you know how I felt
when you jumped into the stable fire. And you know how I’ll feel if you don’t
come back from fighting the Fire Warper.” I opened my mouth then
closed it. “You were eavesdropping.” “I had hoped to hear
everyone discussing how much they missed my altruistic qualities, my legendary
skills as a fighter and as a lover.” He leered. “Instead, you’re making plans
for tomorrow. Interesting how life goes on in spite of itself.” Valek sobered and stared
at me with a fiery intensity. “With all that planning, love, I’m sure you can
figure a way to return.” “I’m not smart enough.”
My frustration wrapped around my chest and squeezed until I wanted to scream
aloud. “I don’t know enough about magic! I don’t think anyone does. We’re all
just bumbling along, using it and abusing it.” “Do you truly believe
that?” “Yes. Although I’ll
admit to being a hypocrite. First sign of trouble and I fall back on using
magic.” My ability to guide souls hadn’t taxed my energy like using magic. I
didn’t draw from the power source. It was a natural effort just like inhaling
and exhaling. “When I think about magic, all I see is the harm it has done to
this world.” “Then you’re not looking
in the right places.” And this from someone
who was immune to magic’s effects. I’d seen firsthand the Kirakawa ritual, the
blood magic, the corruption of power, the Sandseed massacre and the tormented souls.
It had to stop. Valek studied my
expression. “Think about what you said to the Commander about magic.” “I tend to agree with
the Commander about how magic corrupts.” “Then why did you
mention to the Commander how magic could harness the power of a blizzard and
save his people instead of discussing the possibility of using power as a
weapon? If magic corrupts, then why hasn’t it corrupted you? Or Irys? Moon Man?
Leif?” “We haven’t let it
corrupt us.” “Right! You have the
choice.” “But it’s a very tempting
choice. Power is addictive. It’s only a matter of time.” “Oh yes. Sitia has been
battling Warpers for ages. Though you wouldn’t know it from all the peace and
prosperity hanging around.” Sarcasm dripped from Valek’s words. “Let’s see, how
long ago did the magicians use blood magic? I think Moon Man told me two
thousand years. Then you’re right! It’s only a matter of time. A matter of two
thousand years. I’ll take those odds any day.” “I never realized how
annoying you can be.” “You know I’m right.” “I could prove you
wrong. I can be corrupt.” It was my turn to leer. Valek looked over at
Janco and the others. They milled about a small fire, trying to appear
nonchalant, but I knew they listened to every word. “Not in front of the
children, love. But I’ll hold you to that.” The night disappeared in
a hurry. We finished prepping the wagon and updating our plans to include Valek
and Gale. The others had taken
Valek’s return in stride, although Janco made a comment about Valek’s lack of
hair. “You ever notice how couples start to look alike?” he asked. In a deadpan, Valek
replied, “Yes. In fact, I was just thinking how much you and Topaz resemble
each other. It’s uncanny.” Ari chuckled at Janco’s
chagrined expression before saying, “The caravan is leaving soon. What part of
the line do we want to be in?” “Near the back, but not
the last wagon,” Valek instructed. “When we’re out of sight of the gatehouse,
head to the Keep.” “Yes, sir.” Ari snapped
to attention. I stared at our small
group. Marrok eyed Valek with dislike, but he had assumed the posture of a
soldier waiting for orders. Leif chewed on his lip, a nervous habit. Gale’s
face was bleached with fear, but she set her mouth into a determined frown. She
told me her power was weak compared to a Stormdancer, but she could agitate the
wind and kick up enough dust to impair the Daviians’ vision. “We don’t know what
we’ll encounter inside the Keep. Listen for instructions and follow orders even
if they don’t make sense,” Valek ordered. “Yes, sir,” everyone
said in unison, including Gale. Before we could get into
position, I handed three of Opal’s glass animals to Leif and the other three to
Gale. “What are these for?”
Leif asked. “Keep one each, but give
the rest to Moon Man, Irys, Bain and Dax if they’re still alive.” I swallowed
the sudden lump in my throat. “I think I can use the animals to communicate
with you when I’m in the fire world.” Leif peered at me with
sad eyes, but I turned away before he could say anything. “Come on, you first.”
I gestured to the cart. Leif, Gale and Valek hid
in the three boxes at the bottom of the wagon. We put another empty crate and
some genuine goods on top of them. Then I lay down inside the top crate. When Marrok closed the
lid, my heart slammed in my chest in a sudden panic. My throat closed when the
rugs were piled on top. The wagon lurched. I wanted out. I felt trapped. The
others could get out of their boxes through the hidden panels we had installed
on the wagon’s floor. I could not. This wasn’t going to work. The Vermin would
figure it out before we could reach the Keep. And then what would happen? I drew in a few
steadying breaths. We would be captured. I would be fed to the Fire Warper just
like I wanted. All we would lose was the element of surprise. While helpful, I
believed even with it the chances of the others living through the encounter
were little to none. My morose line of
thought was not helping my state of mind. So I focused instead on the motion of
the wagon. It had been a long and emotionally exhausting night. I fell asleep
during the trip to the Citadel. The sound of an
unfamiliar voice roused me from sleep. We had stopped, and I gathered by the
voices we were at the Citadel’s north gate. The voices came closer and a person
banged on my box. I jumped, clamping my lips against a shout. “What’s in this one?” a
man asked. “The finest silk sheets
woven by the Moon Clan, sir,” the merchant replied. “Perhaps you care to
purchase a set? Just feel the fabric and you’ll know your wife will be most
anxious to try them out.” The man laughed. “I’ll
not be spending a month’s pay for a night with my wife. That’s why I married
her.” Their laughter trailed
away as the guard questioned the merchant on his reasons for entering the
Citadel. After what seemed like hours, the wagon began to move. Ari picked up
the pace and I guessed we had broken off from the caravan. When the sounds from the
market reached me, the wagon slowed. Ari called out to the stand owners, giving
them the sign to prepare to revolt. A network of messengers would fan out to
spread the news, then remain in place to deliver the signal for action. The fighting would erupt
when our wagon went inside the Keep. The cart turned around a corner. It
stopped with a jerk. Ari cursed and the
jangle of many horses surrounded us. A familiar voice called out, “Oh no. This
will not do.” Cahil. 32CAHIL AND HIS MEN had
found us. Trapped inside my crate, I could do nothing but wait for the
inevitable. I hoped Valek and the others hiding in the wagon would be able to
sneak away. “I assume you have
Yelena hidden somewhere in your wagon?” Cahil asked. “Have who, sir?” Ari
asked, playing innocent. “All I have is goods for the market.” “For the market? The
market you just rode through without stopping to unload? I don’t think so. Despite
your disguises and weak attempts to explain your presence, I know who you are
and why you’re here. In fact, I was sent by Jal to come and escort you to the
Keep.” I heard a creak as Ari
shifted his weight and I detected a faint rustling from below me. Probably
Valek opening his escape panel. “Relax,” Cahil said.
“I’m not here to capture you. I’m here to join you. And I hope for the sake of
all our lives you have a decent plan.” I had to let Cahil’s
words sink in. Had he just said he wanted to join us? “A plan, sir?” Ari
asked. Cahil snorted with
exasperation. “Yelena! Leif!” he called. “Come out and tell your big northern
friend I’m telling the truth. Look for yourselves. My men have not drawn
their—” A surprised yelp
followed a thud. Then Ari moved off the wagon and the rugs on top of my crate
scraped away. The lid lifted. I had my switchblade in hand, but Ari’s amused
face greeted me. He helped me stand. Valek had a knife to Cahil’s throat. He
and Cahil were on the ground. Cahil’s men remained on their mounts. The men
appeared tense and alert but hadn’t drawn any weapons. Leif and Janco joined
Ari and all three pulled their blades. Marrok stayed on Garnet. “Tell me why I shouldn’t
cut your throat?” Valek asked Cahil. “You won’t get into the
Keep without me,” he said. He kept still and held his hands up and away from
his body. “Why this sudden change
of heart?” I asked. Cahil’s gaze met mine.
Hatred still radiated from his eyes but the pain of betrayal tainted them. “You
were right.” He said each word as if it hurt him. “They’re using me and…” “And what?” I prompted. “The rituals and
killings have gotten out of hand. I can’t be a part of it anymore.” He looked
at Marrok. “I wasn’t raised to be a killer. I was raised to be a leader. I’ll
earn my throne the old-fashioned way.” Although the expression
on Marrok’s face never changed, his body relaxed. “How do we know you’re
telling the truth?” Ari asked. “Yelena knows through
her magic.” I shook my head. “I
can’t use it. It will alert Jal and risk the mission.” “She already knows
you’re here. You have thwarted her a number of times, although it will be more
difficult now, as she has gained an incredible amount of power through the
Kirakawa ritual.” “She?” Valek and I asked
in unison. “We thought Jal was
Gede,” I said. Cahil blinked at us for
a moment. “You didn’t know? What else don’t you know? You were planning an
attack at the Keep, right? I thought you had it all figured out.” “You thought wrong,” I
said, annoyed. “We had to guess about the state of affairs inside the Keep.” “Then here’s a way for
me to prove my loyalty. I’ll tell you what’s been going on and will help you
get inside. Agreed?” Valek and I exchanged a
glance. “Do I still get to kill
him?” Valek asked. “At the first sign of
betrayal, yes,” I said. “What about after this
is all over?” “Then it’s your call.” Cahil stared at us.
“Hold on. I’m risking my life to help you. I’d like some guarantees.” “We’ve come to a point
where there are no guarantees. For any of us,” I said. “That’s not very
encouraging,” Cahil said. “It’s not supposed to
be. You should know what happens when you play with fire, Cahil. Eventually,
you’ll get burned. Now, tell us what you know,” I ordered. Valek removed his knife
from Cahil’s throat and stepped back. Cahil scanned the area. We had attracted
quite the crowd, but I saw to my relief that there were no Vermin among them.
Then it hit me—why not? I asked Cahil. He gave me a sardonic
smile. “They’re all at the Keep. Roze plans a massive Kirakawa ritual using all
the magicians she has captured to empower all her favorite Warpers in one
sweep. And you’re to be the coup de grвce.” My blood turned to ice.
“Roze?” A superior expression
settled on Cahil’s face. “Yes, Roze Featherstone, First Magician also known as
Jalila Daviian, First Warper and founder of the Daviian Clan.” All color drained from
Leif’s face. “But how? Why?” “I had no idea until
Ferde was caught. She asked me to rescue him in exchange for the Council’s
support to invade Ixia,” Cahil said. “I thought it was an undercover mission to
learn who else was behind his bid for power. Though, when I discovered the
truth about her and the other Warpers, I must admit it didn’t bother me at the
time. She promised to attack Ixia and make me king.” “How many Warpers are
inside and who are the victims for the ritual?” I asked. “Six very powerful
Warpers, including Roze and Gede. They have been very careful about who they
allow to increase their powers, keeping crucial information about the Kirakawa
ritual to a select few. There are fifty Vermin soldiers and ten medium-powered
Warpers. Two of those Warpers are scheduled to be given master-level powers
during the massive ritual. The victims for this ritual will be the three other
Masters, who are incarcerated in the Keep’s cells, Moon Man and the
Councilors.” “What about the
students?” “The older apprentices
have been put in the cells. The younger ones obey out of fear.” “How does Roze plan to
control the Master Magicians?” “She has the power, but
I think she does plan to prick them with Curare to save her energy. Once they
are tied down, a dose of Theobroma will weaken their defenses.” “They seem to have an
unlimited supply of Curare,” I mused out loud. “Gede Daviian has
provided the drug for them. He also helped recruit dissatisfied Sandseeds to
the Daviian Clan. And having a pet Fire Warper has made him the Daviians’ most
valued member.” I mulled over the
information. “How do you plan to get us inside?” “As my prisoner. She
knows I went to find you. I’ll bring you to her and since my feelings for you
haven’t changed, I won’t have to act like I hate you. Sensing nothing wrong,
Roze will probably order me to take the rest—” Cahil pointed to Ari and Janco
“—to the cells.” “Why would I cooperate
with you?” “Because I’ll have Leif,
and I’ll make a bargain to keep him safe in exchange for your cooperation.” My mind raced through
the options and possibilities. For the first time, I felt hopeful about my
friends’ survival. “Cahil, when you take the others to the cells, can you free
everyone inside?” “As long as Roze is
occupied.” Valek smiled. “What’s
the plan, love?” We approached the Keep’s
gate at a slow walk. I sat in front of Cahil on his horse. Ari and Marrok sat
on the wagon with their hands tied behind their backs. Valek and Janco hid in the
bottom crates, and Leif sat on Kiki with one of Cahil’s men sitting behind him
armed with a knife. I didn’t have to pretend
to be scared and concerned for my friends. We were waved through the gate
without hesitation. Ari had informed the Citadel’s citizens to wait ten minutes
before storming the entrance to the Keep. Ten minutes for Cahil and the rest to
free the prisoners and for me to jump into the fire. I hoped it was enough
time. The wagon bypassed the
Keep’s administration building to where the apprentice barracks formed a ring
around an open area. A few students hurried past, keeping their gazes on the
ground as they carried out their tasks. The grassy glen had been
transformed. I stared at the waste-land in shock. The bonfire was expected, but
the grass around the fire had been covered with sand. Brownish-red stains
soaked the sand and stakes had been driven into it. It was the killing
ground for the Kirakawa ritual. And the next victim had already been tied down
and prepped. Bloody cuts crisscrossed
his abdomen, legs and arms. Although in pain, Moon Man still managed to smile.
“Now we can start the party,” he said. Roze frowned at him and
he writhed in agony. She stood next to Moon Man. Gede was beside her. Other
Warpers ringed the fire pit, watching with predatory eyes. “I see you finally
managed to get something right, Cahil,” she said. “Bring her here.” Cahil slid off the
saddle and grabbed me around the waist. He knew he didn’t need to help me down,
so he must have a reason. I let him yank me from the saddle, and drop me on the
ground. “Where do you want to
go?” he asked in a tight whisper as he jerked me to my feet. “As close to the fire as
I can.” “Really?” “Yes.” Although my heart
beat a different answer. No! it pounded. Let’s go! Run! He clamped his hand
around my arm and pulled me to Roze. We stopped a few feet from the fire. The
heat pulsed in waves. Sweat dripped down my back. Roze gestured to a
couple of Warpers. “There are two hiding in the boxes. Take them.” The Warpers and a few
soldiers advanced on the wagon. After some banging and cursing, Janco and Gale
were hauled out. “There are three
compartments, but one is empty,” a Warper called. Roze looked at me with a
question in her eyes. “For me. So I could get
inside the Citadel.” The truth. I kept my mind on the task at hand and didn’t
allow it to wonder about Valek. “At this distance,
Yelena, do you realize your mental defenses are nothing but a thin shell? I
will see your lies before you can form them in your mind. Remember that.” I nodded and
strengthened my barrier. She laughed and ordered
the soldiers to take the others to the cells. “I’ll deal with them later.” Once
the cart was out of sight, she peered at me and Cahil. “Your capture was too
easy,” she said. “You must think I’m a simpleton, but no matter, I’ve only to
expand a sliver of power to find out what you’re planning.” Her strong magic
invaded my mind. I kept my thoughts on
saving Moon Man, Leif and the others as I mentally dodged her onslaught. It
failed to work. To distract her, I asked, “Why?” “Nice try.” Her magic
crashed through my defenses, and seized my body. “You are in my power now.
Sitia is saved.” “Saved from me?” At
least I could still talk. In fact, even with her incredible strength, she could
only control either my mind or my body. Not both. “Saved from you. The
Commander. Valek. Our way of life is secured.” “By killing Sitians?
Using blood magic?” “Small price to pay for
our continued prosperity. I could not let the Commander invade us. The Council
failed to see the problem. I created the Daviians as a backup—a hidden weapon
for when we needed them. It worked. The Council eventually agreed with me.”
Smug satisfaction shone in her eyes. Through our mental link,
I sensed she didn’t understand the whole truth or she chose to ignore it. “The
Daviians forced the Council to agree with you. They had their children.” Extreme annoyance
creased Roze’s forehead. She shot Gede a venom-laced look. He wisely remained
quiet, but his muscles tensed. “Are you sure you have
control of the Daviians?” I asked. “Of course. And once we
choose a new Council we will attack Ixia and free them. They will welcome our
way of life.” She smiled. “So you saved Sitia?
Tell me, how is sacrificing the Council different than Valek assassinating
them?” Roze frowned and a wave
of pain pulsed through my body. My thoughts scattered as an unrelenting torment
twisted my muscles. When I regained my senses, I was lying in the sand, looking
up at her. “Isn’t choosing new
Councilors the same as appointing generals?” I asked. Another jolt of pain
sizzled along my spine. I arched my back and screamed. Sweat poured from my
head and soaked my clothes. My heart pumped as if it ran for its life. I gasped
for breath. “Would you care to ask
anything else?” Danger glinted in her eyes. “Yes. How are your
actions different than the Commander’s?” She paused, and I
pressed my advantage. “You want to protect Sitia from the Commander, but in the
process you turned into him.” Her mouth opened to
protest, but I interrupted. “You’re worried the Commander would invade Sitia
and turn your clans into Military Districts. But you’re planning to attack Ixia
and turn his Military Districts into clans. How is that different? Tell me!” She blustered and shook
her head. “I’m…he’s…” Then she laughed. “Why should I listen to you? You’re a
Soulfinder. You want to control Sitia. Of course you would try to sway me with
your lies.” Gede relaxed and
chuckled with Roze. “She will twist your words. You should kill her now.” Roze drew a breath. “Wait for the ritual! I
have something you want,” I said. “What could you have
that I can not take from you?” “According to the
ritual, a willing victim releases more power than a resisting one.” “And you will submit to
me in exchange for what?” “For all my friends’
lives.” “No. Only one. You
choose.” “Moon Man, then.” I
hoped the others managed to escape. She released her hold on
me. I stood, but she pointed. “Lie in the sand,” she ordered. “Can I ask another
question first?” “One.” “What happens to the
Fire Warper after this ritual?” “Once you’re dead, our
deal is complete. We have promised him your power and fed him in exchange for
knowledge about the blood magic. He will then have enough power to rule the
underworld.” A shout reached us and I
felt a magical onslaught. Roze turned to the
commotion and gestured to her Warpers. “Take care of them.” Unconcerned, she
said to me, “You know they will not get close to us. My Warpers and I have
enough power to stop them.” “Yes, I know.” “But I don’t think you
believe it. Watch what I can do. This used to drain me of energy. Now it takes
only a thought.” Her gaze went to Moon Man’s. His face paled and his
body jerked once then stilled. The shine in his eyes dulled as his soul left
his body. 33I DIVED OVER HIS PRONE
form and inhaled his soul before crashing to the sand. Gede gasped. “He was for
the ritual.” Roze laughed and said,
“Don’t worry. She’ll now give me two sources of power when I cut her heart
out.” “We made a deal, Roze.
My cooperation for Moon Man.” I brushed the sand off my clothes. “And you won’t cooperate
when I press a knife to Leif’s throat?” she asked. By the expression on my
face, she knew I would. “You’re too soft, Soulfinder. You could have raised a
soulless army. They would have been undefeatable. Magic doesn’t work on them.
Only fire.” Another cry split the
air, but this time from the opposite direction. A Vermin raced toward us. “Now what?” Roze asked
him. “The Keep’s gates are
under attack,” he said, panting. She glanced at the
Warpers fighting with the Keep’s magicians. A vision of the battle formed in my
mind. The ferocity of the combat dwindled. The confusing array of magical
images was gone and Gale’s whirling dust devils had died. People fell to the
ground after being hit with Curare-laced darts. Leif, Ari and Bain lay
paralyzed. Janco fought a soldier, keeping the man between him and the
blowpipes. His movements slowed as another Warper focused his magic on him. Roze’s Warpers had
gained the upper hand; it was only a matter of time. “There is nobody left to
rescue you,” Roze said. Her comments hit home
when she called a few Warpers away from the battle to deal with the revolt at
the gates. But there was one person
I didn’t see and that gave me some hope. “Roze, you haven’t figured everything
out.” She looked dubious.
“What have I missed? Valek? Oh, I know he’s here. Magic might not affect him,
but Curare will do the trick.” “No. The Fire Warper.” “What about him?” “You haven’t taken into
account that he might have different plans than you.” “Don’t be ridiculous.
Gede and I feed him. We give him his power. Who else would help him?” “I would.” I ran toward the fire.
Roze’s yell sounded faint over the roar of the blaze. The heat encompassed me
in a loving embrace. Burning pain transformed into pinpricks of pleasure. But
this time the world didn’t settle into the smooth plain of black. Souls filled
my world, writhing and crying with misery. The air stank of decay and
infection. Help! Help! they cried. The Fire Warper ordered
them to be quiet and pushed them away from me. “She is here for me,” he said.
“She will not help you.” He studied me. “You have
brought me a treat. No only a soul for the sky, but Moon Man’s bright power
will increase my strength.” Moon Man stood next to
me. He peered about the fire world with mild interest. “I’m sorry you’re here,”
I said. “I didn’t plan for it to be you.” “Why not? I am your
guide, Yelena. In life and in death. That never changes.” “But you said Gede was
my new Story Weaver.” “You were looking for an
easy road. Which Gede provided. You could have reclaimed me as your Story
Weaver at any time.” “How?” “You just needed to ask.
Or rather begged for my return—much better for my ego.” The Fire Warper stepped
between us. “How sweet. Now take me to the sky,” he demanded. “No,” I said. “You cannot refuse me.
We made a deal.” “I promised to come
back. I didn’t promise to take you into the sky.” “Then you and Moon Man
will stay here in misery and I will use your power to reach the sky.” He
advanced and grabbed my arms. My skin boiled as
searing daggers of pain spread throughout my body. I screamed, but he didn’t
have the ability to take what he wanted. I had to give it to him. He tried another tactic.
Waving with an arm, a window opened and I could see Roze and her Warpers. Leif,
Bain, Ari, Janco, Gale, Cahil and Marrok all were staked in the sand. “They lost. There are a
few more left, but when they are captured, the fun begins. However, if you lead
me to the sky, I will stop Roze and release all your friends and family.” I looked at Moon Man. “If you do not help the
Fire Warper,” Moon Man said, “we are stuck here and Roze will send each of them
to suffer in this world with us.” This was the one
scenario I had hoped to avoid. “Are you saying that’s what I should do?” “No. I am merely
pointing out the consequences.” “Then what should I do?” “Your decision to make.
You are the Soulfinder. Find your soul.” I wanted to strangle
him, but he was already dead. “Do you think you could give me a straight answer
one time?” I demanded. “Yes, I could.” I gazed out as
frustration and futility twisted tightly around me. Sensing I was conflicted,
the Fire Warper let the souls draw near to me so I could see the fate of my
friends. Their cries grew shrill in my ears and the heat baked my skin, making
it difficult to concentrate. The fetid odor assaulted my senses. “Watch,” he said, and
pointed to the scene beyond the fire. “Roze has ensnared Irys in a cocoon of
magic. She will force her to lie upon the sand and be tied down.” Sure enough Irys walked toward
Roze. She knelt before her. Irys’s eyes glanced to the side before the other
Warpers secured her in the sand. I followed her gaze and spotted Valek. He fought four Warpers
with swords, but I knew they threw every ounce of magic at him. And by Roze’s
intent gaze, she aimed all her power against him. Even though the magic didn’t
work, he still felt the presence and it slowed his movements. A soldier waited
nearby with a blowpipe, seeking the first opportunity to hit Valek with a dart. “And Valek will be
next,” the Fire Warper said. “What do you want to do? Watch your friends and
lover die or guide me to the sky?” I held out my hand to
Moon Man and to the Fire Warper. “Come,” I said. 34A TRIUMPHANT GRIN SPREAD
on the Fire Warper’s face. Moon Man remained unflappable. He held my hand. Even
though it appeared to be made of smoke, his hand felt solid in mine. Moon Man
looked at me. The oval shape of his eyes matched Roze’s. Why hadn’t I noticed
the resemblance before? Roze’s comments replayed
in my mind. Could I reanimate Moon Man’s body after I took him to the sky?
According to Roze, soulless bodies were unaffected by magic. Could I create a
small force to help Irys and Valek? My bat flew around my
head. Odd. How could he be here? Moon Man sighed. I missed
the point. It didn’t matter how the bat had gotten here, but why was he here at
all. Bats. Opal’s glass bat. I reached for my pocket, but the answer halted the
motion. Opal’s sister. Tula! When Ferde had stolen Tula’s soul and strangled her, I had used my magic to breathe for Tula, but as soon as I
had stopped, she had stopped. I didn’t possess the
power to raise a soulless army. The magician born
one-hundred-and-fifty years ago wasn’t a Soulfinder, but a Soulstealer. I was a true Soulfinder.
And I knew what my job entailed. The Fire Warper grew impatient with my delay
and reached for my free hand; I yanked it away. My bat cried out with joy and
disappeared. I sought Roze with my
mind, seeing her soul and the souls of all her victims trapped within her. Their
blood had been injected into her skin to bind them to her. I pushed at the
blood, sweeping and forcing it through her pores, pulling the souls free,
sending them to the sky. She yelped and rolled up
her sleeve. Black liquid oozed from her arms, dripping onto the sand. The
putrid smell of rancid blood surrounded her like a fog. Each one I removed
weakened Roze until only her own power remained. Then I projected my mind
to Gede and did the same to him. One by one I plucked souls from the Warpers,
weakening them. The Fire Warper cried an
oath and lunged for me. Moon Man intercepted and fought him so I could return
my attention to the Keep. Roze’s magical hold on
Irys had slipped when I extracted her power. Freed from the magic, Irys used
her own skills to draw a knife close to her and cut the rope. Once loose, she
ran to a few others who had not been pricked with Curare but who, like her, had
been captured by magic. Gale and Marrok joined
her and they attacked Roze. Valek’s opponents had been distracted by the scene
around them, giving Valek the opportunity to dispatch them. The man with the
blowpipe ran off. Valek turned his full attention to Roze. Satisfied all was well
with my friends, I focused on the Fire Warper. He held Moon Man in a tight
grip, compressing Moon Man’s soul to bind him to the fire world. “Stop,” I said. “You’ll
gain no more power today.” I pulled at Moon Man with my magic and he popped
from the Fire Warper’s grasp. “I find souls and ensure they arrive at the
proper destination. He doesn’t belong here. But you do.” I moved past him. He
tried to stop me, but he was a soul just like all the others and I controlled
him. Moving through the fire world, I found those who didn’t belong and
released them to the sky. The Fire Warper screamed at me with each one, but I
ignored him. A long time passed as I freed them all, but my energy increased
with every rescue. “Why aren’t I tired?” I
asked Moon Man. He smiled. “Think about
what you have learned today.” I glanced around. The
Fire Warper’s power had diminished with each freed soul. Perhaps stealing his
power had increased my own? “No.” Moon Man looked a
little exasperated, as if he couldn’t believe how slow I was. I did take some
pleasure from his expression. To alter his calm demeanor required much effort
on my part. The Fire Warper glowered
at me. “It is only a matter of time before I regain my strength,” he said.
“There is always someone who desires more power and I will be waiting for
them.” “Not if I can help it,”
I said. “Then you will have to
spend eternity with me to prevent it. The knowledge is out there now. Another
fool will figure out how to contact me through the flames.” He had a point. But I
was the Soulfinder. In order to do my job, I would have to stay in the
underworld and send the souls to their proper places. Thinking about my job, I
remembered a promise to Moon Man. “Can you guide me to the
shadow world?” I asked him. “No. But you can lead
me.” “And you call yourself a
guide?” He smiled serenely. “I hate you.” I clasped
Moon Man’s hand. I thought of the shadow
world with its gray plain and sky. The red glow faded and soon the featureless
expanse spread in front of us. “This is only the
corridor between worlds, Yelena. Look deeper to see the real shadow world.” Another cryptic instruction.
For all my abilities, I still couldn’t get Moon Man to give me a straight
answer. I pushed away my frustration and focused on who I was trying to find.
The Sandseeds who had been killed by the Vermin in the Avibian Plains. The flat area began to
undulate and transform into the plains. Small outcroppings of rocks grew and
the smooth gray ground sprouted grass and a few bushes. A cluster of canvas
tents popped up and circled a fire pit. The scene before me resembled a
Sandseed camp. Yet there was no color. Only black and white and every shade of
gray. Sandseeds huddled
together in this camp on the altered Avibian Plain, living in the shadow cast
by the real world. They clung to their memories of life, not realizing peace
awaited them in the sky. I walked among them and
talked to them. Their numbers grew and I had to stop myself from reliving the
horror of the Vermin’s attack and massacre. I made promises to watch over the
living Sandseeds who had hidden during the attack. Days and weeks could have
passed while I convinced them to move on. I had no concept of time. Again, as I sent each
one into the sky, my strength grew. “There are many more souls clinging to the
shadow world,” I said to Moon Man, thinking about all the towns and cities in
Sitia and Ixia. “Let me return you to your body and you can tell the others my
fate.” “I can not return,” he
said. “My body has died, unlike yours. And even if you heal me, I would be
unhappy and would wish for death.” “Like Stono and Gelsi?” “Yes. Eventually both
will find their way back to where they belong.” “Then I will send you to
the sky. You deserve to be there.” “Not until you
understand.” “I do understand. I’m
doing my job. I’ve resigned myself to living here to keep Sitia and Ixia safe
from more Warpers!” I clamped my hands together to keep them from wrapping
around Mr. I-know-everything-and-you-don’t Man’s thick neck. “Have you truly resigned
yourself?” he asked. “I…” I huffed in
frustration. I would rather be back with Valek, Kiki, my parents, Leif, Irys,
Ari, Janco and my other friends. I had learned my true job, but there were
still many aspects of my magic and others’ magic to explore. I thought about
Opal’s unique ability. Then I remembered my glass bat. Had it survived the
fire? I felt inside my pockets. Odd how my clothing had survived the flames. My
fingers touched a smooth lump. I pulled the animal from my cape. The inner core
glowed with magic. Staring at the light, I saw Leif’s sad face. He peered at me
in sorrow, then disbelief when I smiled at him. “Hello from the
underworld,” I said. “Yelena! What the…?
Where are…? Come back!” “I can’t. Tell me what
has happened?” He gave me a quick
sketch of how the battle had played out after I jumped into the fire. Most of
the Warpers were dead, only Roze, Gede and four others remained alive. They
were in the Keep’s cells, awaiting trial. “They will be hanged for
treason and murder,” Leif said. He grew somber. “We buried Moon Man last week.” “Last week? But—” “You’ve been gone for
weeks. We keep the fire burning, hoping you’ll return. Also Valek will not let
us quench it. He’s been helping the Councilors and Master Magicians recover
from their ordeal and to smooth out relations with the Commander via Ambassador
Signe. Valek went from the scourge of Sitia to the hero of Sitia.” Leif smiled
sardonically. Valek. The one person I
wouldn’t mind spending eternity with. Leif continued, “And the
rest of us are coping with the aftermath. Many students were killed by the
Vermin. We’re still sorting out who is left. Your friend Dax is okay, but Gelsi
died resisting a Warper.” Moon Man was right,
Gelsi found her way back. I hoped Stono wouldn’t suffer too much before his
soul found the sky. He paused. “The Sitian
army’s hunting down the remaining Vermin who escaped. The Sandseeds have moved
back to the plains to repopulate.” Leif sighed. “You’re missed by everyone. Why
can’t you come back?” “Someone needs to keep
the Fire Warper from regaining power.” Leif frowned as he
thought, then looked hopeful. “Bain has burned those old Efe texts to stop
someone from learning about the blood magic.” “But there are others
who know how to perform the ritual, and, even though you will execute them,
they will be here in the fire world and able to communicate to someone who is
determined to seek them out.” “You’re a Soulfinder,
can’t you send them somewhere out of reach?” Leif asked. “They don’t deserve to
be in the sky.” “Why not?” Moon Man
said. My mind thought over
what I knew of the sky, which was very little. “I think they would taint it.
It’s pure and their vile deeds would soil it.” “Finally. What is the
sky?” What indeed? When I sent
souls there, I felt refreshed, energetic even though I used power, which
usually caused me fatigue. I added souls to the sky. Adding to the power
blanket surrounding the world. The source of magic! The world’s soul. Moon Man beamed at me.
“Now you can send me there! And then you can return to your life.” He chuckled at my
dubious expression. “You will find a way, Yelena. You always do.” “Last piece of cryptic
advice?” “Consider it my farewell
gift.” I hesitated for a
moment. Once Moon Man was gone I would be all alone. “All the more reason not
to stay,” Moon Man said. “There’s one thing I
won’t miss.” “And that is?” “You reading my mind all
the time and making me figure things out for myself.” “All part of being your
Story Weaver. It does not stop, you know. You will hear my voice in your mind
from time to time, giving you my unique advice.” I groaned. “And I
thought living in the underworld for eternity was bad!” Before sending him to
the sky, I stared at him, trying to hold his features, including his sardonic
grin, in my mind. When he disappeared, his absence felt like an icy coating on
my skin. I realized I still held Opal’s bat, but my connection to Leif was broken. I wandered through the
shadow world and found lost souls. Every so often I checked in the fire world
to make sure the Fire Warper remained as he should be. He cursed, taunted and
tried to cajole me, depending on his mood. Irys, Leif and Bain all
talked to me through the glass animals. They were the only ones who had the
ability to use them. Through them I knew Roze, Gede and the other Warpers would
be hanged soon. I prepared to receive them in the fire world. In the meantime, I
stared at my bat, trying and failing to connect to Valek. My desire to talk to
him, to hold him, clawed at my body. Frustration at my inability to communicate
with him caused a window to open to the real world, and I could view events
around my fire. I laughed at my intense feelings of ownership. My fire. But I
sobered. I knew after they hanged Roze and the others, my fire would be doused
and my window closed for good. The Council planned to
hang Roze and her accomplices on gallows built in the bloodstained sand then
burn their bodies in my fire. An insult given only to traitors. The sand would be
cleaned up and perhaps the gardeners would plant grass in the space. Or some
trees. Flowers. A memorial? Perhaps a structure similar to one of the Citadel’s
jade statues or fountains. To remember me and Moon Man. Now I was being maudlin
and dramatic. Next thing I knew, I’d be designing the memorial, sketching its
dimensions in the sand. I wondered about what they would do with all the sand.
Send it to Booruby to be melted into glass? So Opal could turn fire into ice? I froze in shock as a
wild idea formed in my head. Thinking it through, I found many holes and
reasons for it not to work. But success or not, at least I could say I tried.
And the effort alone would keep Moon Man from nagging me for a while. 35CALLING TO LEIF through
my bat, I hoped there would be enough time. He seemed eager to help and rushed
off to make the arrangements. Events had to happen in
a particular order for this to work. I returned to the fire world. The Fire
Warper would be our first test subject. Watching out my window, I waited for
Leif to return. I didn’t like being in the fire world. The shrill noise drilled
through my skull and the putrid smell permeated the air. I preferred the quiet
dullness of the shadow world. The Fire Warper enjoyed
my anxiety. “Look at how you long to return. Your suffering is my only
pleasure. And I will enjoy keeping you here. Already I sense an unhappy boy who
seeks revenge on his tormentors. If his desire grows, I’ll be able to talk to
him. Unless you prevent it.” Doubt flared about what
I planned. Was I being selfish? Could I still rescue souls lost in the shadow
world? Yet I had done it before with the ghosts in Owl’s Hill. Suppressing all
my fears, I ignored the Fire Warper’s comments. What seemed like a
couple of weeks to me, but could have been a month or more, passed. By my brief
glimpses into the Keep, the cold season had ended and the warming season was in
full swing. I received updates from Leif, but now that I had a chance to
escape, my impatience grew. Finally, all the
elements were in place. The gallows were built and the needed equipment brought
in. My incredible relief at seeing Opal surprised me. Her mouth was pressed in
pure determination as she readied her tools. Another worry crossed my
mind. Within the underworld, I hadn’t felt cold, hot, hunger or thirst. But if
I stepped back through the fire, would it burn me? I would find out soon
enough. The Fire Warper hovered near me, his amusement plain. Opal grasped a long metal
pipe and poked it into the kiln. I wondered where they had gotten the
glassmaking supplies. She turned the pipe and drew it out. And proceeded to
create a glass animal. When she moved to blow
into the pipe, I inhaled the Fire Warper’s soul. He yelped in surprise and
seared my skin as I sent him through Opal and into the glass. He screamed in
panic and resisted. But I controlled him. He was a soul after all. Opal jerked as if
burned, but returned to her task, making the ugliest, squattest looking pig I
ever saw. Placing the animal into
the annealing oven, the wait began. Had our experiment worked? If the Fire
Warper was truly trapped within the glass, then we could encase all the Warpers
who knew how to perform blood magic, preventing them from passing the
information along. And I could go home. Twelve of the longest
hours passed before Opal withdrew the pig and held the statue up for all to
see. It was then I noticed just how many people had come to watch. I expected
Leif, the Master Magicians and Councilors, but it appeared that Fisk and the
entire Helping Guild members were there. My mother and father lingered at the
edges. Perl’s hand was clamped to her throat in dismay, but she looked as
determined as Opal. Cahil and a regiment of
soldiers, including Marrok stood at attention. Ari and Janco waited with Leif.
Janco scowled, showing his extreme dislike of magic. Valek glowed with his
own inner fire. For him, I would risk the flames’ heat. I turned my attention to
Opal’s creation. It pulsed with a muddy red light. The Fire Warper was locked
inside. The audience cheered.
Opal placed the pig in the sand, and gathered another blob of molten glass,
preparing for the next soul. Roze, under the control
of three Master Magicians, was forced to mount the gallows’ steps. The noose
was tightened around her neck and the executioner stepped back. Her face
contorted with rage and she shouted. Time froze for a moment
and I felt what it would have been like to stand there terrified, waiting for
the floor to open and my life to end with a quick snap of my neck. If I had
chosen the noose instead of becoming the Commander’s food taster two years ago,
I wondered if any of this would have happened. Roze fell in slow
motion. Her body jerked at the end of the rope. Her soul flew. I captured it. Her hateful thoughts
filled my mind. Guardian of the underworld suits you, Yelena. You belong here.
You don’t really believe you can go back? You’ll be feared by all and become an
outcast in record time. If I was a Soulstealer,
I would agree with you, I said. You don’t scare me, Roze. You never did and
that bothered you more than me being a Soulfinder. Opal blew. I sent Roze
on her final journey. Then Gede. Then the other four Warpers. Seven in all,
including the Fire Warper. When all the Warpers had
been encased in glass, Opal sank to the ground in exhaustion. Now I could
leave. I glanced around, trying to determine whether I missed anything, whether
a soul who could do harm remained. Roze’s words had a bit of truth to them.
Regardless of my explanations, Sitians would be frightened of me and the
Council’s suspicion and unease would linger for a long time. I welcomed the
difficulties. All part of living, and I planned to enjoy every minute. As I walked through my
window to the Keep, sounds reached me first. The roar of the fire. Leif calling
my name. Then scalding heat sucked my breath away. Bright yellow and orange
stabbed at my eyes. My cape caught fire. I dived to the sand and rolled on the
ground to snuff the flames. So much for my grand entrance. 36I SPENT MY FIRST HOURS
back cocooned in an excited babble of all my friends and family. Everyone
except Valek. But I knew I would see him when the horde dispersed. Once my fire had
finished its macabre task of burning the traitors to ash, it was doused. Thick
smoke boiled from it and clung to the ground until Gale Stormdance created a
fresh breeze to whisk it away. I noted with much
interest how fast life resumed. Though glad I had returned, the Councilors left
for a meeting, and Fisk and his guild hurried off to work in the market. Before he left, Fisk
flashed me a wide smile and said, “Lovely Yelena, you’ll need new clothes for
the hot season. I know the best seamstress in the Citadel. Come find me when
you’re ready.” The hot season? Ari told
me it had just started. I had lived in the underworld for seventy-one days,
missing the entire warming season. I viewed the time with mixed emotions: glad
my perceptions in the underworld didn’t match reality, especially if I ever
needed to go back; and upset I wasn’t here to help clean up the mess left
behind by the Vermin. Ari and Janco grumbled
over the hot, sticky weather and confessed their desire to go home to Ixia. “We had fun rooting out
all those Daviians,” Janco said. “But I’m sure Maren misses us.” Ari looked doubtful. He
had washed the black dye from his hair, and his light skin had burned in the
Sitian sun. Janco’s skin had tanned, matching his Sitian clothes. “Oh this?” Janco said,
when I mentioned his new coloring. “You missed some beautiful days.” “Janco’s been sunning
himself every chance he gets,” Ari said with obvious disdain. “He claimed he
kept the fire going, but I caught him snoozing in the sand a few times.” “Once!” Janco said. They began to bicker. I
laughed and moved away, but heard Ari call out, “Training yard, five o’clock.” Kiki’s urgent summons
had nagged me the whole time I’d been back. I hurried over to the stable to
spend an hour with her. Perhaps Valek would show up and we could get
reacquainted in the straw. I scratched her ears,
fed her peppermints and ducked behind a stack of hay bales when the Stable
Master came looking for me, probably to give me a lecture about borrowing
Garnet for so long. Lavender Lady not go
again, Kiki said in my mind. I’ll try to avoid it. No
promises, though. She huffed. Next time
Kiki go. A Horsefinder? Help Lavender Lady, Kiki
said, as if that ended the discussion. Even though I longed to
return to my rooms in Irys’s tower, my parents insisted I come to their
quarters in the Keep’s guest wing after I visited the stables. Leif, Irys and
Bain followed me, and the six of us sat in the living room, sipping tea. Wedged
tightly between my father and mother on the couch, I was held prisoner. My
desire to seek Valek would have to wait. Bain and Irys were most
interested in what had happened in the fire and shadow worlds. After giving
them a brief sketch, Bain made me promise to visit him and recite the details
for his book. “You passed the
Master-level test,” Irys said. “What?” Caught off guard
by this sudden change in topic, I choked on my tea. “You entered the
underworld and returned with a spirit guide. Your encounter with the Fire
Warper was your challenge, and his defeat your success.” “But I don’t have a
spirit guide.” Leif laughed. “Your bat!
I thought he was strange. Beside the obvious fact that he wanted to hang out
with you.” “Leif. That’s not nice,
considering all your sister has done for you,” Perl admonished. “Oh, right. How can I
forget that she made me bait for a snake, left me under house arrest in Ixia
and smuggled me into the Keep in a coffin. And don’t forget the time…” I ignored Leif’s rant. I
wondered, why a bat? Why not something fearsome like a fire dragon or necklace
snake? Irys had a hawk, Bain a wind leopard and Zitora a unicorn. Thinking of
Zitora, I reminded myself to go visit her in the infirmary. She had been
severely wounded during the fight with the Warpers, and her recovery had been
slow. I kept glancing out the
window, hoping to see Valek. My mind circled through various excuses for me to
leave everyone to search for him. Bain interrupted Leif’s
list of grievances against me. “According to our policies, Yelena is Fourth
Magician.” I raised my hand to
prevent any more wild speculation. “No. I can’t light fires or move objects like
the Masters can. I’m a Soulfinder. My job is to find lost souls and send them
home, including the souls of Ixia. There is still need for a Liaison between
the two countries. I plan to reassume the role.” And the first order of
business would be to assess Cahil’s intentions. His help in defeating Roze and
uncovering all the Vermin nests had proven invaluable to the Council, but I
wasn’t convinced his new role meant he wouldn’t try some way to claim Ixia’s
throne. Leif asked, “What do we
do with those glass prisons? They’re under guard, but we don’t want them
falling into the wrong hands.” “What would happen if
they break?” Perl asked. They all looked at me.
“If the souls are freed, they will go to the fire world, unless there is
another Soulfinder to place them elsewhere.” “Elsewhere?” Leif raised
his eyebrows. “Into another body or to
the sky.” I sighed. “We will have to find a place to protect and to hide them.” “The Keep,” Bain said. “The Illiais Jungle has
some deep caves,” Esau suggested. “Under the Emerald Mountains,” Irys said. “Sunken in the deepest
part of the sea,” Leif said. “Buried under the
northern ice,” Perl recommended. “All good ideas, but the
Council will need to debate the issue and decide.” My gaze met Irys’s. She
gave me a wry smile. We both knew the Council would argue for months, and it
was up to me to find a home for them. I spent the rest of the
afternoon with my family. Perl and Esau made me promise to come visit them. “A nice relaxing visit,”
Perl ordered. “No chasing Vermin or saving anyone. We’ll sit and talk and I’ll
make you a new perfume.” “Yes, Mother.” She made me eat before I
could leave. I hurried to the training yard, hoping Valek would be there. He was not. The man must
be torturing me on purpose. I had made him wait over two months. Perhaps he was
returning the favor. Ari and Janco sparred
with swords. And although Janco sang his rhymes and Ari used his brute
strength, they were equally matched in skill. They stopped when they saw me. “Come on,” Janco said.
“Ari wants to make sure you’re in good fighting shape before we leave.” “I do?” “Yes, you do. Otherwise
you’ll worry about her.” “I will?” “Of course.” Janco waved
away Ari’s comments. “Besides, this is just a lull before the next storm. We
need to be ready!” This time I piped in.
“The next storm?” Janco sighed
dramatically. “There’s always another storm. It’s the way the world works.
Snowstorms, rainstorms, wind-storms, sandstorms and firestorms. Some are fierce
and others are small. You have to deal with each one separately, but you need
to always keep an eye on what’s brewing for tomorrow.” Ari rolled his eyes.
“Janco’s unique view of life. Yesterday he compared living to food.” “That’s because some
food leaves you full while others—” “Janco,” I said.
“Prepare for my storm.” I swept my bow toward his feet. He jumped over it with a
nimble grace. Dropping his sword, he reached for his bow and our match began. Since I had returned
from the underworld, I could see everyone with a new sight. With a blink of my
eyes, I saw through their bodies and directly into their souls. I knew their
thoughts, feelings and intentions as if they were my own. Before I had to pull
power for the source and project myself to them. Now the connection was there
the second I thought about it. Janco’s comical surprise
when I dumped him on the ground in three moves was almost worth my trip through
the underworld. Almost. He huffed and blustered
and tried to make excuses. I stopped our second fight to guide a soul to the
sky. Many hung around the Keep and I knew I would have to do a sweep of the
Citadel. Janco viewed my magical
actions as if they were distasteful to him. “At least you’re expending energy.
You’ll be easier to beat,” he smirked. “Wishful thinking,” I
said. After losing the next
four matches, Janco finally conceded. “Am I ready for the next
storm?” I asked him, smiling sweetly. “You are the next
storm.” Bruised ego aside, Janco
and Ari were pleased with my fighting skills. “You found your center,”
Ari said with a note of approval in his voice. “You’re not afraid to embrace
who you are. Now Janco won’t have to worry anymore.” “I’ll let Ari do all the
worrying for both of us. Oh wait! He already does.” “I do not. You’re the
one who moaned and fussed about Yelena all these weeks.” “I did not.” They launched into
another round of bickering. I never thought I would enjoy listening to them,
but I did. Until I saw Cahil walking toward the training yard. He held his long
broadsword. I watched him approach, preparing to defend myself if need be. I
studied his emotions with my other sight. Hate, determination and anxiety
dominated his feelings. Cahil stopped at the
fence. “I didn’t come here to fight,” he said. “I want to talk to you.” Ari and Janco didn’t
seem concerned by his presence, and continued their debate. But they hadn’t
been on the wrong side of Cahil’s wrath. I moved closer with my bow in hand,
keeping the wooden fence between us. “What do you want to
talk about?” I demanded. Cahil pulled in a deep
breath and let the air out fast. “I wanted to…” “Go on. Say it.” Irritation flared in
Cahil’s light blue eyes, but he stifled it. “I wanted to explain.” “Explain why you’re
nasty, ruthless, opportunistic—” “Yelena! Will you shut
up.” My expression must have
warned him, because he rushed to continue. “You bring out the worst in me. Can
you listen?” A pause. “Please?” “All right.” “When I found out that I
didn’t have royal blood, that my whole purpose in life was a sham, I refused to
believe it. Even when Marrok admitted I was just a soldier’s son, I didn’t want
to hear it. Instead, I transferred my anger to you and Valek and decided I
would find a way to make the Council support an attack on Ixia to reclaim the
throne.” Cahil looked down at the sword in his hand. “You know what I did
after. I lost my way and swallowed every morsel of Roze’s lies.” Cahil handed me his
sword. It had been the King of Ixia’s sword. Rescued after the King had been
assassinated, the sword had been given to Cahil as part of the ruse to make him
believe he was the King’s nephew. “Give it to the
Commander for me,” Cahil said. “By rights, it should be his.” “Have you given up your
desire to rule Ixia?” He looked at me and I
saw a renewed sense of purpose in his soul. “No. I still seek to free Ixia from
the Commander’s strict rule. But I no longer feel I should inherit the throne.
I plan to earn the privilege.” “Then that’s going to
make for some interesting discussions between us.” I held his gaze. “You can count on it.” The summons from
Ambassador Signe came after a long soak in a hot bath. I exchanged my damaged
cape and smoky clothes for a clean pair of cotton pants and shirt. My hair
hadn’t grown while I was in the underworld. The inch-long strands, though, were
long enough to lay flat on my head. The Ambassador waited in
the Keep’s administration building. She had the use of a meeting room and an
office during her stay. I hurried up the stairs and into the marble building,
hoping to see Valek there. My disappointment churned in my stomach and I
wondered if Valek was avoiding me. Ambassador Signe greeted
me warmly, inquiring about my health. I studied her face. So similar to the
Commander’s almost delicate features, yet missing the full force of the
powerful spark residing in his gold eyes. With my new vision, I saw the two
souls that struggled for dominance. They took turns, but I could see the red
spiral of conflict within. “Irys Jewelrose informed
me you wish to resume your duties as Liaison. Is this true?” “Yes. Becoming an
adviser to the Commander is very tempting, but I feel my skills should serve
both Ixia and Sitia by keeping relations open and fostering an understanding
between the two nations.” “I see. Then your first
order of business should be to negotiate a salary.” “A salary?” “You can not be paid by
the magicians or the Council. You must receive equal wages from Sitia and Ixia
to maintain your neutrality.” She smiled. “For all that you have done recently,
I would suggest you barter for a considerable amount.” “Obviously, there are
many things I need to think about in my new role.” “I trust, then, your
education is complete?” I laughed. “There will
never be a time when it’s complete, but I’ve reached an understanding with my
abilities.” “Good. I look forward to
our negotiations.” Before the Ambassador
could dismiss me, I said, “I have something for the Commander.” She looked at me
expectantly. “It’s with your guard.
He wouldn’t let me bring it in.” Rising from her desk,
she opened the door and returned with the King’s sword. “May I speak to the
Commander?” I asked. The transformation from
the Ambassador to the Commander happened in a heartbeat. Even the physical
features changed from a woman to a man. I had seen it before, but this time I
watched with my other sight. It revealed much. “What is this for?” the
Commander asked. He studied the weapon in his hand. “Cahil is returning it
to you. You won the right to wield it over seventeen years ago.” A thoughtful expression
settled on his face as he placed the sword on the desk. “Cahil. What should I
do about him?” I told the Commander
about his plans. “He could cause trouble for you in the future, although I hope
my efforts will change his mind.” “I know Valek would be
happy to assassinate him.” He considered that scenario. “But he might prove
useful, especially in dealing with the younger generation.” He saw my confused
frown. “It’ll give them something to do.” “Or give them someone to
rally behind.” “All part of the fun, I
suppose. Is that all?” “No.” I gave the
Commander one of Opal’s glass animals. He admired the tree
leopard and thanked me for the gift. “The glow you see is
magic,” I said. His gaze pierced me and
I felt his sense of betrayal as if I poisoned him. He placed the statue on the
desk. I explained why he could view the fire. “I can see two souls
within your body. Your mother didn’t want to leave you alone when she died so
she stayed with you. Her magic lets you see the glow. And it’s her fear of
discovery that has made you afraid of magic in all its forms.” Commander Ambrose held
his body as if any movement would crack it into a thousand pieces. “How do you
know this?” “I’m a Soulfinder. I
find lost souls and send them to the sky. Does she want to go? Do you want her
to go?” “I don’t know. I…” “Think about it. You
know where to find me. There’s no time limit.” I glanced back before I
left. He stared at the tree leopard, lost in his thoughts. Night had fallen while I
talked with the Commander. Walking across the silent campus, I inhaled the warm
breeze, soaking in the smells of life and the feel of air on my skin. I scanned
my surroundings, searching for some sign of Valek. Irys had lit all the
lanterns in her tower. Even though she had given me three floors of the
structure for my use, I found myself thinking about a salary, and my mind
drifted to Valek’s cottage in the Featherstone lands. It would be nice to be
close to Kiki and get away from the Council’s and Commander’s politics each
night. The cottage was near the Ixian border, too. It would be neutral
territory. A place of my own. I
couldn’t claim any room, cell or dwelling as my own. It would be the first
time. My excitement grew. I trudged up three
floors of the tower to my bedroom. The sparse furnishings and layer of dust
made for an unwelcoming sight, although the bedding was fresh. I opened the shutters to
let in clean air and felt a presence behind me. Without turning, I demanded,
“What took you so long?” Valek pressed against my
back. His arms wrapped around my stomach. “I could ask you the same thing.” He
spun me to face him. “I didn’t want to share you, love. We have a lot of
catching up to do.” He leaned in and kissed
me. I drank in his essence, it soothed my soul. Eventually, I pulled
away, and laid my head on his chest, content to just feel his heartbeat against
my cheek. “That’s the second time
I lost you,” he said. “You would think it would be easier, but I couldn’t douse
the burning pain. I felt like my heart had been pierced by a spit and was
cooking over a fire.” His arms tightened
around me as if he worried I would slip from his grip. “I would beg you to
promise never to disappear again, but I know you won’t.” “I can’t. Just like you
can’t promise to stop being loyal to the Commander. We both have other duties.” He huffed with
amusement. “We could retire.” “From being a Liaison,
but not a Soulfinder. There are many lost souls to guide.” Ever the analyst, Valek
drew back enough to study me. “How many? It’s been a hundred-and-twenty-five
years since Sitia crisped the last Soulfinder. Hundreds?” “I don’t know. The
Soulfinders documented in the history books were really Soulstealers. Guyan
could have been the only one in the last two thousand years. Bain would delight
in helping me with that assignment. But I will need to travel around Sitia and
Ixia to help them all. Do you want to come? It could be fun.” “You, me and a couple
thousand ghosts? Sounds crowded,” he teased. “At least you already found one
soul, love.” “Moon Man’s?” “Mine. And I trust you
not to lose it.” “The only magic to
affect the infamous Valek.” It reminded me of a question I had. While in the
shadow world, I had had plenty of time to contemplate every single facet of
him. “How old were you when the King’s men killed your brothers?” I ignored his
questioning look. “How old?” “Thirteen.” An old
sorrow pulled at the corners of his mouth. “That explains it!” “Explains what?” “Why you’re resistant to
magic. Thirteen is around the age when people can access the power source. The
trauma of seeing your brothers killed probably caused you to pull so much power
you formed a null shield. A shield so impenetrable you can no longer access
magic.” “After a season in the
underworld, you’re now an expert in all things magical?” Although he was quick to
dismiss the notion, the shock of the revelation was evident in his wide eyes. “I’m an expert in all
things Valek.” “Analyze this, love.” He
drew me in and kissed me. When his hands pulled at
the fabric of my shirt, I stopped him. “Valek, as much as I want you to stay, I
need you to do a favor for me.” “Anything, love.” I smiled at his loyalty.
He agreed without hesitation, without knowing what I needed. “I want you to
steal those glass prisons. Hide them in a safe place where no one will find
them. Don’t tell me or anyone else where you put them.” “You don’t want to know.
Are you sure?” “Yes. I can still be corrupted
by magic. And if I ever ask you for their location you are not to tell me. No
matter what. Promise.” “Yes, sir.” “Good.” I felt relieved. “It may take me a few
days or weeks. Where will you be?” I told him about staying
on as the Liaison. “I plan to commandeer a certain cottage in the Featherstone
lands and declare that parcel of land neutral territory.” “Commandeer?” He smiled. “Yes. Having safe houses
for Ixian spies in Sitia is not very friendly. Spying on each other is not
conducive to the type of open dialogue I want between the two nations.” “You’ll need to rebuild
the stable. Hire a lad,” Valek teased. “Don’t worry. I already
have a houseboy in mind. A loyal and handsome fellow, who will be at my beck
and call.” Valek raised an eyebrow
as desire danced in his eyes. “Indeed. I’m sure the boy is most anxious to
attend to his duties.” He slid a hand under my
shirt and along my skin. Warmth spread across my stomach and chest. I tried to
move away, but his other arm snaked behind my back. “You need to finish one job
before you begin another,” I said. “The night has just
begun.” He pulled my shirt off. “Plenty of time to take care of my lady before
I run her errand.” His lips found mine,
then he nuzzled my neck. “I must.” He paused to place a line of kisses down my
chest. “Help my lady.” He picked me up and laid me down. “To bed.” Then he removed the rest
of my garments and all concerns about the glass prisons disappeared as Valek’s
caress took control of my senses. My entire being focused on the musky smell
and smooth feel of him. My lungs filled with Valek’s breath. My heart pumped
Valek’s blood. I thought his thoughts and shared his pleasure. The feelings of
contentment, peace and joy flowed through our bodies. Locked tight together, we
owned a piece of the sky. ISBN: 978-1-4268-1344-3 FIRE STUDY Copyright © 2008 by
Maria V. Snyder. All rights reserved.
Except for use in any review, the reproduction or utilization of this work in
whole or in part in any form by any electronic, mechanical or other means, now
known or hereafter invented, including xerography, photocopying and recording,
or in any information storage or retrieval system, is forbidden without the
written permission of the publisher, MIRA Books, 225 Duncan Mill Road, Don
Mills, Ontario, Canada M3B 3K9. This is a work of
fiction. Names, characters, places and incidents are either the product of the
author’s imagination or are used fictitiously, and any resemblance to actual
persons, living or dead, business establishments, events or locales is entirely
coincidental. MIRA and the Star
Colophon are trademarks used under license and registered in Australia, New Zealand, Philippines, United States Patent and Trademark Office and in other
countries. www.MIRABooks.com |
|
|